NINETEENTH CENTURY RELIGIOUS THOUGHT IN THE WEST
NINETEENTH CENTURY RELIGIOUS THOUGHT IN THE WEST
VOLUME I Editorial...
101 downloads
1779 Views
10MB Size
Report
This content was uploaded by our users and we assume good faith they have the permission to share this book. If you own the copyright to this book and it is wrongfully on our website, we offer a simple DMCA procedure to remove your content from our site. Start by pressing the button below!
Report copyright / DMCA form
NINETEENTH CENTURY RELIGIOUS THOUGHT IN THE WEST
NINETEENTH CENTURY RELIGIOUS THOUGHT IN THE WEST
VOLUME I Editorial introduction I
IMMANUEL KANT
Emil L. Fackenheim, The University of Toronto 2
J. G. F1CHTE AND F. W. J. SCHELLING
J. Hey wood Thomas, The University of Nottingham 3
GEORG WILHELM FRIEDRICH HEGEL
Peter C. Hodgson, Vanderbilt University 4
FRIEDRICH SCHLEIERMACHER
B. A. Gerrish, The University of Chicago 5
ARTHUR SCHOPENHAUER
Richard Taylor, The University of Rochester 6
S0REN KIERKEGAARD
Alastair McKinnon, McGill University 7
DAVID FRIEDRICH STRAUSS
Hans Frei, Yale University 8
FERDINAND CHRISTIAN BAUR
Robert Morgan, Linacre College, Oxford 9
LUDWIG FEUERBACH AND KARL MARX
Van A. Harvey, Stanford University VOLUME II I
SAMUEL TAYLOR COLERIDGE
Claude Welch, The Graduate Theological Union, Berkeley RALPH WALDO EMERSON AND THE AMERICAN TRANSCENDENTALISTS
Sydney E. Ahlstrom, Yale University 3
JOHN HENRY NEWMAN AND THE TRACTARIAN MOVEMENT
4
DREY, MOHLER AND THE CATHOLIC SCHOOL OF TUBINGEN
J. M. Cameron, The University of Toronto James Tunstead Burtchaell, C.S.C., The University of Notre Dame 5
ROMAN CATHOLIC MODERNISM
Bernard M. G. Reardon, The University of Newcastle 6
RUSSIAN RELIGIOUS THOUGHT
George L. Kline, Bryn Mawr College 7
BRITISH AGNOSTICISM
James C. Livingston, The College of William and Mary
8
THE BRITISH IDEALISTS
H. D. Lewis, Kings College, University of London 9
WILLIAM JAMES AND JOSIAH ROYCE
John E. Smith, Yale University VOLUME III I
RELIGION AND SCIENCE
John Kent, The University of Bristol 2
FRIEDRICH NIETZSCHE
Carl Heinz Ratschow, The University of Marburg 3
JEWISH THOUGHT
Nathan Rotenstreich, The Hebrew University of Jerusalem 4
THE STUDY OF THE OLD TESTAMENT
R. E. Clements, King's College, University of London 5
THE STUDY OF THE NEW TESTAMENT
J. C. O'Neill, Westminster College, Cambridge FRIEDRICH MAX MULLER AND THE COMPARATIVE STUDY OF RELIGION
Joseph M. Kitagawa and John S. Strong, The University of Chicago THE ANTHROPOLOGY OF RELIGION: BRITISH AND FRENCH SCHOOLS
Sir Edmund Leach, F.B.A., Kings College, Cambridge 8
MAX WEBER AND GERMAN SOCIOLOGY OF RELIGION
Roland Robertson, University of Pittsburgh 9
ERNST TROELTSCH
Trutz Rendtorff and Friedrich Wilhelm Graf, The University of Munich
NINETEENTH CENTURY RELIGIOUS THOUGHT IN THE
WEST VOLUME I I I Edited by
NINIAN SMART, JOHN CLAYTON STEVEN KATZ and PATRICK SHERRY
The right of the University of Cambridge to print and sell all manner of books was granted by Henry VIII in 1534. The University has printed and published continuously since 1584.
CAMBRIDGE UNIVERSITY PRESS Cambridge New York New Rochelle Melbourne Sydney
CAMBRIDGE UNIVERSITY PRESS Cambridge, New York, Melbourne, Madrid, Cape Town, Singapore, Sao Paulo, Delhi Cambridge University Press The Edinburgh Building, Cambridge CB2 8RU, UK Published in the United States of America by Cambridge University Press, New York www.cambridge.org Information on this title: www.cambridge.org/9780521301145 © Cambridge University Press 1985 This publication is in copyright. Subject to statutory exception and to the provisions of relevant collective licensing agreements, no reproduction of any part may take place without the written permission of Cambridge University Press. First published 1985 First paperback edition 1988 Re-issued in this digitally printed version 2008 A catalogue record for this publication is available from the British Library Library of Congress Catalogue Card Number: 84-14207 ISBN 978-0-521-22831-2 hardback (Volume I) ISBN 978-0-521-35964-1 paperback (Volume I) ISBN 978-0-521-22832-9 hardback (Volume II) ISBN 978-0-521-35965-8 paperback (Volume II) ISBN 978-0-521-30114-5 hardback (Volume III) ISBN 978-0-521-35966-5 paperback (Volume III) ISBN 978-0-521-32764-0 hardback (Set) ISBN 978-0-521-35967-2 paperback (Set)
CONTENTS
Preface 1
page ix
RELIGION AND SCIENCE
I
John Kent, The University of Bristol 2
FRIEDRICH NIETZSCHE
37
Carl Heinz Ratschow, The University of Marburg 3
JEWISH THOUGHT
71
Nathan Rotenstreich, The Hebrew University of Jerusalem 4
THE STUDY OF THE OLD TESTAMENT
IO9
R. E. Clements, Kings College, University of London 5
THE STUDY OF THE NEW TESTAMENT
143
J. C. O'Neill, Westminster College, Cambridge 6
FRIEDRICH MAX MULLER AND THE COMPARATIVE STUDY OF RELIGION
179
Joseph M. Kitagawa and John S. Strong, The University of Chicago 7
THE ANTHROPOLOGY OF RELIGION: BRITISH AND FRENCH SCHOOLS
215
Sir Edmund Leach, F.B.A., Kings College, Cambridge 8
MAX WEBER AND GERMAN SOCIOLOGY OF RELIGION
263
Roland Robertson, University of Pittsburgh 9
ERNST TROELTSCH
305
Trutz RendtorfF and Friedrich Wilhelm Graf, The University of Munich INDEX
333
Vll
PREFACE
With the appearance of this volume, our survey of western religious thought in the nineteenth century is concluded. We take this opportunity to thank all who contributed to its successful completion. We thank especially the authors of individual articles for their co-operation, patience and support at every stage of production. We are grateful to colleagues at Lancaster and to former colleagues at Dartmouth in particular for helping to read and evaluate some manuscripts; for their assistance with matters bibliographical, we thank Paul Morris of the department of religious studies and R. M. Bliss of the department of history at the University of Lancaster. We also wish publicly to acknowledge our indebtedness to the more than sixty scholars from around the world who encouraged and advised us especially in the early stages of the project. We cannot list them all by name here, but we can record that their expert judgment proved invaluable in planning the shape and scope of the three volumes now published. Our delight in seeing the final volume appear is necessarily tempered by our deep sorrow that the distinguished American historian Sydney Ahlstrom did not live to see the publication of his last article in the field to which he contributed so much. His early enthusiasm for this project was much appreciated by the editors. By being able to include his essay on Emerson and the Transcendentalists in volume two of Nineteenth Century Religious Thought in the West, we pay tribute to his memory as a respected scholar and as an influential teacher. Ninian Smart John Clayton Steven Katz Patrick Sherry
IX
I
Religion and Science
JOHN KENT
Introduction The relationship between religious thought and science changed steadily in the second half of the nineteenth century. By about i860 the accumulation of fresh information in such fields as archaeology, geology and biology was breaking down the widespread earlier nineteenth-century assumption that science and Christian orthodoxy confirmed one another on such matters as the age of the earth, thefixityof species and the special creation of man. The publication of Charles Darwin's Origin of Species (1859) crystallised this situation, but perhaps his later book, The Descent ofMan (1871), mattered as much, because there Darwin showed in his usual impressive detail that one could give at least a plausible biological, strictly non-supernaturalistic account of man's moral as well as physical development. As time went on, theologians grappled with these problems, and writers as distant from one another as the American Presbyterian, Charles Hodge of Princeton (17971878), the Anglican bishop, Frederick Temple (1821-1902), and the Roman Catholic lay scientist, St George Mivart (1827-1900), all maintained that the historical growth of man as rational, moral and religious required supernatural intervention, however natural might have been the formation of his body. This was perhaps the last stand of one kind of orthodoxy, for at this stage the argument for special creation still depended on the acceptance of the Christian claim to the possession of a unique, final, divine self-revelation in the Bible. There was no simple pattern in what followed, but many scientists, philosophers of religion and theologians moved towards less absolute positions, and might have agreed with Harold Hoffding, for example, when he wrote in 1914: 'there always remains the possibility that the great rational and causal web of interrelations which science is gradually exposing to view may be the framework or the foundation for the unfolding,
JOHN KENT
in accordance with the very laws and forms discovered by scientific inquiry, of a content of Value. The axiom of the conservation of Value need assert nothing more and nothing other than this.'1 Ideas of development It is sometimes said that the view that evolution and Christian doctrine were compatible had been generally accepted in British Protestantism by the mid1880s.2 The accuracy of the suggestion depends on definition. It remains doubtful, indeed, how far many Christian theologians have ever come to terms with Darwinism proper, a theory of biological evolution by means of natural selection, which accounted for local changes in organic populations by relating them to their adaptive advantages, and implied that history was neither uni-directional nor providentially directed.3 Vaguer, progressivist ideas of development, which could be traced back to Lamarck (1744-1829),4 and which were popularised in the United States and Britain by Herbert Spencer (1820-1903),5 proved more attractive to many religious writers, because they could more easily give this version of development a theistic interpretation. The concept of 'advance' from the simple to the more complex, which was central to Spencer's essay on 'Progress' which appeared in the Westminster Review in 1857, came from Lamarck.6 This underlying confidence in the future, shown by both Lamarck and Spencer, did not conflict as much as might have been expected with the western religious tradition. This was partly because both men assumed that the final perfection of nature and society which they saw as the goal of biological and social development lay far in the future, and this was in line with the gradualism of the dominant western post-millennialism, which envisaged a steady improvement of human life without dramatic supernatural interventions until Christian history culminated in a literal millennium.7 On the whole, what was being accepted as 'evolution' in Britain in the 1880s was the combination of an optimistic, speculative interpretation of the role of the human race in history with the admission, inevitable given the steady accumulation of evidence of various kinds, that physiologically man belonged to the natural order. Even in the 1880s, however, such acceptance might be qualified. Some theologians, for example, were not so much accepting evolution as evading the full consequences of such an acceptance. In 1885, for example, W. E. Gladstone criticised the French Liberal Protestant writer, Albert Reville (1826-1906), whose Prolegomenes de YHistoire des Religions (1881) had
recently been translated into English under the auspices of Max Miiller, for
Religion and Science
treating the creation narratives in Genesis as myth.8 Gladstone insisted on their essential veracity and claimed that natural science, by which he seemed to mean the work of Cuvier, who had died in 1832, had shown that fact 'supported what we have fondly believed to be His word'; 'evolution', he said, was an idea which had long been familiar to history, philosophy and theology, and had even been present to the mind of Paul: there was no conflict between Scripture and evolution. More professional theologians than Gladstone could be quite as unyielding. The publication of Lux Mundi, for example, in 1889, distressed Canon Liddon of St Paul's, because the young Anglo-Catholic writer, Charles Gore, seemed to him to have abandoned the absolute belief in the divine inspiration of the Bible which Liddon thought was essential to AngloCatholicism in the tradition of John Keble.9 Gore had actually argued that only the biblical record from Abraham onward was substantially historical in the strict sense, a view which relegated a story like that of the Flood to the level of myth. The watchful Darwinian, Thomas Huxley, commented that if the Noachian Flood did not happen much as it was described, it should not be used to illustrate God's way of dealing with sin. He continued: Our age is a day of compromise. The present and the near future seem given to those happily, if curiously, constituted people, who see as little difficulty in throwing aside any amount of /wtf-Abrahamic narrative, as the authors of Lux Mundi see in sacrificing the />r£-Abrahamic stories; and having distilled away every inconvenient matter of fact in Christian history, continue to pay divine honours to the residue.10
Huxley meant that there might in practice be no point at which the apparent acceptance of evolution entailed any serious theological revision at all, because what was being accepted as the scientific account of the creation of man was not interpreted as providing a new, and possibly destructive, context for the biblical material; even Darwinism, supposing that to be the form of evolution which was involved, was not to be understood as affecting the religious status of any part of the Bible. Writers like Charles Gore were not primarily concerned about accepting evolution; they did not intend to be trapped in a position of simple opposition to natural science as such. What they were defending was a concept of revelation, whether or not they attached the idea specifically to Genesis as an account of the origins of the human race. Christianity required some theory of revelation if its characteristic tenets - divine creation; fall of man; the birth, death, resurrection and ascension of the God-Man; and the supernatural essence of the ecclesia were to be preserved as knowledge. 'Religion' might make do with reasonable hypotheses; nineteenth-century orthodox Christianity, however, had to defend its claim to possession of revealed truth.
JOHN KENT
This explains why Liddon in 1889 was still defending the view that the Old Testament had to be treated as a 'Christian' document which had the status of divine revelation in all its parts because Christ had given it his personal, divine authority. As Thomas Huxley foresaw, even if Liddon's theological successors became moreflexible,this meant only that they would concede that the Genesis narratives did not give a 'scientific' description of the creation; they would continue to treat them as a divinely warranted description of the state of human psychology. On the whole, scientific inquiry and Christianity's traditional claim to the possession of the unique self-revelation of the divine simply parted company; it is significant that when a Catholic theologian like J. H. Newman (1801-90) used the idea of 'development', he was thinking of 'development' in the understanding of revelation.11 Of course, the publication of The Origin of Species in 1859 was not the beginning of a conflict between nineteenth-century science and Christian theology. In the twenty years before this, attacks in the name of science on Christianity and on religion in general had increased steadily in Europe. Ludwig Biichner's Kraft und Stoff {Force and Matter, English translation 1864) had appeared in 1855; Jakob Moleschott's Die Lehre der Nahrungsmittel (The Chemistry of Food and Diet, English translation 1855) was published in 1850, and contained the famous phrase, 'no thought without phosphorus'; Karl Vogt's Physiologische Briefe were written between 1845 and 1847, and established his reputation as a polemical materialist; and Feuerbach, whose review of Moleschott's book had contained another famous materialist epigram, 'man is what he eats', published The Essence of Christianity in 1841. Comte's Catechism of Popular Religion, which was translated into English by his disciple, Richard Congreve, in 1858, straddled the two positions uneasily, because Comte wanted to derive a social religion from his 'social physics'. The advent of Darwinism, therefore, reinforced the confidence of those for whom science was a liberating source of hope in the future of the human race and the future triumphs of the human reason. Biichner, Moleschott and Vogt all believed (like Herbert Spencer) that evolution must in the long run mean progressive improvement. Biichner, for example, wrote in his old age that if, as was demonstrated, the essential task of humanism, or of the future development of humanity in opposition to the brutal state of nature, rests in the war against the cruel struggle for existence, or in the replacement of the power of nature by the power of reason, then it is clear that this goal must be attained above all through our seeking to bring about the greatest possible equalisation of the means and conditions under which and with which every individual has to fight in his struggle for existence or in his competition for his standard of living.12
Religion and Science
And as late as 1913 Leonard Hobhouse, first professor of sociology at the London School of Economics, said that the aim of comparative sociology was to measure the actual achievement of social progress. He concluded that (a) social development was steadily becoming less a matter of mechanical necessity and more a matter of control by purposive intelligence; (b) that the development of what he called a social mind was the condition of increasing social harmony; and (c) that control of this social mind had gone far enough to show that the possibility of a harmonious development of human life was not a dream to be dissolved by the cold touch of physical science, but a reality to which the entire story of evolution, physical, biological, mental and social led up. Religion might exist in Hobhouse's ideal community, but only as a self-consciously binding element which would serve the development of humanity.13 These examples from Biichner and Hobhouse illustrate the kind of liberal/socialist use of a concept of evolution to reduce theology to a minor contributory factor in human growth and progress. Religion might either wither away, or become a technique, conscious and not inevitably supernaturalist, by which masses of men, knowing that they had only this life to live, nerved themselves for advance as well as survival. Here the war between science and religion14 had petered out because religion, understood as a sociological phenomenon, that is, as a method by which the community affirmed and perhaps attained socially desirable, secular but allegedly moral ends, was being firmly subordinated to human purposes, and subjected to new varieties of reductionist explanation. Not all scientific writers in the period went so far. Thomas Huxley, for example, certainly thought that nineteenth-century scientific advances had shown that the claims of traditional Christianity were false, but he equally came to reject the view that a properly scientific description of evolution could be made the basis of either an ethical or a religious system. By the 1890s, for instance, he was criticising the way in which Herbert Spencer himself used the concept of evolution to suggest a single, unitary system whose direction was built in, first, through a struggle for survival which Spencer thought of as sorting out and refining the primary material at the human level; and second, through a shift to a more cooperative, adaptatory process from which civilisation had gradually emerged. Huxley, on the other hand, considered that there was a break between a cosmic process which had produced man, and a social process which, although not altogether freed from its biological environment, depended for further advance on a positive human rejection of the kind of behaviour popularly associated with 'natural selection'. Huxley wanted to replace
JOHN KENT
Spencer's phrase, 'the survival of the fittest', with 'the fitting of as many as possible to survive'.15 At the social level, of course, Huxley did not differ as much from Spencer as this might seem to imply; he was no collectivism as the word was then used, and was capable of alarming himself with visions of William Booth, the founder of the Salvation Army, as a demagogic British dictator. Nevertheless, he believed that further development in civilisation depended on a moralised human will, not on a passive acceptance of a cosmic process. Spencer, however, rejected the idea that men had now to struggle against or to correct the process which had evolved them. This, he said, was to assume 'that there is something in us which is not a product of the cosmic process, and is practically a going back to the old theological notions, which put Man and Nature in antithesis'.16 He took evolution as a sociological premise, and then argued that the cosmic process itself would somehow discipline the human mind and check the unqualified struggle for existence; his own debt, not only to the eighteenth-century Enlightenment but also to the theological past came out in this clinging to the belief that the cosmic process must, as a completed whole, turn out to have been benevolent. Darwin and The Descent of Man Darwin's mature views on the place of man in history, as he set them out in The Descent of Man (1871), rejected traditional theological positions more ruthlessly than this, and much more ruthlessly than might be supposed from the number of religious writers who claimed to have accepted evolution. He subscribed to the common nineteenth-century opinion that the moral sense or conscience was the most important difference between man and the lower animals, but he advanced the proposition that 'any animal whatever, endowed with well-marked social instincts, would inevitably acquire a moral sense or conscience, as soon as its intellectual powers had become as well developed, or nearly as well developed, as in man'.17 In other words, he tried to work out an empirical natural history of ethics, in which the most important creative elements were social feelings, which he regarded as instinctive or innate in the lower animals; mental growth, because this finally involved the individual's ability to compare past and future actions; habit, because this strengthened social feelings in the individual; and the formation of language, because this made possible common opinions about behaviour. He suggested the further hypothesis that 'moral views' had actually developed in terms of a 'general good' of the community, and he defined this as 'the means by which the greatest possible number of individuals can be reared in full vigour and health, with all their faculties perfect, under the 6
Religion and Science
conditions to which they are exposed'.18 Nevertheless, this natural discovery of'good' had its limits. Darwin emphasised that 'conscience' related to the tribe, and that murder, robbery, treachery and so forth were not regarded as crimes if committed against members of other tribes. Going further, he said: How so many absurd rules of conduct, as well as so many absurd religious beliefs, have originated we do not know, nor how it is that they have become, in all quarters of the world, so deeply impressed on the minds of men; but it is worthy of remark that a belief constantly inculcated in the early years of life, while the brain is impressible, appears to acquire almost the nature of an instinct.19
Darwin could see no evidence that man had been aboriginally endowed with belief in an omnipotent god. In any case, 'the difference in mind between man and the higher animals, great as it is, is certainly one of degree and not of kind';20 and 'a difference in degree, however great, does not justify us in placing man in a distinct kingdom'.21 Above all, he tried at great length to show that intelligence, speech and a sense of beauty were present in animals. 'If man had not been his own classifier, he would never have thought of founding a separate order for his own reception.'22 When the Roman Catholic lay theologian, anatomist and zoologist, St George Mivart reviewed The Descent ofMan in the Westminster Review,2* he fiercely reasserted the orthodox position that man was separately created by God at least as far as his soul went, and said that the gulf between man and animals was no matter of degree but an abyss in kind. He argued, however, as though Darwin had supported his own thesis by saying that animals showed clear examples of rational behaviour and a moral sense which were comparable with human rationality and moral judgment, whereas Darwin only claimed that the social behaviour and inter-personal sympathy which seemed to occur among animals might be interpreted as an earlier stage of the social and moral capabilities of man. If what the animal kingdom lacked in general was intellectual development, by which Darwin meant above all the powers of reflection and speech, this did not mean that there were no traces of speech or reflection in the lower animals, and therefore (he said) one could not offer a decisive ground for making man into a separate order. Mivart replied that Darwin 'had set at nought the first principles of both philosophy and religion'. In fact, Darwin did not at all commit himself to atheism, but he did dismiss - by offering an alternative, more empirical account - the claim that man, thought of in terms of everything that was implied by 'conscience', was a special case in nature which required divine intervention. Neither logically nor emotionally was he persuaded by Mivart's statement that man differed far more from an elephant or a gorilla than these did from the dust of the earth on which they trod.
JOHN KENT
Critics of religious orthodoxy: Renan, Mill, Seeley, Arnold, Wallace, Haeckel A similar basic attitude to Darwin's to the relation of religion and science could be found in the work of such writers as Ernest Renan, Matthew Arnold, John Stuart Mill and John Seeley. For all of them science meant rational, free inquiry without recourse to the concept of the supernatural. They did not despise the imagination, but they feared a tendency in the aesthetic as well as the religious temperament to evade rational challenge, to avoid self-examination, and to appeal to the past as in itself a sufficient ground for what seemed otherwise unsupported assertions. These critics often attacked the concept of miracle. Renan and Mill were both well aware of the importance which the Roman Catholic Church attached to contemporary claims for the miraculous, such as the alleged appearances of the Virgin Mary at Lourdes in 1858; such claims mattered, because they could be substantiated, they offered evidence of supernatural intervention in historical time and space. They were also well aware that the cultural situation of Christianity had changed, that, as Renan said, 'the miracles and messianic prophecies which were formerly the basis of Christian apologetic, have become an embarrassment to it; people seek to discard them'.24 Matthew Arnold echoed him: 'It is what we call the Time-Spirit which is sapping the proof from miracles - it is the Zeitgeist itself. Whether we attack them or whether we defend them does not much matter. The human mind, as its experience widens, is turning away from them.'25 Renan's use of the word 'science' always presupposed the existence of an wwscientific ecclesiastical historian whose fundamental concern was bound to be with propaganda: 'science alone is pure . . . propaganda takes no notice of it'.26 One rejected the concept of supernatural events, Renan wrote, for the same reason that one denied the existence of centaurs and unicorns: they had never been seen. Whereas the unscientific church historian accepted the idea of the supernatural as involved in the causation of historical events, for Renan it was axiomatic that 'one has only to admit the supernatural to have left science behind'.27 (Similarly, J. R. Seeley, himself a historian, dismissed the historical writing of his day - c. 1880 - as a medley of facts, unclassified and unverified, such as excited the ridicule of the man of science.)28 There was no question of an unexamined presupposition in Renan's mind; he considered that the historical evidence was not adequate to justify belief in supernatural intervention in any specific instance, such as the story of the resurrection of Jesus - 'for the historian the life of Jesus ends with his last breath'.29 One finds John Stuart Mill taking the same view, even in the
Religion and Science
sympathetic Three Essays on Religion of 1874: 'the supernatural character of the fact is always . . . matter of inference and speculation, and the mystery always admits the possibility of a solution not supernatural'.30 Indeed, it was crucial to Renan's position in La Vie de Jesus (1864) that a man as intelligent and spiritual as Jesus could not have believed that he had restored Lazarus to life. Renan regarded the wwscientific church historian as incompetent in his assessment of evidence, as well as over-committed to the support of Christian conclusions. Renan's approach led naturally from 'church history' to 'the history of religion'; in his life of Jesus he pressed the view, which was analogous to Darwin's, that human history must be regarded as a secular whole; the history of religion ought not to be divided into Christian history, which had its own, unique supernatural truth, and the history of the non-Christian religions, which were to be thought of as having no supernatural content or authority. 'The miracles of Mahomet have been written down as well as the miracles of Jesus ... Do we therefore accept Mahomet's miracles?'31 In fact, he said, the distinction between the two was arbitrary; and J. S. Mill agreed, instancing the way in which Protestants, who claimed that they believed in the miracles of the New Testament, refused to accept the accounts of nineteenth-century Roman Catholic miracles although (Mill said) the evidence for the truth of the nineteenth-century stories was better than that given in the New Testament.32 Mill added that scientific investigation had made it clear that if God existed he ruled the universe through secondary causes; a man who inquired into an event asked simply what was its cause, not, whether it had a natural cause. Science had left no general case for miracles, so that one had to fall back on the evidence available for any specific story. Mill dismissed the primitive Christian evidence for the biblical miracle stories as the uncross-examined evidence of extremely ignorant people, honourably credulous, but unaccustomed to draw the line between sense-perception and the imagination, and living in an age when it was commonly believed that miraculous events could be produced by both good and evil spirits. The New Testament stories, he concluded, had no standing as historical fact and were invalid as evidence for revelation.33 It should be remembered, of course, that Mill was drawing a distinction between Christianity and religion. In the Three Essays he left himself the option that the evidence might fit the hypothesis that the universe was the product of a less than omnipotent creator; he also idealised the human Jesus in a fashion strange to Renan, whose portrait of Jesus was more subtle, but less noble. One cause of the impact of science on the Victorian public as well as on the theological mind, was the constant discovery of fresh information about the
JOHN KENT
human past, and not the least influential aspect of Darwin's writing and his ability to handle a mass of observations. Educated people, Arnold wrote, no longer took the Bible on trust, but wanted verification, 'and certainly the fairy-tale of the three supernatural persons no man can verify'.34 Equally, of course, no verification could be offered, in Arnold's view, for the Christian attribution of personality to God; he poked fun at theologians who took for granted the existence of what he called the 'Great Personal First Cause', and who assumed that one could go straight on to discuss what such a being thought about church vestments or the use of the Athanasian Creed, both of them subjects of ecclesiastical controversy in the England of the 1870s. Nevertheless, it was Arnold who made a positive attempt to reconcile Christianity with scientific criticism. Neither Renan nor Mill thought that anything further could be done with the Christian theological tradition, as distinct from the personality of Jesus. As for Seeley, he tried to redefine Christianity in non-supernaturalistic terms, but was baffled by the centrality traditionally given to the resurrection of Jesus, an event which he thought that those most penetrated by the modern (scientific) spirit must reject. Yet a scientific outlook as he understood it did not offer immortality, and Seeley commented sadly: 'Life becomes more intolerable the more we know and discover, so long as everything widens and deepens except our duration, and that remains as pitiful as ever.'35 Arnold, however, claimed that he was giving 'a scientific account of God'.36 He substituted for the concept of the Great Personal First Cause the proposition that the universe was subject to an enduring power, not ourselves, which made for righteousness. This statement could be verified (he thought) in personal and historical experience. At no point in Arnold's writings, however, did it become entirely clear why talk about 'an enduring power, not ourselves, which makes for righteousness', should be more verifiable, and therefore more scientific (Arnold's own word) than talk about 'a magnified and non-natural man', another of Arnold's summary descriptions of the Christian doctrine of a personal God.37 The assertion that one's own personal moral history and that of the human race showed that the universe was on the side of righteousness was obviously more plausible to a nineteenth-century than to a twentieth-century European, but here Arnold was really exposing his own cautious version of the sense of a purposive creation which haunted so many of his contemporaries, whether they were theists or not. There were exceptions - Nietzsche, for example, who dismissed the idea of 'creation' as a survival from the ages of superstition: 'one can explain nothing with a mere word'.38 Arnold thought that his own position was 'scientific' because he based his argument for religious truth on 10
Religion and Science
what he took to be identifiable, analysable moral experience, whereas Christian theologians, he felt, began by assuming the existence of a personal, loving God, expounded this on trinitarian lines as a number of revealed, uncontestable, if mysterious dogmas, and finally expected virtue to flow from these not very promising premises. Arnold wanted to satisfy lay opinion for which science meant, among other things, the testing of hypotheses; he described systematic theology in the traditional Christian sense as the 'pseudo-science of Church dogma'.39 When, at the beginning of Literature and Dogma he said that the first step towards a right understanding of the Bible was to realise that its language wasflexibleand literary, not rigid,fixedand scientific^ he did not intend to elevate the literary above the scientific. He meant that the reader must use a sensitive understanding of the nature of the language to arrive at religious and biblical hypotheses which could be seriously tested in one's own human experience. He was not appealing to the literary (in a way to become familiar in the twentieth century) in order to reinstate the miraculous; belief in the miraculous was doomed, and the immediate danger was that it would take all versions of the supernatural with it. As for the surviving element in Arnold's argument, the enduring power which made for righteousness was not one which men could identify as personal, but it could be served personally, especially by following the indications left by Jesus, himself far from impersonal in Arnold's version, but portrayed as an attractive embodiment of morality touched with emotion. Once again, hesitation about the supernatural assertions of Christianity was partly solved by redrawing the character of Jesus. There was no inevitable conflict, therefore, between religion and science according to Arnold. Conflict began when Christian theologians retfed on authority - the Bible and Tradition - for the truth of the statements which they made, rather than on verifiability. They could not, in Arnold's opinion, offer any substantial grounds for belief in events like the Jewish crossing of the Red Sea or the resurrection of Jesus, or in doctrines like that of the Trinity. In fact, in Arnold's mature work the Judaeo-Christian tradition was virtually reduced to the assertion that Judaism founded religion on moral experience, not on metaphysics, and that Jesus taught men how to achieve a proper relationship with the eternal, objective power which guaranteed righteousness. Arnold's account of Judaism was not hostile; indeed, a more strictly 'scientific' attitude could produce a more hostile approach. From the 1840s the new European race of sociologists, Feuerbach, Marx, Sombart and Weber, all interpreted 'Judaism' as primarily an economic principle; symbolically, they destroyed it as a religious system.41 Moreover, in the 11
JOHN KENT
second half of the nineteenth century Christian scholars began to interpret the Old Testament in terms of a vague (Spencerian) concept of progress (development), and the history of religion was identified with the evolution of religion. In this way, 'scientific' status was given to the 'preparatory' role of Judaism, as seen from the Christian world-historical perspective. 'For what is progressive is necessarily imperfect in its earlier stages', Jowett wrote of the inspiration of Scripture in Essays and Reviews in i860, 'and even erring to those who come after, whether it be the maxims of a half-civilized world which are compared with those .of a civilized one, or the Law with the Gospel. Scripture itself points the way to answer the moral objections to Scripture .'42 In the meantime, however, the changed civil status of the Jews in France (from the Revolution of 1789), England (from 1858), and in the United States, together with the continued oppression ofJews in the Russian Empire, transformed 'the Jewish question' and produced Zionism as a new religio-political solution. When Jowett applied the idea of 'progressive development' to the Old Testament, one can be sure that he did not have nineteenth-century Jews in mind. Indeed, the only important attempt to understand nineteenth-century Jewishness and the tensions at work within it in Europe came from no theologian, but from the humanist, George Eliot.43 Renan, Seeley and Arnold all became melancholy when they considered the future effect on religion of the fact that religious writers would increasingly have to dispense with appeals to authority (revelation), and work within the same rules of logic and evidence which applied to the work of scientists.44 The changing scientific picture did not always have such a depressing impact. Science had an exhilarating religious effect on some people, for example, on that remarkable scientist, Alfred Russell Wallace, and on the equally well-known German scientific writer, Ernst Haeckel (1834-1919), author of The Natural History of Creation (English translation 1868) and The Riddle of the Universe (English translation 1900).45 Scientific opinion, of course, had not been unanimous in its reception of The Origin of Species. On 21 April 1864, for example, Canon Christopher Wordsworth presented to the Anglican Convocation a Declaration of Students of the Natural and Physical Sciences which strongly asserted that it was impossible for the Word of God, as written in the Book of Nature, and God's Word, written in Holy Scripture, to contradict one another. The Declaration, published in 1865, attracted 717 signatures out of a scientific community which has been estimated at about 5,ooo.46 The elderly Reverend Adam Sedgwick (1785-1873) was the only well-known geologist to sign, and the failure to produce a more impressive list was widely 12
Religion and Science
interpreted as meaning that the majority of scientists thought that it was wrong that science should be fettered by religious dogma. This did not mean that those scientists who did not sign the Declaration were necessarily nonreligious, and Wallace, whose role in the history of biology was almost as remarkable as Darwin's, was an early explorer of the metaphysical consequences of natural selection. Wallace's ideas can be found in two essays, 'The Development of the Human Race under the Law of Natural Selection' (1864), and 'The Limits of Natural Selection as applied to Man' (1869).47 In the earlier essay Wallace argued that in the case of man 'there came into existence a being in whom that subtle force we term mind became of greater importance than his mere bodily structure'.48 The use of mind, and the power of men to act in concert, took them out of the simple category of natural selection, so that the human body no longer changed very much. Wallace, indeed, thought that in the later nineteenth century man's further mental development stood in danger, because the results of science had become available to societies intellectually and morally ill-equipped to use them. (One is reminded of Seeley's complaint, that 'supernatural religion, all must feel, has not done so much, has not reformed the world so much, as might have been expected'.)49 Among the civilised nations, natural selection was not (Wallace said) securing the permanent advance of morality and intelligence, because the mediocre in morality and intelligence succeeded best and multiplied fastest. Yet advance, he thought, was still taking place, in the influence of morality on public opinion and in the appetite for education. Since Wallace was unable to attribute this advance to 'the survival of the fittest', he argued that it must be due to the inherent progressive power of the qualities which raised men far above their fellow animals, 'and at the same time afford us the surest proof that there are other and higher existences than ourselves, from whom these qualities may have derived, and towards whom we may be ever tending'.50 This conclusion was heady, not very 'scientific', stuff, but the second essay, 'The Limits of Natural Selection as applied to Man', again attempted to move from natural selection, which Wallace never abandoned at the biological level, to God. He argued that natural selection could not account for all human characteristics, such, for example, as the moral sense; no doubt this could be explained as being useful for survival to a group, but such an idea did not explain the sanctity (Wallace's word) which often attached to moral, but not necessarily personally advantageous, behaviour. Wallace took the intuitional view that the capacity for moral feeling was in man from the start, though sometimes expressing itself through inappropriate actions;51 he 13
JOHN KENT
regarded man's moral and aesthetic capacities as essential to his perfect spiritual development.52 Wallace concluded that a superior intelligence had guided the development of man in a definite direction.53 Then he attacked the problem of the origin of consciousness. He dismissed Thomas Huxley's suggestion that thought was the expression of molecular changes, saying that 'either all matter is conscious, or consciousness is something distinct from matter'.54 Once again, his own solution to the problem was to say that the universe was not only dependent on, but actually was, the will of higher intelligences or of a single supreme intelligence.55 Wallace, therefore, although still primarily interested in science in the 1860s, rejected any interpretation of the Darwinian understanding of evolution which included mind in the course of natural law. He did not believe that the same law - natural selection - which appeared adequate to explain the development of animals, also sufficed to explain man's superior mental nature.56 For him, consciousness was discontinuous in nature, and could not be entirely accounted for by its genesis from lower biological forms. Wallace shared this basic view of consciousness with later theological writers like Frederick Temple, and this overlap of scientific and theological speculation is important for any assessment of the period, and for any discussion of the extent to which science and religion (or Christianity, which has to be clearly distinguished from religion in a wider sense) came into conflict after i860. As far as Wallace (like Spencer) was concerned, the overriding commitment was to what was really an eighteenth-century belief in the purposive nature of the historical process. Theological writers, for that matter, were bound to assume that redemptive history - history interpreted as the divinely directed consequences of the atoning sacrifice of Christ - was unidirectional; some, like Jowett used the notion of'progressive revelation' in order to cope with the problems of the biblical text; but they also inherited, especially through the writings of Bishop Butler, the traditional view that 'ruin' was an essential concept in the Christian understanding of history, and they were not sure how they could reconcile 'ruin' with 'evolution'. If one compares Wallace with the popular German scientific writer, Ernst Haeckel, one realises the strength of this 'scientific' impulse to generate 'religious' positions. Wallace had retained his belief in natural selection, but on the speculative level he adopted the kind of optimistic, purposive supernaturalism for which Darwin himself found little use; later, he experimented with psychical research.57 Haeckel, who had been a disciple of Herbert Spencer, but who had converted to Darwinism in the 1860s, believed that Darwin had shown that the life-process worked purely through natural causes, without the influence of any external purposive or 14
Religion and Science
supernatural agency, but on this basis he set up a system of what he called 'pure monism', according to which matter, or infinitely extended substance, and spirit (energy) or sensitive and thinking substance, were the two fundamental attributes, or principal properties, of the all-embracing divine essence of the world, the universal substance. (He claimed the patronage of Spinoza and Goethe for these ideas, which did not owe overmuch to nineteenth-century science.) The cult of the ideal - what he called the real trinity of the nineteenth century; the true, the good and the beautiful - was to be pursued above all in the temple of nature. As for monist ethics, there he appealed to Spencer again, who had shown, he said, that the feeling of duty did not rest on an illusory, Kantian categorical imperative, but on the solid ground of social instinct: the highest aim of all morality was to re-establish what Christianity had wrecked - a sound harmony between self-love and love of one's neighbour. Belief in the immortality of the soul was a dogma in hopeless contradiction with the most solid empirical truths of modern science.58 In his old age, Haeckel liked to think of himself as the high-priest of a new, 'scientific' 'religion', but his Monist League, never more than a tiny sect, has been described as one of the sources of Nazi ideology.59 Haeckel, Wallace, Thomas Huxley and Matthew Arnold were all representatives of a widespread later nineteenth-century conviction that although men needed some kind of religion, Christianity no longer, in its traditional form, fitted the known facts about the universe and human history well enough to justify its dominant position in the religious culture of the West. At the turn of the century, however, it seemed, to the American psychologist and philosopher, William James, for example, that the scientific outlook wasfittingvery badly with any religious system. 'There is a notion in the air about us', he said, 'that religion is probably only an anachronism, a case of "survival", an atavistic relapse into a mode of thought which humanity in its more enlightened examples has outgrown.'60 And he added, in a comment that might have been aimed at Haeckel himself, that though the scientist might individually nourish a religion, and even be a theist in his irresponsible hours, the days were over when it could be said that for Science herself the heavens declared the glory of God and the firmament showed his handiwork. It was impossible, he said, in the existing temper of the scientific imagination, to find in the driftings of the cosmic atoms, whether they worked on the universal or on the particular scale, anything but 'a kind of aimless weather, doing and undoing, achieving no proper history, and leaving no result'.61 The combined pressure of anthropology, physics and biology was, from James's point of view, weakening the scientist's will to believe. Of course, 15
JOHN KENT
one can interpret the evidence in other ways. A Marxist historian of science, Dr Robert Young, for example, argued that many middle-class intellectuals and scientists produced 'rationalizations of a reconciling kind'. Darwin, for instance, arrived at the theory of natural selection under the pressure of a ruling-class need to justify the harshly competitive socio-economic conditions of industrialised England; if men could be persuaded that existing social conditions were part of a natural process, they might be willing to tolerate the existing distribution of power.62 Young argued that the history of nineteenth-century science should not be divorced from its social context and so reduced to a bland history of ideas. Whatever Darwin and his successors thought that they were doing, they were offering an apology for later nineteenth-century capitalism. They were replacing (or perhaps even reinforcing) religion as an opiate of the working-classes; they acted as substitute theologians. The view that Darwinism, rather than Christian theology, explained the patterns of social change, was already widespread at the time. Darwin himself, as Edward Manier reminds us, became increasingly aware of the social role of the scientist and to some extent suppressed his personal estimate of the cultural significance of his theory because he thought that it might weaken the accepted basis of society.63 Later nineteenth-century applications of biological theory had a destructive element: Anthony Smith, in his authoritative treatment of nationalism, found 'social darwinism' entwined in the worse excesses of both Fascism and Nazism.64 The actual social effect of'Darwinism' was often to reinforce the more violent side of the nationalism which was the most serious competitor which religion encountered at the mass level as the nineteenth century came to an end. The point is important, because it illustrates the fact that the relationship between religion and science was far from simple. Many mediating factors were involved, and organised religion may have been weakened more by a nationalism stimulated and ethically emboldened by 'social darwinism' than it was by the intellectually more significant exchanges of writers like Wallace, Huxley, Arnold and Temple.65 Christian theological restatements: Temple and Tennant The possible links between Herbert Spencer's doctrine of progress, Imperialism and Christianity were well illustrated in the case of Temple. He wrote to Lee Warner in 1886, for example, that Gladstone 'sees no advantage to humanity in the existence of the British Empire . . . it would not really shock him to contemplate the loss of Ireland from the British Empire. He does not feel with us when we talk of our Empire as a gift from God, to be used for the good of Mankind.'66 The last Anglican Archbishop of 16
Religion and Science
Canterbury in the Victorian period, Temple was regarded as a 'liberal' theologian who 'accepted evolution' in the 1880s, and he certainly believed that he had. It might be more accurate, nevertheless, to say that he did not entirely reject Darwin's views, but set out the minimum ground required for their acceptance by a sophisticated Protestant theology rooted in Butler's Analogy.67 Man had a power of recognising spiritual truth; this power (as in Butler) was called 'conscience', and it received and transmitted a spiritual voice. For Temple, as for J. H. Newman in A Grammar of Assent (1870) though in a rather different context - the voice of conscience conveyed a conviction of its own absolute authority. 'Science rests on phenomena observed by the senses; Religion on the voice that speaks directly from another world.'68 Therefore the origin of man had to be of such a kind as would make the presence of 'conscience' in a human being possible. This faculty for recognising spiritual truth also enabled men to accept the revelation contained in the New Testament, which was evidently unique, and which satisfied the problems of men beset by moral evil: the divine solution came above all through the death of Jesus Christ. Temple declined to separate the teaching and the miraculous events of the New Testament (as Arnold, for instance, had done), partly on the ground that the first Christian teachers believed that Jesus could and did do miraculous acts, and partly on the ground that Jesus himself evidently believed in his own supernatural powers. There was no sign here that Darwinism was compelling any change in Temple's theological position. Having established what he would not surrender, Temple argued that science, which he defined as the establishment of invariable laws from the observations of the senses, could not push the theory of evolution further than the bodily formation of man. He summed up his position: Science cannot yet assert, and it is tolerably certain never will assert, that the higher and added life, the spiritual faculty which is man's characteristic prerogative, was not given to man by a direct creative act as soon as the body which was to be the seat and instrument of that spiritual faculty had been sufficiently to receive it. That the body should have been first prepared, and that when it was prepared the soul should either have been then given, or then first made to live in the image of God - this is a supposition which is inconsistent neither with what the Bible tells nor with what Science has up to this time proved.
The argument simply ignored what Darwin had said in The Descent of Man.69
All that Temple had abandoned was the simple creation narratives and the time-span of the Old Testament book of Genesis. In their place he had combined some of the more indisputable facts of the new geology and 17
JOHN KENT
biology with other, less easily examinable, traditional theological statements. The author of Genesis, Temple wrote, was not concerned with biological processes but with the formal structure of nature: he had to teach (that is, he was divinely prompted to teach), the supremacy of man among creatures, and the subordination in position but equality in nature of woman to man; he also taught the original declension of man's will from the divine path, and the dim and distant but sure hope of man's restoration. 'These are not, and cannot be, lessons of science.'70 Evolution in the scientific sense had completed its work in forming man as he was before this spiritual history began. On the philosophical level, however, Temple appealed to the theory of evolution in order to support the argument from design for the existence of God. On the basis of a general idea of development, he suggested that what seemed like imperfections in the universe might be like the imperfections in a half-painted picture. 'To the many partial designs which Paley's Natural Theology points out, and which still remain what they were, the doctrine of Evolution adds the design of perpetual progress . . . The very phrase which we use to sum up Darwin's teaching, the survival of the fittest, implies a perpetual diminution of pain and increase of enjoyment for all creatures that can feel.'71 Design was entertained from the beginning and impressed on every particle of living matter. Temple therefore defended the workmanship of the divine creator in post-millennial terms, claiming that 'beasts of prey are diminishing; life is easier for man and for all animals that are under his care; many species of animals perish as man fills and subjugates the globe, but those that remain have far greater happiness in their lives'.72 This passage almost amounted to the substitution of a traditional Christian idea of development, as movement towards the Second Coming, for the new, biological concept of development, to which the idea of a Second (Divine) Coming was irrelevant. Even in 1900 he still insisted to the doubtful young William Temple that 'the Life of Christ tells on man by slow degrees, and its effects can be traced and pointed out'.73 Temple had reconciled Christianity and science to his own satisfaction. What he really denied was that the fresh information which the biologists, geologists, chemists and physicists were collecting could make any moral difference to the affirmation of a benevolent creator. He knew that some professional scientists shared his opinion: Asa Gray, for example, the famous Harvard botanist, had, in Darwiniana (1876) and Natural Science and Religion (1882), asserted an evolutionary teleology. He wrote that 'so long as gradatory, orderly, and adapted forms in Nature argue design, and at least while the physical cause of variation is utterly unknown and mysterious, we should advise Mr Darwin to assume, in the philosophy of his hypothesis, 18
Religion and Science
that variation has been led along certain beneficial lines'.74 Temple thought of scientific information as descriptive of the divine creative act; the scientific material was to be interpreted according to the broad lines of the biblical revelation, which was no longer, however, to be used as a source of scientific 'facts'. Social facts, as in the case of the status of women, could still be located in the sacred text. There was no question, however, of scientific work itself justifying a scientific humanism. Even in Temple's moderate position one could see the questions which orthodox theologians, Protestant and Roman Catholic, steadily put to the 'liberal' theologians. How far could one modify the traditional account of Christian doctrine without calling in question one's use of the word 'Christian'? To what extent, if any, did the extension of scientific discovery oblige the theologian either to alter his doctrinal position, or the way in which he formulated what he already held? One can see the problem become more acute if one compares Temple, who died in 1902, with the much younger and more obviously 'liberal' F. R. Tennant, who tried in The Origin and Propagation of Sin (1902) to give more theological weight to the scientific version of the history of human development.75 Tennant was untypical of much Protestant theology at the turn of the century, to the extent that he believed that a theologian should study the methods and findings of the sciences as part of his own subject-matter. He was not likely to have made Temple's remark about the beasts of prey; nor did he share the view that Genesis contained absolute divine revelation about the status of women. Instead, Tennant used the historical-critical method to clear the ground for the introduction of a scientific description of human history, as far as this was available in his day. He regarded the Fall-story in the third chapter of Genesis as an obscure Jewish myth: it contained, he said, echoes of remotely prehistoric thought, elements borrowed from the lore of other nations, and human speculation on matters beyond the reach of human memory, the whole adapted to the spiritual and ethical standards of a much later writer. One would not turn to Genesis 'for truth offinaland permanent value on the historical, psychological and scientific questions involved'.76 Human history had therefore to be examined without presuppositions drawn from Genesis; instead, the theologian should accept what seemed to Tennant the obvious implications of the new biological science, that humanity had inherited the natural and essential instincts of his animal ancestors; these instincts were necessarily non-moral, nor was there any reason to ascribe to them any degree of abnormality. Voluntary action appeared in man before any consciousness of right and wrong. 'There has therefore been a period in the history of both race and individual, in which 19
JOHN KENT
even volitional conduct has been innocent, however far such conduct differs from that later prescribed by moral sanctions and the conscience.'77 A period was reached at which a moral sentiment was gradually evoked and moral sanctions gradually constructed. Only then could one seriously talk about sin. It followed from Tennant's position that men had started out as impulsegoverned creatures, lawless in the strict sense, and not as 'innocents' who had then 'fallen' and so incurred the wrath of God. Consequently, man need no longer think of himself as struggling in vain to recover a lost status which only God could grant him as an act of grace; instead, man should seek to understand and fulfil the moral requirements of a God who, in his turn, understood, and had shown in Christ that he sympathised with, the finite limitations of being a particular historical individual who inherited, not sin and guilt, but pressures coming from an earlier stage of evolution. Tennant rejected the view put by his orthodox critics, that even if one accepted the broad results of nineteenth-century criticism of the Old Testament, the Fallstory still contained the basis for a divinely revealed doctrine of human nature. The hypothesis of a bias towards evil, he said, was gratuitous, and would perhaps never have occurred at all to men, but for the dominion over their minds of the doctrine of Original Righteousness. 'It is at least as legitimate', he wrote, 'to go out of our way in search for a bias towards good to explain the cases where the moral sanction is obeyed, as for a bias towards evil to explain the cases in which it is disobeyed.'78 In any case, how would one test the validity of a doctrine of human nature based on the Fall-story? A theory of the divine inspiration of the record simply would not cover the conflict between modern knowledge and what the story declared to be fact. Tennant had no doubt that in this area scientific discovery and hypothesis had theological consequences, and James Ward, his mentor, agreed, for he commented on this part of Tennant's argument, that we have gained something if we have found in the theory of evolution the means of divesting the problem of good and evil of two of the mysteries that have hitherto enshrouded it - the doctrine of a fall from a state of moral perfection and the doctrine of original sin; and we may hail it as a hopeful sign of the times that there are now theologians who have the courage to admit this.79
No more than Temple, however, or Wallace, did Tennant really envisage a human moral sense developing of itself; the gradual formation of human moral aspirations in the evolutionary process was a case of the divine prompting the human. The earliest self-manifestation of God was not, therefore, the result of a primitive once-for-all revelation from high, but was infused by the Supreme Reason (which Tennant, at this point in company 20
Religion and Science
with the Roman Catholic Modernists, believed to be immanent in man) into the natural activities of human thought and speculation. Tennant acknowledged, of course, that this moral sense, or conscience, was also in part a social phenomenon, a product of social heredity within a continuing society. He recognised the force of later nineteenth-century criticisms of theological claims for the supernatural origin and authority of conscience, criticisms which Nietzsche summed up in a characteristic aphorism: 'The content of our conscience is everything that during the years of our childhood was regularly demanded of us without reason by people we honoured or feared . . . The belief in authorities is the source of conscience: it is therefore not the voice of God in the heart of man but the voice of some men in man.'80 Tennant did not think that this was the whole truth, but he did not believe that theologians could any longer expect to use the creation and fall stories in Genesis to dictate to modern psychologists like James Ward how they should interpret human nature. In a direct challenge to traditional theology he concluded that 'the fictitious importance assigned by theology, in its most scholastic and artificial periods, to the doctrine of the Fall and Original Sin, is an accident of history, not an outcome of the necessary development of the Faith'.81 If one was going to employ the concept of development, in other words, development had to be shown historically and scientifically, as well as asserted speculatively, and the historical account had to involve a more exacting use of historical method than say J. H. Newman's, whether in The Development of Christian Doctrine or A Grammar of Assent. Disengagement
Something of a disengagement had been taking place, in any case, between religion and science in the later nineteenth century. The older popular scientific imperialism, with its aggressively anti-Christian tone, of which Haeckel's Riddle ofthe Universe (1900) was a belated example, was declining. The French philosopher of religion, Emile Boutroux (1845-1922), rejected Haeckel's 'Evolutionary Monism' on the ground that Haeckel was attributing afinalityto the existing state of science to which philosophers of science laid no claim. 'Science', Boutroux wrote, 'consists of substituting for things, symbols which express a certain aspect of them - the aspect which can be denoted by relatively precise relations',82 but not more than that. The stability of even the most general laws could not be guaranteed, because nature itself evolved, 'perhaps even fundamentally'.83 Boutroux was reflecting a broad movement in the philosophy of science, associated with such thinkers as Ernst Mach, Heinrich Hertz, James Maxwell, Henri Poincare, Pierre Duhem and Edouard Le Roy. From their 21
JOHN KENT
point of view, science was not a given system which imposed itself on the human mind from without; instead, the human mind, as intelligence, will and imagination, acted upon the environment to impose its own standards of intelligibility. For Hertz, the concepts of physics became patterns of possible experiences rather than copies of actual experience. James Ward, echoing Mach, wrote that 'scientific generalisations are an economic device necessitated by our own limitations'.84 'In vain', Boutroux wrote, does science claim to reduce the mind to the role of a mere instrument . . . the mind works on its own account, trying to discover if there is in nature order, simplicity and harmony distinctive marks that are clearly much more calculated to bring satisfaction to itself than to express the intrinsic properties of phenomena. And these notions, which direct the investigations of science, are not in truth purely intellectual notions: taken in their entirety they constitute feelings, aesthetic and moral needs. Thus, feeling itself is linked with the scientific spirit . . .8S
One could no longer distinguish so clearly between scientific certainty and religious speculation. As the philosophers of science became less dogmatic, there emerged the possibility that religion, as distinct from a particular Christian dogmatic system, might prove to be irreducible human experience. This was true at times in the new, would-be science of religion itself. Jane Harrison (18501928), the classical anthropologist, suggested that in the light of evolution one must think of religion as human process rather than divine revelation, and claimed that the result of an examination of primitive religion showed that 'religious phenomena resulted from two delusive processes - a delusion of the non-critical intellect, and a delusion of the over-confident will'.86 Nevertheless, she did not conclude that religion was entirely a delusion. Personal experiences of what was believed to be an immediate, nonintellectual revelation, of mystical oneness with all things, still took place. They were better lived (she thought) than analysed; they did not properly fall under the category of true or false; yet they might be highly advantageous to life. Altogether, she was much less confident of being able to dispose of this residual religious experience than was the sociologist, Emile Durkheim (1858-1917), who reduced subjective religious experience to an echo of social performances designed to protect and promote the solidarity, moral as well as political, of the community. Society became the object of its own existential cult: 'the believer bows down before his God, because it is from God that he believes that he holds his being, particularly his mental being, his soul. We have the same reasons for experiencing this feeling before the collective',87 that is, society. As a critic of religious institutions Durkheim was perceptive, but his attempt to account for religion itself by bestowing a 22
Religion and Science
kind of personal existence on the abstract notion of society often seemed naive. Alternatively, separatist theologians like the influential Lutheran, Albrecht Ritschl (i 822-1889), tried to make Christianity impregnable by cutting it off from all forms of scientific reductionism. In effect, Ritschl restated the traditional argument from revelation to reassert that Christianity possessed a unique, divinely-given knowledge of God which was independent of other forms of knowledge, metaphysical or scientific, and could not be judged by them. No conflict existed between Christianity and science proper, but in the nineteenth century a factitious conflict had broken out between Christianity and an aggressive blend of natural religion and the scientific investigation of nature.88 Ignoring the problems increasingly posed by biblical criticism, problems which showed no signs of final resolution, Ritschl said that the true knowledge of God was given clearly in the Christ of the Gospels, through whom God had established between himself and man a new relationship of faith which redeemed man from the contradiction in which he found himself, as being both a part of nature and also a spiritual being claiming to dominate nature.89 There could be no question of an appeal for authority to the religious 'experience' of the pietist or the mystic: Christianity began in the individual's self-conscious life, and the essential value-judgment which he made was that the Christian Gospel was worthy of belief.90 Ritschl's defence of the autonomy of Christianity, his confidence that faith lifted men out of mere impersonal process and set them to fulfilling the divine purpose of the Kingdom of God, seemed a sign to many that religion was itself again and that the Victorian nightmare had ended. The belief that religion and science could develop side by side without significant conflict came all the more naturally to theologians like Ernst Troeltsch (1865-1923), who taught at Heidelberg from 1894 to 1915, and Auguste Sabatier (18391901), of the Protestant Faculty at Paris, because they thought that Protestantism had committed itself to freedom in principle, and that this freedom included not only the freedom of the individual conscience but also the freedom of scientific inquiry.91 They did not regard this position as a betrayal of the original dogmatic essence of biblical Protestantism to the sceptical spirit of the Enlightenment - the kind of criticism which Karl Barth made later - but assumed that the Enlightenment's own emphasis on freedom of thought, publication and scientific inquiry corresponded to what had also become explicit in the historical development of Protestantism. Sabatier pointed out that whereas the Catholic Church felt itself obliged to have separate universities, Protestant theology had found a place in national 23
JOHN KENT
universities by the same title as other humane disciplines, and had followed their evolution, exchanging the method of authority for the method of observation and experiment. The proper object of theology was the study of religious phenomena in general and the Christian religious phenomena in particular. Theological generalisations (or dogmas) were as necessary as scientific generalisations (or laws), but they (like their scientific equivalent) must be thought of as historical, provisional and changing. The religious facts which formed the basis for these religious generalisations belonged to the domain of consciousness, but they could be verified and described only by the observation of the psychologist of religion and by the historian's exegesis of the documents in which the religious consciousness of the past had left its imprint.92 Theologians like Sabatier were so confident of the scientific nature of their own methods, so unintimidated by a scientific world-view, that they gradually left the original self-sufficient laager and exposed themselves to fresh reductionist criticism. Indeed, the ablest of the group, Ernst Troeltsch, in The Absoluteness of Christianity (1901), rejected the claim of Christianity to possess the one unique revelation from God, and instead reduced Christianity to one of a system of world-religions, each related to its own distinct culture. This was not really a secular sociological conclusion, however. Troeltsch's study of the phenomena of religions led him to reject the Hegelian view that Christianity was the reconciliation and goal of all the forces of history: instead of the Divine Life within history tending towards unity or universality, it tended - according to Troeltsch - towards the individual fulfilment of a plurality of religions. This was in line with the passionate individualism of Edwardian personal idealism, which asserted the all-importance of the full development of individual human personality and which dominated the theology of many writers, including Rudolf Otto (1869-1937), Rudolf Eucken (1846-1926), Hastings Rashdall (1858-1924), Clement Webb (1865-1954), and the American Borden Bowne (18471910).93 One detects the influence on religious thought, not only of scientific and historical method, but also of that self-satisfied pre-1914 middle- and upper-class European society where members often gave an extraordinary impression of believing in the unshakeable permanence and propriety of their personal wealth, social privilege and national power.94 Catholicism and science
In the Edwardian period, in fact, one finds the relationship between Christianity and science being settled in terms either of authority and objective revelation, or of personal religious experience. In the Roman 24
Religion and Science
Catholic Church the official emphasis fell on authority and revelation. The Christian religion had a supernatural origin, and therefore its historical existence was bound to be both revelatory and mysterious, absolute and limited. In the later nineteenth century, and especially after Leo XIII had issued Aeterni Patris (1879), which gave a new prestige to Thomism, official Catholic theologians held that theology derived its data from revelation, not from autonomous reason; the content of revelation was Scripture together with the documents of the ecclesiastical magisterium; what was required from the believer was an act of will in which he humbly adhered to what God had revealed because He had revealed it; interpretation came from the magisterium, which in certain fields enjoyed divine guidance through infallibility.95 There was no question, as far as official Catholic theologians were concerned, of personal religious experience playing a significant role, or of any serious conflict being admitted between science and religion. The Syllabus of Errors (1864), for example, had been conceived in terms of opposition to a general eighteenth- and nineteenth-century 'rationalism' and said little about science as such.96 The dogmatic constitution, Dei Filius (1870), drawn up at the First Vatican Council, was primarily intended to protect the rationality of faith as well as its supernatural origin and character; it was made clear that one might not make advances in scientific knowledge a ground for understanding a doctrine in a way different from the Church's understanding of it.97 Once the Modernist crisis had begun, however, official statements became more aggressive. Lamentabili (1907) condemned the view that 'progress in the sciences demands a reform of the concepts of the Christian doctrine of God, creation, revelation, the person of the Incarnate Word, and redemption'; also condemned was the contention that 'modern Catholicism can be reconciled with true science only if it is transformed into a non-dogmatic Christianity; that is to say, into a broad and liberal Protestantism'.98 (Positions like that of Sabatier were obviously involved.) The theological interpretation of evolution remained a problem, of course: for example, the decree of the Biblical Commission (1909) on the historical character of the first three chapters of Genesis laid down that a special creation (peculiaris creatio) of the first man was the literal historical sense intended by the second chapter of Genesis; it was sometimes argued that the phrasing allowed for the historical evolution of the body and the subsequent infusion of the soul by a special creative act; but the same decree seemed to require a 'literal' historical interpretation of the account of the formation of Eve from Adam.99 Such statements did little more than intellectually isolate those who made 25
JOHN KENT
them. In the meantime, however, some Catholic writers were trying to shift the discussion away from areas like the historical origin of man, where revelation seemed to give much less direct information and theory than had once been supposed, tofieldslike religious experience, from which it might be possible to work back to a traditional theology without obviously sinning against scientific method. If science increasingly accepted religious behaviour as part of its subject-matter, but tried to give a secular account of it - and Darwin himself, as we have seen, offered this kind of history of religion theologians might legitimately examine human behaviour for evidence of the immanence of the supernatural in the natural. Maurice Blondel (18611949), the French Catholic philosopher of religion, for instance, argued that the human will, when fully conscious of itself, recognised the hidden action of a divine will within itself. The inner action of this divine will, as Blondel interpreted it, moved the soul towards orthodox theological actions and conclusions. Without there being any real continuity between the sphere of reason and that of faith, without in any way bringing within the determinism of human action the order of supernature, which is always beyond the capacity, the merits and the demands of our nature . . .it is legitimate to show that the development of the will constrains us to the avowal of our insufficiency, leads us to recognise the need of a further gift, gives us the aptitude not to produce or to define, but to recognise and receive it.100
Catholicism then completed the prompting of the immanent, exactly in Newman's style. Blondel granted that to settle one's life direction in this way would seem alien to the dominant scientific spirit of the time, because such an action seemed from the outside to have no compelling rational ground. For Blondel, of course, the vital, self-abandoning action rationalised itself in the further experience of grace. The appeal to experience meant an appeal to a total experience of one's self changing through time, not simply an appeal to a momentary epiphany. Blondel was not a pragmatist, nor did he appeal to the popular idea that theology must 'develop', the view that carried the more unambiguously Modernist Alfred Loisy (1857-1940) out of Catholicism altogether.101 Blondel turned inward in order to defend the substantial objectivity of Christian theology as something given which could not be 'developed' in any useful sense, because what was represented there was the action of the transcendent in and on the individual human life, an action which did not change or develop. This position he shared with Friedrich von Hiigel (18521925), whose study of Catholic mysticism, The Mystical Element in Religion (1908), offered experiential verification in terms of closely observed sanctity. Religious experience, von Hiigel said, necessarily occurred in relation to an 26
Religion and Science
intellectual framework already lodged in the mind, but was also associated with 'a real presence and operation of the Infinite and of God in all men'.102 In fact, one would not be able to apprehend Christ if one did not already have a real, however dim, sense of religion and of the presence of God within one to which Christ could appeal. The word 'dim' was characteristic of von Hiigel - 'the awakened soul ever possesses a dim but real experience of the Infinite'.103 He criticised John of the Cross's use of the via negativa, saying that incarnational theology, the heart of the Christian system implied a divine immanence. As for science and religion, von Hiigel said that once the ideas of Original Sin and Judgment had ceased to stimulate people to detachment and other worldliness, science was the best available way of purgation, a discipline of self-denying, disinterested, long-drawn-out inquiry. The study of biological evolution and biblical criticism would, for those who could stand the strain, work for purification.104 And yet, 'any poor laundry-girl who carefully studies and carries out the laws of successful washing, who moves, in alternation, away from the concentration on the Thing, to recollection and increasingly affective prayer and rudimentary contemplation', had, he thought, instinctively found the proper balance.105 To Blondel and von Hiigel, therefore, the tendency of anthropology, sociology and psychology to reduce religion to its social and institutional factors, seemed less than fully 'scientific' because it explained less than all the available evidence. Both shifted the discussion from the origins of religion to the case of Christianity in their own day; they thought that what mattered most was to trace the pattern of alleged divine action making for holiness in the individual soul. This explains why von Hiigel was not impressed by Henri Bergson's Creative Evolution (1907): 'there is absolutely no change or advance in the end striven for; and no wonder, for from first to last no end is striven for at all, except existence'.106 William James The same material which these Catholic writers pressed to orthodox conclusions served quite different purposes in the hands of the American philosopher and psychologist, William James, in his book, The Varieties of Religious Experience (1902). James criticised the would-be impersonality of the dominant scientific attitude as shallow, 'because as long as we deal with the cosmic and the general we deal only with the symbols of reality, but as soon as we deal with private and personal phenomena as such, we deal with realities in the completest sense of the term'.107 The vast variety of religious experience seemed to James to disclose a central, positive content, which was 27
JOHN KENT
literally and objectively true as far as it went, and which could be summed up in the statement that the individual human consciousness was continuous with a wider - and in some sense more than natural - self through which saving experiences came. The true pragmatist, he said, should wager on this conclusion, instead of behaving with what scientific philosophers like Huxley and Clifford thought to be scientific propriety, and believing only what was backed by sufficient, verifiable and coercive evidence. In religious matters one could only act, adopting the religious hypothesis as an empirical possibility; one might in this way attain final truth, but of course one could not expect to know when one had attained it. Nevertheless, he wrote at the end of the Varieties, if one remained faithful to one's belief in the 'wider self, the evidence suggested that one kept more sane and true. As for the chance of being mistaken: 'our errors are surely not such awfully solemn things. In a world where we are so certain to incur them in spite of all our caution, a certain lightness of heart seems healthier than this excessive nervousness on their behalf. At any rate, it seems the fittest thing for an empiricist philosopher.'108 Nothing could have been further from Ritschl's conviction that God had revealed himself fully only in the western religious tradition, or from the mood of the anti-Modernist Encyclical, Pascendi (1907), which attacked the untrustworthiness of 'feeling' as a guide in religion. The scientific approach had weakened the external authority of the Bible, the Church and the Creeds, but for the moment it had reinstated, in all its ambiguity, the religious consciousness.
Conclusion By 1914 the pressure of fresh scientific hypothesis and information had changed once and for all the context in which theologians discussed the doctrines of creation, of the formation and the fall of man, and therefore, indirectly, of the doctrine of redemption. Appeals to the supernatural authority of the Church, and to revelation as a supernaturally given source of unambiguous truth continued, but with a more restricted area of application and acceptance. A few Christian writers, and those as far apart as Sabatier and Le Roy agreed that dogma, if it was to survive at all, must no longer be seen as immutable, but as historical and changing. The influence here was not so much science itself, as the principle which supported science, and which had vindicated itself in the theoretical and technological triumphs of Victorian science, the view that thought begins with doubt, that authority always remains questionable. Of course, alternative religious and nonreligious systems of explanation had faced one another before the nineteenth 28
Religion and Science century, but the advance of science gave new force to these older disagreements. Religion as such, however, seemed less at risk than Christianity, because religion did not need a highly-wrought system of doctrine as a basis for survival, nor did it need to make a case for miracles. A non-Christian western theist, for example, might rest content with the belief that the universe was ultimately understandable and morally bearable; in 1914 scientists had not yet seriously encountered the possibility of a rationally inexplicable universe. Indeed, one recognises in Thomas Huxley's use of the idea of'agnosticism' a passionately sincere refusal to be driven into the extremes of either affirmation or denial in discussing religious possibilities. Meanwhile, the view that religion and science should co-exist in fruitful interaction slowly gained ground, as it became possible to think of both religious and scientific statements as hypothetical, as statements thrown out in constantly renewed attempts to master the universe and the living experience which it afforded. And against strikingly different cultural backgrounds - Maurice Blondel in a Catholic France and William James in a Protestant New England - one finds the same suggestion that the primary task of theology and religious thought was to give a non-reductive account of living religious experiences which would satisfy both the critical intelligence, the moralising impulse and the imagination. Unfortunately, the Great War and its aftermath halted that creative movement, giving, as far as Christianity was concerned, fresh life to separatist theologies which ignored scientific method and result as completely as possible.
Notes 1 H. Hoffding, The Philosophy of Religion (London, 1914), p. 239. Hoffding (1843-1931) was Danish; he called his views 'critical monism'. 2 See, e.g., O. Chadwick, The Victorian Church, Pt 11 (Cambridge, 1970), p. 24. 3 'The supposition that the historical record of evolution can by itself reveal universal criteria of evolutionary "advance". . . was in fact the crucial element in pre-Darwinian, progressivist ideas about evolution which Herbert Spencer inherited from Lamarck, but which Darwin rightly abandoned . . . [This] was a chief source of the fatal flaw in late 19th-century attempts at constructing evolutionistic theories of social, cultural and historical change, viz., the belief that History is not only irreversible but uni-directionaP; S. Toulmin, Human Understanding, vol. 1 (London, 1972) p. 324. 4 For Lamarck, see Richard W. Burkhardt, The Spirit of System, Lamarck and Evolutionary Biology (Harvard, 1977). 5 For Spencer, see J. D. Y. Peel, Herbert Spencer, The Evolution of a Sociologist (London,
6 Lamarck replaced the traditional idea of invariable forms with the idea that nature began with the most simple forms of life and worked toward the most complicated, which were also the most perfect. He did not reify nature, however, but thought that matter had been 29
JOHN KENT
7 8 9
10 11
12 13
14
15 16 17 18 19 20 21 22 23
created with an order of things which, acting upon matter, produced the historical sequence of life. E. R. Sandeen, The Roots of Fundamentalism (Chicago, 1970) pp. 3-14. For criticism of Gladstone, who was writing in The Nineteenth Century, see T. Huxley, 'Genesis versus Nature', in Science and the Hebrew Tradition (London, 1895). In a sermon, 'The Worth of the Old Testament', preached in St Paul's in December 1889 and published in 1890, Liddon defended the position that 'Our Lord Jesus Christ set the seal of His infallible sanction on the whole of the Old Testament' (p. 23); 'The trustworthiness of the Old Testament is in fact inseparable from the trustworthiness of our Lord Jesus Christ' (p. 25). He had expounded this view in The Divinity of Our Lord and Saviour Jesus (London, 1867), the ablest English presentation of the orthodox christological position in the nineteenth century. T. Huxley, 'The Light of the Church and the Light of Science', in Science and the Hebrew Tradition (London, 1895, written in 1890). Newman's Essay on the Development of Christian Doctrine (London, 1845) argued that changes in Roman Catholic doctrine since the time of the Primitive Church had come about by organic development from the implicit to the explicit, and not, as Protestant critics said, by corruption of the original revelation. The scientific kinship, but not origin, was with the Lamarckian idea of development as proceeding from the simple to the more complex; Newman defended addition to the doctrinal system, but not subtraction. See J. Kent, 'Newman and Tyrrell', Newman Studien (Niirnberg, 1974), pp. 151-67. Quoted by F. Gregory in Scientific Materialism in Nineteenth-Century Germany (Dordrecht, 1977), p. 211. The date was 1890. L. T. Hobhouse, Social Evolution and Political Theory (New York, 1913), p. 165. The Great War made Hobhouse more pessimistic, but this passage typifies an Edwardian mood. For Hobhouse, see S. Collini, Liberalism and Sociology: L. T. Hobhouse and Political Argument in England 1880-1Q14 (Cambridge, 1979). J. W. Draper, History of the Conflict between Religion and Science, (London, 1875) interpreted western history as a war between religious obscurantism and scientific enlightenment. For criticism, see Owen Chadwick, The Secularization of the European Mind in the Nineteenth Century (Cambridge, 1975), pp. 161-88; and J. R. Moore, The Post-Darwinian Controversies (Cambridge, 1979), especially pp. 8-49. T. Huxley, Evolution and Ethics (London, 1894), p. 91. D. Duncan, Life and Letters of Herbert Spencer, (London, 1911), p. 336. C. Darwin, The Descent of Man (New York, 1873), pp. 68-9. Ibid., p. 94. Ibid., p. 95. Ibid., p. 101. Ibid., p. 179. Ibid., p. 183. Mivart reprinted the review in Essays and Criticisms (London, 1892), vol. 11, pp. 1-59: my quotations come from this version. For Mivart, see J. W. Gruber, A Conscience in Conflict (New York, i960). Mivart could not consent to Darwin's view that natural selection was the decisive factor in evolution; for him the will of the creator was the overriding agent, which worked coherently to a conclusion set at the beginning; even so, man still required the divine insertion of a soul. In this form, Rome did not censure Mivart's teaching in the 1870s. Gruber concluded: 'Despite Mivart's frequent, often fervent avowals of allegiance to evolution, one can doubt whether he was really an evolutionist at all' (p. 63). Mivart was excommunicated in the year of his death (1900) by Cardinal Vaughan, because he refused to accept that as a layman he was not entitled to write
30
Religion and Science
24 25 26 27 28 29 30 31 32
33 34 35 36 37 38 39 40 41
42 43
44 45 46 47 48 49 50
articles in which he gave to doctrines propounded by the Church a sense different from that which the Church understood and taught. Ernest Renan, Vie de Jesus (13th edn, 1867; Paris, 1974), p. 46. Victorian science only reinforced a long-developing scepticism about miraculous events. M. Arnold, Literature and Dogma (London, 1873), pp. 168-9. Renan, Vie de Jesus, p. 56. Renan compared the orthodox theologian to a caged bird dogma inhibited natural movement of thought. Ibid., p. 36. J. R. Seeley, Natural Religion (London, 1882), p. 257. Renan, Vie de Jesus, p. 409. J. S. Mill, Three Essays on Religion (London, 1874), p. 234. Renan, Vie de Jesus, p. 37. Troeltsch used this argument effectively in The Absoluteness of Christianity (London, 1972). Mill, Three Essays, pp. 235-8. Renan said: 'One must not look for proportion between the fire and the cause which starts it. The devotion of La Sallette is one of the great religious events of the century' (Vie de Jesus, p. 51). In such cases, he wrote, no one deceives deliberately, everyone deceives innocently. Ibid., p. 239. Arnold, Literature and Dogma, p. 289. Arnold did not mean that this was true of all Christians, but that the number of doubters was increasing, and would not diminish. Seeley, Natural Religion, p. 262. Arnold, Literature and Dogma, p. 310. Ibid., p. 307. F. Nietzsche, The Will to Power, ed. W. Kaufman (New York, 1967), note 1066, dated March/June 1888. Arnold, Literature and Dogma, p. 368. Ibid., p. 15. This symbolic assault was not 'scientific', but reflected (as did Christian Old Testament scholarship), a strong desire to deny the existence of a living Jewish religion in western culture. Both science (sociology in this case) and religion were affected by such social factors, here a sophisticated anti-Jewishness. B. Jowett, in Essays and Reviews (10th edn, London, 1862), p. 421. George Eliot's Daniel Deronda, ed. B. Hardy (Harmondsworth, 1967). Hardy played down the Jewish element in the novel, but see 'George Eliot's Reading in 19th-century Jewish Historians', by W. Baker, Victorian Studies, xv, 4 (1972), 463-73. Baker shows the trouble Eliot took to study the Jewish nineteenth-century historians of assimilation, and of cultural revival, and their conflict with I. M. Jost's idea of Jewish cultural degeneracy. English readers ignored this side of the book. Compare with W. Pannenberg's unfavourable comments on Karl Barth's plea that Christian theology, because of its revelatory ground, can dispense with (scientific) rationality: Theology and the Philosophy of Science (London, 1976), pp. 265-75. For Haeckel, see D. Gasman, The Scientific Origins of National Socialism (New York, 1971), who regarded him as an intellectual source of Nazism; for Wallace, see F. M. Turner, Between Science and Religion (Yale University Press, 1974) especially chapter 4. 'The Scientists' Declaration: Reflexion on Science and Belief in the wake of Essays and Reviews", by W. H. Brock and R. M. Macleod, British Journalfor the History of Science, IX (1976), 38-^66. Wallace reprinted both in 1875: references to 1875 edition. Wallace, p. 325. Seeley, Natural Religion, p. 254. Wallace, p. 331.
31
JOHN KENT 51 52 53 54 55 56 57
58
59 60 61 62
63 64 65
(
66 67 68 69
70 71 72 73 74
75
Ibid., p. 354. Ibid., p. 359. Ibid., p. 359. Ibid., p. 365. Ibid., p. 368. Ibid., p. 370. Psychical research flourished in England and the United States from the 1880s at least until 1914; William James gave much time to it. The cumulative effect on scientific and religious thought was negative. E. Haeckel, The Riddle of the Universe (London, 1900), especially chapters 18 and 19. Reference to immortality, p. 214. Translated by Joseph McCabe, issued by the Rationalist Press Association, no doubt because of HaeckePs invective against Roman Catholicism. Haeckel supported eugenics, of course, the selective breeding of human beings. W. James, The Varieties of Religious Experience (New York, 1902), p. 490. Ibid., pp. 491-2. R. Young, T h e Historiographic and Ideological Contexts of the 19th-century Debate on Man's Place in Nature', in M. Teich (ed.), Changing Perspectives in the History of Science (London, 1973), pp. 344-438. E. Manier, The Young Darwin and his Cultural Circle (Dordrecht-Boston, 1978), p. 193. A. D. S. Smith, Nationalism in the Twentieth Century (Oxford, 1979), especially pp. 4 3 85For the Social Darwinists see, e.g., W. Bagehot, Physics and Politics (London, 1890), B. Kidd, Social Evolution (London, 1894). The Methodist, H. P. Hughes, welcomed Kidd's interpretation of history as a struggle for life between races: 'Neither Asia, nor Africa nor South America is really ripe for the democratic institutions which exist in this country. And those European races which rejected the Reformation and its higher ethical standard are visibly losing ground in the race and slowly perishing because the morality of the Middle Ages is not sufficiently exalted to fit men for political freedom'; Essential Christianity (London, 1894), pp. 281-2. For Hughes, see J. Kent, 'Hugh Price Hughes', in Essays in Modern Church History, ed. G. V. Bennett (London, 1966), pp. 181-205. E. G. Sandford (ed.), Memoirs of Archbishop Temple (London, 1906), vol. 11, pp. 640-1. F. Temple, The Relations between Religion and Science (London, 1885). Ibid., p. 63. Ibid., p. 186. Temple's failure seems symptomatic. Yet E. Boutroux, e.g., was clear that Darwin reduced 'natural morality' to the 'natural history' of moral ideas. To the extent that Christianity demanded a withdrawal from 'the world', a conflict followed between biology and religion. See Boutroux, Questions de Morale et D1 Education (7th edn, Paris, 1914), written in the 1890s. Ibid., p. 184. Ibid., p. 117. Ibid., p. 118. Sandford, Archbishop Temple, vol. 11, pp. 691-2. A. Gray, Darwiniana, ed. A. H. Dupree (Harvard, 1963), pp. 121-2. Gray (1810—88) was professor of Natural History at Harvard 1842-73. Darwin rejected Gray's theological interpretation of natural selection. For the wider problem of American reaction to Darwin, see H. Hoverkamp, Science and Religion in America, 1800-1860 (Pennsylvania, 1978), and W. R. Hutchison, The Modernist Impulse in American Protestantism (Harvard, 1976). Tennant (1866-1957) was a pupil of the philosopher James Ward (1843-1925). Ward shared the reconciling approach to the relations of religion and science found in the work
32
Religion and Science
76 77 78 79
80 81
82 83 84 85 86
87
88 89 90 91
of Lotze (1817-81), Boutroux (1845-1922), Eucken (1846-1926) and the American personalist, Bowne (1847-1910). They broadly shared an ethical theism which was critical of both naturalism and Hegelian idealism. F. R. Tennant, The Origin and Propagation of Sin (2nd edn, Cambridge, 1908), p. 146. Ibid., p. xxii. Ibid., p. xix. James Ward, The Realm of Ends, or Pluralism and Theism (Cambridge, 1911), pp. 368-9. The Catholic lay theologian, von Hiigel, also strongly influenced by Ward, thought that Tennant failed to explain adequately sins like pride of intellect, and self-adoration: see Eternal Life (Edinburgh, 1912), pp. 283-6. F. Nietzsche, The Wanderer and His Shadow (1886), aph. 52, in Human, All-too-Human (New York, 1924). Tennant, Origin of Sin, p. 153. For the characteristic reply of the 'mainstream' theology of the period, cf. J. R. Illingworth, Reason and Revelation (London, 1906): 'But evolution . . . has also been combined with a Theistic view of the world's origin . . . What then has the theory of evolution, so understood, to say of man? Merely that his bodily organism was developed from an animal ancestry; and that, in consequence, when his mental and moral faculties were so enlarged as to become human, while the physical traits of his animality remained strong within him, he must inevitably fall into moral evil . . . But there is nothing in this incompatible with the Christian doctrine of the fall of man, which simply asserts that the first human beings sinned, and transmitted an hereditary tendency to sin to their offspring' (pp. 225-6). Illingworth, a Lux Mundi contributor, dismissed 'the Paradisaical state of innocence', and hereditary guilt, as unwarranted by Genesis, however, though Genesis 'as ideal history . . . is unapproachable in literature' (p. 227). E. Boutroux, Science and Religion in Contemporary Philosophy (London, 1909), p. 361. Ibid., p. 357. Ward, Realm of Ends, p. 16. Boutroux, Science and Religion, p. 363. Jane Harrison, 'The Influence of Darwinism on the Study of Religion', in A. C. Seward (ed.), Darwin and Modern Science (Cambridge, 1909), p. 510. 'It is by thinking of religion in the light of evolution, not as a revelation given, not as a realite faite, but as a process, and it is only so, I think, that we attain to a spirit of real patience and toleration' (p. 511). E. Durkheim, Sociology and Philosophy (New York, 1974), p. 73. Durkheim did not believe that science (in the 1890s) could immediately provide a new moral system, though this would happen in the long run. In the meantime, as religion decayed in the industrialised West, society itself alone had the moral capacity to regulate appetites and organise economic order. He suggested a new, corporative form of society which might generate new moral beliefs spontaneously. See Socialism, ed. A. W. Gouldner (London, l 95%), PP- 2 35~44- The lectures published there were given in 1895/6 at Bordeaux. E. Ritschl, The Christian Doctrine of Justification and Reconciliation tr. H. R. Mackintosh (Edinburgh, 1900) p. 210. Ibid., p. 199. Ibid., p. 457, for mysticism; p. 579 for pietism. The idea of the value-judgment came from Lotze (Microcosmos, 1856—64; English translation 1885). See Auguste Sabatier, Outlines of a Philosophy of Religion based on Psychology and History, tr. T. A. Seed (London, 1897): 'Dogmatic revision is always alive, both in principle and in fact, in the Churches of the Reformation; in principle, because all Confessions of Faith are relative and subordinate to the Word of God: in practice, because the spirit of research, of criticism and free discussion has never ceased to breathe in Protestant Theology' (p. 256).
33
JOHN KENT 92 'A theory of religion, dogmatics can have no other starting-point than religious phenomena themselves. From this concrete and experimental principle, from this state of soul produced by the immediate feeling of a necessary relation to God, the entire system should spring and develop. What is not in religious experience should find no place in religious science, and should be banished from it' (A Philosophy of Religion, P- 273)93 For links between idealism and English theology, see T. Langford, In Search for Foundations, English Theology igoo-ig2O (New York, 1969). British idealism, nevertheless, developed over against Darwinism in defence of the rationality of the universe and man's place in it, rather than in defence of Christian theology. See, e.g., 'Hegel in Britain', by James Bradley, in Heythrop Journal, xx, 1 (1979), 1-24. 94 A sociological account of English Victorian theology, for example, would emphasise the integration of its exponents into the late Victorian ruling-class. 95 See, e.g., G. Daly, Transcendence and Immanence, A study in Catholic Modernism and Integralism (Oxford, 1980), pp. 7-25. 96 The Syllabus implicitly denied that papal pronouncements impeded the free progress of science (Denzinger, Enchiridion Symbolorum, 34th edn, Freiburg, 1967, prop. 12, p. 578): this passage quotes the Munich Brief (Dec. 21, 1863), pp. 571-3, which had reminded intellectuals that they could safely investigate natural truth, only if they venerated the infallible intellect of God as revealed in Christianity. Liberal Catholics saw the Munich Letter as the moment when the tide turned finally against them. 97 Enchiridion Symbolorum, p. 594, Dei Filius, Canons 4, Faith and Reason, no. 3. 98 Ibid., p. 674, Lamentabili, prop. 64, 65. 99 Ibid., pp. 684-5. 'On the Historical Character of the First Chapters of Genesis', Response of the Biblical Commission, 30 June 1909. See also H. W. Paul, The Edge of Contingency, French Catholic Reaction to Scientific Change from Darwin to Duhem (Gainesville, Florida, 1979), p. 107. 100 M. Blondel, The Letter on Apologetics (Paris, 1896; tr. I. Trethowan, London, 1964), p. 162. 101 For Loisy, as for Sabatier, who influenced him, and unlike Newman, 'development' meant the withering away of most dogmas, but his grounds were historical and religious rather than scientific. See further Bernard M. G. Reardon's contribution 'Roman Catholic Modernism', in vol. 11 of the present work. 102 F. von Hiigel, The Mystical Element in Religion (London, 1908), vol. 11, p. 332. 103 Ibid. 104 Ibid., pp. 380-2. 105 Ibid., p. 379. 106 Von Hiigel, Eternal Life, p. 296. 107 W. James, The Varieties of Religious Experience, p. 498. See further John E. Smith's contribution 'William James and Josiah Royce', in vol. 11 of the present work. 108 W. James, The Will to Believe (New York, 1897), pp. 14-15. James said that it was a mistake to hold any opinion as though it never could be reinterpretable or corrigible. But radical empiricism, as he named it, ought equally not to inhibit action. Hypotheses should be tested, as well as held.
34
Religion and Science Bibliographical
essay
A full bibliography of this subject would have to mention most theological books written between i860 and 1914. Only a selection can be printed here, without prejudice to what is omitted. Primary sources: on the scientific side these include J. B. Lamarck, Zoological Philosophy (Paris, 1809; tr. H. Elliot, New York, 1962); C. Lyell, The Geological Evidences of the Antiquity of Man (2nd edn, London, 1863); C. Darwin, The Origin of Species (London, 1859; ed. J. W. Burrow, 1958), The Descent of Man (London, 1871), and Autobiography, ed. N. Barlow (London, 1958); W. K. Clifford, Lectures and Essays, ed. L. Stephen (2 vols., London, 1879); T. H. Huxley, Collected Essays (9 vols., London, 1893-4); St G. Mivart, On the Genesis of Species (London, 1871), and Essays and Criticisms (2 vols., London, 1892); A. R. Wallace, Contributions to the Theory of Natural Selection (London, 1871) and Darwinism (London 1889). Relevant modifications of the philosophy of science took place through the work of E. Mach, The Science of Mechanics (London, 1893); H. Hertz, The Principles ofMechanics (1894; English translation, London, 1899); H. Poincare, Science and Hypothesis (Paris, 1902; English translation, London, 1905); E. Le Roy, Dogme et Critique (Paris, 1907); P. Duhem, The Aim and Structure of Physical Theory (2nd edn, 1914; English translation, Princeton, 1954): these were commented on by writers like E. Boutroux, Science and Religion in Contemporary Philosophy (1908; English translation, London, 1909), and J. Ward, The Realm of Ends (Cambridge, 1911). For the point of view of the philosophy of religion, one should consult, e.g.: M. Arnold, Literature and Dogma (London, 1873); M. Blondel, Letter on Apologetics (Paris, 1896; English translation, London, 1964); R. Eucken, The Life of the Spirit (London, 1908); E. Haeckel, The Riddle of the Universe (1899; English translation, London, 1900); H. Hoffding, The Philosophy of Religion (1901; English translation, London, 1906); W. James, The Will to Believe (New York, 1897) and The Varieties of Religious Experience (New York, 1902); J. S. Mill, Three Essays on Religion (London, 1874); F. Nietzsche, Beyond Good and Evil (Leipzig, 1886; tr. W. Kaufmann, New York, 1966); L. A. Sabatier, Outline of a Philosophy of Religion (Paris, 1896; English translation, London, 1897); L. Stephen, Essays on Freethinking and Plainspeaking (London, 1873); F. Temple, The Relations between Religion and Science (London, 1885) and F. R. Tennant, The Origin and Propagation of Sin (2nd edn, Cambridge, 1908). For a sense of the more theological climate consult: T. R. Birks, The Scripture Doctrine of Creation (London, 1872); H. Drummond, The Ascent of Man (London, 1894); A. Gray, Darwiniana, ed. A. H. Dupree (Harvard, 1963); C. Hodge, What is Darwinism? (New York, 1874); F. von Hiigel, The Mystical Element in Religion (London, 1908) and Eternal Life (Edinburgh, 1912); J. R. Illingworth, Reason and Revelation (London, 1906); F. H. Johnson, God in Evolution (New York, 1911); A. Moore, Science and the Faith (London, 1889); R. Otto, Naturalism and Religion (London, 1907); A. Ritschl, The Christian Doctrine of Justification and Reconciliation (1870-4; English translation, Edinburgh, 1900); E. Troeltsch, The Absoluteness of Christianity (1901; English translation, London, 1972); P. N. Waggett, The Scientific Temper in Religion (London, 1905), and G. F. Wright, Studies in Science and Religion (Andover, 1882). Secondary sources: there are very many historical studies of the period which bear on this subject, and this is a selection only. A. Aliotta, 'Science and Religion in the Nineteenth Century', in Science, Reality and Religion, ed. J. Needham (London, 1925); R. C. Bannister, Social Darwinism, Science and Myth in Anglo-American Social Thought (Philadelphia, 1979); S. Budd, Varieties of Unbelief: Atheists and Agnostics in English Society 1850-1Q6O (London, 1977); R. W. Burkhardt, The Spirit of System, Lamarck and Evolutionary Biology (Harvard, 1977); O. Chad wick, The Secularization of the European Mind in the Nineteenth Century (Cambridge, 1975); Y. Conry, Uintroduction du darwinisme en France au xixe siecle (Paris,
35
JOHN KENT 1974); G. Daly, Transcendence and Immanence (Oxford, 1980) discusses Blondel and Le Roy; J. Dillenberger, Protestant Thought and Natural Science(London, 1961); L. Eiseley, Darwin s Century (New York, 1958); A. Ellegard, Darwin and the General Reader: The Reception of Darwin s Theory of Evolution in the British Periodical Press 1859-72 (Gothenburg, 1958); D . Gasman, The Scientific Origins of National Socialism (New York, 1971); C. C. Gillispie, Genesis and Geology (New York, 1959); T. F. Glick (ed.), The Comparative Reception of Darwinism (Austin, Texas, 1974); J. C. Greene, The Death of Adam, Evolution and its Impact on Western Thought (Iowa, 1959); J. W. Gruber, A Conscience in Conflict; The Life ofSt G. Mivart (New York, i960); R. Hofstadter, Social Darwinism in American Thought (2nd edn, Boston, 1955); R. Hooykaas, The Principle of Uniformity in Geology, Biology and Theology (Leyden, 1963); W. R. Hutchison, The Modernist Impulse in American Protestantism (Harvard, 1976); H. Hovercamp, Science and Religion in America 1800-1860 (Pennsylvania, 1978); G. Jones, Social Darwinism in English Thought (Sussex, 1980); A. Kelly, The Descent of Darwin, The Popularization ofDarwin in Germany 1860-1914 (Carolina, 1981); J. Kent, From Darwin to Blatchford (London, 1966); E. Lurie, Louis Agassiz (Chicago, i960); M. Mandelbaum, History, Mind and Reason (Baltimore, 1971); E. Manier, The Young Darwin and His Cultural Circle (Dordrecht/Boston, 1978); G. M. Marsden, The Evangelical Mind and the New School Presbyterian Experience (Yale, 1970); H. L. McKinney, Wallace and Natural Selection (Yale, 1972); J. R. Moore, The Post-Darwinian Controversies, A Study of the Protestant Struggle to come to terms with Darwin in Britain and America 1870—1900 (Cambridge, 1979); H. W. Paul, The Edge of Contingency, French Catholic Reaction to Scientific Change from Darwin to Duhem (Gainesville, Florida, 1979); J. D . Y. Peel, Herbert Spencer, The Evolution of a Sociologist (London, 1971); G. Rowell, Hell and the Victorians (Oxford, 1974); M. Rudwick, The Meaning of Fossils, Episodes in the History of Paleontology (London, 1972); E. R. Sandeen, The Roots of Fundamentalism (Chicago, 1970); W. S. Smith, The London Heretics 1870-1914 (London, 1967); M. Teich and R. M. Young (eds.), Changing Perspectives in the History of Science (London, 1973); F. M. Turner, Between Science and Religion, The Reaction to Scientific Naturalism in Late Victorian England (Yale, 1974); P. J. Vorzimmer, Charles Darwin, The Years of Controversy 1859-82 (London, 1972).
2
Friedrich Nietzsche CARL HEINZ RATSCHOW Translated by Christabel Winter
On interpreting Nietzsche Nietzsche's thought does not submit easily to conventional forms of exposition or appraisal. His was not an 'academic' philosophy, and he was adamant that it should not be treated as such. In form it is idiosyncratic and bewildering; in content it is radical, ruthless and very often offensive. So was it intended. Scholars and academic philosophers have been perplexed by this 'untimely thinker'. Some have dismissed his thought altogether as philosophically uninteresting; others have attempted to domesticate it, to bring it into the mainstream of western philosophical thought. Both approaches are misguided and are wholly unable to give a convincing account of Friedrich Nietzsche (1844-1900) or his significance as a philosophical and a religious thinker. To do him justice, we must treat him as both. For it is clear that the impetus for his philosophical quest lay in his violent opposition to Christianity and in his almost frantic attempt to replace it with a viable substitute. He remains, in this sense, a religious thinker even in his opposition to religion. One ought not speak of Nietzsche as philosopher without some qualification. He was a philologist, not a philosopher, by training. He lacked detailed or even accurate knowledge of any of the intellectual movements of his day - including those which he took up or with which he took issue in his writings. His insights into those movements, especially those insights which penetrate most deeply to the heart of the matter, are almost wholly intuitive and untutored. For the most part his 'arguments', not least those regarding religion, are sustained more by the strength of emotion than by the soundness of reasoning. Even though much that he says carries conviction, Nietzsche could never be more to the philosophical world than a dilettante and a curiosity. This unfortunate fact mars his philosophical endeavour from 37
CARL HEINZ RATSCHOW
the outset. Any attempt to gloss it over is bound to come to grief. Yet, one has not dispensed with Nietzsche when one acknowledges this fact. There are at least two senses in which he remains philosophically interesting. First, Nietzsche embraces in himself and in his thought some of the most conflicting features of the nineteenth century. In his thought, as in his time, the European Enlightenment was both fulfilled and undermined; the influence of Romanticism was both extended and truncated; the reliability of 'science' was vaunted and almost simultaneously its foundations were eroded by the rise of historicism and 'perspectivism'. The contradictions of his time were not resolved in Nietzsche's thought, but they were allowed to come to full expression. It is the very conflicts and contradictions of his thought which make him so representative of his time and this in spite of his own consciousness of not belonging to his age, of having been born 'out of season'. This paradox makes it difficult to locate Nietzsche precisely within nineteenth-century thought or even to place him most appropriately within a set of volumes on western religious thought in the nineteenth century. To put the article on Nietzsche immediately after the one on 'Religion and Science' is not without justification. For, despite the conflicts within Nietzsche's thought, there is a dominant philosophical tendency which serves to give his thought more unity than one might have supposed. Nietzsche's thought - and this constitutes the second sense in which he remains philosophically interesting - can be loosely characterised as a variety of scientific materialism. He came to see every happening and all worldly phenomena as being governed by the purely material force of the 'will to power'. Written in the summer of 1885, the following fragment (later incorporated into the posthumously published collection called The Will to Power) forcefully illustrates the truly radical quality of Nietzsche's scientific materialism: And do you know what 'the world' is to me? Shall I show it to you in my mirror? This world: a monster of energy, without beginning, without end; a firm, iron magnitude of force that does not grow bigger or smaller, that does not expend itself but only transforms itself . . .; enclosed by nothingness as by a boundary . . .; a sea of forces flowing and rushing together, eternally changing, eternally flooding back . . ., with an ebb and a flood of its forms; out of the simplest forms striving toward the complex, out of the stillest, most rigid, coldest forms toward the hottest, most turbulent, most self-contradictory, and then again returning home to the simple out of this abundance, out of the play of contradictions back to the joy of concord, still affirming itself in this uniformity of its courses and its years, blessing itself as that which must return eternally, as a becoming that knows no satiety, no disgust, no weariness: this, my Dionysian world of the eternally self-creating, the eternally self-destroying, this mystery world of the two-fold voluptuous delight, my 'beyond good and eviP, without goal, unless the joy of the circle is itself a goal; without will, unless a ring shows good will toward itself. Do you
38
Friedrich Nietzsche want a name for this world? A solution for all its riddles? . . .This world is the mill to power and nothing besidesl And you yourselves are also this will to power - and nothing besides! (KGW, VII/3,
33M) 1
This belief in the supremacy of matter and of will superseded for Nietzsche the Christian faith which he discarded in boyhood. With its discovery, his whole outlook on human existence became Utopian and orientated toward the future. He became obsessed with the idea of the progress of the human race, in the form first of'the genius' and then of the Ubermensch, the one who is said to transcend humankind as humankind has transcended the lower animals. At the same time he regarded the force of matter as amounting to absolute necessity, and therefore as obviating all moral responsibility, thus providing the justification for the inhuman excesses associated with his vision of the Ubermensch. Nietzsche was not a 'speculative' philosopher, in the pejorative sense of that term. His philosophical thought gained its sense of urgency from his fierce opposition to Christianity and all it stood for. This opposition began, in accordance with the then-current vogue, as a general critique of religion as such. Like others of his day, however, it is quite clear that he did not wish simply to eradicate religion, but sought rather to replace it by something more appropriate. His single-minded search for a purely naturalistic explanation of reality gave Nietzsche's thought the character of a ReligionsErsatz, as it was termed fifty years later by Ernst Bloch. In this regard one sees that Nietzsche is simply following a common tendency within nineteenth-century thought, one represented also by figures such as Marx and Tolstoy. Such thinkers all sought to replace the old Christian superstitions and other-worldly hopes by new vitalistic hypotheses and by purely practical, this-worldly goals. All these attempts were motivated by a deep desire for the happiness and well-being of humankind. Whereas Christianity was judged to have debased man before God and to have impeded any real human advance by seeking salvation in the hereafter, these critical movements or 'religion-substitutes' always demanded salvation here and now, and recognition that man himself is the ultimate or highest being. Such features also illustrate the observation that every 'religion-substitute' is always itself modelled, whether or not consciously, on the existing religion(s) for which it is a substitute. One sort of 'ultimate being' is replaced by another. So, too, with Nietzsche. This feature of his thought allows us to treat him as a religious thinker. But it further causes us to marvel that he seems to have been unaware that his own strategy conformed closely to a trend widespread in nineteenth-century thought. Once again one is confronted with the paradox of a thinker participating in the main currents 39
CARL HEINZ RATSCHOW
of his time whilst remaining personally convinced that he was born 'out of season'. How, then, do we approach so paradoxical a thinker as Nietzsche? A more conventional thinker could be approached thematically, treating in turn each of his several main ideas and their systematic connections with one another. But Nietzsche is not a conventional philosopher and this approach simply will not do. In his case, his thought is so intimately connected with his person that one has no choice but to approach his writings as he recommended they be approached, namely, biographically. Nietzsche frequently claimed that his writings were autobiographical in character and occasionally went so far as to claim that they were written for none but himself. 'And so I relate my life to myself, he announced in the preface to Ecce Homo. His thoughts and his personal life, or 'destiny', as he liked to think of it, are inseparable. He speaks only of what he himself experiences and, indeed, is. This means that for Nietzsche philosophy has an urgency to it. The horrors which he foretold for European civilisation - namely, the collapse of Christian faith; nihilism and the revaluation of values - he had already endured in his personal life. His thoughts articulated his own inner experiences of those horrors and his own personal means of surmounting them. So hardness of will, which he cultivated in defiance of his ever-weakening body, formed the heart of his vision of the future. The will to power is the will to overcome. And the crisis of modern civilisation is overcome, in Nietzsche's view, only through an extraordinary act of will. It is, therefore, impossible to separate Nietzsche's thought from Nietzsche's life-experiences. This has a number of significant consequences. First, his ideas are to be regarded more as personal confessions than as propositions to be held up for objective scrutiny. They can only ever be expressions of his own personal, conditioned existence. More than most would-be philosophers, Nietzsche bound himself to his own age, to its anxieties and to its hopes. He identified himself completely with that point in modern history at which nihilism was perceived to be gradually engulfing western civilisation: old values were thought to have collapsed but no new ones had replaced them. Nietzsche believed that in living out his own fate he would discover a means of 'writing new values on new tables'. This conviction accounts for his extraordinary self-esteem. How are we to estimate his success? Perhaps we should refrain from such judgment. Perhaps we should heed the advice Nietzsche himself once gave in a letter to Carl Fuchs: 'If you should ever come to write about me . . . describe me, characterise me by all means - but please have the sense not to try to appraise my work. You should instead adopt a refreshingly neutral attitude' (29 July 1888). He went on to add that he should be regarded with the sort of detached 40
Friedrich Nietzsche
curiosity which would be shown toward a strange specimen in botany or zoology. We must learn diffidence in handling Nietzsche's thought. All we can say of his work, therefore, is that it addresses a particular phase of western European history. We must nonetheless persist in the endeavour to 'describe and characterise' Nietzsche's work, since the vitalistic materialism which he developed affords us insight into the waning nineteenth century and the dawning twentieth century, when Nietzsche's influence became imprinted in sometimes surprising ways. The second main consequence of the autobiographical character of Nietzsche's thought is that his insights - or, at least, his moods - change in accordance with changes in his personal circumstances. This means that it would be misguided to attempt to formulate a summary statement of his views on any particular subject - on God, for example, or even his notion of nihilism or his concept of will. We would be better advised simply to note what, in the light of key events in his personal life, he felt and wrote at any particular time or in any particular year. Equally important is the fact that he refused even to contemplate producing a complete 'system' of thought. Such a thought seems to have been personally repugnant to Nietzsche: 'I mistrust all systematisers and avoid them', he reported in the Twilight of the Idols, adding, 'The will to a system is a lack of integrity.' So, there is no single work of Nietzsche's to which one could turn as a comprehensive and unambiguous summary of his 'position'. In each work his position is marked out afresh; in each work he sets out on a new task, writing in a new 'mood'. This last suggestion requires qualification in two ways. First, one must not imagine that Nietzsche's thought underwent a series of violent metamorphoses in the course of the years. He remained remarkably faithful to certain intentions from his schooldays onwards, so that certain essential elements run right the way through his work. Second, there are nonetheless good grounds for distinguishing fairly specific periods in Nietzsche's creative life. Although such boundaries are never exact and there is considerable overlap from one to the other, three main phases can usefully be distinguished in Nietzsche's intellectual development. The completion of thefirstthree Untimely Meditations (toward the end of 1874) can be regarded as marking the close of the first phase; the second seems to extend from then roughly to the winter of 1881, when Nietzsche began work on The Gay Science', the third would then extend from the production of Thus Spoke Zarathustra to the end of his productive life. No periodisation of a continuous process is wholly satisfactory, but this rough-and-ready division will prove useful if it helps guide us through the labyrinth of Nietzsche's thought. The third important consequence of the largely autobiographical
CARL HEINZ RATSCHOW
character of Nietzsche's thought is that his unpublished fragments gain greater significance. His method of literary production relied on the extensive use of notebooks, in which he would jot down ideas as they occurred to him. The importance of these jottings has been recognised to a certain extent from the beginning. Some of his late entries were selected, edited (occasionally 'improved' by his sister), and arranged topically for the posthumously published collection of aphorisms which we know as The Will to Power. Although not without value, this volume is particularly misleading in that the aphorisms are ordered topically, not chronologically, with only the slightest regard to the actual context in which the aphorisms appeared in the original notebooks. In recent years these notebooks have been made available to us in full in the new Kritische Gesamtausgabey so that scholars are now in a far better position than before to understand Nietzsche's thought. Although it will be several years before the full potential of these Nachlassvolumes can be exploited, they can for the time being at least encourage us to rethink our understanding of Nietzsche by analysing his thought developmentally. That will be our object here.
Nietzsche's childhood faith and its repudiation The hallmark of the first phase of Nietzsche's religious thought is his emancipation from the Christian faith in which he was brought up.2 The Nietzsche household was one in which reigned a strong and unquestioning devotion to God. The deaths, within a year of each other, of his father and only brother left the six-year-old Friedrich in a household which, but for him, was made up entirely of women. This seems to have had two likely consequences. First, there can be no doubt that the doting, over-indulgent treatment which, as the sole-surviving male of the family, he received from his mother, paternal grandmother, his two aunts and his sister laid an early foundation for that self-esteem which grew later into almost pure narcissism and which found increasingly unrestrained expression in his writings. Second, he was raised in an atmosphere of peculiarly feminine piety. This was highly exaggerated and effusive, a type of piety in which every eventuality was attributed directly to the beneficent hand of God, in which every daily situation called forth a prayer and a host of godly sentiments, and in which an excessive humility was fostered. This is betrayed by the letters written to Nietzsche during his time at boarding school. And just how well Nietzsche himself imbibed this attitude and became well-versed in its overpious rhetoric is equally apparent from his own letters and poems of this time. 42
Friedrich Nietzsche
Although it would be a mistake to underestimate the radically antiChristian nature of his later thought, it is clear that what he came to write against 'Christianity' seems most effective when viewed as a response to the rather extraordinary brand of self-conscious, highly emotional piety in which he had been nurtured as a child in an upper-middle-class home in mid-nineteenth-century Germany. It is rarely if ever possible entirely to erase the influences and impressions of childhood, and this Christian piety certainly left a deep mark on Nietzsche. It is probable that he never entirely escaped its smothering grasp. Even so, his earliest philosophical experiments show that by at least the age of eighteen Nietzsche was moving intellectually far beyond the Christian faith to an unashamed materialism. Two short philosophical essays from this period will serve our purposes here: 'Fate and History' and 'Free Will and Fate', both dating from Easter 1862, while Nietzsche was still at school.3 We find in them already the sort of incisive attack upon Christianity which would remain highly characteristic of his entire work. 'The whole of Christendom', we are told, 'is founded upon no more than supposition', the recognition of which is the great new fact of the most modern period of human history.4 These essays exhibit as well an already developed contempt for the Christian attitudes of humility and subservience to the will of God attitudes which are said merely to foster irresolution of will and weakness of character. Quiescent acceptance of all that happens as being ordained by God is singled out as a particularly dangerous form of illusion. The belief is dangerous because it conceals a cowardly inability resolutely to face up to the true nature of fate. Christianity, it is said, fosters self-deception, rather than healthy fatalism. This more 'healthy' fatalism is one in which natural happenings are given natural explanations. Having even at this stage repudiated any sort of spirit-matter dualism, Nietzsche insists that this entails naturalistic or materialistic explanations. But an antagonism arises for the youthful Nietzsche at just this point. There is seen to be a fundamental conflict between fate and the apparent free will of the individual. This conflict is said to constitute the driving force of the whole historical process. Fate ensures that the individual is inescapably drawn along in a stream of events over which he has no obvious control. Over against this is the struggle of the individual to impose his own will on events around him, and thereby to free himself from the onward march of world history. History, we are told, travels forward by means of a dialectical oscillation between these two poles. However, their opposition can be overcome for the individual, providing he allows himself to become united with his own fate. In other words, Nietzsche recommends acceptance both of the view that all things are directed by fate 43
CARL HEINZ RATSCHOW
('all events are determined by other interrelated events') and at the same time of the almost karmic view that 'through his own actions, [man himself] is the agent of all that befalls him'.5 It should be obvious to all who know Nietzsche's mature thought that even as a young man he was already heading in the direction towards his famous doctrine of'willing one's own fate'. It is equally obvious that, in both cases, he was struggling to discover an entirely naturalistic explanation of cosmic and historical events alike. At this point Nietzsche seems to have been aware of the consequences of his 'new' views: in a letter accompanying the two essays in question he observed that his new insights into fate would in fact constitute a denial of any effective Higher Power or controlling deity. It is not entirely clear at this stage, however, that young Friedrich was fully ready to embrace these consequences. Even so, Nietzsche the critic of Christianity was well on his way. And Nietzsche the critic of 'scholarly oxen' was not far behind. For the inner conflict he experienced with his Christian-all-too-Christian up-bringing was not the only disharmony in his personal life which affected his work as a writer. Nietzsche's first steps in his career as an academic were precociously sure-footed. Most exceptionally for a German academic, Nietzsche was appointed to a professorial chair without even the qualification of a doctoral degree, not to mention the higher 'habilitating' degree normally required for a university lectureship. He was appointed professor of classical languages at the University of Basel at the remarkable age of twenty-four. Almost immediately, however, a struggle developed within him between the scholarly demands of his university appointment and the contempt which he increasingly felt for scholarship in general and for classical philology in particular. This insidious feeling resulted in his inwardly distancing himself from his academic discipline long before he was actually enabled by progressively ill health to abandon it and devote himself wholly to working out his own philosophy. Lying behind his growing hostility towards scholarship and towards all intellectual activity pursued for its own sake was the belief that such activities were the product of and, in turn, themselves merely fostered dullness of wit and pettiness of mind. On precisely the same grounds he began increasingly to despise all that was characteristic of the German middle class, especially its values of orderliness, conformity and - above all its unswerving Christian piety. Against the narrow, worm-like 'digging about' of the scholar, as against the complacent respectability of the Christian bourgeoisie, Nietzsche exalted the heroic search for truth in which he now regarded himself as vitally engaged. His quest was fortified further by his discovery of the works of 44
Friedrich Nietzsche
Schopenhauer and by his association with Wagner, whom he had long idolised. The discovery of Schopenhauer's philosophy in November 1865 has often been likened to a religious conversion, in that it opened the doors for Nietzsche to a whole new world of thought in which he immersed himself enthusiastically. And, though the enthusiasm was short-lived, Schopenhauer's influence on Nietzsche's subsequent thought cannot be disputed. His almost filial devotion to Wagner, too, waned within a few years. Precipitated in part by Wagner's decision to move to Bayreuth, Nietzsche's disillusionment was complete by the time Wagner had written Parsifal, the 'sacred music drama' of redemption which Nietzsche regarded as a betrayal of all they held in common. Just as his rebellion against both was inevitable,6 Nietzsche's attraction to Schopenhauer and Wagner at this time in his life was understandable. He most likely found in the works of each an inspired, visionary quality - a vitality and immediacy which was wholly lacking in his own dull, painstaking work as a philologist. Together they presented a holistic view of the world, a disillusionment with prevailing conditions, and a drive toward new ideals. Nietzsche's ambivalence and increasing alienation from his academic discipline are clearly exhibited in his first book, The Birth of Tragedy, a volume taken more seriously today than when it was published in 1872. It would appear to have been intended by Nietzsche himself as a serious contribution to classical philology. His professional colleagues regarded it as speculative and incomprehensible. Being almost universally dismissed at the time as fundamentally unsound from a philological point of view, it did much to destroy his early reputation as an outstanding classical scholar. In style, it was thoroughly non-professional and unacademic; in content, it was bold but inadequately argued. In some ways it remains a highly suggestive book; but a competent contribution to academic scholarship it is not. There is another way to view matters, however. Rather than as merely a failed contribution to classical philology, it could be viewed as a first (though not altogether successful) attempt by Nietzsche to break out of the narrow confines of a discipline which he had found to be increasingly restrictive. Nietzsche's imagination needed more space in which to expand. The Birth of Tragedy is perhaps more accurately seen as a speculative-philosophical, than as a scientific-philological, project. In it Nietzsche paints an imaginary world and offers his vision of yearned-after innocence. Nietzsche himself, absorbed as he was in his new-found creative pursuits, seems not to have been aware of what he had done in The Birth of Tragedy and was genuinely astonished by the harsh handling it received within the academic community. 45
CARL HEINZ RATSCHOW
Whilst his implied critique of traditional academic pursuits in The Birth of Tragedy seems to have been almost wholly unconscious, the fully explicit critique offered later that same year infivepublic lectures 'On the Future of Our Educational Institutions' (KGWy 111/2, 133-244) can be said to represent an open and bitter attack on his discipline, as on scholarship generally. And in the Untimely Meditations which were to follow, he abandoned philological subject-matter altogether, devoting himself wholly to his new interests. Suggestive though they are, these works give no fully reliable indication of Nietzsche's philosophical intentions. Indeed, it may well be that at this stage in his intellectual development Nietzsche himself had no definite plan or goal. But, by examining carefully his personal notebooks from the winter of 1874-5, w e a r e able to form a much clearer picture of his implied goals than would be possible by concentrating on his published writings alone. The winter of 1874-5 was a decisive turning-point for Nietzsche. His notes from the time focus on three inter-related subjects: namely, antiquity, Christianity and education. The doctrine of man - his nature and his potential - binds these three themes together and in the process emerges as the true centre of Nietzsche's thought. His interest in Greek antiquity, for instance, is focused on 'the quality of humanity which the ancient world exhibits' (KGW, VI/I, 93Q. The Greeks are said to have fostered an ideal of the 'natural man', of which they were themselves the embodiment, at least until it was attacked and destroyed by Christianity. Christianity, according to Nietzsche's interpretation, has always been opposed to the 'natural' in man, substituting humanitarianism (die Humanitdt) for pure humanity (das Menschliche). The Greek ideal of humanity is held to be characterised by a sort of naivete which encourages true individualism and mhumane-ness qualities which are stifled by Christian humanitarianism. Christianity by its own nature necessarily seeks to suppress all man's natural instincts, especially those which express what Nietzsche had termed 'the brutal element in man's nature'. Such un-naturalness can only be deplored and countered at every opportunity. Nietzsche assigns to 'education' the task of reversing the unhealthy effects of Christianity and of restoring man's lost naivete. Clearly, his vision of the future role of education does not leave room for the sort of dry academic pursuits which he knew in the schools and universities of his own day. They were far from his ideal, as his lectures 'On the Future of Our Educational Institutions' made clear. He envisaged instead, albeit dimly, a type of education whose object would be to promote a passion for life and all its possibilities. It would have as its aim the creation of a new type of man: the 46
Friedrich Nietzsche
'genius', as he called it at this stage. Education, it would seem, came to be regarded by Nietzsche as the moulder of human destiny, the means whereby the next stage of the evolutionary process would be attained, and whose practice became a sort of religion. The cultivation of the genius had formed the theme of his third Untimely Meditation, but it came to haunt him almost continuously until it became his all-consuming concern. 'My religion', he confessed to himself in his notebook, 'consists in the work of creating the genius' (KGW, IV/I, 122). When examined in the light of day, however, this is seen to be no more than a Utopian dream. And in common with most Utopian dreams, it has no real content. Nietzsche offers no practical details whatever as to how this cultivation of the 'genius' is to be effected. All that we are able to gather about the genius or 'bearer of the future' is that he will have the anti-Christian qualities of inhumane-ness, individualism and self-love. Such geniuses, we are told, will be called 'annihilators' and will ruthlessly criticise present conditions and root out evil and error wherever it may be found. But we are left in the dark as to what would constitute such evil and error or how it would be eradicated. Nor is it revealed to his reader (or yet known to Nietzsche himself) to which higher truth these evil and false ideas will sacrifice themselves. All seems to lie somewhere in the mists of the future. Indeed, Nietzsche's 'religion' at this point is pure futurism which makes no direct contact with the present world. One is tempted to link Nietzsche's preoccupation with the future with the more general tendency in the second half of the nineteenth century to exalt the idea of progress and to place faith in its future promises. Be that as it may, for present purposes it is more important to point out that in Nietzsche's case the longing for the future and its fulfilled promises went hand-in-hand with his growing despair about the past and his loss of interest in the ancient world. The reception given his Birth of Tragedy seems to have made clear to Nietzsche that the imagination has freer rein when orientated toward the future than when orientated toward the past. From this time on, his interest in the past was highly selective: Nietzsche thought the ancient past to be worthwhile only to the extent that it could provide an inspiration toward a purer humanity, toward a more immediate involvement in life and its possibilities. This was the only possible way in which Greek antiquity could continue to have any value for him. In every other respect, it is no less obsolescent than is Christianity, itself a product of the ancient world. Greek antiquity and Christianity alike are said to have their 'foundation in superstition, the cultus and a similar view of the world' (KGW, IV/I, 159). Antiquity and Christianity are both increasingly irrelevant and for much the same reasons. 'This would be a worthwhile task', Nietzsche muses to 47
CARL HEINZ RATSCHOW
himself, 'to show that antiquity is irretrievable, and with it Christianity and the whole foundation hitherto of our society and political life'.7 Both classical wisdom and traditional Christianity have been superseded by modern science and learning {KGW, IV/I, 145). This suggests to Nietzsche that 'the death of antique culture' is inevitable (KGWy IV/I, 159). He goes on to demand that classical studies be removed from the school curriculum, since it is no longer useful to the young, and that it be replaced by 'the science of the future' (KGWy IV/I, 160). Only then will 'our educational institutions' be equipped properly to cultivate and to equip the man of the future, 'the genius'. Education cannot create the new man ex nihilo. Indeed, the genius is a kind of evolutionary sport: 'through an aberration of nature . . . the genius suddenly comes to life' {KGW, IV/I, 171). But, education is entrusted with his training and cultivation when he appears. Even at this stage, Nietzsche's views are fiercely elitist. Yet 'the genius' is cultivated not for his own sake, but for the sake of the future of humankind. And in that future, neither Christianity nor classical culture has any role to play. By focusing not so much on his published works as on his unpublished notebooks from the period, we have gained a clearer impression of the direction being taken by Nietzsche. From the two preoccupations of his youth, namely Christianity and the classical world, his interest was gradually but certainly shifting toward scientific processes and the necessities of the natural world. These new interests wholly preoccupy him during the next phase of his thought. The shift meant, among other things, that he could no longer operate within the basically Idealist outlook of Schopenhauer, and he was forced finally to confess - to himself as well as to others - that he had in fact become a thoroughgoing materialist. We shall see, however, that Nietzsche's brand of'materialism' was tempered - and complicated - by his 'perspectivism'.
'Chemistry of concepts and sensations' Nietzsche's anti-humanistic, scientific materialism finds expression initially in Human, All-too-Human, the first volume of which appeared in 1878. This book punctuated the second phase in Nietzsche's development, a phase which lasted from his discovery in late 1875 of Paul Ree's Psychological Reflections until the winter of 1881, when he arrived at the doctrine of 'eternal recurrence'.8 Human, All-too-Human also introduced for the first time publicly Nietzsche's new aphoristic style of communication, a style which persisted until the very end of his productive life as a writer. After The Birth of Tragedy and the four Untimely Meditations, Nietzsche 48
Friedrich Nietzsche
wrote few books which were not almost wholly aphoristic in style. It is a style which can cause enormous difficulties to anyone wishing to comprehend Nietzsche's thought. Walter Kaufmann overstated matters no more than marginally when he observed, 'Nietzsche's books are easier to read but harder to understand than those of almost any other thinker.'9 Nietzsche's use of aphorism is the main culprit. Why did he choose such a style? It is arguable whether he adopted the aphorism because - as he sometimes suggested - he believed it to be the most appropriate form in which to express his thoughts, or whether he adopted it because - as he sometimes revealed in unguarded remarks - he had no real choice. By comparing his published books with his private notebooks one sees clearly how he went about his work as author: he would scribble down thoughts impulsively as they occurred to him and gradually perfect their formulation until he was ready to arrange them into more thematic groupings suitable for publication. It thus suited Nietzsche's temperament to write in the form of short, disjointed maxims. More significantly, however, it was virtually all that his precarious health would allow. His constantly recurring headaches and painfully over-sensitive eyes made sustained concentration impossible. He once admitted in a letter to Peter Gast that bad health necessitated his brief, 'telegram style', as he called it, adding that he hoped better for his friend, so that he need never himself become an 'aphorism-man' (August 1881). On the other hand, Nietzsche's evident admiration for the French aphorists in particular should not be forgotten. And it must also be allowed that not only his perspectivism, but also the peculiar style of'intellectual impressionism' which he cultivated, may well have found in the aphorism their ideal medium. It is by no means impossible that the emergence of the aphoristic form for the first time in Human, All-too-Human was occasioned by the change of theme that occurs there, a change which signifies Nietzsche's emancipation from classical philology and from the influence of Wagner. Whatever the reason - or combination of reasons - which led to its adoption, there is no question that the aphoristic style was used by Nietzsche to good advantage. Schopenhauer's falling from favour, followed by a personal quarrel with Wagner, marked the end of the first phase in Nietzsche's creative life. By now, art was no longer esteemed and had been relegated to the same level as religion - as a 'narcotic' and an enemy of reason. Disillusioned already with his childhood faith, with his academic discipline, and now with his more recent heroes, Nietzsche was clearly ripe for a change in direction and for a new intellectual stimulus. It came in the autumn of 1875, during a period of sick leave from the University of Basel. At that time Nietzsche read Paul 49
CARL HEINZ RATSCHOW
Ree's only recently published Psychological Reflections and then, shortly afterwards, discovered the works of Voltaire. These two together provided the inspiration for the scientific materialism which came to fruition with the publication of Human, All-too-Human in May 1878.10 Nietzsche dedicated volume one of that work to the memory of Voltaire, whom he hailed as 'one of the greatest liberators of the spirit'. The idea of'the free spirit', together with what Nietzsche called 'pure knowledge', became the dominant motifs of this middle period in his development. Nietzsche's new programme is outlined in the very first aphorism of Human, All-too-Human: namely, 'Chemistry of Concepts and Sensations'. Building on the distinction drawn there between the older metaphysical philosophy, which presupposes the underived character of 'things in themselves', and the newer historical philosophy, 'which can no longer be separated from natural science', Nietzsche goes on to recommend, What we now require, and what is possible only now in virtue of the present level of the individual sciences, is a chemistry of moral, religious, and aesthetic conceptions and sensations, as well as of all the impulses we experience in every cultural and social relation and, indeed, even when we are alone . . . (KGW, iv/2, 20, § 1)
This sort of chemical analysis, which yields the purest form of cognition of which we are capable, shows with certainty that man and all he experiences or does or is is radically transient and historical. Indeed, it shows that everything is transient and historical. Nothing is; everything becomes. There simply are no 'things in themselves': everything is subject to a continual process of becoming. There are no 'eternal truths': all beliefs and values have evolved and continue to evolve in human history. To think otherwise is metaphysical illusion and betrays the family failing of all philosophers hitherto. 'Lack of historical sense is the failing of all philosophers' (§ 2). Not only metaphysical or religious beliefs and values come within the range of historical philosophy. Science itself is subject to Nietzsche's newstyle 'chemical analysis'. Science's most basic concepts - including number, causality, space and time - are treated as mere 'perspectival forms', the result of our seeing and interpreting things from a certain limited perspective. So, our common-sense and even 'scientific' views of the world, no less than our metaphysical and theological views, are without firm or 'objective' grounding. They are a sort of prejudice, arising out of persistent habits of thinking governed by the grammar of our language. In one sense they are not even interpretations of the world, since that would suggest there is something objective of which they could be an interpretation. They are mere perspectives. And, although one may set this 50
Friedrich Nietzsche
perspective against that perspective, one cannot set any perspective against the world 'in itself. 'World in itself is an empty concept, worthy only of a Homeric laugh. Is there then no reason to prefer one perspective to another? In a sense there is. One perspective may be preferred, not because it is more nearly 'true', but because it is more useful. All perspectives might be 'false'; but we would never know this, since there is no extra-perspectival position from which it could be determined. We can determine nonetheless that some perspectives are useful. This is the justification of science over against, say, metaphysics. But science, too, is caught in the labyrinth of language; it, too, is a function of grammar. We form our perspectives and build our worlds, not so much through observing patterns, as through creating patterns by means of our language. As Nietzsche put it much later, in his Nachlass from 1888, 'the world appears logical to us, because we made it logical in the first place' (KGW, vin/2, 82). This is entirely continuous with the 'perspectivism' enunciated already in Human, All-too-Human (cf. §§11,19). There Nietzsche argued that man's mistake was to think that in having language he had knowledge of the 'real' world, when in fact no 'real' world corresponds to our language. Just as the concept of the 'thing in itself is an error, so the concept of 'the real world' is the sum of all our errors. To understand this is to have the sort of 'pure' cognition which Nietzsche commends. Although science is subject to Nietzschean perspectivism, metaphysics and morality are its chief victims. For, if we take him seriously, we see that life has no meaning, hidden or open, which is lying there - so to speak waiting to be discovered. To be sure, this is not a comforting outlook. Nietzsche himself acknowledges as much. In the aphorism entitled 'An Erroneous View of Life Necessary for Life' (§ 33), he suggests that most of us survive only by deceiving ourselves with metaphysical fantasies; by seeing in the world only what we want to see, and by persuading ourselves that life is worthwhile. This 'impurity' of vision shields from us the ultimate futility of existence. True or 'pure' understanding, however, forces upon us the recognition that life is ultimately pointless and without meaning, that humankind is without purpose and that all its knowledge and activity are therefore futile. Life itself is an intrinsically senseless torrent of happening, ruled by an arbitrary and inconquerable Fate. Every aspect of life is governed by absolute necessity. In such a world there can be no grounds for praise or blame; no 'guilt', 'shame' or 'sin'. All moral and religious striving must be pointless, for in the face of such necessity no man can be held responsible for
CARL HEINZ RATSCHOW
any of his actions. (§ 133). Religion, Nietzsche emphasises, is primarily a narcotic for which we must learn to do without. He sees it as originating amongst primitive man from the need to impose some kind of law upon the cruel and arbitrary world of nature. Unnerved by the randomness of natural occurrences, primitive man attributed all that befell him to irrational, magical forces; these he attempted by means of sacrifice, prayer and other cultic practices to placate and influence. The rise of modern science has obviated this need. Nietzsche opposed utterly the view fostered by the Romantics, and kept alive by Schopenhauer, that the religions contained valuable truths, expressed in allegorical form, which could be extracted and reformulated in 'demythologised' terms; in other words, that the wisdom of religion could be translated into the language of science. This enterprise was regarded as resting on an entirely false conception of the relation of religion to science. In Nietzsche's^view, 'never yet has a religion . . . either in the form of dogma or in the form of imagery, contained a single truth' (§ no). Religion was born out of fear, and has survived as long as it has by nurturing the same sense of fear experienced by humankind in its infancy. Since we no longer share the primitive conception of nature and its workings, we no longer have any use for the religious life. Indeed, 'its doors are forever closed to us' (§ 111). To be sure, there remain in our day 'after-pains' of the religious mentality, but these testify all the more to its loss (§§ 130, 131). Thus, according to Nietzsche, his 'pure' form of cognition unmasks morality, religion and all philosophy hitherto as spurious attempts to assign value and meaning to life and its contingencies. They are all three shown to rest upon the false belief that by attaching labels to things and by setting up scales of values they can tie life down and control it, rather than being controlled by it. The 'scientific' viewpoint destroys all such illusions, revealing all labels and all classifications - including science's own labels - to be fictitious. Good and evil, truth and falsehood, egoism and altruism and other such values which we attach to things are merely perspectival forms which we ourselves create and impose. Behind these labels there is no 'thing in itself to give them substance, no God to give them authority. Where does this leave us? Does this type of philosophy not rob us ofall hope and comfort in this world, and leave us to despair of the futility of all that we do and strive for? 'Will not our philosophy lead to tragedy? Will it not make us hostile towards life and towards better things?' (§ 34). Nietzsche knew well the cheerlessness and anguish that his own way of thinking brings; he even allowed that it was possible to regard it as a 'philosophy of destruction'. He also believed it possible, nevertheless, to rejoice in the new situation: 'to soar freely and fearlessly above men, morals, laws and conventional values'. This 52
Friedrich Nietzsche
is the privilege of the truly free spirit, depicted as the 'Wanderer' in the final aphorism of the first volume of Human, All-too-Human. His experience is two-fold. He knows on the one hand the deep despair which follows upon loss of faith in the world of illusion. On the other hand, the sweeping away of all old constraints and values introduces hitherto unknown freedom, an unclouded vision and unlimited creative possibilities. So the 'Wanderer' delights in a new morning, 'in which truly good and bright things appear': 'these are the reward of all free spirits, of those who are at home in the forest, mountain and in solitude and who, in their happy, contemplative way, are both wanderers and philosophers' (§ 638). This paradoxical double consequence - of hope even in despair - was borne out in Nietzsche's own experience. Here, as always, he lived out his insights, suffering their full consequences in his own person. For the time being his ideas fostered gloom and nihilistic despair; yet already he anticipated the joy and exhilaration of a new beginning, a new dawn, an open sea. Thus out of seeming fruitlessness there emerged his Gay Science and the ecstatic vision of Thus Spoke Zarathustra. The eternal recurrence of the same In the summer of 1881, at Sils Maria, 'six thousand feet above man and time', Nietzsche hit upon the doctrine of 'eternal recurrence'. This thought transformed his outlook and dominated the remaining years of his creative life.11 It came to him suddenly, as if by inspiration, after a spell of great unrest and immediately became the pivot of his whole existence. It is the insight of Nietzsche's life. 'When you imbibe the thought of thoughts it will transform you', we find in his notebooks from the period. 'To ask of everything you would do: is it such that I would do it innumerable times over? That is the weightiest question' {KGW, v/2, 394). Herein is measured the extent of a person's will to live. For all its obvious importance, however, Nietzsche remained highly secretive about the idea of recurrence, speaking openly of it on only rare occasions, and then most often in riddles and imagery. This tendency compounds the already difficult task of interpreting aright Nietzsche's doctrine of the eternal recurrence of the same. It is easier to determine its place in his thought than it is to determine its meaning. The outstanding importance of the idea of eternal recurrence for Nietzsche lies in the fact that it corroborates his view, reached in volume one of Human, All-too-Human, about the absolute necessity of all life's happenings, and of man's consequent lack of responsibility for his own actions. Man, despite his intellectual freedom, is carried along in the restless, 53
CARL HEINZ RATSCHOW
repetitive stream of happening. To accept life as it is, in its transience and senselessness; to want it as it is and in no other way - that is the greatest test. That is what Nietzsche signifies by the term 'yea-saying'. Nietzsche contrasts this insight with the teachings of the religions: 'This thought contains more than all the religions, which have taught us to despise this life as a fleeting thing and to look forward to an unknown other life' {KGW, v/2, 401). These notes, written in mid-1881, bring out quite clearly the rank Nietzsche accorded his idea. He was highly conscious of its religious significance, and consequently of his own importance as its sole guardian. From this time he thinks of himself increasingly as 'bearer of the greatest secret' and as the 'teacher of humankind', whose unique prophetic vocation it is to declare what lies in store for the human race. But some preparation is required: nature must first be stripped of all the metaphysical, moral and religious conceptions which have hitherto been imposed upon her. Then, and only then, will humankind - being itself'fully naturalised' (KGW, v/2, 423) - learn to live at one with the world as it is. Thus, as commended already in Human, All-too-Human, the necessity and purposelessness of nature must be fully acknowledged. These ideas, adumbrated in Human, All-too-Human but drawn from the notebooks of 1881-2, are strengthened in The Gay Science and then allowed to mature fully in Thus Spoke Zarathustra. Other thoughts which are popularly regarded as typically Nietzschean receive their classic expression in The Gay Science. For instance, for thefirsttime in his writings onefindsin this volume the idea that 'God is dead' and that 'we are his murderers' (§ 125). He had, of course, already for a long time proclaimed religion to be a thing of the past. In the parable of'The Madman', however, the idea finds definitive form. Again, it is in The Gay Science that Nietzsche introduced his idea oi amor fati or 'the love of one's fate' (§ 276), the idea which carries us beyond toleration to glad acceptance of our already certain fates. In the section called 'Long Live Physics', Nietzsche enjoins us to become 'learners and discoverers of all things lawful and necessary in the world' (§ 335). For Nietzsche this means our becoming scientists, and more particularly physicists, for he understands his insights to be physical laws relating to the material processes governing the life of the world and of humankind. The Gay Science contains, too, the first public reference to the doctrine of eternal recurrence (§ 341). So, it is a book with which to reckon. But, its primary significance for us is that it prepares the way for Thus Spoke Zarathustra, Nietzsche's masterwork, his 'gift to humankind'. The preparatory role of The Gay Science is underscored by the first edition's concluding with the passage entitled 'Incipit Tragoedia' (§ 342), which reappears as the beginning of the prologue to Thus Spoke Zarathustra (KGW, VI/I, sf). 54
Friedrich Nietzsche
The message of Zarathustra is the doctrine of eternal recurrence, which is gradually unfolded in the book's several parts. The book shows just how the despondency which dominated Human, All-too-Human had been transformed into hopeful 'yea-saying' by the discovery of the doctrine of recurrence. In a sense, of course, nothing is changed. Life remains in Zarathustra as it had been in Human, All-too-Human. And yet everything is changed. In the face of the absolutely arbitrary, irresponsible and purposeless life-process, the certainty of eternal recurrence saves us from renouncing all hope, by conferring value on life and lending its every single aspect the utmost consequence. When endowed with eternal significance, every moment of life demands total commitment. It has to be lived in such a way that we are able to desire it 'once again and innumerable times more', indeed, for all eternity. Those who are strong enough categorically to will their own fate cease in Nietzsche's view to be men amongst men; they are transformed and become the first-fruits of the future. This forward thrust we have seen before in Nietzsche's works, but never quite as it is found in Thus Spoke Zarathustra, the book he was convinced would supplant the holy books of all man's religions. It is, in a sense, a truly inspired work; and it differs in character from virtually everything Nietzsche had previously produced. The whole tenor of the book - or, at least, of its first three parts12 - is urgent, expectant, driving forward. In Thus Spoke Zarathustra Nietzsche's attitude is no longer primarily negative or destructive. Here he does not seek first and foremost to condemn or to destroy, as he had done in his earlier works. Rather, on the basis of deep and overpowering convictions he creates, fashioning new ideals, new hopes, a new humankind. Therein lies the power of this work above all other works by Nietzsche. Thus Spoke Zarathustra is a book of complexity and subtlety. Clearly, it will not be possible here to summarise the whole; nor will it be possible even to enter the debate about whether the book constitutes a unified whole.13 It will have to suffice for our purposes here to concentrate attention on only two sections of Thus Spoke Zarathustra: namely, 'On the Blissful Islands', taken from Part II, and 'On the Vision and the Riddle', taken from Part III. Nietzsche's concern in the section 'On the Blissful Islands' (KGW, VI/I, 105-8) is to clear away our old religious conception of God, in order to make room for his new conception of man: man as truly free and creative. Nietzsche begins to call this man of the future 'the superman' (der Ubermensch), a term he employed for only a short time but, in spite of this, the one for which Nietzsche is generally remembered. The term 'Superman' is potentially misleading in several respects. In particular, however, one should not regard it as suggesting, in quasi-Darwinian fashion, an evolutionary development beyond man. That is clearly not what Nietzsche 55
CARL HEINZ RATSCHOW
has in mind, though his rhetoric sometimes misleads readers in this direction. His much earlier thoughts about the development of'the genius' may well have implied this, but not his thoughts on the Ubermensch. Progressive, upward historical development is now ruled out by the idea of eternal recurrence of the same. By 'the superman' Nietzsche signifies a new quality of awareness, free from illusion and metaphysical supposition; in short, what he has referred to as the 'naturalisation' of man. So conceived, this new type man of the future assumes the position of highest value; he replaces the dead God. 'Once man said "God" when he gazed upon distant seas.' God was that in which man put his trust, that to which he turned for support when confronted with the awful greatness of the seas; God the creator and our strength. But now, Nietzsche teaches (through Zarathustra), we must learn instead to say 'Man'. God can no longer be relied upon, having been exposed as no more than the product of conjecture. We can rely only upon that which we ourselves are: namely, 'creative will'. This alone is our strength and this alone deserves our ultimate commitment. Henceforth we ourselves become creator - of a new world in our own image and of a new man. 'And you yourselves should create what you have hitherto called the world. The world should be formed in your image, by your reason, your will and your love.' It should include only those things which are 'within the limits of conceivability'. This rules out God and all metaphysical fictions. The 'will-to-truth' should dominate and one should be true to one's senses 'to the end'. Hope, then, must be found in the present, the transitory, the humanly-sensible world, and in our creative commitment to it. Our whole outlook on the world hitherto has been determined, according to Nietzsche, by religious Idealism and its teaching that only the ^transient, the faultfcss, the wwmoved and the ^conditioned is real. Nietzsche, speaking through his prophet Zarathustra, teaches the opposite; he inverts Goethe's famous line to read, 'All that is mtransitory is but a shadow.' This Nietzsche believes to be the most difficult idea to grasp and, once grasped, to accept. The grandeur and awesomeness of the world lure us into supposing that there is a God, something transcendent, immutable, eternal. But this supposition is 'evil and misanthropic'. To acknowledge the transitoriness of life; to affirm 'the most difficult truth' that all things, even our own thoughts and our own will, must pass away, and in the face of this knowledge to create and to will - therein lies for Nietzsche perfect freedom. 'Willing liberates: that is the true doctrine of will and freedom.' This freedom would be dashed to pieces, however, if there were gods. The notion of divine creative activity is incompatible with Nietzsche's doctrine of human creativity. Either we affirm a god, who created this world out of permanence, with the result that 56
Friedrich Nietzsche there is no room left for human will; or we affirm man, existing alone as supreme creative will, rejoicing in impermanence, even to the point of willing his own destruction. 'On the Blissful Islands' ends with a restatement of the central issue, namely the emergence of the new man. Nietzsche here employs to good effect the picture of an artist hewing an image from rock. In the hard stone of human existence, says Zarathustra, 'I see an image sleeping . . .the image of my visions'. He is frantic to chisel it out, to free it, and if in the process much else is damaged or destroyed by his hammer, 'what is that to me?' All that matters is 'the beauty of the superman': 'What are gods to me now?' The concept of the creative will lies behind the second selection, 'On the Vision and the Riddle', in which the doctrine of eternal recurrence is presented in the form of an allegory (KGW, VI/I, 193-8). The discourse is divided into two parts. In the first part, Zarathustra is pictured ascending a mountain path. Here, as elsewhere in the book, the image of 'going upwards' is critical. On his shoulder sits the 'spirit of gravity', a curious demonic creature, 'half dwarf, half mole'. He represents the forces which govern the material world: not only the force of gravity in the literal sense, but also the principle of impermanence and decay to which man and all else is subject. This creature tries to convince Zarathustra that 'all your striving is in vain. Your ascent is merely an illusion. Decline alone is real.' Zarathustra, however, is defiant, summoning courage: 'courage that attacks, for in every attack there is a triumphant shout'. Zarathustra's courage overcomes the despair and the fear which beset man when he contemplates the fact that he must perish. Courage conquers even death, 'for it says: "was that life? Very well! The same again!"' This courage, in other words, is amorfati. Courageous acceptance of our fate enables us to ascend despite the force of gravity and decay. This 'ascent', to the summit of humanity, or to the new man, is Nietzsche's equivalent of the Christian doctrines of salvation and redemption. According to Christian teaching, salvation occurs 'in spite of everything. The same is true of Zarathustra's 'triumphant shout', representing the triumph of the human will. This triumph occurs in spite 0/the world and its transience; in spite of its certain decay. In the second half of the discourse, Zarathustra goes on to tell the dwarf of his 'abysmal thought'; that is, of eternal recurrence. His explanation makes use of the place where they are standing: 'There was a gateway just where we had stopped.' This gateway signifies the meeting of two paths, one leading backwards, the other forwards, but each for an eternity. An eternity lies behind, and an eternity ahead. The name of the gateway is 'Moment' 57
CARL HEINZ RATSCHOW
(Augenblick). In the Moment, past and future meet. Everything that has been, and everything that is not yet, come together here. The Moment draws all things together; all things exist in it, and therefore must exist again and again. In it, past becomes future, and future past: 'And you and I at this gateway, whispering together . . . must we not have been here before? . . . and must we not return eternally?' Zarathustra's reflections are superficially reminiscent of the Hindu doctrine of karma, according to which the effects of a person's life live on to haunt him for evermore. Nietzsche's meaning, however, is quite different from this. Behind the doctrine ofkarma lies a purely cyclical view of time and existence. Although he is sometimes misinterpreted in this way, this is not true of Nietzsche's notion of recurrence. The dwarf interpreted time as a circle: 'Everything straight is a lie. All truth is crooked; time itself is a circle.' Zarathustra rebukes him, however, for he has missed the point. Eternal recurrence is not a matter of time running a circular course, returning again and again to the same happening. This is precluded by the importance Nietzsche attaches to the Moment. Eternal recurrence happens in the Moment: 'the infinitely small moment . . . a lightning image from the eternal river' (KGW, v/2, 400). Existence is conceived by Nietzsche as an eternal river, as a torrent of necessary, purposeless, physical occurrences. The Moment is a lightning flash which interrupts its flow, drawing all existence into itself - the eternity behind and the eternity ahead. One infinitely brief, but glorious, moment in which a courageous individual summons up the whole of existence, 'crams it into one single feeling' and utters the great affirmation: 'Is that life? Very well! The same again!' That moment is the ground of all possibility and of the 'humanness of the future'. This takes us back to § 337 of The Gay Science, in which Nietzsche spoke of the man of the future as 'a man whose horizon encompasses thousands of years, past, present and future; . . . old things, new things, all the losses, hopes, conquests and victories humankind has ever known'. He continues, If only one could possess all this in one's own soul, and feel it all in a single, all-encompassing feeling - this must surely produce a happiness that humankind has never yet known; the happiness of a god, full of power and love, full of tears and laughter.
Such an individual embodies eternal recurrence. He is the gateway called 'Moment'; in him the paths of past and future meet. 'On the Vision and the Riddle' concludes with the vivid but repulsive story of a young shepherd boy, into whose mouth a heavy black snake has crawled. The snake cannot be tugged from the shepherd's throat. On Zarathustra's instruction, the boy conquers his revulsion and bites off its 58
Friedrich Nietzsche
head, and in so doing is transformed: 'No longer a shepherd, no longer a man - a transformed being, surrounded by light, and laughing.' The riddle is explained in a later discourse entitled 'The Convalescent' (KGW, VI/I, 26673). The snake is used to represent the knowledge that all things recur eternally, and we ourselves with them. Even the most contemptible man is with us forever. This thought engenders disgust: 'the great disgust at man it choked me and had crawled into my throat' (270). The overcoming of this loathing - the moment of affirmation, of wanting all things exactly as they are - is represented by the biting off of the snake's head. The result is utter transformation, or 'great health', as Nietzsche refers to it. In this moment of redemption ends Zarathustra's decline or 'down-going'. In this moment, the Spirit of Gravity is defied, and ascent becomes possible (273). Nietzsche regarded this as his 'most abysmal thought' and his greatest contribution. He was confident that it would eventually be accepted and welcomed by humankind; but he saw himself, much like the Madman of The Gay Science, as one who had come too early: it takes light-years for news of such magnitude to reach the ears of man. Christianity, which has determined our thinking hitherto, will continue to prevail for a time longer. But, repressive though it is, not even Christianity will be strong enough to silence the 'triumphant shout' when its time has come. The coming 'revaluation of values' he saw as inevitable. Toward that end Nietzsche now devoted himself entirely.14
Prelude to a philosophy of the future The 'revaluation of all values' was the central concern of Beyond Good and Evil, which appeared in 1886 with the subtitle 'Prelude to a Philosophy of the Future'. At the outset I remarked that Nietzsche was in no sense a systematic thinker. Nevertheless, it does seem that following the completion of Thus Spoke Zarathustra he toyed for a while with the idea of producing a large systematic work. His notebooks from 1885 are filled with draft outlines. What emerged from this was Beyond Good and Evil, although this was probably not the great complete work he had contemplated. It remains nonetheless a reasonably successful systematic presentation of his basic outlook in this third period of his intellectual development. It is not necessary here to work through the nine parts into which the volume is divided. Our purposes will be served by focusing on the first three parts alone: 'On the Prejudices of the Philosophers', 'The Free Spirit', and 'The Religious Nature'. Nietzsche is concerned in part one to expose the misapprehensions of all 59
CARL HEINZ RATSCHOW
previous philosophy and to introduce the manner of thinking which will characterise the philosophy of the future. He develops in this section a view of language which anticipates in key respects much that we tend to associate with twentieth-century philosophy. In particular, he warns against the power of language to mislead us through 'the seduction of words' (§ 16). Much that we think of as corresponding to the way things go in the world including cause and effect or 'free will' - is no more than 'conventional fiction' (§ 21) reflecting certain 'habits of grammar' (§ 17). The fact that similar fictions occur in various philosophies - eastern as well as western, ancient as well as modern - simply confirms that 'family resemblance' in such habits of thought arises from the 'common philosophy of grammar' in say - Indian, Greek and Germanic languages (§ 20). Languages which do not share in that common grammar are likely to picture the world differently and, consequently, to produce different sorts of philosophies. Our view of the world is a function of our language; our philosophy is a function of our grammar. The 'perspectivism', introduced in Human, All-too-Human, reasserts itself and is extended further in Beyond Good and Evil. Extending the scope of perspectivism has a number of consequences. For instance, Nietzsche now says that the fundamental mistake of philosophers hitherto has been to ascribe value to truth, supposing it to be derived from some hidden, higher realm beyond this world, from the intransitory, from God or from the 'thing in itself (§§ 1-4). He suggests that, in fact, 'truth' may be of less value than 'untruth'. He proposes as his essential criterion of value whether a judgment is 'life-enhancing . . . species-preserving, perhaps even species-cultivating'. Any judgment becomes worthwhile, therefore, which promotes life. And it is certainly the case, reminds Nietzsche, that many socalled 'false' judgments satisfy this condition. Any 'untruth' which can be shown to be useful for the preservation of life is accordingly justified. With this step, Nietzsche destroys the traditional antithesis between 'truth' and 'untruth', and places himself beyond all customarily antithetical values, including 'good and evil'. This viewpoint has its roots in the vitalistic thesis that Nietzsche had been developing for years: namely, that life alone is decisive. By now, however, it had become central to his outlook that 'life itself is the will to power' (§ 13). Customary value-labels — such as good and evil, true and false — are now regarded as meaningless precisely because they bear no relation to will. Strong and weak, on the other hand, imply a degree of will. This antithesis, consequently, is still allowed. Weakness - or lack of will - is clearly a negative value, since it cannot promote life or its cultivation. 'Evil' and 'falsehood', however, cannot be dismissed in the same way: given certain conditions, they 60
Friedrich Nietzsche
may both well serve to protect or enhance life. In this way, Nietzsche shows that these traditional pairings are linguistically improper; in fact, meaningless. Another consequence of Nietzsche's outlook is that all of life - all thought, desire, judgment and so on - is reducible without remainder to physiological processes or impulses. If life is pure will, then behind all thought - and behind all philosophy - there lies not a voluntary thinking subject, as all philosophers hitherto have been inclined to believe, but merely blind, selfseeking will. Philosophy, as interpreted by Nietzsche, becomes nothing more than 'the most spiritual form of the will to power', merely a 'tyrannical drive', thought seeking to fashion the world in its own image. More radically, Nietzsche draws the consequence that it is fundamentally misguided even to say ' / think' or ' / will'. Living, thinking and willing take place of their own accord: 'a thought comes when it wants to, not when /want it to' (§ 17). The idea that we are free thinking and willing individuals is simply an illusion. Our individual egos are no more than clothing for a bundle of physiological drives and impulses, which alone are real. That being the case, we are driven along in the raging stream of physiological, self-willing occurrence which constitutes existence. Existence is itself absolutely arbitrary, purposeless, irresponsible will to power. This insight, as Nietzsche proudly acknowledged, 'tramples over conventional morality and moves on beyond it' (§ 23). It leads us beyond good and evil. The first part of Beyond Good and Evil serves as virtually a summary of Nietzsche's fundamental philosophy. All judgments and categories are 'perspectival appearances', the products of our limited sense-perception as filtered through language, and do not properly correspond to reality. There is, indeed, no 'reality' to which they could correspond. This means that it would be vain to search for a 'thing in itself behind appearances. But it does not mean for Nietzsche that the world exists only in our perception. Our senses do not bring the world into being. The world and life exist of themselves as will to power. It is we who are imaginary, pretending that we are free thinking 'IV. This viewpoint Nietzsche now terms 'psychology' (§ 23) not, however, in the sense of being a theory of the self as individual subject. It is rather to be regarded as a sort of 'world psychology': a theory of the development of the will to power as that which lies behind and is expressed in all that happens in the world. The concept of the 'free spirit', which figured importantly in Human, Alltoo-Human, is taken up and developed in the second part of Beyond Good and Evil, where it is used as the distinguishing mark of the 'new philosophers' (§ 44). The whole of part two centres on and revolves around aphorism thirty61
CARL HEINZ RATSCHOW
six. Nietzsche starts from the assumption that nothing is real but desires, passions and physiological drives, all of which can be subsumed under the 'will to power'. To this even the material world can ultimately be reduced, as 'a more primitive form of the world of emotions'. The will to power is posited as the cause of all actions and occurrences, 'the only kind of causality that is actual'. It becomes evident that what Nietzsche did in thefirstpart of Beyond Good and Evil with respect to thought, he does here in the second part in relation to action. The will to power is put forward as the only way to account for either thought or action. It is the only effective motivating force. It governs all causes and all effects. In short, it is the material world and everything that happens in it. Aphorisms thirty-two to thirty-four lead up to this position. Our morality, like our thought, consists in 'perspectival' judgments, or interpretations imposed upon the world, which we mistake for reality. From our point of view, Nietzsche acknowledges, there can be no life at all except on the basis of these 'perspectival' appearances (§ 34). We are held captive by them. The fact that our moral values neither bear any correspondence to external reality nor contain any absolute, timeless truth, however, does not mean that they are worthless. As already seen, they can serve a practical end, if they are in any way life-enhancing. Nietzsche issues a warning, nevertheless, to all 'philosophers and friends of knowledge' not to martyr themselves for the sake of their so-called truths. Neither truth nor moral values are worth suffering for, since neither has any reality. To 'fight for the truth' simply compromises your innocence and the neutrality of your conscience (§25). The whole of this part of Beyond Good and Evil bears an unmistakeably autobiographical character. Throughout run the motifs of solitude and of 'masking'. The philosophers of the future will love solitude: 'the good . . . free, wanton, easy solitude'. They consider it their privilege to be isolated and misunderstood by all others, even by their friends. They delight, therefore, in masking and obscuring their thoughts, in order not to be understood. Existence beyond good and evil, beyond all conventional values, is for the very few. Only the strong and independent dare enter upon it (§ 29). This 'new species of philosopher', whose appearance Nietzsche claims to herald, will be called 'attempters' or Versucher (§ 42).I5 Their whole existence will be experimental, for they will obey only their own truth and not the truth of the masses. What is good for the many will not be good for them. They will be cut off forever from the rest of humankind. But this almost exactly describes Nietzsche's own existence. His vision of the 'new philosopher' is simply his vision of himself writ large, his own fate projected onto the future of humanity. Just as Nietzsche seems to have thrived on his 62
Friedrich Nietzsche own sense of isolation, so will the philosopher of the future. The 'new philosopher', in his solitude, embodies the creative will, which defies the stream of arbitrary physical happening by willing 'the same again!'. This moment of courageous self-assertion saves him from being engulfed and dissolving into unreality. So is his salvation secured. What then can be said of the place of religion in the new order? That is the theme of the third part of Beyond Good and Evil. The new philosopher will want to make use of religion, just as he will want to make use of social and political structures, in 'cultivating and educating' persons fit for the future (§ 61). But just how is religion to be exploited? To be sure, it provides a ready means of subduing the masses, enabling the strong and independent, 'who are destined to command', to enforce their will to power without evoking resistance and resentment. The great value of religion lies in the peace of heart and contentment with their earthly lot which it offers to the great mass of ordinary people, born perhaps for no other purpose than to serve and to obey: 'an ennobling of obedience . . . a sort of justification of the whole everyday round, of the lowliness of it all'. But, secondly and more importantly, the higher forms of religion, namely asceticism and puritanism, are said by Nietzsche to offer a path to a 'higher spirituality', a way of ennobling a people, training them for 'self-overcoming . . . for silence and solitude'. These last remarks in particular should not be taken to suggest that Nietzsche's attitude toward religion has in any way softened. The very next aphorism makes it abundantly clear that he still regards religion in general and Christianity in particular as a degenerating force, fostering weakness, sickness and all that is base in mankind: I want to make clear that Christianity is the most feeble form of self-presumption ever to have appeared. Men, not noble or hard enough to be up to refashioning humankind; men, not strong and far-sighted enough to be able, with lofty self-constraint, to allow precedence to the law of countless failure and ruin; men, not aristocratic enough to perceive the inviolable disparity of class and distinctness of rank between one individual and another: it is just such men as these who, with their 'equal before God', have up to now governed the destiny of Europe, with the result that the European of today has degenerated into a dwarfish, almost ludicrous species, a herd animal, something full of good-will, sickliness and mediocrity. (§ 62)
In other words, the Christian religion cannot be counted upon to produce a humankind worthy of the future which Nietzsche has envisaged for us. But, the history of religions leads, in his view, eventually to just such a future. And this in three stages (§ 55). In the first stage, represented by prehistoric and ancient pagan religions, human beings were sacrificed to a god. This was superseded by Christianity, which sacrificed instead human nature, passions 63
CARL HEINZ RATSCHOW
and instincts to God. In the third phase, just now dawning, God himself will be sacrificed to nothingness or Fate. Thus nihilism marks the end of the history of religions. But this stage, too, will pass. It will be sublated by knowledge of the doctrine of the eternal recurrence of the same. Only this new ideal, 'the ideal of the most exuberant, most alive and most worldaffirming human being', can surmount pessimism. This new human being 'wants it all again - all that has been and all that is - for all eternity, insatiably calling "da capo", not only to himself, but to the whole pageant of existence' (§ 56). This new man affirms not God but himself, Man, creative will, who, in the face of decay and decline, wills his own existence again and again for all eternity. This man is to take the place of God. Indeed, he is what we have hitherto mistakenly called 'God'. The day will come, Nietzsche proclaimed, when human beings will look back on such concerns as 'God' and 'sin' as merely a child's game or a child's worry. Then will humankind have come of age; and for this its whole history will have been but preparation. This new man will shout triumphantly in the face of his fate: 'Very well! The same again!' These were not Nietzsche's last thoughts on religion; but they are the last thoughts to be covered here. Following the publication of Beyond Good and Evil, Nietzsche continued his extravagant polemic against Christianity. These writings from Nietzsche's remaining years, however, do not belong in the same class as those singled out for attention in this article. In these later volumes - of which only Twilight of the Idols and On the Genealogy ofMorals appeared in his lifetime - no new ideas of note are to be found. And, when taken together with the more intemperate, posthumously published The Anti-Christ, they serve to remind us to what extent Nietzsche's vitriolic attack on Christian thought and values was directed narrowly at the sort of exaggerated piety encountered and fostered in his childhood home. There Christianity was little more than fear of sin and a weak effort to be good. To judge from his last writings, it would seem that Nietzsche never managed entirely to separate himself from its stifling and morbid hold. For it was quite clearly this Christianity which in The Anti-Christ he indicted as 'the one great curse, the one intrinsic depravity . . . the one immortal blemish upon humankind' (§ 62).
Friedrich Nietzsche Notes 1 This form of abbreviation, which will be used throughout the essay, refers to the Kritische Gesamtausgabe (Berlin, 19676°), volume vn/3, pp. 338-9. Trans. Walter Kaufmann, The Will to Power (New York, 1968), §1067. For more details about this and other main editions of Nietzsche's works, see the 'Bibliographical essay' printed below at the end of this chapter. 2 The most important events for each of the three main phases of Nietzsche's intellectual development will be given in notes at the beginning of each section. The following biographical details are pertinent to the first period of his intellectual formation: 15 October 1844, Friedrich Wilhelm Nietzsche born in Rocken (Prussia) as first son of Carl Ludwig (1813-49), a Lutheran pastor, and Franziska Oehler Nietzsche (1826-97), herself a daughter of a Lutheran pastor; 1846, birth of Friedrich's only sister, Elisabeth (d. 1935); 1849, birth of Friedrich's only brother, Ludwig Joseph (d. 1850); 1849, death of Friedrich's father; 1850, the remaining family move to Naumburg; 1852-64, Friedrich attends school, finishing his ^Abitur* at the famous Schulpforta, where he received a classical education; 1864-5, studies theology and philosophy at the University of Bonn; 1865, transfers to the University of Leipzig, where he studies classics; 1867-8, military service in a cavalry company - cut short by chest injuries sustained from falling off his horse; 1869, appointed associate professor (Extraordinarius) of classical philology at the University of Basel, even though he had no doctor's degree (Leipzig thereupon awarded him one without requiring a dissertation); 1870, promoted to full professor (Ordinarius) at Basel; 1870-1, serves as voluntary medical orderly in Franco-Prussian War; 1872, publishes The Birth of Tragedy and gives five public lectures at Basel 'On the Future of Our Educational Institutions'; 1873-4, publishes first three (of four) Untimely Meditations', during this time establishes friendships with Basel colleagues Jakob Burckhardt (1818-97) and Franz Overbeck (1837-1905). 3 Werke, 'Historisch-kritische Gesamtausgabe', VOL. II: jfugendschriften, 1861-1864 (Munich, 1934), pp. 54-62. 4 Ibid., p. 55. 5 Ibid., pp. 60-1. 6 On this point, see Bryan Magee, The Philosophy of Schopenhauer (Oxford, 1983), p. 268f; cf. pp. 264-76. 7 A similar link is forged between Christianity and antiquity in the only slightly later Human, All-too-Human: 'The Christian religion is most surely an antiquity hurled forward from the remote past, and that it is believed at all . . . is perhaps the most ancient piece of this legacy' (1, § 113). 8 The following additional events from the second period of Nietzsche's intellectual development should be noted: autumn 1875, prolonged illness, during which time he reads Ree's Psychologische Betrachtungen; 1876, 'Richard Wagner in Bayreuth' appears as fourth Untimely Meditation; 1876-7, sick leave from the University of Basel, which is spent mainly in Sorrento; 1878, publishes volume one of Human, All-too-Human; 1878-9, health deteriorates to the extent that Nietzsche receives medical pension from the University of Basel in June 1879; 1880, publishes 'The Wanderer and His Shadow', the final section of Human, All-too-Human; 1881, publishes The Dawn and visits Sils Maria for first time, where he 'discovers' the doctrine of eternal recurrence and 'meets' his alterego, Zarathustra. 9 Nietzsche: Philosopher, Psychologist, Antichrist (3rd edn, New York, 1968), p. 72. 10 Nietzsche, who occasionally referred to himself as a 'Reelist' in other respects, was surprisingly reluctant to acknowledge Ree's impact on Human, All-too-Human. In response to Erwin Rohde's having remarked on Ree's evident influence on that volume,
65
CARL HEINZ RATSCHOW
11
12
13
14
15
Nietzsche reacted violently. He insisted that Ree had not had the slightest impact on the ideas developed there: 'these were already worked out and in large part on paper before I even met him' (June 1878, letter to Rohde). This third and most productive stage of Nietzsche's development will be discussed in two parts. In this section, we will concentrate mainly on Thus Spoke Zarathustra', in the next, on Beyond Good and Evil. The following biographical information is pertinent to material discussed in the present section: 1881, Daybreak appears; winter 1881-2, work on The Gay Science, which appears in August 1882; April to November 1882, affair with Louise von Salome, the unhappy conclusion of which left him bitter, with a sense of having been betrayed and even more aware of his solitude; winter 1882-3, almost continuous work on Thus Spoke Zarathustra, part one of which was written in January and appeared later that spring; September 1883, part II of Zarathustra appears, followed by part III in 1884; October 1883, vows never to live in Germany again - spends time mainly in Nice and Venice or in Sils Maria. Parts one to three form a unity of vision and inspiration; in them the doctrine of eternal recurrence is gradually unfolded. (See KGW, vn/i, 153.) With the completion of part three, however, Nietzsche's inspiration dries up. The fourth and final part was slow and tiresome work, and has quite a different character from the rest. The most extreme view on the disunity of Zarathustra is that expressed by Arthur Danto, who adjudges the volume - including its first three parts - to be rambling and disjointed, capable of being entered at any point. Nietzsche as Philosopher (New York, 1968), pp. 1920. John Clayton argues for the book's unity in 'Zarathustra and the Stages on Life's Way', Nietzsche-Studien, xiv (1985), 179-200. The most important events relating to material covered in the next section can be briefly enumerated: 1885, the final part of Thus Spoke Zarathustra is published privately in an edition of forty copies, which were distributed mainly to friends; summer 1885, letters show signs of increased anxiety and continued health problems; 1886, publishes Beyond Good and Evil at his own expense, and buys back the copyright on his previous books; winter 1886-7, while living at Nice, prepares new editions of his earlier books; 1887, publishes Genealogy of Morals; 1887-8, corresponds with the Danish critic Georg Brandes, an early admirer and interpreter of Nietzsche's works; 1888, health deteriorates steadily, his letters become more desperate and his behaviour increasingly bizarre; September 1888, The Case of Wagner appears and manuscripts for Twilight ofthe Idols and The Anti-Christ are completed; 3 January 1889, overcome with compassion for a carthorse which was being beaten in a square in Turin, Nietzsche embraces the horse and, sobbing, collapses on the street; Overbeck travels from Basel to collect him and to arrange for his care; Nietzsche's mother and then his sister care for him in Naumburg and, finally, Weimar, where he died on 25 August 1900. The term Versucher can mean 'attempted or 'experimenter', but it can also mean 'tempter' or 'seducer', and is in fact a common term for the Devil. Nietzsche is likely to have been exploiting this ambiguity when he referred to the new breed of philosopher as Versucher.
Bibliographical essay The first one having been begun by his sister even before his death, several 'complete' editions of Nietzsche's writings have been proffered. Some are more complete than others, and this in two senses. Not everything was available to all editors, so that lacunae especially within the Nachlass limit the value of some editions. And one 'complete' edition was never completed. The ambitious but ill-fated Historisch-Kritische Gesamtausgabe der Werke und Briefe ceased
production in 1942, after only five volumes of works (to 1869) and four volumes of correspondence (to 1877) had appeared. Until recently, scholars have had to choose between
66
Friedrich Nietzsche either the nineteen-volume Gesamtausgabe im Grossoktav (Leipzig, Naumann/Kroner, 18941913) or the more widely-cited but less complete Musarion edition of Gesammelte Werke which appeared in twenty-three volumes between 1920 and 1929. It would seem almost certain, however, that the only recently completed Kritische Gesamtausgabe (Berlin, de Gruyter, i967ff) will establish itself as the standard edition of Nietzsche's writings. At the time of writing, the new critical edition of Nietzsche's correspondence, also published by de Gruyter (i975ff), is not yet complete. For more than a generation students and other interested readers have used the still-available three-volume selected Werke edited by Karl Schlechta (Munich, Carl Hanser, 1954-6), an edition which was made even more useful by the appearance in 1965 of a separate index volume. The hegemony of the Schlechta edition will have been challenged, if not altogether broken, however, by the recent publication of a paperback edition of Nietzsche's writings which, although somewhat differently arranged, is based on and contains everything from the Kritische Gesamtausgabe. This modestly priced fifteen-volume set was published jointly by de Gruyter and the Deutscher Taschenbuch Verlag under the titled Sdmtliche Werke: Kritische Studienausgabe (Berlin, 1980). Volume fourteen of this set features an invaluable chronicle of the main events in Nietzsche's life (pp. 7-210), together with extensive critical and textual notes; volume fifteen contains an impressively complete index to the first thirteen volumes. Especially in recent years, Nietzsche's writings have been extensively translated into English. The older, eighteen-volume Complete Works of Nietzsche (New York, Macmillan, 1909-11) is best avoided altogether. Although edited by Oscar Levy, none of the volumes was actually translated by him. Mistakes in the translation are all too common and the style adopted is embarrassingly archaic. It was the Levy edition of Thus Spake Zarathustra which prompted Crane Brinton's only partially intemperate complaint that it reads like 'the King James Version gone wrong'. By contrast, Marianne Cowan's translations of Thus Spoke Zarathustra and of Beyond Good and Evil can be commended. However, the generally most readable and consistently most faithful translations of Nietzsche into English are those which have been undertaken, both singly and jointly, by R. J. Hollingdale and the late Walter Kaufmann. Their joint efforts produced On the Genealogy of Morals (New York, Vintage, 1969) and The Will to Power (New York, Vintage, 1968); Kaufmann translated Thus Spoke Zarathustra (New York, Viking, 1966; U.S. Penguin, 1978), Beyond Good and Evil (New York, Vintage, 1966), The Birth of Tragedy and The Case of Wagner (New York, Vintage, 1967), The Gay Science (New York, Vintage, 1974); Hollingdale has published separate translations of Thus Spoke Zarathustra (Harmondsworth, Penguin, 1961; 2nd edn, 1969), Beyond Good and Evil (Harmondsworth, Penguin, 1973), Twilight of the Idols and The Anti-
Christ (Harmondsworth, Penguin, 1968), Daybreak (Cambridge University Press, 1982) and Untimely Meditations (Cambridge University Press, 1983). Hollingdale and Kaufmann have also each produced one-volume collections of extracts from Nietzsche's writings. To be shunned by any who would understand Nietzsche aright is Hollingdale's A Nietzsche Reader (Harmondsworth, Penguin, 1977). One can only express astonishment that anyone of his stature would agree to be associated with a volume in which almost random excerpts from Nietzsche's writings are arranged topically with so little regard for their original context or for their place in the development of Nietzsche's thought. By way of contrast, both of Kaufmann's one-volume collections can be wholeheartedly recommended. The reader whose primary interest is religious thought would be advised to begin with The Portable Nietzsche (New York, Viking, 1954; Harmondsworth, Penguin, 1976), which contains complete Thus Spoke Zarathustra, Twilight of the Idols, The Anti-Christ and Nietzsche contra Wagner,
together with carefully selected letters and extracts from other writings, including The Gay Science. This collection is supplemented by a second volume edited by Kaufmann and published as Basic Writings ofNietzsche (New York, Random House, 1966). The later volume included complete translations of The Birth of Tragedy, Beyond Good and Evil, The Genealogy of Morals, The Case of Wagner and Ecce Homo.
67
CARL HEINZ RATSCHOW Despite its flaws, Curt Paul Janz's recently completed three-volume Friedrich Nietzsche (Munich, Carl Hanser, 1978-9) is the most persuasive biography available. Nietzsche is on this front much less well served in English. There are biographies, of course. But they are generally an undistinguished lot. Perhaps the least inadequate recent biography in English is Ronald Hayman, Nietzsche: A Critical Life (London, Weidenfeld, 1980). There is little to choose between the briefer biographical studies, but R. J. Hollingdale's Nietzsche (London, Routledge & Kegan Paul, 1973) and the English translation of Ivo Frenzel's Friedrich Nietzsche: An Illustrated Biography (Indianapolis, Bobbs-Merrill, 1967) can be mentioned. With a few notable exceptions, almost all the secondary literature in English is of the introductory survey variety. The main exceptions are Joan Stambough's fine study of Nietzsche's Thought of Eternal Return (Johns Hopkins University Press, 1972), Werner J. Dannhauser's careful appraisal of Nietzsche's View of Socrates (Cornell University Press, 1974), and Bernd Magnus's interesting account of Nietzsche's Existential Imperative (Indiana University Press, 1978). For a competent brief introduction to Nietzsche, one could do worse than begin with J. P. Stern's A Study of Nietzsche (Cambridge University Press, 1979). One can safely ignore Frederick Copleston's period piece, Friedrich Nietzsche: Philosopher ofCulture, which was first published in 1942 and was reissued without revision in 1975. Albeit more responsibly than some, Copleston's book reflects the perspective on Nietzsche which was not uncommon within the English-speaking world during the Second World War. More than anyone else, the Jewish scholar Walter Kaufmann helped to rehabilitate Nietzsche in the post-war years. Having appeared initially in 1950, his Nietzsche: Philosopher, Psychologist, Antichrist (4th edn, New York, Vintage, 1975) did much to shatter the popular image of Nietzsche which during the war years had been projected (for different reasons, of course) by the propagandists on both sides. For instance, he demonstrated clearly that Nietzsche himself was neither an anti-semitic racialist nor a German nationalist (preferring instead to be called a 'European'). Kaufmann also succeeded in placing Nietzsche more centrally in the mainstream of European thought. In this last regard, he was perhaps too successful. Kaufmann's Nietzsche is almost too acceptable, too domesticated. When one feels Nietzsche himself would have been inclined to roar like a lion, Kaufmann's Nietzsche is content to purr like a house-cat. The more radical, the more dangerous dimensions of Nietzsche's thought are skilfully tamed by Kaufmann. But Nietzsche is not so easily tamed. There is much in his thought which is wild and undisciplined. Brinton was perhaps more profoundly right than he had realised when he complained that Nietzsche was not properly house-broken. For all its scholarly limitations, Arthur Danto's Nietzsche as Philosopher (New York, Macmillan, 1965) has at least the merit of giving greater stress to the more radical consequences of certain aspects of Nietzschean thought, not least the doctrine of 'perspectivism'. It is perhaps peculiarly apt for a writer who advocated 'perspectivism' himself to have been among its victims. Nietzsche has been credited or blamed with having anticipated almost every philosophical and literary movement in the twentieth-century, including the currently fashionable 'deconstructionism'. Regarding this latest attempt posthumously to decorate Nietzsche with the colours of yet another order, see Jacques Derrida, Eperons: Les styles de Nietzsche (Paris, Flammarion, 1978), and also Mark Taylor, Deconstructing Theology (Chico, Calif., Scholars Press, 1982). Regarding numerous earlier attempts to credit or discredit Nietzsche with every imaginable 'ism', see Alfredo Guzzoni (ed.), go Jfahre philosophische Nietzsche-Rezeption (Konigstein/Taunus, Meisenheim, 1979), Wolfgang Miiller-Lauter and Volker Gerhardt (eds.), Aufnahme und Auseinandersetzung: Friedrich
Nietzsche im 20. jfahrhundert (Berlin, de Gruyter, 1982). For Nietzsche's early and mainly literary influence in Britain and North America, see Patrick Bridgewater, Nietzsche in Anglosaxony (Leicester University Press, 1972), and David S. Thatcher, Nietzsche in England (Toronto University Press, 1970). The last-mentioned volumes remind us that Nietzsche's intellectual legacy has been both literary and philosophical. With this in mind, two important collections of critical essays - the
68
Friedrich Nietzsche one more literary and the other more philosophical - can be commended to interested students: Malcolm Pasley (ed.), Nietzsche: Imagery and Thought (London, Methuen, 1978), and Robert C. Solomon (ed.), Nietzsche: A Collection of Critical Essays (New York, Anchor, 1973; Notre Dame University Press, 1980). Despite their different accents, these two fine collections overlap and complement each other nicely. The single most important resource for keeping abreast of new directions and developments in the interpretation and critique of all aspects of Nietzsche's thought is without doubt Nietzsche-Studien, which is published annually by de Gruyter. Although most of its contributions appear in German, each issue normally contains several articles in English. Among the contributions to de Gruyter's companion series of 'Monographien und Texte zur Nietzsche-Forschung' which are pertinent to his philosophical and religious thought can be mentioned Ruediger Herrmann Grimm, Nietzsche's Theory of Knowledge (Berlin, 1977), and Freny Mistry, Nietzsche and Buddhism (Berlin, 1981). Finally, attention should be drawn to the International Nietzsche Bibliography, edited by H. W. Reichert and Karl Schlechta (2nd edn, University of North Carolina Press, 1969). Although selective and now quite dated, it contains several thousand entries.
3
Jewish Thought
NATHAN ROTENSTREICH
Background I In this chapter we shall attempt to present a typological analysis of the philosophical interpretations of Judaism which arose over the course of the nineteenth century. We do not refer here to the interpretation of Judaism given in the great non-Jewish philosophical systems of this period, as is indeed the case in the systems of Kant and Hegel, or of Schopenhauer. Instead, we confine ourselves to the philosophical interpretations conceived by philosophers of Judaism who, as Jews, tried in their own way to justify Judaism or to present it as a viable religious and systematic structure vis-avis other religions and within the context of the modern world. From the latter point of view, systematic philosophical interpretations of Judaism, prompted by and conceived within the modern context are to be viewed not only within the framework of the history of philosophical systems but also, in part, under the aspect of what is called the history of ideas or intellectual history - in German Geistesgeschichte.
We emphasize the last point because it will become clear that problems inherent in the modern situation have their impact on the formulation of systems of Jewish philosophy in two major directions: there were modern systems whose consequences, in terms of both tools of interpretation and thematic shifts, had a major influence on the interpretation of Judaism. We refer here again, of course, to the impact of Kant and Hegel upon the formulation of philosophical views with their respective immanent emphases: the emphasis on morality in Kant and the emphasis on an ultimate synthesis in Hegel. Modern Jewish thought absorbed these influences and can be approached and classified according to the point of view reflected in these major philosophical undertakings.
NATHAN ROTENSTREICH
There is also a second aspect under which the broader intellectual component comes to the fore: this is the overall aspect of modernity conceived as future-oriented culture, which any tradition or interpretation of tradition is bound to face, since tradition is, by definition, a past-oriented concept and attitude. In addition, modernity opened the gates - to what exact degree is a subject of debate - for the participation of the Jews in the life of the larger surrounding culture as well as in the political and economic life of their host countries. Hence a modern philosophical interpretation of Judaism faces, of necessity, the involvement of the Jews in the culture of their contemporary world. Yet at the same time it is concerned to interpret the particular teachings of Judaism in such a way as to defend its continued value and viability in these significantly altered circumstances. Thus, whatever the particular formulation it is clear that the historical scene has its impact on the interpretation(s) offered.
Our emphasis in this study is the influence of broad modern intellectual contexts upon philosophical interpretation. However, it is important first to discuss the essential structure of a philosophic analysis of Judaism, disregarding for the moment the peculiarities of any specific historical period. A comparison with the trends of the medieval philosophy of Judaism is instructive, and can serve as a legitimate point of departure for the analysis which follows. Several features of the medieval philosophic enterprise have relevance structurally, as well as because, in retrospect, we can see their transformations in the various modern reformulations. We mentionfirstthe problem of revelation within the medieval systems, and the attempts made in those systems - whether in Judaism, Christianity or Islam - to put forward an objective justification for the fact of revelation - revelation being an event, a message, encompassed within the particular set of religious beliefs. In addition, revelation is a heteronomous event by definition - it is divine, it is given by God. Hence the continuous attempt of philosophies grounded in a rational approach to come to grips with something that is beyond reason, because it is a non-rational event, yet which still must be open to rational justification. At this point the questions of occurrence and of the content implied in the occurrence - e.g., the moral or ethical content - become the most prominent issues for medieval thinkers. There are two additional aspects of the medieval problem: on the one hand it uses the structure and tools provided by Greek philosophy, and at the same time it faces, from the Jewish point of view, two parallel or competing monotheistic religions 72
Jewish Thought Christianity and Islam - involved in the same perplexity as Judaism, and applying to themselves the same philosophical tools which Jewish philosophers applied to Judaism. Then again, as has been rightly observed by Julius Guttmann,1 medieval philosophy lacked both the concept of a universal religious truth, and the concept of a religious consciousness as such. These two parallel concepts emerged in the framework of modern philosophy, and have had a considerable impact on the course of modern Jewish thought.
Jewish philosophy appears as the philosophical interpretation of Jewish sources, 'sources' being understood to include both literary documents and modes of actual life. Philosophy makes explicit that which is only implicit in literary documents, or presupposed as an underlying principle of behaviour. A philosophical explication of the biblical creation narrative would, for example, refer to questions such as the nature of creation, i.e., whether creation took place ex nihilo, or was only a process of giving form to amorphous matter, or again what is the causal relationship between the creator and the created world. The biblical narrative contains all these aspects but only the philosophical discourse makes them explicit. One can even go a step further by saying that the narrative does not contain them at all, but that the philosophical explication states presuppositions in the framework of which the narrative is meaningful. In both cases the philosophical exploration, applied to literary sources, introduces concepts which do not appear in the narrative, because of the nature of the narrative and also because these concepts belong to a different sphere of discourse. They are what we call theoretical or ontological discourses. The interaction between the text and the explication is by no means limited to the Genesis story. One can ask what we would call anthropological questions, for instance, about the fundamental view of man as addressed in the biblical presentation, that is, man as the recipient of divine revelation or commandments. What is the relationship between man as a thinking being and man as the recipient of a divine commandment? Or what is the relationship betweenfinitudeand reception on the one hand, and infinity and revelation on the other? It is evident that the Bible does not raise these questions, though the Bible may take advantage of certain metaphors when referring to man: for instance, that man is dust and ashes; or it may formulate the question: where were you when I established the earth? It could be argued that some philosophical conceptions are indeed implied in these metaphors or statements. Hence a philosophical interpretation can be 73
NATHAN ROTENSTREICH
conceived as reading the text by applying a certain code which is not present in the text, but is still congenial to it. Or, alternatively, it might be argued that the code is different and extraneous to the text in question. Beyond texts, philosophy also serves to explicate human behaviour, spelling out the principles guiding the mode of existence and perhaps, on a higher plane, the basic rules governing all those principles. In the Jewish context one could point, for example, to Yir'at Shamayim (Fear of Heaven) as an underlying principle of behaviour. This is not limited to ceremonies, prayers, hymns, but informs every level of human existence. Auxiliary tools or sacraments are thus not the only manifestation of man's attitude towards God. Having pointed to these examples, we can now amplify the function of the philosophical interpretation qua explication. This function, to a very large extent, is of the nature of a commentary, a commentary either directed towards texts or meant to be of a holistic character, bringing into prominence ideas illustrated by texts or modes of life but not essentially centering around them. Sometimes it is presupposed that the interpreter may interpret the text even when the author of the text lacks awareness as to its hidden philosophical meaning. Again one of the examples of such an idea, which refers to texts but deliberately gives them a broader interpretation than can be directly warranted by the texts, is the notion of man as having been created in the image of God. This doctrine, though formulated in the Bible, became a fundamental notion in various religious and philosophical writings, whether or not they are actually referred to the Bible. IV We have made these preliminary comments on the profile of Jewish thought and its involvement in nineteenth- and twentieth-century currents in order to lay down the outline of our more detailed examination of certain trends of Jewish philosophical reflection and their most prominent presentation. We shall select several themes, e.g., monotheism, and look into their formulations, and at individual philosophers who reflect on these themes within the structures of their own individual systems. Hence we shall not present a resume of one system or another, but rather place the individual philosopher in a thematic context and thus refer to an individual philosopher more than once. Furthermore, in addition to the topics or problems which preoccupied medieval Jewish philosophers, we shall have to identify and explore certain topics emerging in the modern context. Here one thinks of such issues as the attitude towards religions beyond Judaism, mainly Christianity, but also to some extent Islam, and to one of the most basic themes of modernity, namely 74
Jewish Thought
history. Indeed it is precisely because of this emphasis on history, that space has to be provided for consideration of a new dimension in Jewish thought, that concerned with the socio-historical existence of the Jewish people. One more observation is appropriate at this juncture: the systems of modern Jewish philosophies belong mainly to the German-speaking orbit. Historically American Jewry in the nineteenth century was unable, because of external circumstances, to give birth to systematic Jewish thinking. Alternatively, German philosophers were very much concerned with the problem of religion, including Judaism, on which they commented rather unfavourably. By the same token these philosophers set an example for Jewish philosophers in the German environment of what a philosophical interpretation of a religion, including Judaism, ought to be like. There are certain exceptions to this dominant model in the French-speaking and Italian-speaking communities, but these exceptions confirm rather than disprove the rule. Lastly, to speak of our chronological parameters, the period with which we are concerned is, broadly speaking, the nineteenth century. To be sure, we go beyond that period chronologically, since time and again we refer to Hermann Cohen who died in 1918 and whose major work interpreting Judaism appeared posthumously. Yet it is obvious that Cohen, from the point of view of the sources of his thinking and its general thrust, belongs to the nineteenth century. That is to say, he placed ethics at the centre of his interpretation of Judaism and at the same time preceded the existentialist crisis or ethos which emerged in the twenties of the current century. Hence, though we step beyond the nineteenth century while dealing with Hermann Cohen - and mentioning Franz Rosenzweig - thematically, we remain within the limits of that time-frame. It should also be noted that in regard to the interpretation of Judaism the nineteenth century does not only connote a certain period in time. A major change or crisis in the self-perception of the Jews occurred in that century. That crisis is related to the Jewish aspiration to strike roots in the surrounding cultures, societies and political structures - that aspiration which goes by the name of emancipation. The Jews and Jewish philosophers absorbed deliberately and programmatically trends of thought prevailing in the wider culture and wrote their major works in the languages of that cultural milieu. To be sure, this was the case also in the Middle Ages, where for instance Arabic served as a kind of philosophical lingua franca for the major philosophers of Judaism. But this phenomenon is still more prominent in the nineteenth century. With the exception of Krochmal, who wrote his major philosophical work in Hebrew, all Jewish philosophers 75
NATHAN ROTENSTREICH
wrote in German, French or Italian. Thus their ideas, though addressed to a Jewish audience, are by the same token part and parcel of the climate of opinion of the world in which they lived. In this sense our concern is with the period in which we find a conjunction of the chronological and thematic component; as such this is indeed a pivotal period in the history of Jewish thought.
Monotheism I Let us put into relief some of the issues already dealt with. One of the characteristic features of every philosophical interpretation of a traditional religion is - as we have seen - the articulation of the essence of that religion in terms of its characteristic features, which can be rendered through concepts and ideas. Thus in the case of Judaism the emphasis placed on monotheism becomes prominent from the philosophical vantage point. With this in mind, let us consider the diverse presentations of the position of God and the nature of monotheism in modern Jewish thought.2 Let us begin our analysis with a review of a philosophical trend initiated by the German Jewish philosopher Solomon Formstecher (1808-89).3 Formstecher, following Hegel, applies the concept of spirit to the essence of God and his position vis-a-vis the world. However, whereas Hegel emphasized this concept in connection with Christianity which he saw as the quintessential religion of spirit, Formstecher sought to apply this understanding to Judaism. God is conceived by Formstecher as a spiritual entity without whom there would be no world, but who would still exist in himself if there were no creation. That is to say, God's position is independent vis-avis the world. Conversely, the created order is understood as not only referring to one God but as also referring to a being whose essence is fundamentally different from any other being, including the totality of the cosmos. Hence though God is the creator, and the world depends for its existence on Him, His position does not depend upon his manifestation in creation. Monotheism is therefore the theistic religion par excellence. In addition - and this is already implied in the previous characterization of God - God is free. His decisions are voluntary and, therefore, He is free to create or to refrain from creating. From this philosophical perspective the major theological antithesis that one must confront is that between paganism and Judaism.4 It is a characteristic quality of paganism to deify nature, a consequence of the presupposition that God dwells within nature and not above it. Paganism 76
Jewish Thought finds its philosophical expression in pantheism,5 since pantheism, which identifies God with the world, is essentially a philosophical rendering of paganism. By comparison, Judaism as the religion of spirit appears to be the implicit and explicit denial of paganism, since the concept of spirit implies the freedom of God, His consciousness as a creator, and ultimately His omnipotence and sovereignty vis-a-vis the world. Then again, Judaism understood as the religion of spirit also has consequences for its adherents in that the fundamental object of human knowledge is not nature but spirit and its manifestations: logic on the one hand and ethics on the other.6 The ethical character of Judaism especially is central to Formstecher and his heirs because morality is grounded in spirit. That is to say Judaism is an ethical religion, because it is a religion of spirit. To be sure, this is not the only interpretation of Judaism in modern Jewish thought which emphasizes the essentially ethical character of Judaism, and we shall examine, in due course, a different, i.e., neo-Kantian, approach to the ethical component of Judaism. But in terms of the religion of spirit we have to recognize the line leading from spirit to ethics, and thence to the knowing subject. At the same time we also have to recognize that this conception ofJudaism as the religion of spirit, in which spirit underlies ethics leads to an emphasis on self-consciousness and freedom of decision7 rather than to an emphasis on thematic commandments as the central components of ethics. That is to say, it leads precisely to the two ingredients of spirituality which are the distinguishing features of spirit as over against nature.
The second significant thinker who interprets monotheism as the religion of spirit is Samuel Hirsch (1815-89).8 According to Hirsch there is a primary identity between spirit and freedom.9 Spirit is decision, and thus it is never given to us completely in itsfinishedform. Afinishedstructure is to be found only in nature; but within the realm of spirit the emphasis is on promise and on an assurance of things to come. Spirit requires continuous training and preparation. When spirit is applied to God qua pure spirit, we move to a qualitatively different sphere. God is spiritually enclosed in Himself and in His dealings with humankind the emphasis is on choice and decision. Man's spiritual nature is to be viewed as a developing essence or, put differently, it is man's duty to free himself from nature and to become spirit. God as an ideal is not addressed to man transcending himself in order to become identical with God, but rather points towards man's goal of becoming a spiritual entity within the boundaries of the human. Hence God's spirituality intends to enhance and encourage man's striving for spirituality 77
NATHAN ROTENSTREICH
while human activity and aspiration are to be seen as a form of imitation of the divine essence.10 At this juncture the ethical character of human existence manifests itself as grounded in the spiritual nature of God. Again, human spirituality is possible because God is the Lord of Nature. Thus God, serving as a model or archetype of human conduct, also inspires and inclines man in the direction of making his decision for the telos of spirit. There is, to be sure, within the human situation the possibility of sin but the imperative of human spirituality is to lead man in the direction of confining sin to a mere possibility. Here again spirit or spirituality within the human sphere does not connote an actual identity between man and spirit, but a potential identification made possible by the spiritual character of monotheism in terms of the essence of God qua spirit, an essence which represents man's Urbild as well. Summing up this approach to monotheism, which employs the concept of spirit without necessarily adopting the major interpretations of that concept as presented for instance by Schelling or Hegel, it can be said that spirit is taken in the first place as creativity or spontaneity. In this sense the notion of spirit is applied to God. And it is this notion that makes it initially possible, according to the interpretation before us, to apply spirituality to human nature as well - thus establishing the link between spirituality and ethical behaviour. Still, it is imperative to note at this point that ethical behaviour is by and large interpreted by Hirsch in the Kantian sense as presupposing or referring to freedom. Freedom leads not so much to an ethical system of commandments as to an ethical system which emphasizes decisions - and it is evident that the weight placed on spirit and spirituality leads to that consequence as well. We shall now move foreward several decades to consider Hermann Cohen's (1842-1918) interpretation of monotheism. Cohen's contribution to our topic can be described as a radical interpretation of monotheism in the sense that Judaism is monotheism strictly understood.11 The emphasis is placed not only on the unity of God, but also on the uniqueness (die Einzigkeit) of God.12 This characteristic feature of God's uniqueness gives still greater prominence to the distinction between God and world, which we have already seen was important to Formstecher and Hirsch. Cohen does not attempt to explore the origins of monotheism - on the contrary, he says, the origins can be explained neither historically nor systematically. This is not only a methodological comment but also another aspect of the fact that monotheism is understood as a basic approach to the universe and to reality, and thus, in a sense, carries in itself its own origin and therefore also its own 78
Jewish Thought explanation. This unique character of monotheism and part passu its conception of God, are related, as already noted, to the distinction between unity and uniqueness: unity connotes only the opposite of plurality, while uniqueness connotes the separation from the world and its structure. Therefore uniqueness can only be understood as the logical and ontological presupposition for the creation of the world and for the revelation of God in it. As a consequence, it is not enough to juxtapose the idea of God in the Judaic monotheistic interpretation to the pagan assertion of a plurality of gods. Rather it is also necessary to juxtapose it to pantheism which claims an identity between nature and God. It should also be noted here, while it will be discussed in detail later, that Cohen's exception to Christianity is grounded in its implicitly pantheistic tenor which, Cohen argues, leads to the blurring of the lines of demarcation between man and world on the one hand and God on the other.13 One ethical consequence which Cohen draws from his emphasis on the uniqueness of God is the love of God. It can be said that this love is an attitude of closeness and simultaneously an attitude of distance.14 To put it differently, without literally following Cohen's own terminology and description, love is not identical with extasis. It remains within the boundaries of the reciprocal correlation between man and God. Therefore, the uniqueness of God, both as a loving being and as a loved one, is implied in the attitude of love as a characteristic religious attitude, which, by the same token, is an ethical attitude. In his description of the unique character of God, Cohen adopts some of the traditional concepts, including those developed and elaborated in medieval philosophy. Thus, for instance, he describes the notion of the unity of God as a negative notion or expression, in order to bring into relief the difference between monotheism and polytheism. The notion of the unity of God is nothing but a means of establishing the unity of the world, whereas the notion of uniqueness has a positive connotation, i.e., it is a religious rendering of the philosophical concept that God is the only true being. Furthermore, the contraposition between the unique God and the gods of paganism is not confined to the quantitative or numerical aspect but takes on additional meaning in the context of the difference between the invisible idea on the one hand and the to-be-perceived image on the other. There can be no image of God, once God is understood as an Urbild (archetype). The images of God can only be images of objects of nature, and never of God himself.15 Here again Cohen takes advantage of traditional concepts or terminological tools, when he says that the position of God as an archetype or Urbild has its manifestation in his attributes of deeds (Attribute der 79
NATHAN ROTENSTREICH
Handlung). That is to say, God's qualities are actually exemplary patterns of man's actions: His qualities are essentially norms. God, who is separated from the world because of His uniqueness, is revealed not in His essence but only in His workings (Wirkungen). It is only a further step in the same direction when holiness, which primarily connotes separateness, takes on an ethical meaning and when the interpretation of holiness as morality is asserted. Here again the quality of God is an exemplary pattern for man in the sense of 'thou shalt be holy because I am holy'; that is to say, in philosophical terms, for human beings holiness is a task, whereas for God it is His very essence.16 We have already noted to what extent the three systems of understanding Judaism as monotheism, which we have presented in resume, presuppose the ethical component in the ontology of monotheism. But here again, as we shall now see, the ethics of Judaism can be differently interpreted; moreover, and this is one of the pivotal points in the development of modern Jewish thought, there have been attempts in the modern era to interpret the ethics of Judaism without grounding them in an ontological system. However, before analysing this issue in more detail we have to consider one additional analysis of Jewish monotheism, namely, that account which seeks to interpret Judaism in terms of the modern notion of the Absolute. The application of the concept of the Absolute to religious discourse in general and to the description of God as conceived in Judaism in particular is a clear echo of philosophical systems that arose in modern thought, especially in post-Hegelian philosophy. It is well known that the concept of Absolute was coined by Cusanus, and it was intended to connote, among other qualities, the identity or unity of being and thinking. A unity of that sort was understood as self-enclosed, and thus unconditioned and was eventually interpreted as totality in nineteenth-century philosophy, since only totality could be seen as comprehensive and thus unconditioned. We find that Nachman Krochmal (i 785-1840) consciously applies the concept of Absolute to God, as he understood and interpreted it in Judaism, by describing God as the absolute spiritual entity or being, or in a literal translation of the Hebrew term employed by him: 'the absolute spiritual'.17 The emphasis is therefore on comprehensiveness rather than on creativity or freedom, as in the other systems already reviewed. Therefore one can say that an absolute being is indeed one being but not a separated or singular being - the way, for example, Hermann Cohen had described God in Judaism. We disregard here of course the chronological sequence, in order to emphasize that the interpretation of God as 'the absolute spiritual' implies, perhaps even explicitly denotes, the absence of any personal quality or characteristic feature in the divine being. Put in categorial terms, one could 80
Jewish Thought
say that the absolute spiritual, qua totality, cannot be seen as a personal God with all the consequences of that implicit or explicit denial of personality. As a consequence of this understanding of God Krochmal may be said to be perhaps the most radical thinker in modern Jewish thought in as much as he, by the logic of his philosophizing, is led to a pantheistic interpretation of God, whereas both polemically and positively, many a Jewish philosopher saw the monotheistic interpretation of God as an explicit negation of paganism and an implicit confrontation with pantheism. There are two major considerations underlying Krochmal's thrust toward totality. Thefirstrelates to what can be described as the logic of monotheism, namely, that since there is only one God, the guarantee or warranty for his unity is the identification of God with the totality of the universe. This reasoning is to a large extent parallel to Spinoza's reasoning vis-a-vis the concept of substance: if substance as a substrate is the independent component of reality, the way to safeguard its position is to construe substance as the totality of the universe. The same idea can be expressed within the context of the previously discussed modern interpretations of Judaism in general and of monotheism in particular. The trend toward interpreting God as spirit or as a unique entity remains within certain frames of reference having different correlations: God versus man, God versus nature, etc. The emphasis is placed on the separateness of God, but not on his essence as a being fundamentally different from any other being, since such a being cannot be conceived within a context of correlations. Only totality can be the proper categorial rendering of the position and the essence of such a being. At this point a second consideration enters the discussion, and this is obviously due to the absorption, whether direct or indirect, of certain Hegelian motifs into the fabric of modern Jewish thought. Spirit or the spiritual being are equivalents of the German term Geist. But Geist in the Hegelian context is not only a creative entity, but also Volksgeist. This at least was Krochmal's understanding. In his totalistic thrust he considers the absolute spiritual entity as the Volksgeist of the Jewish people and its involvement in the historical process. His assumption is that the Jewish people is not only related to an absolute God qua totality, but that totality is the wellspring of Jewish creativity as manifest in history and time. Thus there is no separation of Jewish history from the absolute being. The Jewish people is imbued with God and, conversely, God is immersed in Jewish history. His presence becomes manifest in the fact that Jewish historical creativity is inexhaustible, unlike the creativity of all other peoples which reaches its historical end within the historical process. Jewish history is characterized by a cyclical pattern: after a decline of creativity a resurgence 81
NATHAN ROTENSTREICH
comes about. In this sense we are confronted here by a paradoxical conclusion, namely, that God as an absolute being or a total entity is not extramundane, nor is He extra- or trans-historical. He is both God and Volksgeist, and thus preserves the continuing presence of the Jews in history. Hence both the universal validity of Judaism as well as the continuing presence of the Jews in history is defended.18 With this systematic interpretation we reach one of the paradoxical summits of modern Jewish thought where God, as monotheistically conceived, is at the same time rendered through a pantheistic understanding, though perhaps the appropriate formula for describing this pantheism would not be deus sive natura but deus sive historia. We have seen that in the previous interpretations of monotheism there is a very close relationship between the position and conception of God and morality - a relationship due to the affinity between spirit, spontaneity and freedom. That relationship is to some extent replaced in KrochmaPs interpretation of monotheism by the shift to history. The centrality of ethics i
One of the characteristic features of the modern interpretation of religion is the emphasis placed on ethical attitudes or imperatives within the structure of religious consciousness and behaviour. To be sure, the modern interpretation of religion is not exclusively ethical as witnessed to by the fact that the philosophy of religion in the nineteenth and twentieth centuries stresses at the same time a phenomenology of religious consciousness, i.e., absolute dependence in Schleiermacher's sense, the awareness of the numinous in Otto's sense, and the like. Yet it is fair to say that modern philosophers have favoured attempts that emphasize the centrality of ethics or morality within historical religions justifying this perspective on the grounds that the great historical religions were indeed imbued with ethical commandments and attitudes. Yet it is precisely at this point of affinity between the historical religions and their modern philosophical interpretations that we encounter a difficulty which stems from the meaning and systematic position of ethics in modern philosophy. A case in point is obviously Kant's position on the issue and his statement that religion is, subjectively regarded, the recognition of all duties as divine commands. Yet immediately after stating this - and that statement amounts not to affirming the authority of the commands, but to giving an additional dimension of duties to commands — Kant goes on to note 82
Jewish Thought 'that Religion in which I must know in advance that something is a divine command, in order to recognize that it is my duty, is a religion grounded in revelation. As against this, a religion, in which I must know in the first place that something is my duty before accepting it as a divine command, is a natural religion.' Thus we are placed in a dilemma: do we, by virtue of an ethical interpretation of religion, adhere to revelation as the demanding or commanding authority? Or do we adhere to the intrinsic authority of the commands themselves, which are then interpreted as related to divine commands, with divine commands themselves being treated as a kind of divine approval of that which is prescribed by reason, that which is morally necessary and therefore, in Kant's wording, rational?19 We have mentioned Kant's statement, not only because of his influence on the development of modern religious thought - including his on Jewish thought - but because of the systematic significance of the distinctions contained in his statement. It is clear that the central position granted to ethical codes within religions in general, and within Judaism in particular, poses questions related not to the historical or textual presence of the ethical code in traditional texts, but to the structural meaning of ethics on the one hand and to religion on the other. To be sure, no textual reference to the sources of Judaism can ignore the fact that ethical concepts are central in these texts - as evident even in the very first chapter of the Book of Genesis, where God's approval of His own work is expressed in moral terms: 'and He saw that it was good'. Moreover, the notion of the commandments in the biblical as well as in the post-biblical, i.e., Halakhic, sense, as implying norms and codes of behaviour, places praxis or practice in a central position in traditional Judaism. Yet precisely that centrality poses the question as to .he grounding of practice. Is religious practice self-validating, or is the code of practice eventually to be subsumed under an a-religious or even rationalistic grounding and authority? II
Insofar as modern Jewish thought is understood as originating with the work of Moses Mendelssohn (1729-86), it is worth beginning our review with a consideration of his account of the relation of ethics and Judaism. Mendelssohn's position on ethics on the one hand and on Judaism on the other is both anachronistic and renders the modern Jewish situation perplexing. For Mendelssohn ethical judgments can be perceived by the ordinary intellect; they do not need any proof. In this sense Mendelssohn establishes the rationality of ethical judgments, even, in his view, their geometric exactitude and certainty. In addition, on Mendelssohn's account, the good, as viewed from the ethical perspective, relates to intentions; the 83
NATHAN ROTENSTREICH
good is an attribute of good intentions, which in turn prompt the performance of acts and deeds. Here we find an anticipation of Kant's emphasis on what is called Gesinnung.20 Then again, according to Mendelssohn, God is not a religious but a metaphysical concept. Unlike ethical concepts and judgments, metaphysical concepts and judgments require proofs which can in due course be established by reason. As a consequence of these presuppositions it can be seen that religion or Judaism has been preempted by Mendelssohn from both ends: from the ethical side as well as from the metaphysical one. Thus, Mendelssohn is prompted to suggest what may be termed a third view, namely one within the sphere of practice, in which Judaism is interpreted as a system of legal commandments and not of ethical prescriptions. Further, Judaism as a system of legal prescriptions cannot be identical with those commands which as such are binding, and being binding are understood as divine - that is to say, Judaism can neither be interpreted as a natural religion nor as a rationalist one. It is to be interpreted as a revealed religion, and indeed Judaism as the sum-total of legal commandments is a religion based solely on divine revelation.21 Interestingly enough, here the intervention of the divine being comes back in through the doors of legality; and that intervention has a particularistic character, because only Jews are the recipients of the divine commandments qua legislation, whilst all other ethical imperatives are grounded within the immanent boundaries of recta ratio or bon sens.22 Hence, Mendelssohn's 'solution' is at the same time a problem which poses for subsequent philosophies of Judaism the question: how is it possible to extend the meaning of ethical practice beyond legality and its authority in revelation? We shall now examine two attempts at a solution to this conundrum. We shall come back to Mendelssohn in our subsequent analysis of revelation and tradition. in Strictly speaking, Solomon Formstecher does not present a system of ethics which we could characterize as a system of Judaism, nor does he suggest a full identity between Judaism and a detailed ethical code. The issue which in all likelihood guided Formstecher's analysis - and precisely the reason why we suggest that his is a second type in the spectrum of approaches - is his essential concentration on the establishment of the conditio sine qua non of any ethical system or of any possibility of formulating an ethical code. That is to say, he was intent on emphasizing that the exploration of the premises of the ethical precedes the specific formulation of ethical norms. His fundamental idea, already noted above, is that Judaism is a religion of spirit in contrast to paganism which is a religion of nature and, moreover,
Jewish Thought that Judaism's God is the God who is spirit; therefore, notwithstanding the distance between man and God, there is an affinity between the two. By the same token the ethical ideal grounded in spirit has a religious meaning, because it pertains to the relationship between man and spirit and thus part passu to man and God.23 Incidentally, Christianity, unlike Judaism, is seen by Formstecher as closer to the religions of nature, because Christianity looks at man as basically implicated in natural urges.24 Thus in Christianity there is a continuing need for divine grace or, to characterize it from an ethical perspective, the natural environment in which man is involved is seen to equal original sin. As such the significance of this type of interpretation lies not in the ethical code but in paving the ground for the very possibility of interpreting Judaism as an essentially ethical religion. If Formstecher's thought represents a second kind of ethical interpretation of Judaism, a third type is epitomized by Hermann Cohen, who, for obvious reasons, plays a predominant role in this context. Our assumption that the positive aspect of Kant's position as well as his negative or critical, anti-Judaic, perspective, were significant even for Formstecher is central to any attempt to understand Cohen's interpretation of Judaism. Cohen was a distinguished interpreter of Kant's system; he was a founder of that branch of neo-Kantianism which goes by the name of'the Marburg School'. Hence Cohen's preoccupation with the problem of the adjustment between a religious world view and an ethical system is well understood. When in the course of his life Cohen moved to a closer adherence to Judaism on philosophical grounds he had to come to terms with the twofold question: (a) Does a religious ethical system differ from other ethical systems which lack the religious dimension, or from a system which goes beyond Kant's statement that religion is essentially an interpretation of ethical commandments or of duties as divine commandments? (b) What is the characteristic feature of Judaism in terms of its position within the scope of religious attitudes in general? With regard to the first question, that is to the religious role of the ethical code, the following can be said. Kant in his ethical system, refers to man as man. His position can be interpreted as being concerned with man only from the universal or universalistic point of view. Man is a man since the human essence is embodied in him, or he is a man since he belongs to mankind which is a universal species or community. Furthermore man is to be considered as an end and not as a mere means because the universal human essence inheres in him and in respect of this no human being can be said to be ethically superior to another human being and cannot therefore take advantage of him qua means. Going beyond this view Cohen's neo-Kantian revision emphasizes that religion adds to the Kantian universalistic ethical a complementary attitude which focuses on the 85
NATHAN ROTENSTREICH
individual as such. That is to say, on the individual who, in addition to being a member of the universal community participating in the human essence, is an individual by virtue of his biography, his position here and now, his social standing, and the fact of his own death. Moreover, as an individual, he is a sinner concerned with his own shortcomings and sense of guilt and limitation, i.e., he is aware that his behaviour deviates from the norm. It was on the basis of this analysis that Cohen saw the prophet Ezekiel as representing the turning point in the development of Judaism. For it was Ezekiel who prophesied that: 'a person will die in his own sin' in contrast to the older idea of collective or inherited responsibility in which a man is said to carry the sins of his forefathers. In this connection, Cohen pointed to the biblical discovery of the individual human being even in the stranger, who himself epitomizes a particular, i.e., individual, human condition.25 One can correctly suggest that this special concern for the individual, which Cohen takes to be characteristic of religion in general and of Judaism as the religion from which this concern originates in particular, is presented by Cohen as an attempt to supplement as it were the legitimate direction of ethical universalism (Kant) in order to enhance the ethical attitude by focusing it on individuals. Speaking in religious terms, one can see in this new focus a transformation of the qualities of the divine being, such as grace, benevolence, etc. into human terms such as generosity, charity etc. Accordingly, and in this sense, Judaism, is to be recognized as the fount of the religion of reason, as the true originator of that ethical attitude which accepts the role of the individual as that of another human being and which emphasizes the equality of all human agents. The understanding originating in this classical Jewish attitude has not only a cognitive character but expresses itself in acts of benevolence and mercy as well. A further aspect, crucial to Cohen's thought, is the position of the Messianic idea, which he viewed as a consequence of monotheism ethically understood, since Messianism amounts to the dominance of the good on earth. Messianism refers to human history which in turn is directed towards the future of universal history. Yet humanity, which is the objective, the focus and the scene of the realization of Messianism, is, for Cohen, primarily discovered in the love of men - and here again we can trace the sources of Messianism in its ethical meaning and its connection with an ethical interpretation of Jewish monotheism. This is the case because in monotheism God is essentially the God of love and of goodness. The goodness of God is not confined to scattered individuals or to an ethnic entity, but refers to all people and to all peoples. Thus it can be said that the universal dimension of Messianism is but the consequence of monotheism, but by the same token that dimension is ethical in the first place, since in human terms the cosmic 86
Jewish Thought universality implied in monotheism vis-a-vis creation is universality as applied to all human beings. To be sure, Messianism in this sense has a strongly positive connotation and it is the strength of Messianism that it became the mainstay of the psyche of optimism. The emphasis placed on the future of mankind removes from Messianism, according to Cohen, the popular stress on the immortality of the soul. It also removes eudaimonism, since Messianism is not concerned with the material or economic welfare of humanity: those conditions are significant only as the background or infrastructure of the ethical principles which are to dominate the orbit of mankind. It is only within the scope of the infinite development of the human species that the individual psyche can attain immortality. Cohen goes so far as to call the ethical individual the individual of totality (Allheitsindividuum). To be sure, the reference to Messianism so conceived mitigates to a considerable extent the individuality or personality of the Messiah as a human being; indeed, Cohen explicitly uses the description of the ideality of the Messiah or his meaning as an idea. Clearly these are Kantian terms, transplanted by Cohen into the scope of his interpretation of the Messianic idea.26 Summing up this part of our exploration we may say, as hinted at already, that modern Jewish philosophical systems, emphasizing the primary affinity between Judaism and an ethical attitude, do not present a comprehensive system of ethical imperatives. This is why the Halakha hardly underwent any philosophical transformation - if such a transformation were even possible. The above-mentioned philosophical systems are more concerned with the articulation of the principles underlying the traditional commandments, whether or not they adhere to all the particularities and details of those commandments. Cohen, for example, is concerned with the philosophical interpretation of the law in the ethical sense, emphasizing that the ethical formation of man, which is the only objective of the law, amounts to man's listening to God - in man's position as man, who cannot be God and remains always only man. Thus despite the philosophical interpretations of Judaism as an ethical system, the traditional approach to the commandments qua mitzvoth has been maintained - either disregarding the philosophical explication, or as an additional dimension of those explications.
The attitude towards Christianity I
We begin this section of our exploration by pointing to the particular social, political and cultural circumstances of modern Jewry, since the philosophical systems espoused were in direct response to this cultural and historical
NATHAN ROTENSTREICH
situation. The philosophers under review, as is already clear from our exploration up to this point, were trained and immersed in modern philosophical systems. They were profoundly influenced by the surrounding world, mainly in Germany, but also to some extent in France and Italy. Some of them participated in the various modern or modernistic (Reform) movements in Judaism, each of them responded to the attempt and aspiration of the Jews to strike roots in the surrounding contemporary culture and to become fully fledged citizens of the contemporary world. Some of them - Cohen perhaps epitomizes to an exaggerated degree the attitude with which we are concerned - consider the surrounding world, in Cohen's case, German culture, as humanistic, humane and even imbued with Messianic overtones. Yet insofar as Christianity as a living faith inherent in the culture of the surrounding world was concerned, Jewish philosophers assumed a critical stance. There are probably two major reasons for this attitude and for the concomitant negative evaluation of Christianity. First, Jewish thinkers wanted to erect a barrier of protection around Jews who became acculturated or, as Jewish parlance has it, assimilated, to the surrounding world. Secondly, philosophically or systematically, Christianity was viewed as a popular, i.e., less pure, version of monotheism, while Judaism was considered monotheism in the more strict, i.e., more pure, form. From this basic evaluation certain important ethical consequences flowed. Let us consider several of these critical evaluations of Christianity. Formstecher understood Christianity and Islam mainly as apostles of Judaism to the pagan world.27 In order to make it acceptable the Gentile world required the integration of some elements of paganism into the infrastructure of the pure monotheistic religion, i.e., Judaism. This absorption of pagan elements precludes regarding the subsequent stages of Christianity's religious development as superior forms of religion. In a sense, these absorbed elements have a tactical significance, in as much as Judaism adjusted itself to the non-Jewish world in order to make its teachings understood and then accepted. Samuel Hirsch stresses again the doctrine of original sin characteristic of the Pauline version of Christianity. According to this doctrine all men are inevitably parties of Adam's transgression and therefore, according to Christian doctrine, man cannot liberate himself from this fall. As a consequence Christianity cannot be viewed as the religion of freedom or of spirit, and thus cannot be seen as a pure religion germane to the philosophy of spirit and freedom. Kant, of course, had already struggled with the notion of radical evil,28 and had tried to show that precisely because there is an element of radical evil in man, he ought to be free in order to overcome the 88
Jewish Thought temptations of evil. Freedom is sovereign, as it were, because it clashes with, and attempts to overcome, evil. Original sin for Kant is thus treated as a species of radical evil. For Hirsch, on the other hand, man cannot become a free being as long as there are forces of evil to which he is necessarily attracted and which are symbolically represented by Adam's fall. Let us not forget at this juncture that Kant did not refer to Adam's fall, but to the evil urges in man, or again to man's evil decisions. Thus Kant presented a philosophical interpretation of the Christian doctrine and not the Christian doctrine itself. Hirsch, by comparison, returns to the Christian doctrine, disregarding its philosophical interpretation, though the principle of freedom as interpreted by Kant is central to the whole discussion. The essential and necessary role played by Jesus in Christianity is an additional source of disagreement between Judaism and Christianity since, according to Christian dogma, only Jesus as a consequence of his unique ontological status could redeem himself from original sin, which is the heritage of all mankind. According to Judaism, however, self-redemption is the attribute of every human being: the elevation from the constraints of nature and from sin is but a manifestation of freedom. Hence a religion of freedom, i.e. Judaism, is bound to deny the superior or super-human character of any individual who, by virtue of that position, is viewed as the redeemer of mankind or as the son of God. We should also mention in this context not only the basic antithesis between nature and freedom, but also the aspect of universality, which is traditionally attributed to Christianity and which is present in Kant's philosophy of religion as a religion within the boundaries of reason. Universality is usually understood as an extension of a religious belief insofar as that belief is not held to be confined to a particular historical entity but rather available to mankind in general. Judaism, on this definition, has been viewed as a particularistic religion because of its confinement to the Jewish people and the special position bestowed on the people of Israel as a consequence. Christianity, by contrast, has generally been viewed as a universalistic religion since ab initio it addressed itself to all mankind. Hirsch, however, attempts to undermine this putative universalistic superiority of Christianity. Every human being, as he puts it sharply, might attain the spiritual and religious level of Jesus, since every human being is a free being. Hence there is justification neither for the separation of Jesus from the common framework of mankind, nor the elevation of Jesus to the super-human level, and thus there is no need and no justification for the reliance of human beings on Jesus. Moreover, according to the logic of this argument the universalistic application of the Christian message is unnecessary.
NATHAN ROTENSTREICH
II
As we have already noted in passing, one of the leitmotifs in the criticism of Christianity is the thesis that Christianity is not a pure monotheistic religion, but, to put it typologically and historically, that it had absorbed elements of paganism into its fundamental outlook and structure. Salomon Steinheim (1789-1866), one of the most interesting nineteenth-century philosophers of Judaism, emphasizes this argument and it comes to the fore again in Hermann Cohen who added to this criticism his own special touch. Christianity, Cohen argued, blurs the distinction between man and God, and thus contains an element of pantheism which, in this context, supersedes the previous characterization referring to the element of paganism. Let us here mention two other critics of Christianity, namely Joseph Salvador and Eli Benamozegh. Salvador (1796-1873) attacks not only the basic dogmas of Christianity, but the Catholic Church as it developed dogmatically and historically. For him, the realization of principles and norms, and not only their formulation, was of fundamental significance. And in this respect Salvador found historic Christianity wanting. Salvador also responds to those who suggest that, in spite of the historical dependence of Christianity on Judaism in terms of essence and substance, Christianity is a new beginning and is essentially independent from Judaism. He insists that we do not find in the New Testament any new principle which was not known before in the Judaic context. Taking into consideration both the origins and the expansion of Christianity, the merit of Christianity lies in the spreading of two ideas, namely the unity of God and the Messianic ideal. Yet, at the same time, Christianity became corrupted by its passage through history, especially its rise to pre-eminent political power and its virtual monopoly on culture. Christianity, however, never came to grips with the meaning of this new historical reality nor with the position of the law in this socio-historic constellation because it denied the significance of the law as Judaism understood it while not providing any new significance to the law within its own conceptual parameters. Thus it was bound malgre sot to adjust itself inadequately to the new historic reality. While its over-emphasis on spiritual principles and values became a pretext for the opportunistic acceptance of the facts of political reality, a type of Realpolitik.29 Lastly, Elijah Benamozegh's (1822-1900) view needs to be considered because it is reflective of a certain broad trend present in modern Jewish thought. The major issue for Benamozegh is the shift of emphasis from deeds to faith, as this is understood in the basic Christian sources and developed in various Christian trends. That shift, as is well known, was 90
Jewish Thought accompanied by the deprecation of the centrality of the legal aspect in Judaism. Though Benamozegh takes exception to Mendelssohn's interpretation of Judaism in terms of divine legislation, he emphasizes the significance of the law, a significance which combines the legal aspect narrowly defined with the Torah's more general concern with morality. The significance of the law for human life is grounded in the fact that legal precepts make for the stability and predictability of human behaviour and facilitate inter-human contacts, whereas the emphasis on faith leads to reliance on feelings, unpredictable and volatile as they are. In addition - and we come back time and again to this motif- the negation of real life has to be mentioned since the negation leads to an over-emphasis on evil in human life which in turn leads to an attitude which vitiates any attempt to amend or to remedy the human situation. Furthermore, we find in Christianity a certain vacillation between a negation of human reality and a universalism which is unable to come to grips with fundamental factors of this human reality, including the position of peoplehood and statehood within the framework of human behaviour and historical existence.30 We may sum up the various criticisms of Christianity found in nineteenth-century Jewish thought as follows: despite the specific differences between them, all attempt to safeguard the superiority of Judaism visa-vis Christianity either in terms of the ontological ground of Judaism or in terms of its thematic content.
Constitutive norms: Torah & tradition I
It is an inherent feature of a philosophical interpretation of religion to art' ulate not only the particular concepts implied in religions but also the grounding norms on which religions are based. To take an example, medieval Jewish philosophy from its very beginning was concerned with the question of the authority of revelation as well as with the question of the authority of tradition or what has been called historical truths, that is to say, statements or commandments transmitted from generation to generation. Again, modern Jewish philosophy relates to the component of revelation as well as to that of tradition, sometimes trying to bind the two together, and sometimes separating them. In this section we shall review and analyse some of the representative systems of thought which are to be placed in the problematic context of these two issues. We start with a brief description of the meaning of revelation and that of tradition in order to realize the difference between the two, at least as
NATHAN ROTENSTREICH
recognized from the ontological point of view. Revelation in the broad sense amounts to disclosure or to communication. But revelation in the religious sense amounts to the self-revelation of God: God discloses himself to human beings by an appearance or by an event. To be sure, a distinction between revelation from the divine vantage point and that from the human vantage point is called for by the very understanding of revelation as a self-disclosure of God to human beings. As to tradition it is by definition a handing over or transmitting of 'content' within the human context, from generation to generation. Tradition in the Jewish context appeared as an interpretation or exegesis of the Bible which has been considered either as a word of God or as grounded in the event of revelation in the strict sense of the term, that is to say, the revelation at Mount Sinai. The concern with tradition and revelation has been a major issue from the beginning of modern Jewish philosophy, that is to say, the philosophy of Moses Mendelssohn. Mendelssohn begins with the well-known statement: I believe Judaism knows nothing of revealed religion in the sense in which Christians define this term. The Israelites possess a divine legislation - laws, commandments, statutes, rules of conduct, instruction in God's will and in what they are to do to attain temporal and eternal salvation. Moses, in a miraculous and supernatural way, revealed to them these laws and commandments, but not dogmas, propositions concerning salvation, or self-evident principles of reason . . . Supernatural legislation has been mistaken for a supernatural revelation of religions . . .
One may question whether this juxtaposition between revealed religion and divine legislation is as strict as it appears to be in Mendelssohn's presentation, since even he speaks in this context of laws revealed to the Israelites through Moses. Divine legislation is still a revealed legislation. Yet Mendelssohn was anxious to draw a line of demarcation between propositions which he held had been established through philosophical reasoning and thus are emancipated from both revelation and tradition and those which are so grounded. At the same time he attempted to draw a line of demarcation between the binding laws of the state to which Jews are entitled to belong and the Jewish legal system which is rooted in the divine appearance and thus, as it were, of a different order from, while not in conflict with, the law of the state which has its basis in a human covenant. Leaving aside these considerations we are bound to come to the conclusion that the concept of divine law or legislation is for Mendelssohn an attempt to bind together both the aspect of revelation proper, and tradition proper, the last understood mainly in the Halakhic, that is to say, legal sense of the term. Divine legislation would connote henceforth that the Halakhic system is grounded in the divine realm and by the same token is understood 92
Jewish Thought thematically the way it has been understood over the ages, i.e., mainly as a legal system or as a code of behaviour. Yet, we must ask at this juncture the obvious question: why did Mendelssohn separate the legal aspect from the aspects entertained by reason or rationality? Was he motivated only by an apologetic concern, that is to say, the concern not to let Judaism become totally immersed in the rational system or in what he, following the language of the generation, called eternal truth? Perhaps Mendelssohn thought that the realm of doing and will as a motivating factor, underneath doing, cannot be made a component in the domain of rationality once reason is seen primarily as an intellectual capacity. Indeed, he made a distinction between 'reasoned conviction' and 'All commandments of the divine law are addressed to man's will, to his capacity to act.' In this statement we notice that the will as man's capacity to act is not subsumed under the general heading of reason or conviction. Mendelssohn agrees with the established distinction between reason and will and separates the component of will to such an extent that he makes it the major factor on the human end referring to the divine law. To be sure, in what follows he is not totally consistent, since he interprets faith as trust or confidence, that is to say, as firm reliance on pledge and promise. We can wonder whether confidence or reliance can be seen as related unequivocally to will or to capacity to act. Here again we may encounter one of the ambiguities of Mendelssohn's presentation of Judaism in spite of his programmatic statement. Again, he is not satisfied solely with the performance of the ritual law; he is concerned to endow it with genuine and real meaning. Thus we can ask what is the genuine and the real meaning of ceremonies in addition to being manifestations of the divine revelation. Apparently Mendelssohn did not want to reach the point of a total identification between the divine laws and what had been called in medieval philosophy commandments based on obedience or on hearing only. In any case, we find in Mendelssohn an attempt to bring together the components of revelation and tradition which he believed would resolve the dilemmas of Judaism in the modern era.31 ii
Samson Raphael Hirsch, the prominent neo-orthodox thinker, followed, to some extent, the line which started with Mendelssohn, though at one point — which is by no means a peripheral one — he says: 'God no longer wills the destruction of mankind, but its education.' This statement has to be compared with what Mendelssohn writes referring to his friend, Lessing: 'He conceives of mankind not as a collectivity but as an individual whom Providence, as it were, has sent to school here on earth in order to raise him 93
NATHAN ROTENSTREICH
from childhood to manhood. . . . "Progress" is a term that applies only to the individual, destined by Providence to spend part of his eternity here on earth.'32 Yet in terms of the position of the law, Hirsch follows the line of Mendelssohn when he identifies Torah with law, either with the written law or with the oral law. To be sure he refers to the philosophical or intellectual attempts expressed in speculations upon the essence of deity but he is inclined, at least a good part of the time, to argue that God's will found its manifestation in the Torah and the fulfilment of the law has thus become the fundamental principle of Judaism. He specifically mentions Moses Mendelssohn's attempt, critically, to mediate modernity in the context of this discussion. Yet he himself emphasizes that Scripture should be the book of law for life for the modern Jew as it has been in the tradition and that the modern Jew should be able to understand life through the Torah. Hirsch attempts to elevate the Torah or the Law to the position of being revealed manifestation, and to some extent, he presents a view that argues that there are two parallel divine manifestations, nature on the one hand and Torah as commandments on the other. To be sure he cannot follow Mendelssohn's view that the divine manifestation is restricted only to the commandments and he certainly does not make the clear-cut Mendelssohnian distinction between divine legislation and divine revelation. But what is common to both Hirsch and Mendelssohn is the attempt to present laws and commandments as being the characteristic features of Judaism, and at the same time the attempt to bestow on them an objective position, which because of its objectivity cannot be erased nor even altered. The emphasis on the divine aspect of the law is not only a reading of the tradition but also a type of defensive strategy in which the two modern Jewish thinkers are engaged in order to prevent the possibility of introducing into the scope of Judaism any attempt at modifying the legal system by exposing it to the modern era characterized as it is by the atmosphere of change.33 in When we turn now to the third thinker whose work deserves careful scrutiny, Salomon Steinheim, we encounter a new emphasis with regard to revelation which explicitly and implicitly criticizes Mendelssohn's position and all those who share it. Steinheim characterizes Mendelssohn's view, that is to say, the view which places the exclusive emphasis on the revealed commandments as one which leaves Judaism only a wig and a beard. To be sure, this is an interpretation of the legal system which sees only the ritual aspects of the laws. At the same time, however, Steinheim also criticizes Mendelssohn for having placed his emphasis on the connection between 94
Jewish Thought divine revelation and legislation. Thus Mendelssohn in Steinheim's view, has left aside the whole problem of the existence of the living God designating that concern a philosophical one in the universal sense of that term. Here, Steinheim interprets Mendelssohn, and not without good reason, as holding a position which removes a concern with God from the realm of Judaism. This, according to Steinheim, leads to the consequence that a fundamental shift occurs from faith to a system of laws. As overagainst Mendelssohn the central feature of Steinheim's system is his emphasis on revelation which leads him to the conclusion that revelation is an anti-rational phenomenon. Let us consider his presentation of this argument. At this point again juxtaposition with Mendelssohn's view is called for. Mendelssohn attempted to remove the aspect of revelation from the scope of Judaism mainly because revelation as such cannot be consonant with rationality and secondly, on the positive side, because some of the thematic aspects of revelation, like the assertion of the existence of God, became part and parcel of rational philosophy. At this point Steinheim intrudes into the discussion by stressing that revelation implies that all is created out of nothing. Thus, the principle of revelation defies any rational discourse which is inclined in the direction of a continuous chain of events which, as such, does not call for the beginning of the chain which lies outside the chain itself, i.e. implies the creation out of nothing. This approach inherent in the acceptance of revelation finds its additional interpretation in Steinheim who assumes that rationalism amounts to a position which holds that there is no effect without an adequate cause. Revelation presupposes the will of God which is the ultimate cause and as such cannot be placed within the chain of causes and effects. Any attempt to translate the religious notions grounded in revelation is basically 'bad' monotheism. In this sense Steinheim wants, as it were, to save 'good' monotheism from the danger of 'bad' monotheism which amounts to a translation, that is to say, a pseudo-translation of religion proper into the vocabulary of rational philosophy. Summing up we may say that Steinheim does not assign to revelation the position of some basic articles ofJudaism in the sense present, for instance, in Maimonides, thirteen articles, but rather transforms revelation into a kind of a presupposition of Judaism.34 IV
Having said this we have to be aware of the fact that the principle which is parallel to revelation, i.e. the principle of tradition, is not established by the emphasis on the aspect of revelation. Tradition, as we have mentioned 95
NATHAN ROTENSTREICH
before, amounts to a transfer from generation to generation. Thus, it is a historical concept and in this sense cannot be seen as symmetrical to the super-historical as well as super-natural notion of revelation. The modern historical awareness had a far-reaching impact on the position of tradition in Jewish consciousness, and along with that, on the importance of tradition in Jewish philosophical interpretation. We may put it briefly in the following way: the historical aspect of tradition may lead to the emphasis being laid not primarily on the permanent aspects within the historical process but on the changes which occur within the process. Along with that, even then the changes are eventually absorbed and their changing character or their novelties do not remain prominent any more. A case in point is the emergence of that which goes by the name of the 'Science of Judaism' which is a manifestation of the twentieth or the nineteenth century - and to which we have already referred above. Even when we take the view that the 'Science of Judaism' qua science appears to be 'value-free', it is still clear that any approach to ancient texts which is not based on an interpretation which understands itself as a continuation of tradition but rather as an approach grounded in a philological or an historical reading of the text - any such approach amounts to a novelty in terms of the involvement of the present age vis-a-vis the treasures of the past. This implication has to be noted even when we assume that the 'Science of Judaism' did not wish to have an impact on the normative relationship to the treasures of the past or, to put it positively, adhered only to the methodical prescriptions grounded in a value-free approach to the past. But, as a matter of fact, both from the point of view of the principles as well as from the point of view of the practical consequences, the 'Science of Judaism' can be seen as a turning point in terms of the approach to tradition. The aspect of revelation does not fall at all within this scope of a scientific interpretation. But historical continuity can be questioned at least, post factum, and changes in the past once discerned can serve as a model for changes introduced, or to be introduced, deliberately in the present with the perspective of the future. This indeed happened in nineteenth- and twentieth-century Jewish thought and the outcome can be formulated as amounting to the view that tradition is not an unambiguous continuity and therefore not everything present in the tradition is of a binding authority. Along with that, an additional consequence has been drawn, namely, that once changes are identified in the past, changes can be introduced deliberately in the present. This aspect of the attitude to tradition, which amounts to an attitude to the past, has been reinforced by what can be called practical, that is to say sociopolitical considerations related to the Jewish aspirations to gain equality in
Jewish Thought
the political systems in which Jews lived in the nineteenth and twentieth centuries. There is here a kind of a scale of approaches which, in turn, find their expression in the attitude to tradition. The very fact that the Jews want to strike roots as equal citizens within the framework of the modern state is already a change, or at least can be viewed as a change in terms of the selfenclosed character of the traditional code of behaviour. Once the door is open for one sort of change, many other changes may follow and here the adherence to revelation as such is certainly not a guarantee for the preservation of tradition. This applies also to Steinheim who was active in the political attempts in northern Germany to gain full civil rights for Jews within the political framework. Yet there is here an interesting circular attitude: the non-Jewish world demanded from the Jews that they change their mode of behaviour in order to be accepted into the political framework of the modern state and this is a well-known feature of the encounter between the Jews and the modern world already present in the Napoleonic era. The Jews in turn, tried to make a distinction between their belonging to the state and the 'four cubits' of their existence - as is the case, as we have seen, with Mendelssohn. But subsequently, the Jews tried to persuade the non-Jewish world that the changes had already occurred, that is to say, that the traditional norm had already undergone change. And at the same time they tried to convince the Jews themselves that they needed to change, that is to say, that the traditional norm is not that unambiguous as it appears or appeared over the centuries. Here one can rightly note that not only do individual Jewish philosophical and theological systems have their basic motivation in this problematic political and historical situation but also trends of a communal character, e.g., the Jewish Reform Movement, or the emergence of the Conservative Movement, are ultimately a product of this problematic situation and the atmosphere which surrounds it. v Yet, overstepping, in a sense, the boundaries of nineteenth-century philosophy, we have to point to the fact that the aspect of revelation is prominent in the systems of both Hermann Cohen and Franz Rosenzweig. Let us consider first the aspect of revelation in Hermann Cohen, not only because of the significance of his system in general but also because of the particular interpretation which Cohen gave to revelation. In order to shed some light on Cohen's interpretation, the following remark is apposite. Revelation has been rejected or criticized because it runs counter the autonomous character of reason. One could not envisage the clash between revelation and rationality unless one refers to reason as being natural or 97
NATHAN ROTENSTREICH
autonomous - to use in this context the Kantian idiom. Cohen, who was a Kantian and a prominent interpreter of Kant's system, tried to resolve the dilemma by accepting the fact that reason might be autonomous in its activity, but is not autonomous in its very position. Hence, Cohen said that God endowed man with reason - and negatively, man himself could not have attained reason. Reason is the hallmark of divine creation and this is expressed in the traditional terms that through reason man becomes the image of God. If reason is the characteristic quality of man then from this point of view man's essence is by definition a divine essence. To put it differently, Cohen establishes the relationship between creation and revelation. Creation is a universal activity of God, applicable to the universe and to nature at large. Revelation is the creation of man and in this sense the same function of God which applies to the universe applies also to man. Such a view leads to a very radical conclusion that any interpretation activized by the unfolding of reason in man amounts to an unfolding of the divine reason in man. Thus, tradition itself, though it occurs and persists on the historical level, cannot be uprooted from the level or position of revelation. We started our analysis by pointing to the duality of revelation and tradition because of the difference in terms of their ontological respective positions. Cohen's philosophy leads to a kind of continuity between revelation and tradition, but as such, does not resolve the dilemmas of continuity of tradition as such. This is so because the question can be asked whether any interpretation motivated or brought about by reason, which is divine reason by definition, can be questioned as to its legitimacy. Hence, instead of having two constitutive norms in revelation and in tradition we encounter one norm only, that of revelation which philosophically can be viewed as a very stringent norm but which, historically or practically, becomes more open and tolerant of various innovations.35 To some extent we find an echo of that view even in its more radical expression in Franz Rosenzweig's letter to Martin Buber of June 1925 where he asserts that revelation is certainly not law-giving - and we mention Rosenzweig here because to some extent Mendelssohn's position comes full circle in that letter. For Rosenzweig revelation is only revelation. The primary concept is revelation itself. He writes to Buber as follows: 'He came down . . . this already concludes the revelation; "he spoke" is the beginning of interpretation and certainly "I am" but where does this interpretation stop being legitimate? I would never dare to state this in a general sentence.' At this point Rosenzweig goes on to suggest: 'Or could it be that revelation must never become legislation, because then the original self-interpretation or revelation would have to give way to human interpretation? This I would 98
Jewish Thought admit, just as I am convinced that revelation cannot be identified with the human person.'36 VI
Without attempting to show that there is a ready-made solution to the dilemma we may conclude our analysis by quoting Gershom Scholem's statement on revelation and tradition as the two religious categories in Judaism. Scholem says: 'Judaism, as it has constituted itself in distinct historical forms . . . is properly recognized in the history of religions as a classical example of religious traditionalism.' In considering the problem of tradition, we must distinguish between two questions. The first is historical: how did a tradition endowed with religious dignity come to be formed? The other question is: how was this tradition understood once it was accepted as a religious phenomenon? Eventually Scholem says: 'In Judaism, tradition becomes the reflective impulse that intervenes between the absoluteness of the divine word - revelation - and its receiver.' And eventually Scholem leads us to the conclusion that in the Jewish conception genuine tradition, like everything that is creative, is not the achievement of human productivity alone.37 Historicity I
Our review so far has been concerned with elements essential to the articulation of the inner content of Judaism. Now we turn to what might be termed an extrinsic consideration: historicity. It should be noted at the outset that historicity is perhaps more of an attitude than a theme, though it does possess a thematic aspect as well. Moreover, in dealing with historicity, we cannot confine ourselves to philosophical systems alone, but must by the nature of the subject, broaden the frame of reference and consider sociohistoric as well as intellectual trends which go beyond systematic exposition. Historicity is understood here as the involvement of human beings in the sequence of time and their awareness of that involvement. To this broad definition we have to add two clarifications: (a) time is understood here not as astronomic or biological time, but as the span of human generations, (b) The term 'involvement' is deliberately chosen because it is broader than, for instance, dependence or allegiance, though obviously one's involvement in time qua historical time, and one's awareness of it, can mean specifically one's dependence upon past generations, their legacies etc. Judaism as a religion is obviously a religion of and in history. It is a religion 99
NATHAN ROTENSTREICH
of tradition and thus carries within itself the legacy of the past, either of the past in which the divine revelation manifested itself, or the past as the accumulated interpretations of that revelation. In other words, it is an historical religion whose historicity amounts largely to an awareness of the continuity between generations. Against this background and historic infrastructure it needs to be appreciated that modern Jewish thought is characterized by a profound shift from the awareness of continuity to the awareness of change. Indeed, historicity within the modern context appears to a large extent as the introduction or affirmation of change which is one of the individuating features of modernity. It can be presupposed that such a shift towards affirmation of change did not occur suddenly within the historical consciousness, but germinated gradually within the traditional view. Let us mention again Krochmal's system in this connection. Krochmal placed in the foreground the reality of historical time; but the alterations which occurred in that time are understood as reinforcing eternity and thus cannot be separated from the suprahistorical and meta-temporal aspects of human reality. In contradistinction, the modern shift towards a more dynamic picture of history amounts in large measure to a seeming separation of historical and human changes from their position as direct manifestations of the divine, i.e., supratemporal, essence.38 II
Let us now schematically outline several of the developments which became prominent in the nineteenth-century conception of historicity. With regard to the interpretation of Judaism, the awareness of the growth which had taken place in the past becomes prominent: Judaism has a history, it is not only a tradition absorbing innovations and alterations. It is a series of changes, the exploration of which becomes essential both for the selfunderstanding of the present generation as well as a guiding light for initiatives to be undertaken and instituted. Against this background what goes by the name of the 'Science of Judaism' (Wissenschaft des jfudentums) emerges as a deliberate scholarly approach or discipline which, of course, absorbed the very presuppositions of modern historiography.39 It is not by chance that wefindamong the most prominent manifestations of this tendency, of this school, within modern Judaism the emergence of major studies dealing with the history of the Jewish people. Paradigmatic in this respect is Heinrich Graetz's (1817-91) opus which is consciously indebted to philosophical trends, as Graetz himself noted in his 'Construction of Jewish History'.40 Moreover, now we do not have to confine ourselves 100
Jewish Thought to a recognition of changes in terms of successive periods or epochs within the course of history, rather we now find beyond that approach that there is an awareness of the plurality of trends within given periods ofJewish history, and part passu within Judaism and Jewish religiosity. Those modern thinkers who would deliberately attempt to introduce changes in the contemporary behaviour of the Jews especially in religious matters would, from this juncture on, argue that the possibility and legitimacy of such transformations derived from the discernment of changes in the past. They presented as their credentials a continuing line of development — a kind of formal or nominal continuity, as against the substantive and real continuity claimed by their predecessors. It is almost certainly no biographical accident that some of the major figures of the first generation of Wissenschaft scholars were active in the Jewish Reform Movement. Reform Jews recognized the need for formulating an account of an 'essence' of Judaism, which is preserved within and despite the changes deliberately introduced and called for. As against the permanence of accumulation, a new kind of permanence emerges which requires formulation. In this sense the various types of interpretations of Judaism dealt with above in terms of monotheism or systems of ethics, were presented precisely as formulations of that essential core which could be exposed to changes and whose validity, because of its inner persuasiveness, would still be preserved. At this point the philosophical systems and the currents of a religious and intellectual character either meet or are at least intended to reinforce each other. in Modern Jewish nationalism and its culmination in Zionism have to be understood in this same context. As a political-religious current, this has to be seen as an attempt towards a revitalization or renaissance of certain basic elements within the Jewish reality, namely land, language, and political organization qua statehood. The revitalization of those factors is an attempt to meet the unprecedented historical circumstances which, through its dynamics, brought about the atomization of the Jewish people. Parallel to this, the Jewish renaissance is understood as a response both to the atomization and to the emergence of national consciousness in European historical reality in the nineteenth century. That is to say, what applied to the non-Jewish world was now also considered relevant to the Jews. Yet this revitalization, placing the emphasis on the 're', returns in the modern context to features of Jewish existence which occupy a determinative position in traditional Judaism: the land as the promised land, the Hebrew IOI
NATHAN ROTENSTREICH
language as the holy language, and the political entity as a modern interpretation of the redemptive or Messianic aspect of traditional faith. This modern reinterpretation of course gives rise to the question of whether it was intended to replace the traditional attitude with a new secularism or to reinforce the traditional understanding. To answer this question, however, requires that we go beyond intellectual currents and face certain historical realities in all their dialectical fluctuations. Indeed, the emergence of Zionism and its character has to be set amidst the modern landscape. And yet by the nature of the Zionist enterprise it cannot be listed with systematic attempts which aimed to reinterpret Judaism and the Jewish heritage in the light of current philosophical trends. Moreover, Zionism, by definition, is a collective phenomenon, while the various philosophical and religious interpretations ofJudaism entertained in this essay have been the inspiration of individuals, even when they have had an impact on one's fellow-thinkers or the larger lay Jewish community. This distinction applies even when we take into account the fact that individual thinkers obviously did contribute to the shaping of the Zionist analysis and ideology.41 Yet, what is even more significant, is that Zionism represents a shift from the interpretation of Judaism to an attempt to place the centre of gravity in the actual and factual historical existence of the Jews, and the attributes which go along with the existence of a people in the circumstances of modernity. To be sure, the question of the nature of Judaism returns within the context of Zionism in the sense that Zionism attempts to revitalize the various modes of Jewish existence and creativity, which in turn sharpens the problem of the relationship between a continuous creativity and the given legacy of the past. Yet the shift in emphasis from the formulated legacy to the texture of life and the actual locus of the various manifestations of creativity cannot be overlooked. Thus, even when we assume that the legacy looms large, it has to be seen from a perspective which objectively and subjectively i.e., in the eyes of the opponents of Zionism - changes its position in the total structure of Jewish concern. Here again we move beyond a typological presentation of interpretations of Judaism to a possible analysis of factual changes which occurred in the living and existential horizon of the Jews.
102
Jewish Thought Notes 1 Religion und Wissenschaft im mittellalterlichen und modernen Denken (Hochschule fur die Wissenschaft des Judentums, Berlin, 1922). 2 Faithful to our methodology, we shall advance certain types of interpretation without attempting to give a detailed chronological survey of the various positions. 3 Formstecher's major work is Die Religion des Geistes, eine wissenschaftliche Dartstellung des jfudenthums nach seinem Charakter, Entwiklungsgange und Berufe in der Menscheit (Frankfurt am Main, 1841). Reprinted in S. Katz (ed.), Jewish Philosophy, Mysticism and the History of Ideas, Judaica Reprint Series (New York, 1980). 4 Ibid., p. 100. 5 Ibid., p. i n . 6 Ibid., p. 360. 7 Ibid., pp. 69, 116. 8 The major book is Das System der religiosen Auschauungen derjuden und sein Verhdltniss zum Heidentum, Christentum und zur absoluten Philosophic /, Die Religionsphilosophie der Juden (Leipzig, 1842). This is the only volume published, though Hirsch was a prolific author. It has to be observed that the context in which Judaism is dealt with is 'absolute philosophy', i.e., Hegel's concept of philosophy. 9 Ibid., p. xxxviii. That identification in turn has its origin in Hegel and is parallel to Kant's identification of reason and freedom. Hirsch takes that line which is close to that of Formstecher in spite of his tendency to criticize Formstecher. 10 Ibid., pp. 25-8, 621. 11 Hermann Cohen's major work on Judaism is Die Religion der Vernunft aus den Quellen des Judentums (Leipzig, 1919). All references will be to the English translation of the work, Religion of Reason from the Sources ofJudaism, transl. with an Introduction by Simon Kaplan, Introductory Essay by Leo Strauss (New York, 1972). It should also be noted that an English translation of a selection of Cohen's writings on Judaism also exists: Reason and Hope, Selections from the Jewish Writings of Hermann Cohen, tr. Eva Jospe (New York, 1971). 12 Religion of Reason, pp. 356°. The chapter (chapter 1 of the book) deals with God's uniqueness. 13 Ibid., pp. 98, 243. 14 Ibid., pp. 132, 19, 76-9. 15 'The transcendence of God: archetype of morality', in Reason and Hope, pp. 576°. 16 'The Holy Spirit', in Reason and Hope, pp. i33ff. 17 The references are to Kitvei Renak (in Hebrew), ed. Shimon Rawidowicz (BerlinCharlottenburg, 1924). (The German title of the edition reads: Nachman Krochmals Werke.) See pp. 11, 13. 18 Ibid., pp. 4off. 19 Kant's Religion in den Grenzen der blossen Vernunft is available in an English translation under the title Religion within the Limits of Reason Alone, tr. with an Introduction and notes by Theodore M. Green and Hoyt Hudson, with a new essay, 'The ethical significance of Kant's "Religion"1, by John R. Silber (New York and Evanston, i960). 20 Mendelssohn's central work in which he presents his interpretation of Judaism is Jerusalem: Oder u'ber religiose Macht des Judenthums, which first appeared in 1783. A new English translation is that by Alfred Jospe, Jerusalem and other Jewish Writings (New York, 1969). 21 Gegenbetrachtungen u'ber Bonnets Palingenesie, Gesammelte Schriften, (Berlin, 1929-32), vol. VII, p. 89. 22 Gesammelte Schriften, vol. 11, p. 492. 103
NATHAN ROTENSTREICH 23 24 25 26 27 28 29
30 31 32 33
34
35 36 37
38 39
40
41
Die Religion des Geistes, p. 63. See ibid., pp. 48, 49, 52. Cohen, Religion of Reason, pp. 6ff, 22-3. / t o . , pp. 236ff. The chapter is called 'The idea of the Messiah and mankind'. The topic of the chosen people is dealt with on pp. 148-9. Formstecher, Die Religion des Geistes, p. 364. Hirsch, Die Religionsphilosophie der Juden, p. 745. We refer here mainly to the work Paris, Rome, Jerusalem, ou la question religieuse au XIXe siecles, Caiman Levy edition (Paris, 1880), vol. 11, pp. 2306°. On the attitude to Christianity as expressed in modern Jewish philosophy consult Eugene Fleischmann Le christianisme 'mis a nu, (Paris, 1970). See also the present author's 'Die Verschiedenheit der Religionen. Judentum und Christentum in den Systemen Kants, Cohens und Rosenzweigs', in Die Krise des Liberalismus zwischen den Weltkriegen, ed. Rudolf von Thadden (Gottingen, 1978), pp. 1716°. The major source is E. Benamozegh, Morale juive et morale chretienne, new edition (Neuchatel, 1946), pp. 85ff. Mendelssohn, Jerusalem and other Jewish Writings, pp. 61, 71. Ibid., p. 67. The Nineteen Letters on Judaism by Rabbi Samson Raphael Hirsch prepared by Jacob Brener (Ben Uziel) in a new edition based on the translation by Rabbi Dr Bernard Drachman (New York, i960), pp. 67, 117, 122, 1, 8. Steinheim's opus magnum is a book containing four volumes; we shall mention only two of them: Die Offenbarung nach dem Lehrbegriffe der Synagoge, ein Schiboleth (Frankfurt am Main, 1835) and Die Glaubenslehre der Synagoge als exacte Wissenschaft (Leipzig, 1856). See vol. 1, pp. 56°, 706°; vol. 11, pp. 38,17,205,254,285 etc. Steinheim published a book on Mendelssohn: Moses Mendelssohn und seine Schule in ihrer Beziehungfur Aufgabe des neuen Jahrhunderts der alten Zeitrechnung (Hamburg, 1840). Chapter 4 of Cohen's Religion of Reason deals with the notion of revelation. On Jewish Learning, ed. N. N. Glazer (New York, 1965), p. 118. Gershom Scholem, 'Revelation and tradition as religious categories in Judaism', in The Messianic Idea in Judaism and Other Essays on Jewish Spirituality (New York, 1971), pp. 282, 283, 292, 303. Krochmal, Kitvei Renak, pp. 4iff. On the programme of the 'Science of Judaism', see J. Wolff, 'Uber den Begriffeiner Wissenschaft des Judenthums', Zeitschrift fur die Wissenschaft des Judenthums, ed. L. Zunz (1822), 1, no. 1,15ft Abraham Geiger's articles related to the issue are now collected in his Nachgelassene Schriften, ed. L. Geiger (Berlin and London, 1875-8). (Reprinted in Katz (ed.), Jewish Philosophy, Mysticism and the History ofIdeas.) Eduard Gans, a disciple of Hegel's and one of the editors of his collected works as well as a convert to Christianity, formulated some of the leading principles of the enterprise of the 'Science ofJudaism'. His statement has been published under the title Erstlinge der Entjudung, by the late President of the State of Israel Zalman Rubasoff (Shazar), in Der Judische Wille I (1918-19), pp. 3off, io8ff, i93fT. There is now available an English translation of that treatise, 'The Structure of Jewish History', in The Structure of Jewish History and Other Essays, tr., edited and with an Introduction by Ismar Schorch (The Jewish Theological Seminary, New York, 1975), pp. 638*. Graetz's great History of the Jews is also available in an English translation (Philadelphia, 1900). The anthology edited by Arthur Hertzberg contains articles throwing light on the various trends within Zionism: The Zionist Idea, A Historical Analysis and Reader (New York, 1959). The present author's 'Reflections on modern Jewish national thought', The Jerusalem Quarterly, 7 (Spring 1978), 36°, is concerned with types of Jewish national ideology. 104
Jewish Thought Bibliographical
essay
Jewish religious thought in the nineteenth century developed against the background of increasing emancipation, assimilation, anti-semitism and the establishment of non-orthodox forms of Judaism. The above chapter has concentrated on major German-Jewish philosophical interpretations of Judaism. Although the bibliography, too, reflects this emphasis, other developments in Jewish religious thought are also indicated by reference to the main studies available in English. An analysis of the Jewish responses to emancipation and its challenges is provided by J. Katz in his Out of the Ghetto: The Social Background of Jewish emancipation, 1770-1870 (Cambridge, Mass., 1973). A number of recent books investigate the relationship of Jews to their German environment. M. Meyer's The Origins of the Modern Jew: Jewish Identity and European Culture in Germany, 1749-1824 (Detroit, 1967) and J. Reinharz's Fatherland or Promised Land: The Dilemma of the German Jew, 1833-1914 (Ann Arbor, 1975) are both useful and, taken together, cover the entire century. See also D. Bronson's collection on Jews and Germans from 1860-1933: The Problematic Symbiosis (Heidelberg, 1979). For books concentrating on more specifically philosophical aspects of Jewish religious thought in the nineteenth century, see part three ofJ. Guttmann, Philosophies of Judaism: The History of Jewish Philosophy from Biblical Times to Franz Rosenzweig (New York, 1964), as well as my own Jewish Philosophy in Modern Times: From Mendelssohn to Rosenzweig (New York, 1968). Other introductions to the period are provided by S. Bergman, Faith and Reason: An Introduction to Modern Jewish Thought (New York, 1963), and from an orthodox Jewish perspective, S. Berkovits, Major Themes in the Modern Philosophies of Judaism (New York, 1974). The Yearbook ofthe Leo Baeck Institute (1956- ) is also a valuable resource for articles on mainly German-Jewish thinkers in the modern period. See, too, the important reprint series edited by S. T . Katz, Jewish Philosophy, Mysticism and the History of Ideas (New York, 1980). Publication of the critical edition of Moses Mendelssohn's (1729-86) collected works was forcibly stopped in 1938, but has been resumed and is presently under the editorship of A. Altmann (Stuttgart, 1971- ). Mendelssohn's major works dealing with Judaism are now available in English in A. Jospe's collection, Jerusalem and Other Jewish Writings of Moses Mendelssohn (New York, 1969). For a thorough account of Mendelssohn's life and works, see Mendelssohn: A Biographical Study (London, 1973) by A. Altmann, some of whose leading essays on Mendelssohn are reprinted in his Essays in Jewish Intellectual History (London, 1981). For bibliographical guidance, see H. Meyer's standard, but now somewhat dated, Moses Mendelssohn Bibliographic (Berlin, 1965). The collected writings of Nachman Krochmal (1785-1840), the first modern Jewish philosopher of history, have been edited by S. Rawidowicz (Hebrew; Berlin, 1924). There are a number of important studies available in English. An examination of Krochmal's thought and influence is contained in my Tradition and Reality: The Impact of History on Modern Jewish Thought (New York, 1972). On the question of Krochmal's relationship to Hegel, see S. Rawidowicz, 'Was Nachman Krochmal an Hegelian?', in Studies in Jewish Thought, edited by N. N. Glatzer (Philadelphia, 1974). J. Taubes's 'Nachman Krochmal and Modern Historicism', Judaism, 12 (1963), is an attempt to define Krochmal's relationship to that complex movement. S. Schechter's older essay, 'Nachman Krochmal and the Perplexities of the Times' (1896), remains a valuable introduction to his thought, and is now readily available in Studies in Judaism (New York, 1970). Solomon Ludwig Steinheim (1789-1886) elaborated his system of thought in the fourvolume Die Offenbarung nach dem Lehrbegriff der Synagoge (1835-65), which has recently been reprinted in full (New York, 1980). M. J. Schoeps has edited selections from Steinheim's writings, together with a number of essays on aspects of his thought, and published them as Solomon Ludwig Steinheim zum Gedenken (Leiden, 1966). A central theme in Steinheim's
105
NATHAN ROTENSTREICH system is examined by J. Haberman in 'Solomon Ludwig Steinheim's Doctrine of Revelation', Judaism, 17 (1968); see also my own, somewhat earlier essay, 'L. S. Steinheim: Philosopher of Revelation', Judaism, 2 (1953). Steinheim's philosophical debt to Kant and his critique of Kant's conception of God are treated in M. Graupe, 'Steinheim and Kant', Yearbook ofthe Leo Baeck Institute, 5 (i960). Die Religionsphilosophie der Juden (1842; repr. New York, 1980) is the major work of Samuel Hirsch (1815-89). Expositions of Hirsch's thought can be found both in Guttmann and in chapter five of my Jewish Philosophy in Modern Times. Of more specialised interest, see my essay dealing with Hirsch's part in the controversy occasioned by Bruno Bauer's The Jewish Question (1843): 'For and against Emancipation - the Bruno Bauer Controversy', in Publications of the Leo Baeck Institute (1959). Regarding his relationship to Hegel, see E. Fackenheim's 'Samuel Hirsch and Hegel: A Study of Hirsch's Religionsphilosophie derjuden\ in A. Altmann (ed.), Studies in Nineteenth-Century Jewish Intellectual History (Cambridge, Mass., 1964). Another major influence on Hirsch's thinking is highlighted in J. Katz, 'Samuel Hirsch: Rabbi, Philosopher and Freemason', Revue des Etudes Juives Historia Judaic a (1966). A useful introduction to developments in Reform Judaism is provided in Joseph Blau's Modern Varieties of Judaism (New York, 1966). The standard history up to 1930 is D. Philipson, The Reform Movement in Judaism (New York, 1967). See also M. Wiener's study of Abraham Geiger and Liberal Judaism: The Challenge of the Nineteenth Century (Philadelphia, 1962). Two more recent studies dealing with Geiger (1810-74) can be mentioned: M. Meyer, 'Universalism and Jewish Unity in the Thought of Abraham Geiger', in J. Katz (ed.), The Role ofReligion in Modern Jewish History (Cambridge, Mass., 1975), and J. Petuchowski (ed.), New Perspectives on Abraham Geiger (Cincinnati, 1975). The major essays of Heinrich Graetz (1817-91) are available in translation in I. Schorsch (ed.), The Structure of Jewish History and Other Essays (New York, 1975). Another significant essay on 'The Construction of Jewish History' can be found in M. Meyer (ed.), Ideas of Jewish History (New York, 1964). His major work, the six-volume History of the Jews (Philadelphia, 1891-2) was reprinted in 1949. An appraisal of Graetz's contribution to the study of Jewish history has been offered by S. Baron in History and Jewish Historians: Essays and Addresses (Philadelphia, 1964). Samson Raphael Hirsch's (1808-88) basic position on Judaism and the challenges of modernity is given in The Nineteen Letters of Ben Uziel, being a Spiritual Presentation of the Principles of Judaism (1899; repr. New York, 1969). See also Horeb: A Philosophy ofJewish Laws and Observations (London, 1967) and Judaism Eternal: Selected Essaysfrom the Writings ofSamson Raphael Hirsch (2 vols., London, 1956). N. Rosenbloom's major study, Tradition in the Age of Reform: The Religious Philosophy ofS. R. Hirsch (Philadelphia, 1976), contains an extensive bibliography of both primary sources and secondary studies. See also I. Gruenfeld, Three Generations: The Influence of Samson Raphael Hirsch on Jewish Life and Thought (London, 1958), and S. Heilman, 'The Many Faces of Orthodoxy', Modern Judaism, 2 (1982), the latter being an instructive analysis of the principle figures in the development of modern orthodoxy. Religion of Reason from the Sources of Judaism (New York, 1972) is the translation of Hermann Cohen's (1842—1918) major work on the philosophy of Judaism, Religion der Vernunft aus den Quellen desjudentums (1919-29). Cohen's collected Jewish writings, Jiidische Schriften (3 vols.) have never been translated in full, but the German edition has recently been reprinted (New York, 1980). This edition contains Franz Rosenzweig's introductory essay, which makes the claim that Religion der Vernunft represents a radical departure from Cohen's earlier neo-Kantian position on the question of religion. On this issue, see also A. Altmann's essay, 'Hermann Cohens BegrifTder Korrelation', in In zwei Welten: Siegfried Moses, ed. by H. Tramer (Tel Aviv, 1962). A number of the most significant essays fromjudische Schriften have been translated by E. Jospe and published as Reason and Hope: Selectionsfrom the Jewish Writings of Hermann Cohen (New York, 1971). 106
Jewish Thought In Hermann Cohen s Philosophy of Judaism (New York, 1968), J. Melber focuses on the use of classical Jewish sources and the interpretation of Judaism in Religion der Vernunft. E. Berkovits provides another critical account, also from the orthodox Jewish point of view, in Major Themes in the Modern Philosophies of Judaism. Among the many other available analyses of aspects of Cohen's thought, see the following: S. Schwarzschild, 'Germanism and Judaism in Hermann Cohen's Normative Paradigm of the German-Jewish Symbiosis', in Jews and Germans from 1860-igjj, ed. Bronson; H. Liebeschiitz, 'Hermann Cohen and His Historical Background', Yearbook ofthe Leo Baeck Institute, 13 (1968); D. Novak, 'Universal Moral Law in the Theology of Hermann Cohen', Modern Judaism, 1 (1981); E. Fackenheim, 'Hermann Cohen - After Fifty Years', Leo Baeck Institute Memorial Lecture (1969). Finally, the reader's attention is called to W. Kluback, Hermann Cohen: The Challenge ofa Religion of Reason (Ann Arbor, 1983), the most recent analysis of Cohen's understanding of religion. Franz Rosenzweig (1886-1929) wrote the major part of his great work, Der Stern der Erlosung, whilst serving on the Balkan front during World War One; it was completed in 1919 and published in 1921. This difficult work was translated into English by W. Hallo, and appeared in 1971 as The Star of Redemption. Rosenzweig was asked to write a more accessible account of his philosophical-religious position in 1921; he then refused to allow it to be published, but the manuscript survived nonetheless. It was later edited and translated by N. N. Glatzer as Understanding the Sick and the Healthy: A View of World, Man, and God (New York, 1953) - the sick patient being German philosophical idealism. The best short introduction to Rosenzweig's thought is his 1925 essay 'Das neue Denken', a short commentary on The Star of Redemption. The greater part of this essay, together with other selected writings, is included in translation in N. N. Glatzer's volume, Franz Rosenzweig: His Life and Thought (New York, 1953). Additional essays by Rosenzweig are included in N. N. Glatzer, On Jewish Learning (New York, 1955). Rosenzweig's correspondence, including his famous exchange with E. Rosenstock, was published in Berlin in 1935 as Franz Rosenzweig Briefe. The Rosenzweig/Rosenstock correspondence was edited and translated by Rosenstock, who published them as Judaism despite Christianity: Letters on Christianity and Judaism (University of Alabama Press, 1969). Turning to secondary literature, E. Fackenheim offers a recent study of Rosenzweig's philosophy in To Mend the World: Foundations ofFuture Jewish Thought (New York, 1982); the influence of Schelling on Rosenzweig is highlighted in E. Freund, Franz Rosenzweig s Philosophy of Existence: An Analysis of the Star of Redemption (1933; repr. The Hague, 1979); a comparison of two thinkers is made in P. Mendes-Flohr, 'Rosenzweig and Kant: Two Views of Ritual and Religion', in Mystics, Philosophers and Politicians, ed. J. Reinharz and D. Swetschinski (Durham, N.C., 1982); and, for an impression of the contemporary interest, P. Mendes-Flohr (ed.), The Philosophy of Franz Rosenzweig: The Proceedings of the Fourth Jerusalem Philosophical Encounter (forthcoming). Two recent books deserve mention: The Jew in the Modern World: a Documentary History, edited by Paul R. Mendes-Flohr and Jehuda Reinharz (New York, 1980); and Jews and German Philosophy, by Nathan Rotenstreich (New York, 1984).
107
4 The Study of the Old Testament R. E. C L E M E N T S
The nineteenth century witnessed a remarkable transformation in the study of the Old Testament both on account of what was discovered about this literature and even more especially in connection with the context of religion and research in which its writings were investigated. Until the close of the preceding century the writings of the Old Testament had been studied and commented upon without any serious break since the basic form of the canon had been established. Yet this had been undertaken almost exclusively within the framework either of Christianity or of Judaism, and within surprisingly firmly set lines of interpretation. It is now clear in retrospect that these main lines of interpretation had largely established themselves within the first three centuries of the Christian era, those of the Christian Church being outlined and given authority by the New Testament, and those of Judaism finding their classical expression, first in the Mishnah and then in the Talmud. In spite of some significant epochs of debate and dialogue between these two traditions, which had both been built upon the Old Testament, the differing hermeneutical principles and assumptions which each had adopted precluded any very extensive cross-fertilization between them. Only rarely, as in the writings and work of J. J. Reuchlin (1455-1522) and Hugo Grotius (1583-1645), were significant efforts made by major Christian scholars to draw upon the interpretative traditions of Judaism in regard to the Old Testament. Yet by the end of the nineteenth century a new scientific goal of inquiry concerning the origins and religious significance of the Old Testament had emerged, which aimed decisively to break free from these Christian theological and Jewish exegetical patterns. The Old Testament became a major subject of examination for a knowledge of oriental antiquity, of the history and origins of religion generally, and not least for a knowledge of a formative epoch in the history of human culture. The greatest advances, and certainly the best known names, in this new 109
R. E. CLEMENTS
scientific field of inquiry into the Old Testament were Christian. However, although slower to move atfirst,comparable changes also began to transform Jewish attitudes to this sacred literature and its interpretation.1 Such a change, as we have outlined, could scarcely be expected to have taken place solely under the influence of one man, or of one movement, and we rightly expect to find a variety of interests and questionings giving rise to this transformation of a subject. Hence it is necessary to note how most of the questions which came to occupy the greatest concern of nineteenth-century scholars in regard to the Old Testament had first been posed, even though only in broad fashion, by the last quarter of the preceding century. We may, therefore, single out three main areas of thought and inquiry which had such a profound impact upon the study of the Old Testament. These may be broadly classified as philosophical, theological and literary, although in reality it is evident that they shared a great deal of overlap. Certainly the major philosophical influence in this movement was that of the German Enlightenment, and the leading figure from this who pointed his finger so directly and emphatically to the Old Testament was J. G. Herder (17441803). His great work Vom Geist der hebrdischen Poesie, appeared in 1782-3 and an English translation by H. G. Marsh was published in 1833.2 Already before Herder's time the torch of philosophical inquiry into the nature of religion had largely passed from England, where it had burned brightly with the rationalist theories and explanations of the Deists, to Germany. In the many impulses of the Aufkldrung the interest in history: the history of ideas, of institutions, and of religious rites and practices, all came under a new scrutiny.3 In the end the impact of Historism became all too dominant, but the recovery of the historical dimension was felt as a new discovery in the second half of the eighteenth century. That historical movements and changes were subject to cause and effect, and that the human aspect of these changes could be examined and understood came to be applied to the Christian Church, to the origins of religious beliefs and ideas, and to the origin of writings which tradition regarded as divinely inspired. Such convictions had a bearing on the Old Testament, although the most immediate effects of this concern did little to shake Christian orthodoxy when it applied them primarily to the text and translation of the Bible, as took place with such scholars as J. A. Ernesti (1707-81) and J. D. Michaelis (1717-91). However, it intruded more directly into the theological realm with the work of J. S. Semler (1725-91), who has been acclaimed as the 'founder' of the historical-critical movement in the study of theology, and more particularly of the Bible.4 It would no doubt be more just to recognize that such a movement follows almost inevitably from the aims and principles of no
The Study of the Old Testament the Aufkldrung. Semler's major work entitled Abhandlung von freier Untersuchung des Kanons (4 vols., Halle, 1771-5) looked at the Bible, and particularly at its division into two Testaments, with a new critical eye. Having affirmed a distinction between 'religion' and 'theology', he argued that, whereas the latter could be studied through a metaphysical-dogmatic approach, the former required an empirical-critical one. The Bible witnessed primarily to such 'religion' in a wide sense, whereas the orthodox creeds and traditions of the Church, and especially the Lutheran Church, treated it as a book of'theology'. Accordingly Semler recognized the 'Jewish' nature of the Old Testament, leading to a new attempt on his part to make a distinction between the Old and the New Testaments. The 'Jewish' character of the New Testament writings which arose from this was, therefore, to be treated as no more than a necessary historical 'clothing'. More important from the point of view of the subsequent development of Old Testament studies was Semler's effort to show that the sensus literalis, which earlier Protestant theologians had affirmed to be the true sense of Scripture, could only be reached by a historical-critical methodology. For the inspiration of Scripture we must look behind its given text to the re alia of events, personalities and historical institutions by a process of historical scientific inquiry. It is in line with Semler's methodology that J. P. Gabler in his Altdorf inaugural lecture of 1787, argued for a clear and decisive distinction between a dogmatic theology and a biblical one.5 The latter was to be based on the literal sense of Scripture, attained by historical-critical investigation, and was to be scientifically controllable. With Gabler, however, we already move into the third area of questioning, which we have called the literary one, since his teacher was the great orientalist and historian of literature J. G. Eichhorn (1752-1827). Gabler had studied under Eichhorn in Jena, and like him, had come to attach a profound importance to mythology as the natural language and form of intellectual expression which belongs to the childhood of the human race. This goes back to the influence and work of the German classicist C. G. Heyne (1729-1812).6 Gabler edited and re-issued a work by his teacher J. G. Eichhorn on the Primeval History of Genesis 1-11 in which this mythological nature of the stories and language of the biblical book was accepted.7 Such stories, therefore, could not appropriately be used to formulate dogmas, for they must first be understood in their own historical and intellectual context. The book of Genesis was an oriental book, and must be read as such, with all the awe and simplicity which properly belongs to such an ancient writing. J. G. Eichhorn has earned the reputation as the pioneer of the literary-critical approach to the Old Testament. His major in
R. E. CLEMENTS
book Einleitung ins Alte Testament, which was first published in 1780-3 in three volumes,8 laid down the aims and principles upon which a scientific literary and historical criticism of the biblical writings could be built. It is from these years that his friendship with J. G. Herder began, and the influence of the more famous writer becomes increasingly apparent.9 The two figures were in entire agreement upon one basic essential: the Old Testament was a 'human' literature which had been written by men, each of whom had his own world of thought and ideas, his own style and idiom, as well as his own time and place. With Eichhorn, therefore, it became important to consider the sources of the great biblical compositions and the character of the individual writings. Whilst not challenging such traditional assumptions as the Mosaic authorship of the Pentateuch, Eichhorn endeavoured to trace within this great literary work more than one source, and also to note, for example, that a book like that of the prophet Isaiah contained sayings from more than one author and period. Eichhorn did not set out primarily to be a theologian, nor to challenge the orthodox dogmas of the Church, but to awaken a new literary awareness with regard to the Old Testament. It was to be seen as a remarkable collection of writings of quite extraordinary antiquity, which can lead us, when properly interpreted, into an understanding of the beauty and simplicity of mankind's age of childhood. By the end of the eighteenth century, therefore, a whole new range of interests and questions had emerged which found in the Old Testament a collection of writings about which so much remained to be learned. Having set aside the traditional reasons and motives which had prompted Christians and Jews to be preoccupied with its writings, new answers were waiting to be discovered to new questions. The history of the religion in which it had originated and the antecedents and background to this, had all yet to be traced. So also had the situations and interests which had prompted its authors to write, and the needs and problems with which they had sought to deal. Even what it meant to read the Old Testament, not as a nineteenthcentury Christian or Jew, but as an oriental living in a remote antiquity, had all to be pursued as a new venture. There was something akin to a romantic voyage of discovery awaiting the scholar who was prepared to lift aside the layers of interpretative tradition which had been imposed upon the Old Testament by Jews and Christians and to learn to read it as its original authors had intended it to be understood. In retrospect we can undoubtedly see now a measure of over-ambition in this quest, and a degree of undervaluing of the interpretative tradition of which it became so critical. Yet it is difficult also not to sense something of the freshness which 112
The Study of the Old Testament surrounded this rediscovery of the Old Testament. In the intellectual realm it was an adventure very much akin to the startling rediscoveries of more than one ancient library, long ago buried and hidden from the gaze of human eyes, which were to stimulate further interest in antiquity in the nineteenth century and later still in the twentieth. We may follow out our examination of the nineteenth-century research into the Old Testament with afigurewhose name still dominates one side of its research as few others have done. This is that of Wilhelm Gesenius (17861842) who studied in Gottingen under J. G. Eichhorn and the orientalist Th. Ch. Tychsen.10 Gesenius made his own the field of research into Hebrew grammar and lexicography so that all modern grammars and dictionaries of the language are in varying degrees indebted to him. His first important work was a short textbook on the grammar of the Hebrew language, but his two major publications were the Hebrdisch-Deutsche Handworterbuch iiber die Schriften des Alt en Testaments of 1810 and the Ausfurliches grammatisches-historisches Lehrgebdude der hebrdischen Sprache of 1817.
Between the years of 1769 and 1786 J. D. Michaelis had earlier begun to show the problems of establishing, with the aid of available resources, the precise literal meaning of the Hebrew text of the Old Testament by an extensively annotated translation which ran into thirteen volumes. So also during those same years the Oxford scholar Benjamin Kennicott (171883),11 had shown, by a careful collation of the manuscript evidence, that there was almost nothing to be gained towards the exact critical restoration of the true Hebrew text of the Old Testament from within the surviving manuscript tradition. Scholarship had therefore to probe behind this. Building upon the work of these earlier orientalists Gesenius opened up for the scientific study of the Hebrew text of the Old Testament two main areas of research. Out of the recognition that the Hebrew language must be understood historically, Gesenius proceeded to establish the place within the family of Semitic languages which Hebrew enjoyed. His predecessors had already shown the importance of the priority of Arabic within this family, but no one had so fully built up a picture of the comparative grammar of these languages as Gesenius now attempted. Similarly in the field of vocabulary he established the scientific principles by which the range of meanings of a Hebrew word could be established through the resources of comparative lexicography. No longer was the interpreter to be dependent upon the uncertainties of a received tradition, which could only be traced back very imperfectly beyond the work of the great Jewish grammarians and commentators of the Middle Ages. Gesenius sought to replace this by a more critically historical and inductive approach in which the evidence supplied
R. E. CLEMENTS
by cognate languages, could be explored. By plotting the way in which wordforms and word-meanings developed and changed across the whole range of Semitic languages Gesenius set the study of Hebrew within a new context of scholarship. Whilst the main insights on which his work was based had been adumbrated earlier, no one had explored and developed them to the extent and in the way which he now attempted. Most of his teaching life was spent in Halle, and to him came students of the Old Testament, not only from Germany but also from England and the U.S.A. With him the foundation principle which Herder and Eichhorn had laid down for a proper understanding of the Old Testament came nearer to being realized. This was that this literature should be read in its original language so that the pristine beauty and immediacy with which its ideas were matched to words could be grasped. Through its Hebrew, one of the languages of mankind's childhood, as they conceived it, the true impressions of the world, and of man's experience of its reality, could be appreciated. It is not surprising to find that, in his attitude to Church orthodoxy, Gesenius showed the same kind of sharp and incisive criticism which he displayed to the study of ancient Hebrew. Attempts were made therefore by more conservative circles of the German Church to restrict his teaching activities so as to prevent any direct involvement with the teaching of theology. Some were offended at his attitude, but in large measure even the most pious and orthodox recognized that they had much to gain from the new scientific method in the study of Hebrew which he taught. A whole new generation of Hebraists emerged and the Hebrew historical grammar and lexicon which Gesenius produced became foundation textbooks which could in turn facilitate the pursuit of other disciplines pertaining to the Old Testament. Although he failed to complete the project, he also outlined a programme for a scientific work on Hebrdisches Archaeologie in which the same historical-critical approach could be employed in the study of the historical background and realia to which the Old Testament witnessed.12 Of the great number of students who came under the new German influence we may single out two on account of the particular interest which they possess for the further development of Old Testament studies in the nineteenth century. In the years 1826-30 the American Edward Robinson (1794-1863) studied in Germany at Gottingen, Halle and Berlin. From Gesenius he acquired a new critical interest in Hebrew, which he supplemented with a new interest in geography learned from Carl Ritter in Berlin. In the years 1838-9 Robinson, accompanied by the American missionary Eli Smith undertook a journey through Palestine. The result of this survey was a critical-historical geography of the Holy Land in which the 114
The Study of the Old Testament older ecclesiastical traditions concerning sacred sites and the identification of biblical place names were subjected to a new critical scrutiny.13 Others had preceded Robinson in describing travels and adventures in Palestine, and the changing political situation opened up new possibilities for further researches by later travellers and scholars. Nevertheless Robinson's journey marked an important landmark in the study of the Old Testament since it drew attention in a startling fashion to the fact that a whole new subject area existed which had immense potential for the study of this literature. In the very land of the Bible there existed a great wealth of evidence for a knowledge of the people and events of which it told. More than this, however, it was quickly realized that in custom, manner of life, and even in idiom and manner of speech, there was a great deal in the oriental life of Palestine that had changed little over the centuries from the end of the biblical period. Orientalists and biblical scholars discovered that the language and culture of biblical times possessed a new source of illumination and illustration in the land of the Bible itself. Within the second half of the nineteenth century an increasing number of scholars were to follow in Robinson's paths, and the scientific observations he made regarding the identification of biblical sites became a basis for a more critical understanding of biblical history. Soon important research institutes and academic foundations were set up in Palestine through which European scholars could acquire a fuller understanding of the land and people of the Bible. Although it was not until the twentieth century that the pursuit of the archaeology of the Holy Land acquired sufficient depth and range of comparative material to establish securely its own scientific credentials, the work of Robinson marked an important beginning. Certainly by the end of the nineteenth century Christian scholars such as Rudolf Kittel and G. Dalman had come to recognize the greatness of the contribution that the land of the Bible still had to offer towards the realization of another of the aims set out by J. G. Eichhorn. This was that the Old Testament should be read as an oriental book, and that the language and thoughts of the East should be discerned in all its pages. From the Jewish side too, the rediscovery of the land of Israel was to bring about a most profound change of understanding regarding the nature of Judaism. In spite of the most rigorous scientific discipline in his historical and geographical researches, Robinson never abandoned his own conservative and orthodox Christian position in regard to the Bible. This was also true of another student of the new German critical approach to the Old Testament whose work calls for special mention. This was E. B. Pusey (1800-82), an English scholar who spent time in Germany in 1825 in Gottingen and
R. E. CLEMENTS
Berlin.14 Destined to spend much of his long life as the Regius Professor of Hebrew in Oxford (from 1828 till his death in 1882), Pusey had already been warned by his mentors of the dangers of the new German critical movement. Alarmed by all that he learnt and found in Germany Pusey spent his academic teaching years in very different directions from those which were preoccupying the younger German scholars. Within the English Church the critical movement in the study of the Old Testament was, in the following years, sometimes criticized and opposed, but largely ignored save for a few isolated voices. Among these we may place that of H. H. Milman (17911868), whose History of the Jews was first published anonymously in 1829.15 Milman was familiar with the more critical approach to the study of the Old Testament writings advocated by J. G. Eichhorn and the younger scholar W. M. L. de Wette, whom we shall consider more fully shortly. Milman's work is of interest, however, because of its reflection of fresh English religious thought in respect of the study of the Old Testament. Only modestly critical in its approach to the problems of the historicity of the biblical narratives, Milman's work was important on account of its relative popularity, and its treatment of the biblical history as a human experience. More significantly too it sought to carry over to the biblical literature an approach to the study of history which acquired great popularity in England when applied to the classical history of Greece and Rome.16 Whereas such men as Thomas Arnold and J. Connop Thirl wall had been willing to apply a critical methodology to the study of classical history, as learnt from B. G. Niebuhr, they had studiously avoided treating the Old Testament in the same way. Milman, however, sought to do so, and to find in the history of the Jews in biblical times profound lessons about the rise and fall of nations and the education of the human race. In this way it has been rightly compared with the work of A. P. Stanley.17 Whilst falling far short of the rigorous critical scrutiny that German scholarship was applying to the Old Testament during the first half of the nineteenth century it prepared the ground in England for the reception of this by showing that such concerns were not necessarily negative or unedifying. On the contrary Milman was concerned to combine his critical historical approach with a profoundly edifying objective. It was in Germany, however, that the real advances in a critical understanding of the Old Testament continued to make great strides. Alongside the name of Wilhelm Gesenius one other stands out in the very forefront of further research at this time. W. M. L. de Wette was born in 1780 in Ulla near Weimar, and studied in Jena with J. J. Griesbach, a student of J. J. Semler's, and also for a period under J. P. Gabler.18 From them de Wette learnt the aims and methods of the new critical approach to the Bible 116
The Study of the Old Testament which he subsequently pursued with extraordinary skill and vigour. His dissertation of 1805 on the origin of the book of Deuteronomy provided a kind of fixed datum point from which scholarship could thereafter take its bearings. Whereas Eichhorn had pointed to the presence in the Pentateuch of more than one literary source, as had J. Astruc and R. Simon much earlier still, this had not been coupled by him with any serious questioning of the Mosaic authorship of the Pentateuch. Now de Wette produced powerful arguments to show that the book of Deuteronomy must be related closely and directly to the book discovered in the temple of Jerusalem in Josiah's reign in 621 B.C.19 Furthermore it was evident that it had not been used or circulated before this time, since the practice of Israel's religion conflicted with some of its basic demands. As a source of the Pentateuch therefore it cannot be shown to have existed before the seventh century B.C., and its origin from Moses was to be ruled out. De Wette planned to follow up this initial study of Deuteronomy with a more wide-ranging critique of the problem of the sources of the Pentateuch. However he was anticipated in this by a study by J. S. Vater,20 and turned to a related issue, that of the credibility of the picture of early Israelite religion given in 1 and 11 Chronicles.21 In this he demonstrated decisively the unhistorical character of the portrayal of the religious institutions and cultus of the early monarchic age given by these two books. By doing this he removed out of the way one of the strong buttresses by which the traditional view of the Mosaic authorship of the Pentateuch had been supported. The extensive cultic rules and legislation contained in this great compendium could not be shown to have been operative in the earlier pre-exilic period. It is only fair to point out that the recognition that the Pentateuch had been composed from more than one 'source', began to be questioned more seriously than hitherto by a number of scholars at the beginning of the nineteenth century. Various hypotheses were canvassed to explain the obvious variety of materials contained within it. Whether a basic document had been built up by a process of supplementation, or whether a miscellany of fragments had been put together, or whether a series of documents had been woven into a unity all appeared to be possible explanations. The problem, however, was not just a literary one, but an issue that depended on the way in which the religion could actually be shown to have developed historically. It is here that we encounter one of the peculiarly perplexing features of the Old Testament that required more than half a century of posing and testing of hypotheses before a satisfactory solution became established. There was an in-built element of circularity in tracing the development of Israel's religion, since the major source, and virtually the 117
R. E. CLEMENTS
only effective one, was provided by the writings of the Old Testament. Yet these did not preserve any record, or decisive evidence, of the sequence and chronology of their own composition. Most especially was this true of the Pentateuch, where the only hope of achieving such a literary chronology was by establishing a convincing outline of the way in which the religion had moved from less elaborate to more elaborate cultic forms, and had developed in particular directions. It is in this regard that G. W. F. Hegel's philosophy of history is of direct relevance to the way in which Old Testament study progressed. In de Wette's writings there is no overall attempt to apply Hegelian theories and terminology directly to the Old Testament, but one of his contemporaries shared no such reluctance. This is Wilhelm Vatke (1806-82), whose major work, published in 1835, the year of Strauss's critical Life of Jesus, was entitled Die biblische Theologie Bd. I.22 This is a work full of Hegelian terminology and concepts which sought to present a picture of the historical development of Israel's religion in accordance with Hegel's philosophy of spirit. Since Vatke was a friend of D. F. Strauss and became closely associated with F. C. Baur and the Tubingen school, this is not surprising. Vatke sought to demonstrate that, according to the Old Testament, God was 'pure subjectivity' who contained within himself the distinction between the general and the particular. Thus cultus was treated by Vatke purely as a system of symbols, but one point in regard to this gave to Vatke's writing a lasting significance. He argued that the Israelite system of cultus had developed only late in the history of the Old Testament period. His Hegelian tracing of three stages of the development of Israel's religion had led him, by a somewhat insecure route, to a position which became one of the major tenets of criticism as the nineteenth century progressed. If we return to de Wette, who was incomparably the greater scholar and researcher, we find that he also had developed quite fresh and significant ideas about the way in which Israel's religion had developed.23 His introduction to the literature of the Old Testament, followed by an introduction to the New Testament writings and then by an introduction to the Bible as a whole, set him in the very forefront of nineteenth-century literary criticism of the Bible.24 With him we find not only new, and carefully worked out, hypotheses about the date of origin of the various parts of the Bible, but a careful delineation of the differing types, or genres, of literature. Hence it is with him that the first main insights were set out which have led subsequently to the form-criticism and redaction-criticism of the twentieth century. In particular de Wette applied this approach to the Psalter, noting the various types of psalm, and especially the preponderance of psalms of 118
The Study of the Old Testament misfortune (laments), and noting the situations which they reflected. Hence almost two millennia of historicising and 'autobiographical' attempts at psalm interpretation were set aside in a more fruitful line of investigation. De Wette shared with his teacher J. P. Gabler, and with such close contemporary writers as G. L. Bauer (1755-1806) and J. S. Vater (17711826), the recognition that much that was preserved in the Old Testament should be classed as myth. This was, of course, 'myth' understood in accordance with the very positive estimate of its cultural and religious value as understood by the mythological school emanating from C. G. Heyne. De Wette, however, was opposed to the attempt to strip away the mythological clothing of the Old Testament narratives in order to get at the underlying kernel of historical events and personalities. To do this was effectively to destroy an essential part of the nature of the biblical material, and to this extent to empty it of its true meaning and significance. It is for this reason that de Wette was deeply sceptical about the possibility and value of attempting to write a critical history of Israel, as G. L. Bauer had done. This would simply lead us away from understanding the Bible, not bring us closer to it. Whilst de Wette's work has remained best known and remembered for his literary theories and introductions to biblical literature, it is clear that of all the major Old Testament scholars of the nineteenth century he was most of all at heart a theologian. At one time a colleague of F. D. Schleiermacher in Berlin, until his dismissal from there following a political scandal, de Wette developed far-reaching theories about the nature of revealed truth in the Bible. In his Biblische Dogmatik he set out a picture of the development of religious ideas in the Old Testament which was subsequently to exercise a continuing influence. The basic Old Testament idea of God was that of one holy will. This came to full maturity and conscious expression only slowly, but supremely through the teaching of the prophets. Israel as a chosen nation and a state represented the Kingdom of God on earth because it was a particular example which symbolically expressed the truth about God's relationship to all mankind. Israel was, therefore, a particular example of a universal truth, which Judaism had misunderstood by its adherence to a belief in the particularism of its own divine election. Here de Wette saw a decline in the later, post-exilic, period of Israel's development in the direction of this particularism, so that it could be compared unfavourably with the period of development before the exile. This was to be a continuing theme in much nineteenth-century critical study of the Old Testament which tended increasingly to sever a reconstruction of the history and ideas that lay behind these writings from the teachings of Judaism. Increasingly 119
R. E. CLEMENTS
the major achievements of Old Testament religion were contrasted with Judaism, so that the latter could be viewed as a kind of illegitimate child of the Old Testament. That there were clear and unmistakeable connections between Judaism and the Old Testament was fully conceded, but these latter were ascribed to the later, declining, era of Old Testament revelation.25 It is appropriate to mention at this point the far-reaching changes in Jewish life and thought which were taking place at the beginning of the nineteenth century. With the progressive emancipation of many Jews in western Europe in the wake of the Napoleonic Empire, a new challenge presented itself to Judaism. This was the threat of assimilation and the jeopardising of a distinctive Jewish identity which this threatened to carry with it. However, already in the wake of the German Enlightenment, some significant intellectual challenges had manifested themselves in German Jewry which impinged directly upon the study and interpretation of the Hebrew Bible. A century earlier the Dutch Jewish philosopher B. Spinoza (1632-77) had raised certain critical issues regarding the authorship of certain of the biblical books. More significant and more influential, however, was the translation of the Pentateuch into German, albeit initially with the use of Hebrew letters, by Moses Mendelssohn (1729-86). This began to appear with the book of Genesis in 1780, and, in spite of an inevitable measure of controversy surrounding its publication, it served to link the study and interpretation of the Bible directly with the philosophical and literary impact of the Enlightenment. Mendelssohn was himself a friend and contemporary of G. E. Lessing, and so, by the turn of the century, the interest and resources were current within Judaism for a fresh approach to the Bible, and for a re-appraisal of the continuing relationship between this literature and the life of Judaism. These new intellectual currents crystallized in the movement for Wissenschaft - the scientific study of Judaism through a critical approach to its sources. Whilst the most popular and influential feature to this came to manifest itself in a critical study ofJewish history, and in a new philosophical understanding of the essence of Judaism, it also brought about an involvement of Jewish scholarship in a critical study of the Hebrew Bible which employed techniques which were in all respects comparable to those which were beginning to have such a powerful effect upon the Christian understanding of the New Testament. From the Jewish side three figures may be particularly mentioned: the philosopher N. Krochmal (1785-1840), who had been profoundly influenced by the idealistic philosophies of Schelling and Hegel, and the Jewish historians L. Zunz (1794-1886) and A. Geiger (1810-74). Although the movement may be considered more fully 120
The Study of the Old Testament later in connection with the development of the attempt to present a fully developed and critical history of Judaism, it deserves some attention at this point. L. Zunz studied in Berlin during the years 1815-19, where his teacher in biblical studies was de Wette. Coupled with the influence of the classical historian F. A. Wolf, these two scholars aroused in Zunz a fresh critical approach to the culture and traditions of Judaism. The beginnings of the Wissenschaft movement may therefore be traced to the founding in 1819, of the Verein fur die Cultur und Wissenschaft der Juden. From the religious perspective there grew out of this a desire for a 'Reformed' Judaism, which gained strength through such men as A. Geiger who was an influential rabbi, and the founding of rabbinic academies, of which special note should be taken of that in Breslau. Whilst the nineteenth century was to see only very limited progress towards the discovery of a new common ground between Jews and Christians through the critical study of the Old Testament, the foundations for such began to be laid. Eventually Christian scholarship was able to shake off some of its negative assumptions about the value of Judaism for the study of the biblical tradition, and to recognize more deeply the importance of the study of early Jewish texts and sources for an understanding of the New Testament. When this took place the existence of the critical-historical movement within Judaism, with its resources of a rich understanding of the life and thought of Judaism in the period between the two biblical Testaments, was to provide a major contribution. What is especially significant about the work of such scholars as J. G. Eichhorn, W. Gesenius and W. M. L. de Wette, when seen in retrospect, is that they posed questions about the nature of the Old Testament literature which had not previously been asked. By doing so they established goals for scholarship to pursue which ranged far beyond their own individual accomplishments, or those of a few influential scholars. In this way they produced pupils and colleagues who could continue to explore the methods which they had learnt, and could thus move further in the direction of achieving a broad goal. As Eichhorn would have understood it, this was to read the Old Testament as its authors intended it to be read, and to gain from it the ideas and impressions which had moulded their own religious life. However, with the historical-critical approach which had been inaugurated so effectively by J. S. Semler and his pupils, a more complex goal had also been discerned. This resulted from the shift away from the conviction that the nature of divine revelation could be uncovered by the study of the preserved canonical text, and a concern to probe behind this text to the men, events and ideas which formed its subject-matter. It was believed that it was at this deeper level, which lay partly hidden behind the preserved text, that 121
R. E. CLEMENTS
God had chosen to reveal himself to his ancient people. Since a considerable part of the Old Testament literature is presented in the form of historical narrative it was natural that considerable interest should attach to the actual course of events which lay behind its narrative records. It was virtually inevitable therefore, given the immense stimulus towards the critical reconstruction of history that had been engendered by the Aufklarung, that this same historical approach should be directed towards the Old Testament. We have already pointed out de Wette's own critical assessment of the wisdom and possibility of achieving this. Yet in the sphere of Greek and Roman history an enormously rich, and potentially fruitful, area had been established which set such classical history in the very forefront of the new learning at the beginning of the nineteenth century. We may turn now to consider one of the most remarkable and influential of the many figures who devoted their labours to the study of the Old Testament in the nineteenth century. This was Heinrich Ewald (1803-75), the son of a Gottingen weaver whosefieryand angular personality left a great mark on German oriental and biblical studies.26 To a less extent he made an impact in the political realm, becoming afirmopponent of Prussian aims and dominance at the time of the growth of the union of German states. Eventually his vigorously canvassed liberal views, his intemperate criticism of his opponents, both theological and political, and his deep sense of having been unjustly treated by those in higher authority, brought him into an undeserved isolation. Yet he was capable of evoking immense respect and admiration among his students and of setting them along academic paths which he himself could no longer tread. He had himself studied in Gottingen in the later years of J. G. Eichhorn's days there, and learnt from him a deep critical devotion to the study of oriental literature and the Old Testament. His early writings were primarily in the field of language study, and in particular his Hebrew Grammar, designed for the use of students, became a standard textbook which ran through many editions. Almost everything that he wrote he dealt with at considerable length, in several volumes, so that his studies of the poetical books of the old Testament, and of the Prophets, take the form of extensively annotated translations, rather than being more limited critiques of particular problems. The methodology that he employed was throughout that which he had learnt from Eichhorn, with extensive attention to grammatical and philological problems of interpretation. In his regard for the importance of the poetic and prophetic literature of the Old Testament there is discernible the legacy of J. G. Herder, and the increasing desire to treat these as human writings, full of spiritual insight, rather than as collections of texts to be used as theological proofs. 122
The Study of the Old Testament Ewald's first brush with political authority came with his dismissal from his chair in Gottingen in 1837, when the accession of Ernestus Augustus, George Ill's fifth son and the Duke of Cumberland, led to a revoking of the liberal constitution of the Province of Hanover. Along with six other leading younger and liberal minded professors he was dismissed from the university leaving it to a brief period of academic retrenchment and isolation. In his later political activities he became increasingly intemperate and outspoken in manner and outlook. From Gottingen he went to Tubingen, where the theology faculty had set itself in the very forefront of radical and critical biblical studies, through the presence there of F. C. Baur (1792-1860).27 However, Ewald quickly crossed swords with Baur, and the whole Tubingen school which looked to his leadership, so that his own brand of critical and progressive thought dissociated itself sharply and totally from the Hegelianism of Baur. In fact it is hard to categorize Ewald's views as either creating, or following, any one particular school of thought. They were idiosyncratic and eclectic, so that in many questions he adopted moderate, and even conservative positions in regard to matters of literary and historical interpretation in the Old Testament. Moreover he regarded himself as a theologian, and as competent to pronounce on a wide range of theological issues. His most notable students came to adopt far more critical positions than he himself had held. Yet at the same time he was able to attract to Gottingen students from Germany, Britain and America, who looked to him as a relatively conservative teacher commanding immense respect, who had held back from the conclusions of the more radical critics which were quickly gaining currency. Before his death there had emerged in Germany itself through F. C. Baur, in France at the younger University of Strasbourg through E. Reuss, and in Holland at the University of Leiden through A. Kuenen, teachers whose views about the Old Testament and its religious significance brought them into the very forefront of rationalist and highly critical theological discussion. By the time of his death in 1875, therefore, Ewald had come to be regarded as a rather isolated figure, conservative in his critical views, and better known as an orientalist than as a fundamental exponent of contemporary biblical science. Yet, for all this extraordinary variety and colour in Ewald's life and work, one of his books stands out as a piece of historical and theological writing which occupies a position of considerable distinction among nineteenthcentury Old Testament studies. This was his Geschichte des Volkes Israel, which extended tofivevolumes (seven in the fourth edition, and eight in the English translation), and which ran through several editions.28 In a number of ways it marks the full triumphant acceptance of the historical approach, 123
R. E. CLEMENTS
which had been so strongly stimulated by the German Enlightenment, and it set the literary task of writing 'The History of Israel' in the very forefront of scientific biblical study. With the great international popularity of this work, the discipline of writing such a history became a fully accepted part of the modern critical approach to the Bible. Even more than this, it is not excessive to claim that, as Ewald conceived the task, the writing of such a history was to be the crowning theological achievement of the new critical approach to the Old Testament. Not only were literary and historical aims to be served by such an undertaking, but a profoundly religious and theological one. This was a striking reversal of the attitude to such a goal adopted by de Wette, but it fully accorded with the historical aims of the Aufkldrung. It marked the deep intrusion into the sphere of Old Testament studies of the outlook of Historismus, which was to characterise so much of the theological, philosophical and literary aims of the second half of the nineteenth century.29 Many as are the imperfections to be seen in retrospect in Ewald's work, it set a clear goal, it established clear reasons why this goal should be sought after, and it outlined, even though rather impressionistically and sketchily, the questions that had to be resolved before this task could be satisfactorily undertaken. It is no longer possible to read Ewald's history without recognizing in it the work which so caught the imagination and interest of the greatest of his pupils - Julius Wellhausen. The reasons why the writing of a history of Israel was to be regarded as a task which belonged in the very forefront of all critical biblical science are best set out in Ewald's own words: 'The history of this ancient people is in reality the history of the growth of true religion, rising through all stages to perfection, pressing on through all conflicts to the highest victory, and finally revealing itself in full glory and power, in order to spread irresistibly from this centre, never again to be lost, but to become the eternal possession and blessing of all nations.'30 Two things of far-reaching theological import are regarded as virtually axiomatic in Ewald's approach, and colour its execution as a whole. The first is that it is in the history itself, as critically reconstructed by the modern historian, that the 'events and ideas' which form the basis of the revelation of the 'true religion', are to be brought into clearer light. The historical narratives of the Old Testament are simply 'tradition' (German Sage)y which narrate the story of the revelation in the language, idiom and outlook of the ancient time. These must be treated critically and sympathetically, but the historian's task is to probe behind them to bring to light the underlying events and ideas which constitute the revelation itself. Hence the historian can perform a theological task by enabling us to get closer to the very basis of the divine revealing activity.31 In 124
The Study of the Old Testament such language we can recognize the legacy of the earlier distinction made by J. S. Semler between Wortinspiration and Realinspiration. It marked a step further along the way of probing beyond the canonical form of the Old Testament, and its preserved textual and literary structure, to find an anterior basis in which its religious worth would be more clearly evident. For Ewald therefore, the kind of problem which had led de Wette to challenge the inevitably reductionist and rationalist attempts of G. L. Baur to set out a critical history of Israel, was swept aside.32 Through his achievement the modern historian would be able to attain a truly religious goal, by bringing into the clear light of the nineteenth century the religious import of the spiritual gifts and attainments of the ancient people of Israel. A second point in Ewald's approach has a comparable theological importance, and again must be regarded as an assumption, rather than a clearly demonstrated historical necessity. This is the claim that the history of the Old Testament period of Israel's existence 'came to its close with Christ'.33 In this way Ewald was able to write a history which effectively covered the entire biblical period of both the Old and New Testaments and to see in the latter period the natural historical goal of the former. The birth of Jesus, the Messiah, in Ewald's understanding, marked the point at which the national and particularist character of the earlier history of Israel passed into universal history. By this type of distinction between a 'national' and a 'universal' history, once again taking up a fundamental interest of the Aufklarung, Ewald was able to transform the traditional understanding of the relationship of the unity between the two biblical Testaments into a historical formula. With the New Testament the revelation to ancient Israel became 'the eternal possession and blessing of all nations'. There could be no point therefore in continuing the history of Judaism beyond this point, except as evidence of the fate of those who had turned their faces against the light. It is not difficult to trace in this a new form of Christian 'Messianism' through which Ewald intruded a theological dimension into the task of writing the history of Israel. The difference from the older prophetic Messianism which had survived with little challenge in Christian tradition until the eighteenth century was that the proofs were to be those of historical science, rather than the utterances of prophets. We may note two other points about Ewald's approach which reflect upon persistent questions and interests of nineteenth-century biblical scholarship. The first is that he took it for granted that the national dimension of Israel's existence in the central - 'Israelite' - period of Old Testament history was a necessary aspect of both tradition and divine revelation. In this we find the biblical development of the notion of national history, inherited 125
R. E. CLEMENTS
from the philosophy of the Enlightenment, and taken to be an essential part of Old Testament tradition. The bond between nation, tradition and culture was taken to be complete and axiomatic, until the advent of 'universal history'. We may cite Ewald's own words for the assumed perspective: 'When therefore, in the remote past, nation was very sharply separated from nation, each had its peculiar traditions . . ,'34 This link between nation and tradition, and the contrast between a 'national' and a 'universal' history was to provide the new scientific approach to the history of Israel with its basic interpretative standpoints. It justified a Christian, rather than a Jewish, interpretation of that history, and it also allowed many of the Romantic and Hegelian concepts of national history to intrude themselves into biblical scholarship. We have already pointed to H. H. Milman's earlier essay in this direction. Before leaving consideration of Ewald's work it is appropriate to mention the work of two scholars who sought to develop the older Christian Messianic ideas about the Old Testament in very different directions. The first must be considered largely in a negative fashion as a reaction against the new criticism of the Old Testament. This was E. W. von Hengstenberg (1802-69) whose major work Christologie des Alten Testaments endeavoured to reaffirm the traditional Messianic view of that literature.35 In retrospect it may be felt that von Hengstenberg's powerful ecclesiastical and political influence more deeply affected the attitudes of the Christian Church towards the new Old Testament science, than did his own writings. More original and constructive was the theological work of J. C. K. von Hofmann (181077), whose great work Weissagung und Erfullung attempted a synthesis of fresh theological insight with a critical approach to the Bible.36 In it may be discerned elements drawn from Hegelian philosophy, from traditional Christian Messianism, and much from the new critical approach to history as a fundamental mode of theological expression. In very many ways von Hofmann's approach was idiosyncratic and expressive of no one school or philosophy. Yet it was to become remarkably influential and to establish within the circle of biblical scholarship a new concept: that of Heilsgeschichte - a 'History of Salvation'.37 By means of this concept the extensive range of historical writings in the Old Testament could be read as theological documents, and history and theology brought into a new synthesis. This was certainly something very different from the exact scientific history which had been the goal sought after by Ewald, in the manner of the developing Historismus, but it was eventually to acquire a new interest and prestige once the limitations of the more rigidly historicist approach began to reveal themselves. 126
The Study of the Old Testament We may now turn to consider the work of one who was incomparably the greatest of the nineteenth-century Old Testament scholars - Julius Wellhausen - whose name came to be given to the new critical approach to the study of the Old Testament in the form of 'Wellhausenism'.38 Before doing this, however, it is of value to reflect upon the work of other scholars who had already before him begun to ask more searching questions and to arrive at more radical solutions than either de Wette or Ewald had done. We have already mentioned Wilhelm Vatke, who had in 1835, published a markedly Hegelian interpretation of the Old Testament in which the ceremonial and cultic legislation contained in the Pentateuch had been ascribed to a late, post-exilic, period. The conception of a grand cultic theocracy, which the extant form of the Pentateuch affirms as the distinctive introduction and creation of Moses, was seen instead to be an end-stage of a long development. Vatke's work must be judged as a piece of philosophicaltheological writing, rather than as a fresh effort at careful literary-critical and historical analysis of the text of the Old Testament. Others, however, were working along more detailed literary-critical lines to resolve some of the outstanding problems of the date and structure of the Pentateuch. We may single out the work of two significant scholars, neither of them German, where up till this time the critical approach to the Old Testament had been almost exclusively undertaken. The first, the Frenchman Eduard Reuss (1804-91), taught in the new University of Strasbourg, and already as early as 1833, had argued in public lectures that the cultic legislation of the Old Testament, which was at that time largely ascribed to one major literary strand of the Pentateuch, came at the very end of the growth of this great literary corpus. Reuss himself did not set out such a view in writing until much later,39 by which time one of his own pupils, K. H. Graf, as well as other scholars elsewhere, had already overtaken his position.40 Yet Reuss and his work were of the greatest importance, not only for the broad critical range of his own teaching, but also because he produced pupils who were eager to inquire into the new learning about the Bible, and who were ready to learn from Germany when the time was ripe. They were to contribute extensively to the development of critical biblical scholarship in France, even though the prevailing political and ecclesiastical attitudes were strongly opposed to the acceptance of such criticism until the end of the nineteenth century.41 One of the noteworthy consequences of this was the way in which the critical approach to the Old Testament came to associate itself very closely with the development of the younger sciences of sociology and anthropology in France. In Holland, however, a great change in the prevailing ecclesiastical 127
R. E. CLEMENTS
attitudes to the study of the Bible and of theology emerged much earlier than was the case in France, and gave opportunity for the talents of a most outstanding scholar in the person of Abraham Kuenen (1828-91).42 Kuenen came to the University of Leiden in 1846, where the older, highly conservative, positions in theology had come to be challenged and questioned by Dutch modernism. Kuenen gave himself wholeheartedly to this modern approach to the study of the Bible, and quickly learnt from German scholars the aims and methods of the new biblical science. In 1861, he published a work of introduction to the Old Testament in which he adopted a more critical approach to its problems than had hitherto prevailed in Holland.43 He took his inspiration regarding method from Germany and from the earlier Dutch scholar and theologian Hugo Grotius. In this work he went further than Ewald had gone in the direction of ascribing much of the legislation contained in the Pentateuch to a late post-exilic period. Adopting a strongly rationalist and anti-supernatural stance on critical issues, Kuenen took it as axiomatic that how revelation had occurred in ancient Israel could not be explained by resort to theories of supernatural divine intervention. Later, in the years 1869-70, he set forth in a work on the religion of Israel the view that all the cultic legislation of the Pentateuch (or more precisely the Hexateuch, which had now become the primary unit of literary study) was to be ascribed to the post-exilic age.44 Thus by 1870, Kuenen had arrived at a position which represented, with only minor modifications, the classical expression of what soon came to be called the Graf-Wellhausen position. In many ways, therefore, we can see that, by the time of the outbreak of the Franco-Prussian war, the questionings and hypotheses about the structure and religious origin of the Pentateuch were ripe for maturity. The time was opportune for a major new resolution of the difficulties which had beset scholars for almost seventy years since de Wette had established a base line with his ascription of the book of Deuteronomy to the time of Josiah's reform in the seventh century B.C. Julius Wellhausen was born in Hamelin in 1844, as the son of a German pastor. He went to Gottingen to study theology with a view to an ecclesiastical career, but quickly became enamoured with the new German studies, which the brothers Grimm had done much to encourage. At one time thinking of abandoning the study of theology Wellhausen came under the powerful influence of Heinrich Ewald, whose volumes on the history of Israel fascinated him and set him his life's task. Thus Wellhausen was first and foremost a historian, well worthy of comparison with the giantfiguresof the Historismus movement in L. von Ranke, T. Mommsen and the earlier B. G. Niebuhr. After publishing a series of major new explanations of the date, 128
The Study of the Old Testament origin and literary structure of the Hexateuch,45 he produced in 1878 his most epoch-making work. Originally entitled Geschichte Israels /, and intended as the first of a two-volume work, it was reprinted in 1883, as Prolegomena zur Geschichte Israels.46 It marked both the beginning of a new
era of Old Testament scholarship, as well as the end of an earlier one, for in it Wellhausen set out a major reconstruction of the development of the religious institutions of ancient Israel. It was not, therefore, primarily a literary-critical work, although it was based upon his earlier studies of the Hexateuchal problem. Rather it set out a kind of definitive reconstruction, showing with great clarity and attention to detail the way in which the literary structure of the Pentateuch, and the ages of its different strata, reflected the actual course of Israel's historical development. It affirmed to the point of carrying conviction the view that the great mass of cultic legislation in the Pentateuch was of a late post-exilic origin, and that the earlier period of Israel under the monarchy had displayed a much freer type of piety and religious life which knew nothing of the 'Law' in the sense that that term had come to acquire for later Judaism. This became the hingepoint of what came to be called the Graf-Wellhausen hypothesis, and constituted the centrepiece of what was rather misleadingly dubbed 'Wellhausenism'. The details of the argument, and the validity or otherwise of the great wealth of careful analysis by which Wellhausen sought to substantiate the position have been so fully and frequently noted since that it is superfluous to reiterate them here.47 Within a decade, the position which had earlier been adumbrated by Vatke and Reuss, and which had never been wholly set aside, swept all opposition before it in Germany. In Holland, through the work of A. Kuenen, in Britain through the work of such men as W. Robertson Smith and S. R. Driver, and eventually in France, Sweden and America it came to be adopted as the orthodox critical explanation for the growth and origin of the Pentateuch. By the turn of the century the solution of the Pentateuch problem had come to be celebrated as the best known, if not necessarily the most important, of all the achievements of nineteenthcentury Old Testament criticism. This was no doubt to over-inflate the prominence of one particular question, important as it was in the course of pursuing the new historical-critical approach to the origin of that literature. In relation to the underlying patterns of religious thought and conviction which this particular solution was intended to advance we may note a more deeply embedded feature of Wellhausen's approach to the problems of Israel's religious history. The course of Wellhausen's labours shows a remarkable consistency of aim and methodology, for, from the field of examining the course of 129
R. E. CLEMENTS
Israelite-Jewish religious history, he proceeded to a major new study of the origins of Islam in which he also achieved great success, though never quite matching that which belonged to his first endeavours. He also pursued with the same critical acumen the early history of the Christian faith, and especially its origins as revealed in the Synoptic Gospels of the New Testament. Here his achievements were less remarkable, which is hardly surprising in view of the immense labours that others had expended in this field since the publication of D. F. Strauss's Life of Jesus in 1835. The areas studied by Wellhausen show fully enough his claim to be judged as a historian, rather than as a theologian or biblical critic, and the way in which he endeavoured to use the new critical approach to history as a means of illuminating the problems of religious origins. In many features of their character and evaluations such histories possessed a theological quality, for they sought to bring to light underlying truths about the relationships between religion, morality and culture. They set the form of a critical work of historical reconstruction in the very centre of theological writing, just as earlier the age of the Reformation had used the commentary format for this purpose. What is singularly important about Wellhausen's approach to Old Testament history is the way in which he was able to use assumptions and ideas drawn from the Romantic legacy of the Enlightenment to explain the course of Israel's history. In particular it enabled him to stress the importance of the national dimension of Israel's existence in the period of its creative development.48 The post-exilic period was seen to mark the loss of this national reality and aspiration, and its substitution by a concept of a legalistically controlled theocracy. It was this dimension of'the Law' which characterized Judaism, and which separated Judaism from its creative roots in ancient Israel. Hence Wellhausen found no difficulty in asserting that the early Christian Church was the true spiritual heir of the Old Testament, and that Judaism was a product of a decline and aberration from the true genius of Israel.49 Historical necessity had determined that the early Church should at first have taken the form of an eclectic community, as a substitute for the nation which was wanting. Only after it had overcome the challenge of the heathen world power could it repossess its national heritage and express itself through a national spirit and will. Judaism, however, was to be judged as 'an irregular product of history'. Here we encounter one of the features which increasingly beset the nineteenth-century Christian approach to the study of the Old Testament. On the one hand there remained the strong desire to claim this literature for the Christian Church by adopting a view of Israelite history imbued with many features of earlier Messianic doctrine.50 130
The Study of the Old Testament On the other there was a growing consciousness that the Old Testament was also a Jewish literature. The tension between the two encouraged the view that its central teachings and ideas should be separated from Judaism with its notion of'the Law'. This latter was no longer to be seen as the presupposition of Israel's religious development, as the extant canonical form of its writings affirmed, but as an aberration. In line with this 'Messianic' view of Israelite history there went a deep consciousness of the theological significance of the contrast between universalism and particularism for which the new critical perspective was used to strengthen a historical justification. There were clearly limitations of outlook and perspective to be found in Wellhausen's reconstruction of Israel's history, unpalatable also as some of his conclusions were from a religious and theological point of view. Yet it was an outstanding achievement, a triumph for the historical movement in biblical studies, and an influential expression of a new approach to the Bible which completely circumvented the older distinctions between 'biblical' and 'dogmatic' theology. It made the discipline of studying the history of Israel a foundation exercise in biblical research. Its popularity, and the widespread support which it aroused abroad as well as in Germany, sufficiently explain its importance to the religious thinking of the nineteenth century. It made the critical approach to history a fresh weapon in the armoury of theological apologetic, and a justification for its claim to be scientific. Its validity has frequently been challenged in historical retrospect, as too dependent on a Hegelian philosophy of history, as consciously anti-semitic, or even as deliberately anti-theological. All such criticisms certainly go too far, and do little to undermine the worth of Wellhausen's achievement. Yet there is evidently within it a broad basis of assumption which cannot pass unremarked. It clearly owed much to the contemporary impact of HistorismuSy with its belief that fundamental aspects of culture and spiritual ethos could quite readily be brought to light by historical research. It assumed that such spirituality and cultural attainment were naturally to be found closely bound to nationality and race, and it openly used the idea of universal history in defence of the traditional Christian claim that the New Testament naturally superseded the Old. In this respect it bears interesting comparison with the work of the Jewish historian Heinrich Graetz (181791).51 Graetz was an early product of the Wissenschaft movement in Judaism, of which he remained both a critic and an heir. Born in Xions, Posen, he secured a Ph.D. in Jena, taught for a period in the Jewish Theological Seminary in Breslau, and produced the most influential of all the writings of the nineteenth-century Science ofJudaism. This was an extensive Geschichte
R. E. CLEMENTS
derjuden von der dltesten Zeiten bis zur Gegenwart (i i volumes, 1853-76).52 Although not the first to appear, it is volumes 1-3 that are of most interest in comparison with Wellhausen's work because of their coverage of the biblical period. Like Wellhausen, Graetz accepted the paramount importance of a national theory of history, of the necessity for a rigorous application of the philological-critical method developed in the classical sphere by B. G. Niebuhr, and of a careful source-criticism. As Wellhausen had had a predecessor in the work of Heinrich Ewald, so Graetz had been anticipated in the earlier work of I. M. Jost.53 There are similarities also to be found between the work of the two scholars in that both shared the assumption that such a national history could be written by a proper understanding of the internal factors that had affected its development, with virtually no attention to external influences. Similarly both scholars placed the greatest weight upon the importance of the history of ideas and the influence of great personalities, externalizing themselves in the development of the great religious institutions. Yet there the comparison begins to weaken, for Wellhausen's was so obviously and uncompromisingly the work of a Christian scholar and that of Graetz the work of a Jewish one. The antiJewish polemic of the one can be compared with the anti-Christian polemic of the other. Yet it is not at this relatively superficial level that the differences are important. It reaches to a more fundamental layer, in the assumptions that each scholar had adopted. Where Wellhausen had taken it as readily demonstrable that the Old Testament found its natural continuation in the New, with the birth of Christianity, Graetz could show with equal conviction that there was no such break in the history and development of Judaism. The Old Testament period passed naturally over into that of the Rabbinic Age and into the story of Judaism in Diaspora. It was not postbiblical Judaism that was an historical aberration, but the Christian Church, which could be dismissed as an unorthodox offshoot of the later Jewish sectarian movements. For both scholars the national dimension of Israel's past was important, but the implications of this were quite differently interpreted. For Graetz it made him an early, if conservative and even critical, supporter of the proto-Zionist movement of the time. For Wellhausen it led to an assumption that the truly Christian Church must be a national one, and that even in the nineteenth century the nation must assume the spiritual mantle that had belonged to the early Church. Certainly Graetz's work was important on account of the way in which it enabled emancipated Jews to recover an interest in their own past and their distinctive culture. Undoubtedly also it showed the positive gains and insights that were to be obtained from the new scientific approach to 132
The Study of the Old Testament Judaism, which enabled Jewish learning to share fully and uninhibitedly in the philosophical and historical researches which dominated the intellectual life of Germany. More than this, however, it disclosed to those who would consider the matter, the hidden assumptions of a traditional Christian Messianism which so easily intruded themselves in the guise of ideas of historical development, or progress, in Christian reconstructions of Old Testament history. For other reasons also the question of the nature and existence of Judaism had come to exercise a special interest among Christian scholars as a consequence of Jewish civil emancipation in Germany. The development of a Christian Judenmission, and the efforts of such Christian scholars as Franz Delitzsch to understand Judaism more fully and to present a commendable Christian apologetic to the Jews had reflected this interest. From the more directly historical side, however, it was also increasingly clear that a major period of religious life, thought and movement lay between the Old Testament and the New. The rise of the Jewish sectarian parties had early on (1874) attracted the attention of Julius Wellhausen,54 and it was becoming increasingly apparent that a full and critical understanding of the sources, ideas, and historical development of Judaism in the two centuries preceding the birth of Jesus of Nazareth were of the utmost importance for an understanding of the New Testament and the setting of the Synoptic Gospels. Hence it was the Christian scholar Emil Schiirer (1844-1910) who published in 1874, the first full-scale attempt to summarize and evaluate the events and ideas of this period in his work Lehrbuch der neutestamentliche Zeitgeschichte.55 A little later, under the influence of the 'History of Religions' movement, such scholars as Hermann Gunkel and Hugo Gressmann were to stimulate further interest in the need for the study of the Judaism in the New Testament era for a proper understanding of the origins of the Christian faith. By the end of the nineteenth century the work of Gustav Dalman (1855-1941), was pioneering newfieldsof research into the language of the Synoptic Gospels, and Jewish scholars such as Claude Montefiore (1858-1938) and Israel Abrahams (1858-1925), were contributing in a fresh way to the study of the New Testament from the vast resources of the Talmud and Mishnah. The 'History of Religions' movement went through a most intriguing cycle of development of its own, beginning with some pertinent and challenging questions directed at current critical orthodoxy in biblical study, it eventually passed over into the defence of one-sidedly dogmatic and entrenched positions. It included among its early supporters important Old Testament scholars such as Hermann Gunkel (1862-1932) and Hugo Gressmann (1877-1927), and the great dogmatician Ernst Troeltsch (1865— 133
R. E. CLEMENTS
1923). Yet its initiating genius was Albert Eichhorn (1856-1926), who published singularly little.56 Its effect was most dramatically to be seen in respect of the New Testament, where it has been extensively documented and surveyed, but its importance for Old Testament studies should not be overlooked. Its conviction that a genetic relationship existed between religions in their various forms and developments raised a fresh perspective upon the triangle of connections existing between the Old Testament, Judaism and Christianity. In many respects the more outstanding of the problems that it posed, and the way in which it highlighted the difficulty in obtaining a clear theological evaluation of the way in which religious developments occur, have remained as persistent problems for theology in the twentieth century.57 The unexpected way in which its leading New Testament advocates forsook the study of the relationship between nascent Christianity and Judaism in favour of an emphasis upon the role of the Hellenistic Mystery Religions and of Gnostic movements drew attention away from the Christian concern with the Old Testament.58 Yet there were other areas in which the historical relationships which can be seen to exist between different religions, and the presence of similarities between various religious practices and customs, were being highlighted from a new direction so far as the Old Testament was concerned. The Napoleonic campaigns in Egypt at the beginning of the nineteenth century had carried in their wake considerable numbers of scholars, travellers and historians of human culture. The towering monuments of the Pyramids focused attention upon ancient Egyptian religion and by 1837, through the brilliance of J. P. Champollion (1790-1832), the ancient Egyptian hieroglyphs had been deciphered and a new area of ancient literature and religious life brought to light.59 Similarly in Mesopotamia, through the digging of the Frenchman P. E. Botta (1802-70) and the Englishman A. H. Layard (181794) in the early 1840s the remains of ancient Assyrian culture began to be uncovered and brought to Paris and London.60 Once Babylonian cuneiform had been deciphered a whole new library of ancient literature was revealed which self-evidently had a very direct bearing on the study of the Old Testament. Most spectacular was the presentation in a lecture in 1872 of what the translator, George Smith, termed The Chaldean Account of the Deluge?1 now better known as part of The Epic of Gilgamesh. This was followed in 1876 by his translation of The Chaldean Account ofGenesis, which is now better known by its opening words Enuma Elish. This recounts the Babylonian myth of creation, and so clearly does a genetic relationship of some kind exist between it and the first chapter of Genesis that its importance for the study of the latter cannot be ignored. Initially such 134
The Study of the Old Testament relationships were too easily explained in terms of direct 'borrowing', or denied in defence of a traditional Christian view of the divine, and hence unique, origin of the literature of the Old Testament. Today it is easier to recognize the complexity of the developments of ideas, images and language which such similarities reflect. It was not until the beginning of the twentieth century, in 1901, that the Bibel-Babel controversy broke out in all its sharpness, but the materials which it called upon had been known and discussed in scholarly circles for thirty years. Hermann Gunkel and Hugo Gressmann were early enthusiasts in the maximum utilization of this comparative Mesopotamian material for the further study of the Old Testament. They held it as incontrovertible that a whole wealth of connections existed between it and the literature and religious ideas of the Old Testament. In its extreme form this developed into what came to be characterized as pan-Babylonism, but in the hands of less incautious scholars it became an important source of new knowledge about the world from which the Old Testament had sprung. It challenged in a powerful way assumptions that had all too readily been adopted about progress in religion, about the uniqueness of the ideas and religious institutions portrayed in the Old Testament and about the passage of religion from lower to higher forms. Hence the historical development of animism, through polytheism to monotheism, which some scholars were purporting to find reflected in the Old Testament, found itself opposed by evidence of a far more complex character than such theories had previously had to cope with. It has been in large measure a legacy of this for the twentieth century to require it to marshall its evidence more circumspectly, to propound its theories more tentatively, and to frame its questions more pointedly. In consequence of this vast new world of knowledge which the latter half of the nineteenth century brought to light a new perspective on the Old Testament had emerged. Never again could a scholar hope to write a convincing history of Israel as though this people had lived on a cultural island, cut off from any continuing contact with the religious and intellectual life of its ancient Near Eastern neighbours. The very concepts of historical causation and development with which scholars like Wellhausen and Graetz had worked were set in need of re-examination. Israel had so evidently participated fully in the historical and cultural life of the ancient Orient. The material that was found was at once spectacular to the researcher and more than a little disconcerting to the layman, as the sharpness of the Bibel-BabelControversy shows. Yet in its way it opened up vast new possibilities towards the realization of the aim ofJ. G. Eichhorn - that the Old Testament should be read with the spirit and understanding which had belonged to those who had written it. The new 135
R. E. CLEMENTS
areas of knowledge provided a new dimension of understanding for the realization of this goal. In another direction also we can see that these ancient Near Eastern discoveries of literature and artefacts confirmed the soundness of much that scholars had been pursuing. The decipherment of the Babylonian, Phoenician and other ancient languages revealed the soundness of the principles of grammatical and philological work which Gesenius had adopted and developed so richly. The very language of the Bible could now be understood on the basis of a far greater wealth of comparative material than had been available to the father of modern Hebrew studies. By the turn of the century the critical study of the Old Testament seemed set for an even larger share in uncovering the nature of mankind's religious past, and the relationship of this to the Jewish and Christian traditions, than it had held in the nineteenth century. How far it has succeeded in realizing these possibilities must be left for others to judge. There is no doubt, however, that the questions which had been directed towards the Old Testament by scholars such as J. G. Eichhorn and W. M. L. de Wette had carried the thinking of the nineteenth century into some unexpected paths. Not the least important of these was that which took it away from the traditional fields of theology into the wider areas of religious and cultural history. The Hebrew Bible itself had been emancipated from the traditional confines of its use and interpretation in Christian church and Jewish synagogue.
Notes 1 The classic work on the history of Christian interpretation of the Old Testament is that by L. Diestel, Geschichte des Alten Testaments in der christlichen Kirche (Jena, 1869), which summarizes developments up to the middle of the nineteenth century. The course of historical-critical research into the origins of the Old Testament is covered by H.-J. Kraus, Geschichte der historisch-kritische Erforschung des Alten Testaments von der Reformation bis zur Gegenwart (Neukirchen, 1956; 3rd expanded edn, 1982). Important additional material is to be found in H.-J. Kraus, Die Biblische Theologie. Ihre Geschichte und Problematik (Neukirchen, 1970). 2 J. G. Herder Vom Geist der hebrdischen Poesie (3 vols., Leipzig, 1782-3; 3rd edn, 1825) and The Spirit ofHebrew Poetry, Eng. tr. by H. G. Marsh (2 vols., Burlington (Vt.), 1833; rep. in one vol. Naperville, 1971). 3 This development is now fully examined in the major work by H. Graf Reventlow, Bibelautoritdt und Geist der Moderne (Gottingen, 1980; English tr., London, 1985). 4 Cf. especially G. Hornig, Die Anfdnge der historisch-kritischen Theologie. jfohann Salomo Semlers Schriftverstdndnis und seine Stellung zu Luther, Forschungen zur systematischen Theologie und Religionsphilosophie Bd.8 (Lund-Gottingen, 1961). Further material is to be found in L. Zscharnack, Lessing und Semler. Ein Beitrag zur Entstehungsgeschichte des Rationalismus und der kritischen Theologie (Giessen, 1905).
136
The Study of the Old Testament 5 J. P. Gabler, Dejusto discrimine theologiae biblicae et dogmaticae regundisque recte utriusque finibus (Altdorf, 1787; rep. in Opuscula academica /, 1831). A translation of part of this address is given in W. G. Kiimmel, The New Testament. The History ofthe Investigation of Its Problems, Eng. tr. by S. McLean Gilmour and H. C. Kee (London, 1973), pp. 98-100. Cf. further R. Morgan, The Nature of New Testament Theology, Studies in Biblical Theology: Second Series 25 (London, 1973). 6 For the concept of myth cf. C. H. Hartlich and W. Sachs, Der Ursprung des Mythosbegriffes in der modernen Bibelwissenschaft (Tubingen, 1952) and J. W. Rogerson, Old Testament Criticism in the Nineteenth Century: England and Germany (London, 1984). 7 J. G. Eichhorn, Forschungen zur biblischen Urgeschichte, ed. with introduction and notes by J. P. Gabler (3 vols., Altdorf, 1790-3). 8 J. G. Eichhorn, Einleitung ins Alte Testament (3 vols., Leipzig, 1780-3). 9 For the influence of J. G. Herder on biblical studies of T. Willi, Herders Beitrag zum Verstehen des Alten Testaments, Beitrage zur Geschichte der biblischen Hermeneutik 8 (Tubingen, 1971), and K. Scholder, 'Herder und die Anfange der historischen Theologie', Evangelische Theologie, 22 (1962), 425-40. 10 For the work of W. Gesenius see O. Eissfeldt, 'Wilhelm Gesenius 1786-1842', Kleine Schriften 11 (Stuttgart, 1965), pp. 441-2. 11 For the significance of B. Kennicott's work see W. McKane, 'Benjamin Kennicott: An Eighteenth Century Researcher', Journal of Theological Studies (New Series), 28 (1977), 12 Cf. O. Eissfeldt, 'Wilhelm Gesenius als Archaologe', Kleine Schriften 11, pp. 430-34, and 'Wilhelm Gesenius und die Palastinawissenschaft', Kleine Schriften 11, pp. 435-40. 13 E. Robinson, Biblical Researches in Palestine, Mount Sinai and Arabia Petraea. A Journal of Travels in the Year 1838(2 vols., London, 1841). Robinson's work and its background are discussed by J. W. Brown, The Rise of Biblical Criticism in America 1800-1870. The New England Scholars (Connecticut, 1969), pp. 111-24. The work of Carl Ritter, who had himself undertaken important geographical researches in the Sinai Peninsula, is described in R. E. Dickinson, The Makers of Modern Geography (London, 1969), pp. 34-48. 14 Pusey's two periods of study in Germany are described in H. P. Liddon, The Life ofE. B. Pusey, vol. 1 (London, 1893), pp. 70-114. After his return to Oxford, Pusey published two volumes sharply repudiating the modern German approach to biblical criticism. The relationship of German Old Testament scholarship to that in England is discussed fully in Rogerson, Old Testament Criticism. 15 H. H. Milman, The History of the Jews from the Earliest Period down to Modern Times (3 vols., originally published anonymously in 1829, 3rd edn thoroughly revised and extended, London, 1863). The preface to the third edition is of special interest for its disclosures of the critical work which Milman had used for the original edition. 16 For the philosophical and historiographical background to this presentation of Jewish history see D. Forbes, The Liberal Anglican Idea of History (Cambridge, 1952). 17 Cf. Forbes, ibid., pp. 4off. 18 For a critical appreciation of de Wette's biblical work cf. R. Smend, Wilhelm Martin Leberecht de Wettes Arbeit am Alten und am Neuen Testament (Basel, 1957). 19 W. M. L. de Wette, Dissertatio Critica-exegetica que Deuteronomium a prioribus Pentateuchi libris diversum, alius cuiusdam recentionis auctoris opus esse monstratur (Jena, 1805). 20 J. S. Vater, Abhandlung u'ber Moses und die Verfasser des Pentateuchs (3 vols., Halle, 18025), in part 3 of his commentary on the Pentateuch. Cf. Smend, de Wettes Arbeit, p. 37 note. 21 W. M. L. de Wette, Kritischer Versuch iiber die Glaubwurdigkheit der Bucherder Chronik mit Hinsicht auf die Geschichte der Mosdischen Bticher und Gesetzgebung (Halle, 1806). Cf. Smend, de Wettes Arbiet, pp. 4ofF. 22 W. Vatke, Die biblische Theologie wissenschaftlieh dargestellt. Bd.I Die Religion des Alten
137
R. E. CLEMENTS
23 24
25 26
27 28 29 30 31 32 33 34 35
36
37 38
39
40 41
42 43
Testaments (Berlin, 1835). For Vatke's work cf. especially L. Perlitt, Vatke und Wellhausen. Geschichtsphilosophische Voraussetzungen und hist origraphische Motive fur die Darstellung der Religion und Geschichte Israels durch Wilhelm Vatke und Julius Wellhausen (BZAW 94) (Berlin, 1965), pp. 86-152. It is of interest that Vatke later withdrew this claim to a late date for the cultic legislation of the Old Testament in Historische-Kritische Einleitung in des A.T. (1886), pp. 2i5fF. W. M. L. de Wette, Biblische Dogmatik des Alten und Neuen Testaments, (3rd edn, Berlin, 1831). A full bibliography of de Wette's extensive writings is to be found in DeWettiana. Forschungen und Texte zu Wilhelm Martin Leberecht de Wettes Leben und Werk, ed. E. Staehelin (Basel, 1956), supplemented by Smend, de Wettes Arbeit 1, pp. 189-93. Cf. Smend, de Wettes Arbeit, pp. 72-85. A short memoir and outline of Ewald's life is provided in English by T. Witton Davies, Heinrich Ewald. Orientalist and Theologian. 1803-1go3. A Centenary Appreciation (London, 1903). Cf. H. Harris, The Tubingen School (Oxford, 1975), pp. 43-8. H. Ewald, Geschichte des Volkes Israel (3rd edn, vols. 1-5, Gottingen, 1864-7; Eng. tr. ed. by R. Martineau, 4th edn in 8 vols., London, 1883). For the origins of the Historismus movement of F. Meinecke, Historism. The Rise of a New Historical Outlook. Eng. tr. by J. E. Anderson (London, 1972). Ewald, History of Israel, vol. 1, p. 5. Ewald, History of Israel, p. 3 1 . G. L. Bauer's volume entitled Handbuch der Geschichte der hebrdischen Nation was published in 1800-4. Ewald, History of Israel, p. 10. Ewald, History of Israel, p. 14. E. W. von Hengstenberg, Christologie des Alten Testaments und Commentar u'ber die messianischen Weissagungen (Berlin 1829-35; Eng. tr. by R. Keith, Christology of the Old Testament, Alexandria, 1836-9; rep. Grand Rapids, 1956). J. C. K. von Hofmann, Weissagung undErfullung im Alten und Neuen Testaments, 1841-4. The significance of von Hofmann's work is discussed by E. Hiibner, Schrift und Theologie. Eine Untersuehung zur TheologieJfoh.Chr. von Hofmann, Forschungen zur Geschichte und Lehre des Protestantismus, series 10, vol. 8, (Munich, 1956). For the concept of Heilsgeschichte and its origin in nineteenth-century biblical theology cf. K. G. Steck, Die Idee der Heilsgeschichte, Theologische Studien 56 (Basel, 1959). Beside the work of L. Perlitt, Vatke und Wellhausen, mentioned above cf. also F. Boschwitz, Julius Wellhausen. Motive und Masstdbe seiner Geschichtsschreibung (Diss. Marburg, 1938; rep. Darmstadt, 1968). See also D. A. Knight (ed.), Julius Wellhausen and His Prolegomena to the History of Israel, Semeia 25 (Chico, California, 1982). E. Reuss, La Bible. Pt. 3, UHistoire sainte et la loi (1879). Die Geschichte der Heiligen Schriften Alten Testaments (Braunschweig, 1881). Reuss' work and its importance to French biblical scholarship are discussed by A. Causse, Edouard Reuss et la renaissance des etudes de I'histoire religieuse en France (Paris, 1929). K. H. Graf, Die geschichtlichen Biicher des Alten Testaments (Leipzig, 1866). Cf. A. Causse, 'Notes sur le developpement des etudes d'Ancien Testament en France et dans les pays de langue francaise depuis un demi-siecle', Revue d'histoire et de philosophie religeuses, 20 (1940), 47-76. Cf. S. J. De Vries, 'The Hexateuchal Criticism of Abraham Kuenen', Journal of Biblical Literature, 82 (1963), 31-57. A. Kuenen, Historisch-kritisch onderzoek naar het ontstaan en de verzameling van de boeken des Ouden Verbonds (Leiden, 1861-5; 2nd edn completely revised, 1887-93).
138
44 A. Kuenen, De godsdienst van Israel tot den ondergang van den Joodschen staat (Leiden, 1869-70; Eng. tr. by A. H. May as The Religion ofIsrael to the Fall ofthe Jewish State, vols. 1-3, London, 1874-5). 45 Originally published in Jahrbucher fur Deutsche Theologie, 21 (1876), 392-450, 531-602; 22 (1877), 4°7~479- ReP- a s Skizzen und Vorarbeiten II. Die Composition der Hexateuchs (Berlin, 1885). 46 Eng. tr. by A. Menzies and J. Sutherland Black as History of Israel, 1 (1885), reprinted as Prolegomena to the History of Ancient Israel (New York, 1957). The English translation includes the article 'Israel' originally published in Encyclopedia Brittanica (9th edn), vol. 13 (London, 1882), pp. 396-432. 47 The question of the structure of the Pentateuch and its literary sources is fully discussed, with detailed bibliography, in R. J. Thompson, Moses and the Law in a Century of Criticism Since Graf Supplements to Vetus Testamentum 19 (Leiden, 1970). 48 This aspect is fully discussed in Boschwitz, Julius Wellhausen, pp. 41 ff. 49 Cf. art. 'Israel' (in Prolegomena), pp. 5o8ff. 'The Gospel develops hidden impulses of the Old Testament, but it is a protest against the ruling tendency of Judaism.' 50 It is in line with this conviction that in his book Israelitische-jiidische Geschichte (Berlin, 1894), Wellhausen was able to present the emergence of Christianity and the Christian Church as a natural culmination of the Old Testament development, in the manner already noted of H. Ewald's treatment. 51 Cf. S. W. Baron, History and Jewish Historians. Essays and Addresses (Philadelphia, 1964), PP- 263-75. 52 H . Graetz, Geschichte derjuden von den dltesten Zeiten bis zur Gegenwart, (11 vols., 1853— 76; Eng. tr. by B. Lowy, History of the Jews, 5 vols., London, 1891-2). For Heinrich Graetz's work on the biblical period cf. my study 'Heinrich Graetz as Biblical Historian and Religious Apologist', in Interpreting the Hebrew Bible: Essays in Honour of E. I. J. Rosenthal (Cambridge, 1982), pp. 35-55. 53 For I. M. Jost see Baron, History and Jewish Historians, pp. 240—62. 54 J. Wellhausen, Die Pharisder und die Sadducder (Greifswald, 1874). 55 E. Schiirer, Lehrbuch der neutestamentlichen Zeitgeschichte (1874; 2nd edn as Geschichte desjiidischen Volkes im Zeitalter Jesu Christi, Leipzig, 1886-90; Eng. tr. A History of the Jewish People in the Time ofJesus Christ, Edinburgh, 1885-91). 56 Cf. H. Gressmann, Albert Eichhorn und die religionsgeschichtliche Schule (Gottingen, 57 Cf. H. Ringgren, 'The Impact of the Ancient Near East on Israelite Tradition', Tradition and Theology in the Old Testament, ed. D. A. Knight (London, 1977), pp. 31-46. 58 Cf. Kummel, The New Testament. The History of the Investigation of Its Problems, pp. 24580. 59 Cf. M. Pope, The Story of Decipherment. From Egyptian Hieroglyphic to Linear B (London, 1975), pp. 436°. 60 Cf. E. A. Wallis Budge, The Rise and Progress of Assyriology (London, 1925). H. V. Hilprecht, Explorations in Bible Lands (Edinburgh, 1903). 61 Published in Transactions of the Society for Biblical Archaeology, II (1873), pp. 213-34.
Bibliographical essay There are a number of works dealing with the history of the critical study of the Old Testament in the nineteenth century, each of which has its particular usefulness, but also its own limitations. The oldest work giving a broad coverage of the religious and theological stimuli towards a critical approach to the literature is that of L. Diestel, Geschichte des Alt en 139
R. E. CLEMENTS Testaments in der christlichen Kirche (Jena, 1869), which, however only covers the period up till the middle of the nineteenth century. The later period is dealt with by H.-J. Kraus, Geschichte der historisch-kritisch Erforschung des Alten Testaments von der Reformation bis zur
Gegenwart (Neukirchen, 1956), which is devoted almost entirely to German Protestant work. The wider theological background of such criticism is discussed by the same author in Die Biblische Theologie. Ihre Geschichte und Problematik (Neukirchen, 1970). From the side of a
concern with the philosophical and broad theological basis of biblical criticism three important studies may be noted: Hans W. Frei, The Eclipse of Biblical Narrative. A Study of Eighteenth and Nineteenth Century Hermeneutics (New Haven and London, 1974), D. H.
Kelsey, The Uses of Scripture in Recent Theology (London, 1975) and the general historical survey of major German theological developments in the nineteenth century by H. Stephan, Geschichte der Deutschen evangelischen Theologie seit dem Deutschen Idealismus (2nd edn ed. M.
Schmidt, Berlin, i960). Although it is devoted to the New Testament, a number of points of considerable relevance to the study of the Old Testament are to be found in W. Kiimmel, The New Testament. A History of the Investigation of Its Problems (Eng. tr. S. McLean Gilmour
and H. C. Kee, London, 1973). The German scholarship of the first half of the nineteenth century, particularly that of W. M. L. de Wette, is fully discussed in J. W. Rogerson, Old Testament Criticism in the Nineteenth Century: England and Germany (London, 1984). A valuable survey of the attempts to present a new type of critically responsive Old Testament theology is offered by the two volumes of H. Graf Reventlow, where full bibliographical references are given: Hauptprobleme der alttestamentliche Theologie im 20. Jahrhundert and Hauptprobleme der Biblischen Theologie im
20. Jahrhundert, vols. 173 and 203 in the series Ertrage der Forschung (Darmstadt, 1982 and 1983). Surprisingly no major comprehensive treatments are available of several of the outstanding nineteenth-century Old Testament scholars, a fact which lends all the greater significance to those essays in this field which have appeared. The impact of J. G. Eichhorn's work on the study of prophecy is well covered by E. Sehmsdorf, Die Prophetenauslegung beijf. G. Eichhorn (Gottingen, 1971), which contains an extensive bibliography and examines closely the relationship between J. G. Eichhorn and J. G. Herder. The latter writer's impact on Old Testament studies is examined in T. Willi, Herders Beitrag zum Verstehen des Alten Testaments, Beitrage zur Geschichte der biblischen Hermeneutik 8 (Tubingen, 1971). The work of W. M. L. de Wette is veryfinelydealt with by R. Smend in Wilhelm Martin Leberecht de Wettes Arbeit am Alten und am Neuen Testament (Basel, 1957). No comparable treatment of
either the work of Heinrich Ewald or Julius Wellhausen has appeared so that it is necessary to work from much briefer sketches of the contributions of these scholars. Ewald is dealt with by T. Witton Davies in a centenary essay entitled Heinrich Ewald. Orientalist and Theologian (London, 1903), which does contain a short bibliography of Ewald's major works. F. Boschwitz, Julius Wellhausen. Motive und Masstdbe seiner Geschichteschreibung (Diss.
Marburg, 1938; rep. Darmstadt, 1968) introduces into the consideration of this scholar's work some reflections concerning the historiographical factors relating to it. These are more fully explored, particularly in their relationships to the Historismus movement in Germany and to the philosophical influences of G. W. F. Hegel upon nineteenth-century history-writing, by L. Perlitt in Vatke und Wellhausen. Geschichtsphilosophische Voraussetzungen und historiographische Motive fur die Darstellung der Religion und Geschichte Israels durch Wilhelm
Vatke und Julius Wellhausen (BZAW 94, Berlin, 1965). Since the most celebrated and controversial feature of Wellhausen's work on the history of Israelite-Jewish religion was his resolution of the problems concerning the sources, and their respective dates, of the Pentateuch, this problem is well worthy of separate consideration. For this an excellent survey, furnished with a full bibliography, is provided by R. J. Thompson, Moses and the Law in a Century of Criticism Since Graf Supplements to Vetus Testamentum 19 (Leiden, 1970). 140
The Study of the Old Testament The work of Wellhausen's great Dutch contemporary Abraham Kuenen is examined in an essay by S. J. De Vries, 'The Hexateuchal Criticism of Abraham Kuenen\JBL, 82 (1963), 31-57. The work of the great Scottish scholar W. Robertson Smith is noted in the biography by J. S. Black and G. W. Chrystal, William Robertson Smith (London, 1912), although this pays most attention to his life and his relationships to the Church. An appreciation of his academic significance, with a full bibliography, is offered by T. O. Beidelman, W. Robertson Smith and the Sociological Study of Religion (Chicago and London, 1974).
On specific issues which had a far-reaching influence upon Old Testament studies a number of independent surveys are available. The rise and work of the 'History of Religions' School is discussed by H. Gressmann in Albert Eichhorn unddie Religionsgeschichtliche Schule
(Gottingen, 1914), and also with particular reference to the labours of Hermann Gunkel in W. Klatt, Hermann Gunkel. Zu seiner Theologie der Religionsgeschichte und zur Entstehung der
formgeschichtlichen Methode (FRLANT 100, Gottingen, 1969). Further material of importance is to be found in A. F. Verheule, Wilhelm Bousset. Leben und Werk. Ein theologiegeschichtliche Versuch (Amsterdam, 1973).
Two volumes contain useful bibliographies of some of the most prominent themes of debate in Old Testament research. That by C. A. Briggs, Biblical Study. Its Principles, Methods and History (New York, 1883) sketches the general development, and the volume by G. S. Goodspeed, Israel's Messianic Hope to the Time of Jesus. A Study in the Historical Development of the Foreshadowings of the Christ in the Old Testament and Beyond (New York,
1900), contains an annotated bibliography of the major books on this particular subject. The more general survey by T. K. Cheyne, Founders ofOld Testament Criticism (London, 1893), is a readable general guide, but is, in retrospect, so apologetic for the acceptance of a critical approach to the Bible in the Church as to ignore the wider influences which have affected it. The work of the distinguished German scholar Franz Delitzsch, who concerned himself preeminently with Jewish-Christian relations, is fully outlined in S. Wagner, Franz Delitzsch. Leben und Werk, Beitrage zur evangelischen Theologie 80 (Munich, 1978). For the rise of the Wissenschaft movement in Judaism no single work exists discussing its impact on the study of the Old Testament directly, which would be eminently desirable. However the volume by S. W. Baron, History and Jewish Historians. Essays and Addresses
(Philadelphia, 1964) contains important material relating to the work of I. M. Jost and H. Graetz, and the Studies in Judaism. Third Series by Solomon Schechter (Philadelphia, 1924) contains important essays on Abraham Geiger and Leopold Zunz. The work of Heinrich Graetz in its relationship to nineteenth-century biblical historiography is dealt with in my essay 'H. Graetz as Biblical Historian', in Interpreting the Hebrew Bible. Essays in Honour ofE.
I. J. Rosenthal, ed. J. A. Emerton and S. C. Reif (Cambridge, 1979). Some of the theological aspects of Old Testament historiography, which have become widely explored and developed since the middle of the nineteenth century are dealt with in K. G. Steck, Die Idee der Heilsgeschichtes, Theologische Studien 56 (Basel, 1959). Some of the theological features which affected the new approach to biblical historiography are examined in my essay 'Messianic Prophecy or Messianic History?', in Horizons in Biblical Theology, ed. U. Mauser (Pittsburgh, 1979). Finally mention may be made of two major studies recounting the rediscovery of the ancient Mesopotamian world, which so profoundly affected the perspective from which the Old Testament was interpreted. These are H. V. Hilprecht, Explorations in Bible Lands during the Nineteenth Century (Edinburgh, 1903) and E. A. Wallis Budge, The Rise and Progress of Assyriology (London, 1925).
141
5 The Study of the New Testament J. C. O'NEILL
Nineteenth-century critics of the New Testament worked as they did because of one simple idea: the idea that Catholic Christianity was a late synthesis which more or less seriously misrepresented the historical process that produced it. This simple idea sparked offa series of startling and original hypotheses about the date, authorship, unity, purpose, and meaning of every single book in the New Testament. I shall mention the more important moves in the game, and try to show how each move related to the leading idea that Catholic Christianity was a huge deception. This leading idea had been imported from England to Germany, and in Germany it was made the basis of a complete scholarly discipline. In 1793 Johann Gottfried Eichhorn (1752-1827) put the position beautifully in a short review of a German translation of Conyers Middleton's miscellaneous essays. This book has taken the reviewer back very pleasantly to the times at first light, just before the dawning of the present day in German theology, when the few bright ideas our compatriots had were gathered from British theologians. Thanks be to the courage and to the German diligence of the immediate past theological generation! Now the sons of the Britons' grateful German pupils can give back to the Britons the light which was kindled for their fathers - and give it back stronger, purified and clarified.1
The Britons, with a few notable exceptions, were by 1793 not interested in the scholarly working-out of their own ideas, and the history of the criticism of the New Testament in the nineteenth century is, to all intents and purposes, the history of German criticism. The boldness and diligence of German scholars, from the very moment they translated and commented on the English works they chose to put into German, immediately lifted the study of the New Testament to a new technical plane. New Testament criticism did not become a university discipline in England or Scotland or Ireland until the 1860s, and was then 143
J. C. O NEILL
pursued at a handful of centres; it had been a university discipline at a host of universities in the German-speaking world since at least the time when Johann David Michaelis (1717-91) was appointed to Gottingen in 1746. However, the very competence and technical proficiency and multiplication of hypotheses is in danger of obscuring the simple central idea on which the German New Testament critics were working. The idea came to them with the combined authority of English intellectual freedom and the patronage of the most enlightened German royal house, the house of Hanover. The centre and symbol of this authority was Caroline of Ansbach, at first Princess of Wales and then George IPs Queen, whose weekly philosophical and theological salons were dominated by the leading English philosopher and biblical scholar, Dr Samuel Clarke (1675-1729) who was famous for his dialogue with Caroline's old teacher, Leibniz, and whose thorough and learned The Scripture Doctrine of the Trinity (London, 1712; 3rd edn, 1738) was to be translated into German by Johann Salomo Semler (1725--91).2 The latitudinarian divines who belonged to Caroline's circle maintained, as good Protestants, that the New Testament religion was their religion. They differed from their Protestant forebears, however, in arguing that the Church's creeds were metaphysical speculations that at least went further in speculation than the New Testament evidence warranted, and even distorted the primitive simplicity of the Gospel. They were defending New Testament religion against ecclesiastical speculative developments, not at first criticising the New Testament for misrepresenting the true course of the history of early Christianity. The New Testament should simply be read without ecclesiastical presuppositions: the assumption that all Men will own the Verity I defend if they read the sacred Writings with that Equity and Attention that is due to meer Humane Works: Nor is there any different Rule to be followed in the Interpretation of Scripture from what is common to all other Books
was a commonplace - derived from Spinoza and thoroughly domesticated in England.3 It was true that this principle did involve some criticism of the received sacred text, such as the excision of the trinitarian formula inserted into some Latin manuscripts of 1 John 5.7^ and forged in Greek as recently as the sixteenth century, but the religious strength of the latitudinarians was their stout defence of New Testament religion. Once it seemed to be established that the Church had misunderstood and corrupted New Testament religion, a new possibility suggested itself. Perhaps the New Testament itself provided evidence that Jesus was misunderstood by the New Testament; perhaps the New Testament itself 144
The Study of the New Testament had a history which, like the history of thefirstfour centuries of the Church's life, was a history of simplicity corrupted. Again, the two crucial ideas were floated in England, and worked out in Germany; and these two ideas were sufficiently powerful to keep New Testament criticism busy for the next two hundred years. The first was proposed by an earnest and pious dissenting preacher, Hugh Farmer (1714-87), two of whose books Semler had made into German, An Essay on the Demoniacs of the New Testament (London, 1775) and his Letters to Dr Worthington concerning the Demonic in the Gospels (London, 1778).
Farmer argued that 'the disorders imputed to supernatural possessions, proceed from natural causes, not from the agency of any evil spirits'; Christ and the Apostles knew this, but, since their commission was not to reveal the natural causes of diseases, they very properly, even necessarily, described diseases 'in the manner that other persons did'.4 This is the famous principle of accommodation, the principle that Christ accommodated himself to the false beliefs of his contemporaries in order to accomplish his principal mission of teaching the essential truths of religion. In the historian's armoury this principle enabled him to separate the essential from the accidental in New Testament documents. Far more important than the principle of accommodation, however, was the idea that the New Testament as a whole had misrepresented Jesus' teaching. This idea was thoroughly worked out by the eighteenth- and nineteenth-century critics, but they were able to appeal to a venerable church tradition, the tradition that all scripture was to be interpreted spiritually rather than 'carnally', even if the original intention of parts of scripture seemed to be 'carnal'.5 Clement of Alexandria offered this as the reason for the distinction between St John's Gospel and the other three Gospels: Clement said 'that John, last of all, conscious that the bodily things had been displayed in the [other three] Gospels, urged on by his disciples, divinely moved by the Spirit, made a spiritual Gospel'.6 This and thousands of other patristic testimonies to the New Testament were for the first time collected and annotated by an eighteenth-century English dissenter to defend the traditional authorship and date and circumstances of the New Testament writings, and his work was translated into German under the auspices of Siegmund Jacob Baumgarten, Semler's patron (1706-57),7 but the very defensiveness of the enterprise showed that more-critical spirits were already at work attacking the tradition. The English collection became a convenient source for men to use who were less respectful of the force of tradition. Lessing was stating a commonplace when he subtly twisted tradition to produce this judgment of John: H5
J. C. O NEILL If . . . Christianity was not to die down again and to disappear among the Jews as a mere Jewish sect, and if it was to endure among the Gentiles as a separate, independent religion, John must come forward and write his Gospel. It was only his Gospel which gave the Christian religion its true consistency . . . That we accordingly have only two Gospels, Matthew and John, the Gospel of the flesh and the Gospel of the spirit, was long ago recognized by the early Church Fathers, and is actually denied by no modern orthodox theologian.8
In short, the New Testament could not be trusted historically about Jesus, however it was judged religiously. The view took two forms: either the form that Jesus' essentially Jewish teaching was eventually distorted by the Gentile church, or the form that Jesus' essentially spiritual teaching was distorted by his materialistic Jewish followers. We are accustomed to these two theories as separate and rival explanations (Jesus taught the coming Kingdom of God on earth, a thoroughly Jewish idea which the church later spiritualized versus Jesus taught the present Kingdom of God within, which the Church later made worldly), but originally the two ideas were cunningly combined: John Toland (i670-1722) used to argue both that the Nazarenes, the earliest Christians, had 'a gross and worldly notion of the person and spiritual kingdom of Christ' and that the Church had falsely come to believe that Jesus had abolished the Law of Moses.9 The most sophisticated and potent form of this second idea, found in Thomas Morgan (P-I743), was as follows. The Jewish Apostles loaded onto Jesus' original simple teaching a host of worldly Jewish ideas; in this they were opposed by Paul; and eventually, under the stress of persecution, these two opposing parts of the Church drew together and created Catholic Christianity. Jesus died renouncing Jewish Messianic notions; Peter, James and John preached the old Jewish superstition, most clearly seen in the Book of Revelation, which the clergy (Judaizers at heart) still defend; Paul preached a common saviour to the Gentiles without any regard to the Law; although these two forms of Christianity were 'as opposite and inconsistent as Light and Darkness, Truth and Falsehood', persecution under Nero and his successors drove them together 'to unite into one Catholick, Christian Church'.10 This scheme became Semler's leading principle with which to plot the history of Christianity in the New Testament and beyond,11 and it was worked out by the nineteenth-century scholars, whose self-appointed spokesman was Ferdinand Christian Baur (1792—1860). This scheme of early Christian history corresponded pretty well to that first proposed by Marcion (d. c. A.D. 160), and those who first propounded it in the eighteenth century, Matthew Tindal and, more fully, Thomas 146
The Study of the New Testament Morgan, knew it did, although they were careful not to cite a heretic in their own support, relying rather on more orthodox writers like Origen, who gave them enough for their purpose. Tindal remarked that Origen 'objects to Marcion the Here tick, that he was against the allegorical Way of interpreting Scripture' - but Tindal's long-term aim is to draw attention to Marcion's view of history, the view that Jesus' true message has been misunderstood by all his Apostles bar Paul, for they all took 'spiritual' truths literally, in a Jewish sense.12 By the end of the nineteenth century, Adolf Harnack (1851-1930) was able to own Marcion openly as the one who provided the key to the true history of Christianity. Through the work he did on Marcion for the prize essay for the Theological Faculty of Dorpat in 1870 he says 'I was initiated into New Testament textual criticism, into early Church History, into the conception of history of the school of Baur, and into the problems of Systematic Theology: there could have been no better introduction!'13 Harnack rightly mentions Tindal and Morgan as the modern revivers of the view, which 'Schleiermacher, Hegel, and the mass of thinkers whose roots were in Pietism' corrected, developed, and refined.14 Armed, then, with the principle of accommodation and the settled conviction that the primitive Gospel had been judaized and catholicized, the nineteenth-century New Testament critics carried out an enormous labour of sifting and weighing the entire literature of the New Testament, testing received opinions at every point. The standard Greek text was completely changed; the traditional date and authorship of every book was questioned; the literary history of the documents was reassessed; every doctrine based on the New Testament was re-examined; and the question of the religious setting of the New Testament, once assumed to be simply the Old Testament, was re-opened. I shall deal in turn with (I) textual criticism; (II) criticism of the writings bearing the name of John; (III) criticism of the Synoptic Gospels; and (IV) criticism of the Catholic Epistles, of the Acts of the Apostles, and of the writings bearing the name of Paul.
/ Critical study of the history of the Greek text of the New Testament In 1707, two weeks before he died, John Mill (1645-1707), Principal of St Edmund Hall, Oxford, published an edition of the New Testament in Greek, with footnotes showing those readings in the known Greek manuscripts which differed from the usual printed text of the Paris printer 147
J. C. O NEILL
Robert Stephanus's third edition of 1550. Mill's thirty thousand variant readings were seized on with glee by critics of orthodoxy as showing that the text of the New Testament, on which all the doctrinal disputes were supposed to turn, was precarious and uncertain.15 Mill's friend Richard Bentley (1662-1742), Master of Trinity College, Cambridge, sprang to Mill's defence and ridiculed the ignorance of the Free-thinker in imagining that thirty thousand variants were a sign of a precarious and uncertain text; on the contrary, T i s a good providence and a great blessing, that so many Manuscripts of the New Testament are still amongst us; some procured from Egypt, others from Asia, others found in the Western Churches. For the very distances of places as well as numbers of books demonstrate, that there could be no collusion, no altering nor interpolating One Copy by another, nor All by any of them . . . [It] has been the common sense of men of letters, that numbers of Manuscripts do not make a text precarious, but are useful nay necessary to its establishment and certainty.16
Bentley, with characteristic optimism, proposed the publication of a parallel Greek and Latin text of the New Testament which would restore the text as it stood in the fourth century. By taking two thousand errors out of the Pope's Vulgate [the Clementine edition] and as many out of the Protestant Pope Stephen's [the Textus Receptus], I can set out an edition of each in columns, without using any book under nine hundred years old, that shall so exactly agree word for word, and, what at first amazed me, order for order, that no two tallies, nor two indentures, can agree better.17
Men could still suffer for their questioning of the received text - Whiston lost his chair at Cambridge in part for denying the authenticity of the explicit trinitarian reference in 1 John 5.7^, and Wetstein was removed from office as a Protestant minister in part for denying that the true text of 1 Timothy 3.16 read 'God was manifest in theflesh'- but textual criticism soon became a safe area in which hard exacting work promised assured results. Johann Albrecht Bengel (1687-1752), a pietist commentator on the New Testament, distinguished two 'nations' of manuscripts, one from Asia Minor, and the other from Africa. Semler at first followed this two-fold division, and attributed the Eastern recension to Lucian of Antioch and the African recension to Origen. In 1767 he elaborated this division, naming three recensions: the Eastern, the Alexandrian, and the Western. This grouping of manuscripts became standard, and was adopted and worked out more fully by Semler's pupil Johann Jakob Griesbach (1745-1812) who divided the early manuscripts into witnesses to three recensions: the Alexandrian, the text of Clement and Origen; the Western, which was not only the recension of Tertullian adopted in the West, but also a text found 148
The Study of the New Testament in the East in the Palestinian Syriac and the Sahidic; and the Constantinopolitan recension (usually known now as the Byzantine recension). Griesbach published a cautious revision of the Textus Receptus in 1775-7, w ^ h further editions in 1796-1806 (Halle and London) and 1803-7 (Leipzig); his revisions were decided on grounds of internal probability, not on whether or not a reading belonged to a particular recension. The great weakness of all these divisions of the manuscripts was to regard the Western group as a recension comparable to the Alexandrian recension or the Byzantine recension. Michaelis in the later editions of his Introduction to the New Testament partly recognized this failing by his attempt to subdivide the Western group into two.18 The truer solution seems to have been that proposed by the Swiss Roman Catholic biblical scholar, Johann Leonhard Hug (1765-1846), who argued that the Western group of manuscripts was not a recension but simply a group of manuscripts exhibiting the ancient text as it had been altered and corrupted in the second and early third century by the private judgment of every reader and copyist. The recensions became necessary in the third century, to introduce order into the text and to put a limit to private copies. Three men took this task in hand: Hesychius in Egypt; Lucian the Martyr in Antioch in Syria, whose recension spread to Asia Minor and the Byzantine Empire; and Origen in Palestine (but at the very end of his life, for otherwise he used the old Western text).19 Hug concluded from observation that 'Hesychius usually favoured the shortest readings; Lucian the longest.'20 The trouble with Hug's suggestion was that there was no one obvious text of the New Testament that could be put in place of the Textus Receptus; all he offered was a mass of corrupt manuscripts and three later editions, each with strengths and weaknesses. It was left to the great simplifier, the classical scholar Karl Lachmann (1793-1851) to suggest a way out: let us suppose that there existed one text of the New Testament current in Eastern Christendom at the end of the fourth century, and let us decide that a few early uncial manuscripts and the Old Latin are reliable witnesses to this text; and then let us print that as the text of the New Testament. The aim was to exclude arbitrary choice, to let early evidence decide the matter. But choice was not eliminated; instead, the element of choice and discrimination was removed from the decision about individual readings and attached to the choice of documents as a whole. The advantage of this shift of interest from individual readings to documents was that if scholars could settle on the special merit of a few documents which agreed fairly closely in text, that agreed text could be 149
J. C. O'NEILL
printed as a standard substitute for the discredited Textus Receptus. Constantin von Tischendorf (1815-74) now provided the necessary evidence for such a decision about documents: by his tireless labour of discovering, transcribing, editing, and re-editing manuscripts he gave documentary backing for making the Alexandrian group of manuscripts the basis of a new received text. Griesbach had assigned the Codex Vaticanus 1209 to this recension, but he only knew it in very defective collations. The first edition by Cardinal Mai was issued in 1857 and even that proved unreliable. At last Tischendorf was able to gain access to the manuscript for fourteen days in all, between 28 February and 20 March 1866, and as a result produced a far superior edition in 1867. Five years previously, in 1862, Tischendorf had succeeded in having the text of the Codex Sinaiticus published, which he had discovered in the library of the monastery of St Catharine at Mount Sinai. These two manuscripts were early (probably fourth century); they agreed fairly closely with each other; and they offered a text which was in general shorter than either the text of the Western group or of the Byzantine recension. Brooke Foss Westcott (1825-1901) as an earnest undergraduate of Trinity College, Cambridge, shortly after his twenty-first birthday conceived the idea of preparing a new edition of the Greek New Testament. In 1853 he enlisted the help of his pupil and friend Fenton John Anthony Hort (182892) in the project. They always favoured the approach of Bentley and Lachmann, the attempt to discover the fourth-century text; they wanted the authority of manuscripts and feared above all the arbitrary choice of readings.21 The work of making a new text proved far more arduous than they had expected, but fortunately the years that elapsed saw the publication of continuous texts of some of the most important manuscripts.22 Westcott and Hort's aim was to discover the history of the documents. They first eliminated the Byzantine recension as a late combination of Alexandrian and Western readings. They then considered the character of the Alexandrian and Western manuscripts, and discovered systematic corruption in each of them. Finally, they decided that the text of two manuscripts, the Codex Vaticanus (B) and the Codex Sinaiticus (K), although Alexandrian in provenance, lacked the characteristic corruptions of either the Western text or the rest of the Alexandrian manuscripts; and they concluded that the texts of B and X were 'neutral' and went back independently, with relatively little corruption, to a text of the second or early third century: The textual phenomena which we find when we compare [B and X ] singly and jointly with other documents are throughout precisely those which would present themselves in 150
The Study of the New Testament representatives of two separate lines diverging from a point near the autographs, and not coming into contact subsequently.23
The supporters of the Textus Receptus were outraged, but Westcott and Hort's text formed the basis of the Revised Version, and soon a text based on theirs became completely standard when Eberhard Nestle (1851-1913) prepared a conflation of von Tischendorf's eighth edition, Westcott and Hort, Weymouth, and later Bernhard Weiss for the Wurttemburg Bible Society and, in 1904, for the British and Foreign Bible Society. Westcott and Hort finally succeeded in dethroning the Textus Receptus of Stephanus, but their claim to have published the New Testament in the original Greek seems to have been too grand a claim, and the work of textual critics in the last twenty-five years of the century suggested that Westcott and Hort had not so much established the original text as established the text of an early recension, the result of editorial activity. Towards the end of the century two discoveries raised once more the problem of the Western group of manuscripts; perhaps here was to be found evidence for the wild and varied texts upon which the early recensionists exercised their art. First, William Hugh Ferrar (1834/5-71) of Trinity College, Dublin, showed that four late manuscripts of the Gospels, the minuscules 13, 69, 124, and 346, formed a 'family' that derived from a common archetype, an archetype offering a text as good as that of three or four of the most ancient uncials.24 Kirsopp Lake (1872-1946) made a further discovery of another 'family' of minuscules, 1,118,131, and 209, and he went on to suggest that these two families, family 1 and family 13, together with some other minuscules, perhaps represented the text used by Origen in Caesarea.25 The second great discovery was of an older Syriac translation of the Gospels, the Codex Syriac Sinaiticus, discovered in the monastery of St Catharine on Mount Sinai by Mrs Agnes Smith Lewis (1843-1926) and her twin sister Mrs Margaret Dunlop Gibson (1843-1920) in 1892 (with supplementary discoveries on later visits in 1893, 1895, 1897, 1902 and 1906). This version agreed well with the Alexandrian and Western Greek manuscripts in omitting passages to be found in the Byzantine text, but its text was in general Western rather than Alexandrian. In the early years of the twentieth century Hermann Freiherr von Soden (1852-1914) made a bold attempt to throw together into one group all the manuscripts that were not either Alexandrian or Byzantine (he called these two recensions Hesychian, the Egyptian second century text, siglum H, Eta; and Koine, the text established by Lucian of Antioch, who died in A.D. 312,
J. C. O NEILL
siglum K, Kappa). This third group he called the Jerusalem group, the Palestinian text established by Pamphilus of Caesarea who died in A.D. 309 (siglum I, Iota, standing for Jerusalem). More important, he assigned the more narrowly 'Western' manuscripts of the Gospels (D, W, 0,700) to this group as la; the rest of the group in the Gospels comprised I77 (family 1, discovered by Lake), It (family 13, discovered by Ferrar), I> (itself divided into four subdivisions), Ij3 (in two subdivisions), Io, 177, la, IK (in four subdivisions) and a miscellaneous collection of separate I manuscripts.26 This analysis has found little favour, and yet it remains true that a great number of late minuscules do fall into families and do offer readings that are early and sometimes original. Bentley and Lachmann set themselves a simple problem, the discovery of a text that existed in the fourth century. The discovery and publication of two fourth century uncial manuscripts, X and B, which contained a good short text, was not accepted simply as an answer to Bentley and Lachmann's problem; von Tischendorf and Hort were so intoxicated by the discoveries that they began to claim that they were in touch with the apostolic autographs. We now know through the recent discovery of third-century papyri, with a text close to that of B and K, that this recension is at least third century, but the fact that Western and Byzantine readings are also found in the writings of early Church Fathers shows us that the Alexandrian text is more likely to be a deliberately edited recension which systematically adopted shorter readings than a set of manuscripts in direct succession from the 'apostolic autographs', as Hort thought. Hug's hypothesis, that the manuscripts von Soden has labelled I (Jerusalem) are really witnesses to the state of the text of the New Testament before the firm recension made by an Alexandrian editor which produced Hort's Neutral and Alexandrian text, is intrinsically more probable. Within the mass of 'Western' manuscripts, we now know that we can separate out 'families' which represent early archetypes, but none of these archetypes, nor probably even the early uncial D, represents an organized recension. The two recensions were the Alexandrian (von Soden's Palestinian text) and the later Byzantine or Syrian recension (von Soden's Koine text). The earliest manuscripts of the New Testament must have quickly become corrupt, and the Church must in the third century have taken steps to edit and purge the wild texts; the orthodox Church could not itself avoid doing conservatively what Marcion had tried to do radically. Recensions there were, but a theory that regards all our manuscripts as belonging to one of these recensions and does not allow for the possibility that we still possess 152
The Study of the New Testament more or less direct evidence of an earlier disordered stage in the transmission of the text cuts against the discoveries that belong to the last years of the nineteenth century: the discovery of 'families' and the publication of the Syriac Sinaiticus version. The true achievement of the nineteenth-century textual critics was not the replacing of the Textus Receptus by the original text of the Greek New Testament, but the discovery that the Textus Receptus was one recension and the Alexandrian text another recension; the problem they began to work on, and which they bequeathed to the twentieth century, was how to analyse and use the evidence of other early 'families' of manuscripts in the great group which von Soden labelled I for Jerusalem. As Kirsopp Lake wrote in 1898, 'until some probable theory can be reached, which will explain the curious phenomena to be found in that [Western] group of MSS., our views on the text of the New Testament as a whole, however probable, can only be tentative.'27 / / Criticism of the books said to be written by the Apostle John The New Testament contains five books which were traditionally said to be written by the Apostle John: the Fourth Gospel, an anonymous work in which the author claims to have seen the blood and water flow from Jesus' side when the soldier pierced it with a spear (John 19.35), and whose Gospel is accordingly ascribed to 'the beloved disciple', the only male follower present at the crucifixion (John 19.26O; the First Epistle of St John, an anonymous work that claims to have been written by someone who saw Jesus and touched him with his hands (1 John 1.1); the Second and Third Epistles of St John, short anonymous letters from someone calling himself The Presbyter; and the Apocalypse (or Book of Revelation) said to be by John 'your brother and companion in tribulation' who was on the island of Patmos on account of his testimony to Jesus, and who there received a vision (Revelation 1.1, 4, 9; 22.8). Only the Apocalypse mentions the name 'John' in the text, and it does not say that this John was one of the sons of Zebedee and an Apostle; the Fourth Gospel and the First Epistle claim to be by people who knew Jesus intimately, but neither actually claims to be written by John. An early Church Father mentions John the Presbyter, but the Second and Third Epistles claim merely to be written by The Presbyter without mention of whether or not his name was John. The Apocalypse was the first of these five books to be attacked as inauthentic. Gaius, a Roman Christian at the opening of the third century, already denied its authority, ascribing it to the heretic Cerinthus (Eusebius, 153
J. C. O NEILL
Ecclesiastical History, in, 28.2), and Dionysius of Alexandria thought it must have been written by John Mark or another John, not John the Apostle who wrote the Fourth Gospel (Eusebius, Ecclesiastical History, vn, 25). Its place in the collection of canonical books was always uncertain: sometimes it was grouped with the Four Gospels, sometimes with Acts and the Catholic Epistles, sometimes with the Pauline Epistles, and sometimes put alone. At the time of the Reformation Erasmus (c. 1466-1536) revived the old doubts about the authenticity of Revelation, drawing attention to the stylistic difference between Revelation and the Fourth Gospel. Luther did not like Revelation and put it with James, Jude, and Hebrews at the end of his translation of the New Testament on unnumbered pages. Nevertheless the Apocalypse remained in the Protestant canon, and was popularly interpreted as referring to the time of the Reformation, with the Pope as Antichrist. Roman Catholic commentators answered these charges by showing that the book referred to events in the first century at the time of its composition. Luis de Alcazar (1554-1613) in his monumental work Vestigatio arcani sensus in apocalypsi (Antwerp, 1614) argued that the first part of the Apocalypse was directed against the Synagogue and the second part against the Roman Empire. This approach was taken up by the Protestant Hugo Grotius (1583-1645). The ancient questioning of the tradition that the author was the Apostle John was revived by the French Protestant Firmin Abauzit (1679-1767) whose mother sent him to Geneva for safety on the revocation of the Edict of Nantes. He travelled in Holland and England and in 1730 published in English an examination of the Apocalypse, arguing that it was a paraphrase of Mark 13 written at the time of Nero. In Germany Georg Ludwig Oeder took up the theme by arguing that Gaius was right in attributing the authorship of the Apocalypse to Cerinthus. Oeder's work was published and defended by Semler,28 who ascribed its authorship to a Montanist, that is, an apocalyptic fanatic. Herder and Eichhorn thought this judgment too harsh, and regarded the Apocalypse as a poetic work, a dramatic poem, whose author did not mean his visions to be taken literally. Semler's wish to remove the Apocalypse from the Christian Canon was part of his rejection of the alleged distortion of the universal gospel of Paul by the judaizers; the Apocalypse represented extreme Judaism. This estimate of the Apocalypse is already found in Thomas Morgan, for whom this judaizing of the Gospel prepared the way for Roman Catholicism.29 Morgan cited with approval Isaac Newton's defence of the traditional view that the author was the Apostle John, and it is one of the curiosities of criticism that the 154
The Study of the New Testament Johannine authorship of the Apocalypse was strongly defended by the nineteenth-century Tubingen school.30 The reason was simple: they needed literary evidence to support the historical reconstruction of the history of the early Church put forward by Marcion, revived by Thomas Morgan, and domesticated in Germany by Semler. According to this theory Peter and the other Jewish Apostles judaized Jesus' message in stark opposition to Paul's universal interpretation of the Gospel. The Apocalypse provided a good example of a book which emphasized the exclusive prerogatives of Jews and which foretold a visible triumph on earth of Christ and his saints - and if the traditional authorship of the book could be maintained, they would have evidence of just the distortion of Jesus' message by the early apostles which they required. The Gospel ofJohn, on the other hand, they regarded as a late work, written after the catholic synthesis between the two opposing original schools had been achieved. A great new step in understanding the Apocalypse was first taken by Friedrich Liicke (1791-1855) who argued that the book belonged to a whole series of Jewish apocalypses which had been produced in great profusion since the time of Ezekiel and Daniel.31 Liicke's thesis was sharpened by Eberhard Vischer (1865-1946) in a dissertation written under Adolf Harnack's supervision in which he argued that the Apocalypse was originally a Jewish document which had later been christianized by the addition of chapters 1-3; 5.9-14; 7.9-17; 13.9^ 141-5, i*f; 15-35 l 6 l 5 ; 17-Hi i9-9f, " , 13; 20.4-6; 2i.5b-8. 32 Finally, at the end of the nineteenth century Hermann Gunkel (18621932) put the Apocalypse at the centre of a whole new interpretation of the Bible as a part of the history of religions. He connected the myths contained in Genesis 1 and Revelation 12 with the Babylonian myths of creation and chaos at the beginning and end of history.33 Gunkel attacked the attempts to relate the myth in Revelation 12 to contemporary events as bankrupt; the material must first of all be seen as part of a long chain of tradition reaching back for thousands of years through Judaism into Babylonian religion. Gunkel's book was immediately followed by a soberer work on the Antichrist by Wilhelm Bousset (1865-1920) in which he acknowledged Gunkel's inspiration, but restricted himself to exploring the pre-Christian Jewish apocalyptic tradition and its Christian continuation down to the Middle Ages.34 He followed this monograph with an outstanding commentary on the Apocalypse in the Meyer series, which combined Gunkel's approach from the point of view of the history of religion with an attempt to relate the visions to contemporary events.35 The result of nineteenth-century criticism of the Apocalypse has been to 155
J. C. O'NEILL
set the book firmly in the tradition of pre-Christian Jewish apocalyptic literature; and since Jewish apocalyptic is more and more seen as the proper setting for understanding the ministry of Jesus, the Apocalypse is now recognized as an important source for understanding the origins of Christianity. The story of nineteenth-century criticism of the Fourth Gospel can be told more simply. I have already mentioned Clement of Alexandria's theory that John's Gospel was written deliberately by the Apostle John as a 'spiritual' Gospel in contrast to the other three 'bodily' Gospels. This became a commonplace of eighteenth-century criticism. However, as far as I can discover, no one questioned the traditional assumption that the Apostle John was the author until Edward Evanson (i731-1805) published The Dissonance of the Four Generally Received Evangelists, and the Evidence of Their Respective Authenticity Examined (Ipswich, 1792; 2nd edn,
Gloucester, 1805). Evanson took the Histories of Luke (Luke-Acts) as the standard by which to reject Matthew, Mark and John as written in the second century; by the same standard he accepted 1 and 2 Corinthians, 1 and 2 Thessalonians, Galatians and 1 and 2 Timothy as genuine, and rejected Romans, Ephesians, Colossians, Hebrews, James, 1 and 2 Peter, 1, 2 and 3 John, Jude and the Letters to the Seven Churches in Revelation. In Germany Evanson's book prompted Erhard Friedrich Vogel (17501823), superintendent of the church in Wunsiedel (Franken) to write an anonymously published two-volume arraignment of the Evangelist John and his Editors at the Last Judgment.36 He was followed by Georg Konrad Horst (1767-1832), until 1817 a pastor in South Hessen, when he became a freelance writer,37 by Hermann Heimart Cludius (1754-1835), and by Heinrich Christian Ballenstedt who argued that the dependence of the Fourth Gospel on the philosophy of Philo made it impossible that the Apostle could have been the author.38 In 1820 Karl Gottlieb Bretschneider, general-superintendent of the church in Gotha published Probabilia de evangelii et epistolarum Ioannis apostoli indole et origine (Leipzig) which collected the arguments against the authenticity of John's Gospel. This book raised such a storm - Schleiermacher came out strongly in favour of the traditional authorship - that Bretschneider confessed himself convinced that his book was mistaken. In 1826 Wilhelm Martin Leberecht de Wette (1780-1849), Schleiermacher's protege (though later disowned), published a moderate and cautious but clear-sighted Introduction to the New Testament in which he was so far convinced by Bretschneider's book that he argued that 'the acceptance of the authenticity of this Gospel has not been raised above all doubt'.39 156
The Study of the New Testament Bretschneider's arguments were taken up by David Friedrich Strauss (1808-74) in his famous Das Leben jfesu, kritisch bearbeitet (2 vols.,
Tubingen, 1835); he showed point-by-point that the historical statements in which the Fourth Gospel disagreed with the Synoptic Gospels and Acts, like the statement that Jesus won disciples among the Samaritans, were false; and he also argued that the discourses of Jesus were free compositions of the Evangelist written in the spirit of Alexandrian or Hellenistic philosophy. Bruno Bauer (1809-82) followed the same line in his book on the Fourth Gospel of 1840,40 and with E. K. J. Liitzelberger (1802-77) argued that the Gospel was written between A.D. 130-135 in Edessa.41 Ferdinand Christian Baur then made this view of the Fourth Gospel one of the pillars of the Tubingen-school system, arguing that it was written about A.D. 170 as an ideal presentation of Jesus at a time when the original opposition between Jewish Christianity and Paulinism had been overcome.42 The rest of the century was spent by the radical critics in arguing whether the date of composition should not be put somewhat earlier in the second century, and by the conservative critics in defending apostolic authorship. But there was a time-bomb ticking away underneath this debate. Semler and Lessing, followed in 1806 by Julius August Ludwig Wegscheider (17711849),43 and then by Schleiermacher and Christian Hermann Weisse44 doubted or outright denied the Fourth Evangelist knew the Synoptic Gospels at all. This did not necessarily mean that his historical accounts were more trustworthy than those of the Synoptic Evangelists, but if he did not know them, his Gospel could be dated early. The theory of Johannine independence of the Synoptics was powerfully revived by Percy GardnerSmith in 1938.45 Besides arguing that the historical details in John's Gospel were independent of the Synoptics, Christian Hermann Weisse also argued that the discourses were genuine discourses of the Apostle John expressing not so much his picture of Christ as his idea of Christ; and that these discourses were written down by disciples of the Apostle after his death. Weisse was followed in this line by Daniel Schenkel (1813-85) and Alexander Schweizer (1808-88).46 In 1863 Ernest Renan (1823-92) in his enormously popular Vie de Jesus argued that the historical part of the Gospel was essentially Johannine, going back to the Apostle, whereas the discourses were metaphysical essays added later; he spoke of a 'school of John' like the school of Socrates.47 The attempt to understand the discourses received a new twist at the end of the century, when new attention was given to the religious literature of the Mandaeans. Wilhelm Brandt (1855-1915) suggested that the Mandaean writings went back to a movement of religious reformation within Judaism
J. C. O'NEILL
which attracted a few followers (some of them Christian) and eventually became a new religion.48 Brandt's argument that the origins of Mandaeans were Jewish made the ideas available as possible sources for John's discourses. Mark Lidzbarski (i 868-1928), a Polish Jew who fled to Germany as a boy and eventually became Professor of Oriental Studies in Greifswald (1907) and Gottingen (1917), published new editions of the Mandaean literature and translated it into German.49 At the same time James Rendel Harris (1852-1941) published a manuscript in his own possession, the Syriac Odes of Solomon (Cambridge, 1909), which showed striking parallels to the language of the Johannine discourses.50 Harris himself thought that the Odes were written by a Christian who, while not a Jew, was a member of a community of Christians who were for the most part of Jewish extraction and beliefs, but Harnack, almost the first commentator in the field, argued that the Odes were a Jewish psalm-book composed near the beginning of the first century, and worked over soon afterwards by a Christian hand.51 The Mandaean literature and the Odes of Solomon suggested to Richard Reitzenstein, Walter Bauer and Rudolf Bultmann that the Fourth Evangelist may have used a pre-Christian Jewish source in composing the Prologue and the discourses.52 The result of radical criticism had a curious outcome: first the contradictions between the events narrated in the Fourth Gospel and the events narrated in the Synoptics led sharp-eyed critics like Weisse to argue that John's Gospel was independent of the Synoptics and earlier than them; then the observation of the parallels in Mandaean literature, which went back, perhaps, to John the Baptist, and the discovery of the Jewish Odes of Solomon gave support to the view that the discourses were early, too - in this case, even pre-Christian. Few scholars would now defend the apostolic authorship of the Gospel; but few would argue for a second century date of composition. The same authors who questioned the authenticity of the Fourth Gospel also raised the possibility that the First Epistle of.St John was written by a different author from the author of the Gospel: Georg Konrad Horst, Hermann Heimart Cludius and Ferdinand Christian Baur; their forerunner seems to have been Samuel Gottlieb Lange (1767-1823).53 Baur and his successors argued that the heretics the author of 1 John was combatting were Gnostics, and this helped locate the Epistle in the second century when the struggle with Gnosticism in the church was at its height. However C. Wittichen raised the interesting possibility in 1869 that the 'heretics' were really Essene Ebionites. His theory found little favour, but was 158
The Study of the New Testament revived in the form that the 'heretics' were Jews by Alois Wurm in 1904.54 The strong affinities between the language of the Epistle on the one hand and the newly discovered Essene writings at Qumran and the Testaments of the Twelve Patriarchs on the other hand have confirmed the instincts of Wittichen and Wurm, and suggest that both the author of the Epistle and his opponents came out of the same religious setting, the Jewish sect of the Essenes. The discovery of the library in the caves near the ruins of the Qumran settlement has made more difference to the discussion of the writings that bear the name of John than to any other part of the New Testament, but the issues are still the issues raised in the nineteenth and early twentieth century. / / / Criticism of the Synoptic Gospels Modern discussion of the question of whether or not there was a literary relationship between our Greek Gospels of Matthew, Mark, and Luke and of what that literary relation might be goes back to two suggestions, one made by Hugo Grotius and the other by Jean Le Clerc (1657—1736), both men Arminians. Grotius took up a theory of Augustine's that Matthew's Gospel was the first Gospel, Mark's Gospel used Matthew, and Luke's Gospel used both Matthew and Mark. Grotius's scheme was followed by Wetstein and Thomas Townson (1715-92), whose Discourses on the Four Gospels, Chiefly with Regard to the peculiar Design of each, And the Order and Places in which
they were written (Oxford, 1778) was translated into German and annotated by Semler. The Grotius scheme was revived in the middle of the nineteenth century by Adolf Hilgenfeld (1823-1907).55 Henry Owen (1716-95) invented a variant of Grotius's theory, published as Observations on the Four Gospels; tending chiefly, To ascertain the Times of their Publication; And To illustrate the Form and Manner of their Composition
(London, 1744): Matthew was written first, for Jewish converts; but Luke second, using Matthew, for the Gentile converts; and Mark third, using Matthew and Luke, for Christians at large. This theory was adopted by Johann Jakob Griesbach and became the theory of Ferdinand Christian Baur and most of the Tubingen school. Le Clerc, the originator of the other leading idea, founded his theory on a remark of Jerome's. He argued that the verbal similarities between the Gospels rested on their common use of some Aramaic sources, chronicles left by those who had seen and heard Jesus. Semler and Michaelis, who had at first followed Grotius's theory, switched to this, and Lessing advocated it 159
J. C. O NEILL
about the same time.56 This theory allowed one to say that the Greek Synoptic Gospels as they stood were independent of each other. Michaelis gave as his reason for abandoning the theory that Mark was dependent on another Gospel or Gospels his reading of a little monograph by Johannes Benjamin Koppe (1750-91), Marcus non epitomator Matthdi (1782). Koppe's argument led Gottlob Christian Storr (1746-1805), the leader of the old Tubingen school, to propose a new variant of Grotius by putting Mark first chronologically: Mark's Gospel was used by Matthew, and Luke used both Mark and Matthew.57 The idea that Matthew had to be the earliest Gospel of the three Synoptics because it alone bore the name of an Apostle was now broken, and Mark (or in the case of Edward Evanson and Schleiermacher, Luke) could be put first. Jean Le Gere's idea of Aramaic sources reached its culmination in the theory put forward in 1794 by Johann Gottfried Eichhorn. He argued that there were originally four Aramaic sources, the first used by Matthew, the second by Luke, the third (a combination of the first and second) used by Mark, and the fourth used by both Matthew and Luke. The Greek Gospels are independent of one another, but all four are dependent on roughly two Aramaic sources, one in various forms used by Matthew, Luke and Mark, and the other by Matthew and Luke.58 Herbert Marsh, fellow of St John's College, Cambridge (1757-1839), who translated and annotated Michaelis's Introduction to the New Testament, and whose annotations and supplements were in turn translated into German, refined Eichhorn's theory. He argued for two Hebrew sources, K which was translated into Greek and used with the Hebrew original by Mark and Luke, and which was supplemented to become the Hebrew Matthew, itself then translated into Greek; and!3, a Hebrew collection of precepts, parables, and discourses, which was used by Matthew and Luke.59 The Roman Catholic theologian Alois Peter Gratz (1769—1849) in his Neuer Versuch, die Entstehung der drey ersten Evangelien zu erkldren (Tubingen, 1812) then simplified this theory: an Aramaic source was translated into Greek to be used by Mark and Luke, while Matthew used the original Aramaic; and Luke and Matthew also shared a common collection of sayings. Gratz's book is the last to suppose that the history of the relationship between the Synoptic Gospels is bound up with the history of how two Hebrew or Aramaic sources were translated into Greek. The idea that there were two sources for the three Synoptics is nowfirmlyestablished, but, even if an Aramaic origin for a source is posited, little or no interest is shown from now on in any history the source might have had in its Aramaic form. 160
The Study of the New Testament Julius Wellhausen (i 844-1918), for example, concedes that a few variations between Matthew and Luke may be attributed to a different reading or rendering of an Aramaic original, but he insists that the source common to Matthew and Luke was in Greek, and that at best the Aramaic original must have still been accessible to the Evangelists.60 After Gratz the Synoptic Problem became the problem of how Greek sources were used by the three Greek Synoptic Gospels. The only exception was Heinrich Ewald (180375)-61 Why this clean break with a century of scholarly investigation? The deathblow to the older theories seems to have been delivered by the Roman Catholic scholar Johann Leonhard Hug whose outstanding contribution to the study of the text of the New Testament has already been noticed. Hug argued that the Greek of the Gospels agreed far too closely to be possible if the Gospels were independent translations from Hebrew. Even the hypothesis that a Hebrew Gospel was translated into Greek and then used by our Evangelists was unnecessary, since the missionaries among the Aramaicspeaking populace needed no written documents; written accounts were first needed only when the message was being preached in Greek-speaking lands. The same objection was brought by Hug against the recent revival of the theory that there was afixedoral Gospel.62 De Wette in his Introduction of 1826 reproduced and accepted just these arguments, without mentioning Hug's name.63 Hug went on to restate Grotius's theory that Matthew was used by Mark, and Matthew and Mark by Luke; this theory almost completely disappeared, but his demolition of the Hebrew or Aramaic Gospel theory won universal acceptance. In 1836 the classical scholar Karl Konrad Friedrich Wilhelm Lachmann concentrated attention on a simple reason for regarding Mark as the framework on which Matthew and Luke were built. He argued that the order of events to be found in Mark was the order followed and deviated from by Matthew and Luke. He also said that Matthew and Luke had in common some collections of sayings of Jesus.64 Although Lachmann was careful to say that Matthew and Luke did not have before them a copy of our Greek Mark, this complication was soon forgotten. Christian Gottlob Wilke (1786-1854) argued in a detailed and painstaking book published in 1838 that our Greek Mark was the original Gospel and that all the differences from Mark in Matthew and Luke could be explained as deliberate alterations. The same year Christian Hermann Weisse (1801-70) made exactly the same case with far less detail but a broader scope; he also argued that Luke first, then Matthew, both used our Greek Mark plus the Hebrew Logia source.65 161
J. C. O NEILL
The Tubingen school (except for Bruno Bauer) went on supporting Griesbach's hypothesis, emphasizing the tendency of each of the Gospels: Matthew was a Jewish Christian Gospel; Luke used Matthew from the Paulinist side; while Mark was a neutral epitome made for use by a reconciled Catholic Church. But the renewed support for Owen and Griesbach did not stop scholars from exploring the newer two-document hypothesis. The greatest and most lasting work on what has become an agreed position was done by Heinrich Julius Holtzmann (1832-1910). His first attempt was published in 1863. He argued that there was a Greek source A, which consisted of all of our Mark that is contained in either Matthew and Luke, plus the pericope of the woman taken in adultery (John 7.53-8.11) and the resurrection appearance of Jesus to the women to tell the disciples to go to Galilee and his appearance there (Matthew 28.9, 10, 16-20). Our Mark was this source A plus some discourses, parables and narratives, with some excisions. Matthew and Luke were based on source A and a second source A plus their own individual sources.66 In 1885 Holtzmann modified this theory by supposing that Luke knew our Matthew as well as our Mark, and by abandoning the idea that there was any difference between an 'Urmarcus' and Mark.67 The nineteenth century succeeded in discovering a simple explanation for a complex literary relationship, but at the cost of forgetting another set of problems about the Gospels that had concerned Eichhorn and Marsh and Gratz, the originators of the two-document hypothesis, the set of problems to do with the fact that the accounts of Jesus' words and deeds came first from people who spoke Aramaic and wrote Aramaic and perhaps Hebrew. Hug's argument that no connected Gospel account was ever written or recited in Hebrew or Aramaic is not very likely, and was certainly not accepted by Weisse and countless others (including Wellhausen) for Q, the Sayings Source; yet no one except Ewald since Eichhorn and Marsh and Gratz seems to have considered that different translations and different recensions of this and other Hebrew or Aramaic sources could help explain the similarities and differences between the Synoptic Gospels. It is unlikely that the originators of the two-document hypothesis were completely mistaken in seeing more difficulties than their followers could face. The Synoptic Problem was a satisfactory problem for learned and efficient scholars to work upon; and it seemed to produce good solid results, so that at the beginning of the twentieth century Johannes Weiss could write, 'the assumption that our second Gospel is the oldest is no longer a hypothesis but a scholarly conclusion' (ein wissenschaftliches Ergebnis).6S
The real problems that needed to be solved, and which prompted all the hard investigation of the Synoptic Problem, were much more intractable, 162
The Study of the New Testament and work on them moved much more slowly. They were first, the question of what sort of literature the Gospels were; and second, the question about what Jesus himself actually did and taught. At the end of the eighteenth century Johann Gottfried Herder (17441803), w a s o n e of the first to suggest that Mark was the first Greek Gospel, which mostly followed a short original common oral Gospel in Aramaic; that Luke used Mark and a longer Gospel of the Hebrews; and that the Greek Matthew was a later free translation into Greek of this Gospel of the Hebrews.69 But his real significance was that he directed attention to these two great questions, the literary question of the sort of books the Gospels were and the sort of paragraphs they contained; and the historical and theological question of the real centre of Jesus' teaching. Herder set the lines on which both our two questions were discussed for the next two hundred years. Each of the Gospels, he said, was a Good News Rhapsody, freely composed by each Evangelist according to the needs of the audience.70 Indeed, the Gospel had always been preached in a form appropriate to the audience. When Christ spoke out of the people to the people, how else could he speak than in the people's speech with its mixture of Pharisaism and Hellenistic ideas? When he was outside and inside Galilee and spoke to heathen Galilee full of different nations, how else could he speak than in Galilean? Matthew, who seems so rightly to have embraced Jesus' words with folk-simplicity, had to aramaize; Luke, as he presented these words for Hellenists, had to hellenize. John even introduces suggestions in Jesus' lifetime that the gospel might be meant for the widely scattered Hellenes (John i2.2of).71
The ideas are childlike, presented as ideas of children and angels, in the speech of the people; now we laugh at the play of children, yet the children's game calls Truth! Truth! In this and many other similar passages Herder is suggesting that each of the Gospels is a work with a particular audience in mind, written in the language of the people. He was also suggesting that the individual paragraphs were folk-stories from a childlike age. Finally he was suggesting that Jesus' actual message could be identified behind its various dresses; there was a religion of Jesus behind the religion about Jesus: Kingdom of God! Heavenly Kingdom! immovable hidden life in him, life with the bountiful, strengthening, all-inspiring Divinity, that is the root of his teaching and his demands.72
Herder put forward in a new and powerful combination the ideas that led to Form criticism, Redaction criticism, and the nineteenth-century quest for the historical Jesus. David Friedrich Strauss took up the three themes by suggesting that the Gospel incidents and sayings were shaped mainly on the basis of Old 163
J. C. O'NEILL
Testament models by popular tradition; the Gospel accounts arose out of the popular need to create new and powerful myths out of a popular religious tradition. Nearly fifty years later Franz Overbeck (i837-1905) drew attention to the deceptively simple point that the New Testament did not contain 'literature' at all; the New Testament books are really pre-literature, when judged by their form; and 'literature' cannot be said to begin in the church until the Apologists. 'Gospel, Acts and Apocalypse are historical forms which from a quite definite point of time on simply disappear in the Christian church.'73 Georg Henrici (1844-1915) similarly emphasized that the Gospels were collections of documents and testimonies thrown up by a missionary movement; the literature both reflected and formed the life and piety of the early Christian congregations.74 At the same time Hermann Gunkel was emphasizing that the New Testament documents were religious documents; mythical pictures of the cosmos from other religions had become part of Judaism and thus part of Christianity.75 Not only did this lead to a greater interest in the form of the paragraphs, as expressions of popular religious themes; it led also to a new interest in the content of the documents, as containing religious ideas which had to be given full weight. For example, Herder and his successors had tacitly concluded that apocalyptic was at best a temporary clothing adopted by Jesus or Paul or the writer of the Apocalypse to present his message to his contemporaries. Overbeck scathingly pointed out that this picture of Jesus and the early Church completely obscured the truth.76 In 1892 Johannes Weiss wrote a book on the preaching of Jesus about the Kingdom of God in which he coolly argued, step by step, that Jesus never taught the presence of the Kingdom but looked forward rather to a future Kingdom of God on earth.77 So Reimarus's picture of Jesus was revived, and Albert Schweitzer (1875-1965) celebrated this fact in his book From Reimarus to Wredey later to be generally known after its English title as The Quest ofthe HistoricalJesus ?% The century that thought it had solved the Synoptic Problem was left in deep uncertainty about the form of the Gospels as wholes and the form of their component parts, and in deeper uncertainty about the content of Jesus' message. Again, all the moves that were to prove fruitful in the twentieth century had already been made by 1901. IV Criticism of the New Testament Epistles and the Acts of the Apostles Semler followed Marcion (as revived by Thomas Morgan) in seeing the history of the early Church as a clash between Judaizers, who preached a 164
The Study of the New Testament gospel of the coming of a Jewish Kingdom of God on earth, and the Paulinists, who preached a universal spiritual gospel. Semler's contribution to the criticism of the New Testament was to try to 'place' the books according to their relation to this supposed history. The Gospels represented the Judaizers, and he argued that the Catholic Epistles (James, i and 2 Peter, 1,2, and 3 John, and Jude) were late writings by authors who looked back on the Pauline Epistles and were attempting to reconcile the two opposing wings of the church, the Petrine wing and the Pauline wing. He followed Luther and Grotius in denying that James was written by an Apostle; he doubted that 1 Peter was written by Peter; and 2 Peter and Jude he put well into the second century.79 The nineteenth-century critics followed this lead and tried to relate each book to events according to the tendency it showed: to support Judaistic Christianity, to support Paul, or to work a compromise. Semler's decisive move was to question the apostolicity of the Catholic Epistles and to put them late on in the history of the early Church, so it is best to consider the criticism of the Catholic Epistles first. The next move, also made by Semler, was to regard the Acts of the Apostles as the work of a Paulinist designed to reconcile Judaizers to Paul, and I shall deal with the history of the criticism of Acts next. Finally, criticism was turned on some parts of the Pauline corpus itself, first of all by Semler on Hebrews, then on the Pastoral Epistles, and finally on many others, and I shall conclude with the history of the criticism of the letters ascribed to Paul. (a) The Catholic Epistles Many early Church Fathers rejected the Epistle of James as inauthentic (Clement of Alexandria, Eusebius, Theodore of Mopsuestia) and Luther denied that an Apostle could have written it; the author was rather 'some good pious man who got hold of and put on paper some sayings of the disciples of the apostles'. Luther was followed by Grotius and Wetstein, de Wette and a long line of commentators.80 One defence against the late dating of the Epistle has been to attempt to put it before Paul raised the critical question of justification by faith or justification by works, and this line has been followed by Matthius Schneckenburger (1804-48), Bernhard Weiss (1827-1918) and many others.81 At the end of the century two scholars, L. Massebieau and Friedrich Spitta (1852-1924), went further and argued that the Epistle of James was not written by a Christian at all but by a Jew, and that the references to Jesus Christ at 1.1 and 2.1 are interpolations.82 Semler doubted the apostolic authorship of 1 Peter and pointed out the 165
J. C. O NEILL
affinity with the writings and the religious ideas of Paul; and Eichhorn thought the writer was a Paulinist, probably Mark. Eichhorn was followed by Cludius who argued that the author was a pure Paulinist, a Gentile Christian writing after the close of the apostolic age.83 De Wette accepted Cludius's arguments,84 and this line was followed by the Tubingen school. Towards the end of the century Adolf Harnack and others argued that i Peter was composite; Harnack suggested that 1.1-2 and 5.12-14 were second-century additions to an earlier anonymous homily adding the name of Peter in order to gain a place for the book in the Canon.85 The various theories that divide up the Epistle into various parts, like Richard Perdelwitz's that 1.3-4.11 was a baptismal address added to a homily for a church composed mainly of people who had once been members of a mystery cult,86 show that nineteenth-century criticism had not yet come to rest at a completely satisfactory stopping place. The authenticity of 2 Peter was denied by Clement of Alexandria and others, doubted by Erasmus and Calvin, and in modern times rejected by Grotius, Semler, Johann Ernst Christian Schmidt, Eichhorn, de Wette and August Neander (1789-1850). The main argument was that 2 Peter looks back on a closed Pauline collection of letters. The Epistle of Jude was regarded as doubtful by Luther and put well into the second century by Semler, followed by Schleiermacher, Neander, Schwegler and the Tubingen school. (b) The Acts of the Apostles A curious feature of criticism of Acts is that scholars who emphasize the special tendency of the work to defend Paul against Judaizing Christians by making Peter and Paul as like to each other as possible do not necessarily reject the traditional ascription of authorship to Luke, Paul's companion. The tendency of Acts to play down the conflict between Peter and Paul, by omitting, for example, an account of their dispute at Antioch, was noted by Semler,87 and the same line was followed by Griesbach, and in 1836 by Karl Schrader and F. C. Baur. Schrader and Baur rejected Lucan authorship,88 but a few years later M. Schneckenburger accepted the apologetic tendency of Acts without giving up Lucan authorship.89 The most extreme rejection of Lucan authorship was at the same time a rejection also of the theory that Acts was a deliberate work to defend Paul against the Judaizers. In 1850 Bruno Bauer (1809-82) argued that when the Acts was written the tension of parties had collapsed, the opposition was veiled, the difference was obliterated and peace had already been concluded; the Acts is not a proposal of peace, but the expression and consummation of peace and toleration.90
166
The Study of the New Testament This became the dominant critical position. The radical critics followed Eichhorn in rejecting the idea that Acts employed written sources, but nevertheless a line of scholars, beginning from the work of Bernhard Konigsman in 1798, worked on this hypothesis.91 Ziegler suggested very plausibly that the Acts of Peter and written accounts of the martyrdom of Stephen and the conversion of Paul were sources for the first part of Acts,92 and notable studies by Eugen Schwanbeck in 1847 and August Jacobsen in 1885 prepared for a flood of source theories in the last decade of the century.93 This issue is still alive. Bultmann warmly welcomed Haenchen's commentary on Acts, a commentary that places great emphasis on the creative work of Luke in shaping the story for theological reasons, but he sharply criticized Haenchen for rejecting too easily the evidence that Luke was using sources.94 (c) The Pauline Epistles Origen argued that the Epistle to the Hebrews could not have been written by Paul because of the far better Greek, although the thoughts were Paul's (Eusebius, Ecclesiastical History, vi, 25.11-14), and this approach was repeated at the time of the Reformation by Luther, who attributed the authorship to Apollos. In the eighteenth century Thomas Morgan argued that it was written after the destruction of the Temple to support the extravagant notion that the Jewish priesthood and sacrifices had been abolished while nevertheless the whole Christian circumcision was still under the Law and submitting to the priesthood; in other words, Hebrews was an attempt to reconcile the Judaizers and the followers of Paul.95 F. C. Baur fitted the Epistle into his pattern as thefirstattempt to reconcile the two parties of the Judaizers and the Paulinists.96 Nineteenth-century critics were not able to settle on any single agreed view about the purpose of the Epistle or the people to whom it was addressed. The most extreme challenge to the traditional understanding of the Epistle was the rejection of its present title; in 1836 E. M. Roeth argued that the work was not addressed to Jewish Christians but to Gentile Christians.97 This thesis was revived by von Soden in 1884, and supported by Jiilicher and Wrede.98 It was not difficult to detach Hebrews from the Pauline corpus. Edward Evanson, whose book was reviewed in Germany, began the nineteenthcentury movement to question the authorship of others of the Epistles ascribed to Paul: by his test of'the spirit of prophecy' he rejected Romans, Ephesians and Colossians as well as Hebrews.99 Eichhorn in the 1804 edition of his Introduction to the New Testament observed that 1 and 2 Timothy and 167
J. C. O'NEILL
Titus, the Pastoral Epistles, were at least in form un-Pauline. In 1807 Schleiermacher denied the Pauline authorship of 1 Timothy, and in 1812 Eichhornfirmlydenied that Paul wrote any of the Pastorals, and this became a generally accepted view. Leonhard Usteri (1799-1833) and de Wette raised questions about the authenticity of Ephesians in the 1820s, and de Wette came to reject Pauline authorship in 1843, the position adopted by F. C. Baur and the Tubingen school.100 In 1838 Ernst Theodor Mayerhoff in a book published after his death denied that Paul wrote the Epistle to the Colossians, because of its vocabulary, style and thought, although he believed Ephesians to be authentic.101 His arguments were adopted by F. C. Baur and the Tubingen school. The second Epistle to the Thessalonians was questioned by J. E. C. Schmidt in his Introduction in 1801, who argued that at least 2 Thessalonians 2.1-12 was a Montanist interpolation. De Wette at first accepted the case against Paul's authorship in 1826, although he later withdrew from this position. In 1839 Friedrich Heinrich Kern (1790-1842) argued that the Epistle was the application by a Paulinist of the legend of the Antichrist to the belief in Nero redivivus.102 This view was adopted by F. C. Baur. The authenticity of 1 Thessalonians was challenged by Karl Schrader in 1836, and this view was adopted by F. C. Baur. The authenticity of Philippians and Philemon was also questioned by Baur.103 Baur's reduction of the genuine letters of Paul to four was immediately challenged even by his own followers, and the starkness of the original opposition between Paul and Peter softened. Adolf Hilgenfeld argued that the common basic beliefs shared by Paul and the original Apostles should not be denied, and that Philippians, 1 Thessalonians and Philemon were also genuine when measured against the undoubtedly genuine four chief letters.104 The ablest of Baur's disciples, Albrecht Ritschl (1822-89) soon diverged more and more from Baur, and his book Die Entstehung der altkatholischen Kirche (Bonn, 1850) emphasized the fundamental agreement between Paul and the original Apostles and conceded the remnants of Judaism in Paul's thought, while retaining the idea that Catholic Christianity was a decline from the pure teaching that Paul had most clearly espoused. Joseph Barber Lightfoot (1828-89) especially recommended and built upon the second edition of Ritschl's book (1857) and in general brought to England and worked out in an irenic spirit the insights of Baur and his opponents, the most weighty of whom was Theodor Zahn (1838-1933), who defended the authenticity of all the books of the New Testament.105 168
The Study of the New Testament Zahn's position went back to the conservative scholars who immediately attacked Baur, men like Zahn's teacher Johann Christian Konrad von Hofmann (1810-77) and the spirited Heinrich W. J. Thiersch (1817-85), who in 1850 resigned his chair in Marburg in order to become an Irvingite missionary in Germany. But Baur was also attacked from a yet more radical position. In 1850 the brilliant young Hegelian, Bruno Bauer, argued that Paul did not write the four letters F. C. Baur regarded as genuine either. He showed that there were passages in all four Epistles that presupposed the decisive split between church and synagogue that had not occurred when Paul was alive. Bauer found a little support later in the century from a Dutch school and from a Swiss scholar, Rudolf Steck (1842-1924),106 but after that none. A few years after Bruno Bauer's book the philosopher Christian Hermann Weisse, already mentioned as one of the first to state clearly the ruling solution to the Synoptic Problem, proposed a new view of Paul's letters to meet Bauer's attack. He argued that 1 Corinthians was genuine and pure Paul, along with 1 Thessalonians and Philemon; 2 Corinthians was compiled from three genuine letters; Romans and Philippians were pastiches of genuine parts continuously interwoven with interpolations; Galatians and Colossians were straight letters of Paul with interpolations added; there was a tiny kernel of Paul in 2 Timothy and Titus; and Ephesians, 2 Thessalonians and 1 Timothy were entirely inauthentic.107 Weisse won little support except in Holland, above all from Jakob Cramer (1833-95).I08 Bruno Bauer's position seems to be a reductio ad absurdum of the critical process; can such a notable writer as Paul have had nothing survive? Christian Hermann Weisse's position, on the other hand, has a logic about it: if the critics can discern different authors when they compare say 1 Thessalonians and 2 Thessalonians, should they be surprised to find they can discern different authors when they compare Romans 3 and Romans 7? Certainly the presentations of Paul's theology in the nineteenth century could not decide on a single view of his thought, as Albert Schweitzer's masterly survey clearly showed,109 and it was in fact argued by Hermann Liidemann (1842—1933) that Paul held two distinct and different theologies, a Jewish-type theology and a Hellenistic-type theology.110 At the same time the problem of the nature and centre of Paul's thought was being sharpened. The emphasis shifted from the traditional Protestant doctrine of Justification by Faith as a juridical concept to an interest in Paul's religion as a religion of a converted man who turns from the outward man to the inward man, and there finds union with Christ.111 But, just as a similar view of Jesus' religion was challenged by Overbeck, Johannes Weiss and Albert Schweitzer, so this view of Paul was challenged, above all by Richard 169
J. C. O NEILL
Kabisch (1868-1914),a schoolmaster, in his book Die Eschatologie des Paulus in ihren Zusammenhdngen mit dem Gesamtbegriff des Paulinismus (The Eschatology of Paul in its connections with the total notion of Paulinism) (Gottingen, 1893).112 He argued that eschatological hope for the future reward was the centre of all Paul's actions and of his faith, as it was the driving motive of early Christianity. (d) Conclusion to criticism of the Catholic Epistles, Acts, and the Pauline Epistles The nineteenth century certainly showed that critics could plausibly distinguish and differentiate between passages in the Epistles according to the form of writing (whether that of an epistle or homily or credal statement or hymn or apocalypse), or according to the religious affinity of the thought (whether with Judaism or Hellenism or with the diverse types of religious ideas to be found in both areas). Even the most conservative critic who accepted the majority vote of church tradition as to the authorship of these Epistles and Acts could not avoid accepting some parts of this analysis, admitting that the style of writing differed in different parts of the one author's work, and that the religious affinities of different parts also differed. Nevertheless, the most powerful theory the century produced, that of F. C. Baur and the Tubingen school, a continuation of Semler's hypothesis, did not succeed in establishing itself, even though it consolidated many insights into the nature of the literature. Marcion's Paul, the Paul who attacked the Law and who preached a universal gospel, has not been clearly discovered; the Jewish ideas he was supposed to attack seem to be an ineradicable part of his thought; and the alleged catholic synthesis when a mild form of Judaism and a mild form of Paulinism are supposed to have buried their differences cannot be dated late on, except on the arbitrary assumption that such a synthesis can only belong then. There seems no good reason for dating the Catholic Epistles, en bloc, in the second century; it is even suggested that one of them, the Epistle of James, is largely pre-Christian. Wherever we look there is uncertainty. In the nineteenth century this farreaching uncertainty drove scholars into 'schools' which provided some agreed fixed points against which detailed small-scale investigations could be carried on. A history of nineteenth-century criticism makes it clear that these fixed points are not as secure as the schoolmen have thought. Twentieth-century criticism has done little more than rehearse a few nineteenth-century ideas, and perhaps it is time to stand back and ask why the very achievements of criticism and the new discoveries have taken us little further forward. 170
The Study of the New Testament Marcion proposed a hypothesis about the history of the thought of Jesus and the Apostles and their successors; he argued that the message of Jesus and Paul was Judaized by the other Jewish Apostles. Marcion did not prevail in his own lifetime, although many of his ideas were adopted by the Catholic Church in a modified form. It was true, as Thomas Morgan and Semler and F. C. Baur argued, that Catholic Christianity was a compromise, but the question still remains open as to whether or not the history of early Christian thought before the catholic compromise was the story of how Jesus and Paul were misunderstood by their opponents and subtly betrayed by their followers, or the story of how a Jewish movement became Greek. The history of nineteenth-century New Testament criticism is the history of how Marcion's theory has not been sustained; but it is also the history of how Marcion's theory was always being modified but never clearly abandoned. The conservative critics were in general powerless against it, partly because of their timid handling of genuine historical and literary questions, but partly because there were elements in the thought of Luther which favoured Marcion's historical position, as Adolf von Harnack pointed out.113 Marcion the historian had his greatest success in the nineteenth century. Notes 1 Allgemeine Bibliothek der biblischen Litteratur, vol. iv, part 6 (1793?), pp. 997^ 2 Translation of the 3rd edn, with a fifty-page introduction by Semler (Frankfurt and Leipzig, 1774). 3 Spinoza (1632-77), A Theologico-Political Treatise, chapter vn; my citation is from John Locke's friend John Toland (1670-1722), Christianity not Mysterious (London, 1696), p. 49. 4 An Essay on the Demoniacs of the New Testament (London, 1775), pp. 2,361. Cf. Joseph Mede (1586-1638), Arthur Ashley Sykes (i684?-i756), Nathaniel Lardner (16841768). 5 The argument was urged by Matthew Tindal (1657-1733), with copious citations from the Fathers, in Christianity as old as the Creation: or, the Gospel a Republication of the Religion of Nature. Vol. 1 (London, 1730), p. 207 et passim. Translated into German by Johann Lorenz Schmidt (1702-49) in 1741. Schmidt died at Wolfenbiittel, having been given asylum by the Duke. 6 Cited by Eusebius, Ecclesiastical History, vi, 14.7. 7 Nathaniel Lardner, The Credibility of the Gospel History (London, 1727-57), Part 1 in 2 volumes, Part 11 in 12 volumes and 3 supplementary volumes. Part 1 was soon translated into Dutch and Latin; the German translation appeared in 1750 with a Preface by Baumgarten. Part 11 was also translated into German, but I lack the details. 8 Neue Hypothese iiber die Evangelisten als bloss menschliche Geschichtsschreiber betrachtet, 1778, published only after his death, §§ 62, 63, 64; translated by Henry Chadwick, Lessing's Theological Writings (London, 1956), pp. 8of. 9 John Toland, Nazarenus: or Jewish, Gentile, and Mohametan Christianity. Containing . . . The Original Plan of Christianity occasionally explain1d in the history of the 171
J. C. O NEILL Nazarens, whereby diverse Controversies about this divine (but highly perverted) Institution may be happily terminated . . . (London, 1718), pp. iii, 5. 10 Thomas Morgan (?-i743), The Moral Philosopher. In a Dialogue between Philalethes a Christian Deist, and Theophanes a Christian Jew, vol. 1 (London, 1737), pp. 349-82 et passim. 11 See J. G. Eichhorn, 'Johann Salomo Semler', Allgemeine Bibliothek der biblischen Litteratur, v (Leipzig, 1793), pp. 1-202 at pp. 59-73. 12 Christianity as old as the Creation, p. 226. 13 Marcion: Das Evangelium vomfremden Gott (Leipzig, 1921), p. iii; 2nd edn (1924), p. vi. 14 Harnack, Marcion, 1st edn, pp. 252f.; 2nd edn, p. 221. 15 See [Anthony Collins], A Discourse of Free-Thinking (London, 1713), p. 88. 16 Remarks Upon a late Discourse of Free-Thinking: In a Letter to N.N. by Phileleutherus Lipsiensis (London, 171*3; 7th edn, 1737), pp. 95f., n o . 17 A Letter to William Wake, Archbishop of Canterbury, 1716, Ellis, Bentleii Critic a Sacra, Introductory Preface, p. xv, cit. Frederick Henry Ambrose Scrivener (1813-91), A Plain Introduction to the Criticism ofthe New Testament for the Use of Biblical Students, 4th edn, edited by E. Miller (London, 1894), vol. 11, pp. 2O5f. 18 See the English translation of the fourth German edition of 1788 by Herbert Marsh, vol. 1, part 1 (Cambridge, 1793), p. 175. 19 Einleitung in die Schriften des Neuen Testaments (Stuttgart, 1808); the third German edition translated into English by David Fosdick, Jr. (Andover, 1836). 20 Hug, Einleitung, English translation, p. 304. 21 See Hort's reviews of Tregelles and Tischendorf, The Journal of Classical and Sacred Philology 11 (Cambridge, 1855), pp. 110-12; iv (1857-9), PP- 2 0 1 - n . 22 See the table of the date of publication of select readings, collations, and continuous texts of K, B, A, C, Q, T, D, D Paul , N, P, R, Z, I, "L,3,A, GPaul, E, P on p. 15 of The New Testament in the Original Greek: Introduction [vol. 11] (Cambridge and London, 1882). 23 Hort, The New Testament in the Original Greek: Introduction (Cambridge and London, 1882), pp. 222f. 24 A Collation of Four Important Manuscripts of the Gospels: with a view to prove their common origin, and to restore the text of their archetype, edited by T. K. Abbott (Dublin, 1877). 25 Lake mentioned the possible connection with Caesarea in The Text of The New Testament (London, 1898) but dropped the suggestion in later editions; it was restored, thanks to B. H. Streeter's investigations, in the 6th edn, revised by S. New (1928), p. 84; Codex 1 and its Allies, Texts and Studies vii (Cambridge, 1902); K. Lake, Robert P. Blake and Silva New, 'The Caesarean Text of the Gospel of Mark', The Harvard Theological Review, xxi (1928), 207-404. 26 Hermann Freiherr von Soden, Die Schriften des Neuen Testaments in ihrer dltesten erreichbaren Textgestalt hergestellt auf Grund ihrer Textgeschichte, I. Teil: Untersuchungen, I. Abteilung, Die Textzeugen (Berlin, 1902); / / . Abteilung, Die Textformen, A. Die Evangelien (1907); B. Der Apostolos mit Apokalypse (1910); / / . Teil: Text mit Apparat nebst Ergdnzung zu Teil I (Gottingen, 1913). 27 The Text of The New Testament, Oxford Church Text Books (London, 1898; 4th edn, 1908), chapter vi, p. 73. 28 Christliche freye Untersuchung iiber die so genannte Ojfenbarung, aus der nachgelassenen Handschrift eines frdnkischen Gelehrten [Georg Ludwig Oeder] (Halle, 1769); Abhandlung von freier Untersuchung des Canon; nebst Ant wort auf die tiibingische Vertheidigung der Apocalypsis [by the Tubingen Chancellor Reuss] (Halle, 1771); Neue Untersuchungen iiber Apocalypsin (Halle, 1776). 29 The Moral Philosopher (London, 1737), pp. 3646°. 172
The Study of the New Testament 30 Albert Schwegler, Der Montanismus und die christliche Kirche des 2. Jfahrhunderts (Tubingen, 1841); Schnitzer, Theologische Jahrbucher 1 (1842), 425-73; 627-54; E. Zeller, ibidem, 654-717; F. C. Baur, Kritische Untersuchungen iiber die kanonische Evangelien, ihr Verhdltnis zu einander, ihren Charakter und Ursprung (Tubingen, 1847), PP- 365-76. 31 Comment ar iiber die Schriften des Evangelist en Johannes I V.I. Versuch einer vollstdndigen Einleitung in die Offenbarung Johannis und in die gesammte apokalyptische Litteratur (Bonn, 1832; 2nd edn, 1852), with a new subtitle in place of the last six words above: oder Allgemeine Untersuchung iiber die apokalyptische Litteratur iiberhaupt und die Apokalypse des Johannes insbesondere). 32 Die Offenbarung Johannis, einejiidische Apokalypse in christlicher Bearbeitung. Mit einem Nachwort von Adolf Harnack (Leipzig, 1886; 2nd edn, 1895). 33 Schopfung und Chaos in Urzeit und Endzeit. Eine religionsgeschichtliche Untersuchung iiber Gen 1 und Ap Joh 12 (Gottingen, 1895; 2nd edn, 1921). 34 Der Antichrist in der Uberlieferung des Judentums, des Neuen Testaments und der alien Kirche. Ein Beitrag zur Auslegung des Apocalypse (Gottingen, 1895). 35 Die Offenbarung Johannis (Gottingen, 1896; 2nd edn, 1906). 36 Der Evangelist Johannes und seine Ausleger vor demjiingsten Gericht (Hof, 1801, 1804). I take the assertion that Vogel was prompted by Evanson's book from Adolf Hilgenfeld, Historisch-Kritische Einleitung in das Neue Testament (Leipzig, 1875), P- 697. 37 'Ueber einige anscheinende Widerspriiche im Evangelium Johannes in Absicht auf dem Logos oder das Hohere in Christo', in Henke's Museum, vol. 1, part 1, pp. 20-46; 'Lasst sich die Aechtheit des Johannes Evangeliums aus hinlanglichen Griinden bezweifeln und welches ist der wahrscheinliche Ursprung dieser Schrift?', in Henke's Museum, vol. 1, part 1, pp. 47-118. 38 Philo und Johannes oder fortgesetzte Anwendung des Philo zur Interpretation der Johannes Schriften, mit besondrer Hinsicht auf der Frage: ob Johannes der Verfasser der ihm zugeschriebenen Schriften seyn konne (Gottingen, 1812). 39 Lehrbuch der historisch kritischen Einleitung in die kanonischen Bu'cher des N. T. (Berlin, 1826), p. 196. This Introduction went through many revisions: 5th edn, 1848; 6th edn, edited by H. Messner and G. Liinemann, (i860). 40 Kritik der evangelischen Geschichte des Johannes (Bremen, 1840). 41 Die kirchliche Tradition iiber den Apostel Johannes und seine Schriften in ihrer Grundlosigkeit nachgewiesen (Leipzig, 1840). Liitzelberger had resigned his pastorate in Nuremburg in 1838 after studying Strauss's Life of Jesus. 42 'Ueber die Composition und den Charakter des joh. Evangelium', Theologische Jahrbiicher (1844), 1-191; 397~475; 615-700; Kritische Untersuchungen iiber die kanonischen Evangelien, ihr Verhdltnis zu einander, ihren Charakter und Ursprung (Tubingen, 1847). 43 Versuch einer vollstdndigen Einleitung in des Evangelium des Johannes (1806). 44 Die evangelische Geschichte kritisch undphilosophisch bearbeitet, vol. 1 (Leipzig, 1838), pp. 96-136 at p. 113. 45 P. Gardner-Smith, Saint John and the Synoptic Gospels (Cambridge, 1938). 46 Daniel Schenkel, a review article, Theologische Studien und Kritiken, 13 (1840), 736808; Alexander Schweizer, Das Evangelium Johannes nach seinem innern Werthe und seine Bedeutung fur das Leben Jesu kritisch untersucht (Leipzig, 1841). 47 Vie de Jesus (Paris, 1863), pp. xxv-xxxvii; English translation (London, 1864). 48 Die manddische Religion (Leipzig, 1889); Manddische Schriften (Gottingen, 1893). 49 Das Johannesbuch der Mandder (2 vols., Giessen, 1905, 1915); Die Herkunft der manichdischen Schrift (Berlin, 1916); Manddische Liturgien (Berlin, 1920); Ginza, Das grosse Buch der Mandder (Gottingen and Leipzig, 1925).
173
J. C. O ' N E I L L 50 The Odes of Solomon now first published from the Syriac Version (Cambridge, 1909); The Odes and Psalms of Solomon published from the Syriac Version (Cambridge, 1911); An Early Christian Psalter (London, 1909). 51 Adolf Harnack, Ein jiidisch-christliches Psalmbuch aus dem ersten Jahrhundert, aus dem Syrischen iibersetzt von Johannes Flemming (Leipzig, 1910). 52 'Der religionsgeschichtliche Hintergrund des Prologs zum Johannes-Evangelium', Eucharisterion. Festschrift fur H. Gunkel, vol. 2 (Gottingen, 1923), pp. 3-26; 'Die Bedeutung der neuerschlossenen mandaischen und manichaischen Quellen fur das Verstandnis des Johannesevangeliums', Zeitschriftfur die neutestamentliche Wissenschaft, 24 (1925), 100-46; Das Evangelium des Johannes (Gottingen, 1941), English translation, The Gospel of St John (Oxford, 1971). 53 S. G. Lange, Ausfuhrliche Geschichte der Dogmen oder der Glaubenslehren der christlichen Kirche, Part 1 (1796); G. K. Horst, 'Uber einige Widerspriiche in dem Evangelium des Johannis in Absicht auf den Logos, oder das Hohere in Christo', in Henke's Museum fur Religionswissenschaft in ihren ganzen Umfange, 1 (1804), 2 i n < i 'La'sst sich die Echtheit des johanneischen Evangeliums aus hinlanglichen Griinden bezweifeln, und welches ist der wahrscheinliche Ursprung dieser Schrift?', Museum, 1 (1804), 47ff; H. H. Cludius, Uransichten des Christenthums nebst Untersuchungen uber einige Biicher des neuen Testaments (Altona, 1808); F. C. Baur, Theologische Jahrbiicher (1848), 293^ (1857), 315— 54 C. Wittichen, Der geschichtliche Charakter des Evangelium Johannes in Verbindung mit der Frage nach seinem Ursprunge (Elberfeld, 1869), pp. 68f; Alois Wurm, 'Die Irrlehrer im ersten Johannesbrief, Biblische Studien, vm, 1 (Freiburg, 1904), 1-160. 55 Hilgenfeld, Die Evangelien nach ihrer Entstehung und geschichtliche Bedeutung (Leipzig, 1854)56 Semler, Thomas Townsons Abhandlungen uber die vier Evangelien. Erster Theil (Leipzig, 1783), pp. i46f, 221, 290; Michaelis, Einleitung in diegottlichen Schriften des neuen Bundes (Gottingen, 1750; 2nd edn ['a quite different book'], 1765,1768; 3rd edn, 1777; 4th edn, 1787, 1788), Introduction to the New Testament. By John David Michaelis . . .Translated from the Fourth Edition of the German, and considerably augmented with Notes, Explanatory and Supplemental. By Herbert Marsh (Cambridge, 1793-1801), German translation of Marsh's notes by E. F. K. Rosenmiiller (Gottingen, 1795, 1803); Lessing, Theses aus der Kirchengeschichte (1776, not published until after his death); Neue Hypothese uber die Evangelisten als bloss menschliche Geschichtschreiber betrachtet (1778, published 1784), English translation by Henry Chadwick, Lessing s Theological Writings (London, 1956), pp. 65-81. 57 Ueber den Zweck der evangelischen Geschichte und der Briefe Johannis (Tubingen, 1786; 2nd edn, 1810); De fonte evangeliorum Matthaei et Lucae (Tubingen, 1794). 58 'Ueber die drei ersten Evangelien', Allgemeine Bibliothek der biblischen Litteratur, v, 5, 6 (1794), 761-996. Eichhorn later elaborated his theory, under the influence of Marsh, in his Einleitung in das Neue Testament, I (1804). 59 Marsh's translation of Michaelis's Introduction, note 56 above, vol. in, Part 1 (Cambridge, 1801). 60 Einleitung in die drei ersten Evangelien (Berlin, 1905), p. 68. 61 'Ursprung und wesen der Evangelien', Jahrbiicher der Biblischen wissenschaft, Zweites Jahrbuch: i84g (Gottingen, 1850), 190-224. 62 Hug, Einleitung in die Schriften des Neuen Testaments, parts 1 and 11 (Tubingen, 1808; 2nd edn, 1820, 1821; 3rd edn, 1827, 1826; 4th edn, 1847); translated into English by D. G. Wait (London, 1827) and by D. Fosdick, Jr. (Andover, 1836). The oral Gospel theory was revived by Johann Karl Ludwig Gieseler (1792—1854), Historisch-kritischer Versuch uber die Entstehung der Evangelien (1818).
174
The Study of the New Testament 63 Lehrbuch der histonsch kntischen Einleitung in die kanonischen Biicher des Neuen Testaments (Berlin, 1826), § 85, pp. i42f. 64 De ordine narrationum in evangeliis synopticis, Theologische Studien und Kritiken, 8 (1835), 570-90, translated by N. H. Palmer, New Testament Studies, 13 (1966-7), 368-78. 65 C. G. Wilke, Der Urevangelist oder exegetische kritische Untersuchung iiber das Verwandtschaftsverhdltnis der drei ersten Evangelien (Dresden and Leipzig, 1838); Chr. H. Weisse, Die evangelische Geschichte kritisch und philosophisch bearbeitet (2 vols., Leipzig, 1838). 66 Die synoptischen Evangelien. Ihr Ursprung undgeschichtlicher Charakter (Leipzig, 1863). 67 Lehrbuch der historisch-kritischen Einleitung in das Neue Testament (Freiburg i.B., 1885; 3rd edn, 1892). 68 Das dlteste Evangelium. Ein Beitrag zum Verstdndnis des Markus-Evangeliums und der dltesten evangelischen Uberlieferung (Gottingen, 1903), p. 1. 69 'Regel der Zusammenstimmung unsrer Evangelien aus ihrer Entstehung und Ordnung', Christliche Schriften, 3rd collection (Riga, 1797), pp. 301-414; Suphan xiv. 380-424. 70 'Evangelische Rhapsoden', § 18,'Vom Erloser der Menschen', Christliche Schriften, 2nd collection (Riga, 1796); Suphan xix. 194-225 at 214. 71 Erlduterungen zum Neuen Testament aus einer neuerbfneten Morgenldndischen Quelle (Riga, 1775); Suphan vii. 335~47O, at 340. 72 Erlduterungen zum Neuen Testament (Riga, 1775); Suphan vii. 428. 73 'Uber die Anfange der patristischen Literatur', Historische Zeitschrift, 48 (1882), 417-72, reprinted (Basel, [i960]); quotation from p. 23. 74 'Das Neue Testament und die urchristliche Uberlieferung', Theologische Abhandlungen fur Weizsdcker (Freiburg i.B., 1892), pp. 321-52; Das Urchristentum (Gottingen, 1902); Der literarische Charakter der neutestamentliche Schriften (1908). 75 Schopfung und Chaos in Urzeit und Endzeit. Eine religionsgeschichtliche Untersuchung iiber Gen 1 undApJoh 12 (Gottingen, 1895); Zum religionsgeschichtlichen Verstdndnis des Neuen Testaments (Gottingen, 1903, 2nd edn, 1910). 76 Uber die Christlichkeit unserer heutigen Theologie (Gottingen, 1873; 2nd edn, 1903; reprinted Darmstadt, 1963). 77 Die Predigt Jesu vom Reiche Gottes (Gottingen, 1892; 2nd fully revised edn, 1900); English translation of the 1st edn with an Introduction by R. H. Hiers and D. L. Holland, Jesus Proclamation of the Kingdom of God (London, 1971). 78 Von Reimarus zu Wrede (Tubingen, 1906; 2nd edn, Geschichte der Leben-Jesu-Forschung, 1913); The Quest of the Historical Jesus. A Critical Study of its Progress from Reimarus to Wrede (London, 1911). 79 Paraphrasis epistolae Jacobi cum notis et latinarum translationum varietate (Halle, 1781); see also the summaries of Semler's position: Eichhorn, Allgemeine Bibliothek der biblischen Litter atur, 5 (1793), 1-202 at 66-75; H. J. Holtzmann, Lehrbuch der historischkritischen Einleitung in das Neue Testament (Frieburg i.B., 1885), p. 180; (3rd edn, 1892), pp. i6if. 80 Lehrbuch der historisch kritischen Einleitung in die Bibel Alten und Neuen Testaments, 2.Theil: Die Einleitung in das N.T. enthaltend (Berlin, 1826). 81 Schneckenburger, Annotatio ad epi. Iacobi (Stuttgart, 1832). 82 L. Massebieau, 'L'epitre de Jacques est-elle l'oeuvre d'un Chretien?', Revue de FHistoire des Religions, xxxn (1895), 249-83; F. Spitta, Der Brief des Jakobus (1896). 83 Uransichten des Christenthums (Altona, 1808). 84 Einleitung (Berlin, 1826), § 173 at p. 320. 85 Geschichte der altchristlichen Literatur bis Eusebius. Teil II: Die Chronologie, vol. 1 (Leipzig, 1896), pp. 451-65. 86 R. Perdelwitz, Die Mysterienreligion und das Problem des 1. Petrusbriefes (Giessen, 1911).
175
J. C. O N E I L L 87 Paraphrasis epistolae ad Galatas (Halle, 1779), p. 56, cited in A. C. McGiffert, 'The Historical Criticism of Acts in Germany', The Beginnings of Christianity, Part I: The Acts of the Apostles, vol. n (London, 1922), pp. 363-95 at pp. 364, note 4. 88 K. Schrader, Der Apostel Paulus, v (Leipzig, 1836); F. C. Baur, 'Uber Zweck und Veranlassung des Romerbriefs und die damit zusammenhangenden Verhaltnisse der romischen Gemeinde', Tubinger Zeitschrift fur Theologie (1826), Heft in, 98-110; 'Uber den Ursprung des Episcopats', ibidem (1838), Heft in, 1426°. 89 Uber den Zweck der Apostelgeschichte (1841). 90 Die Apostelgeschichte, eine Ausgleichung des Paulinismus und des jfudenthums innerhalb der Christlichen Kirche (1850), quoted by McGiffert, as in note 87, pp. 378f. 91 Defontibus commentanorum sacrorum qui Lucae nomen praeferunt deque eorum consilio et aetate (Altona, 1798). 92 'Uber den Zweck, die Quellen und die Interpolationen der Apostelgeschichte', Gablers Neuestes Theologisches Journal, vn (1801), 1256°. 93 E. Schwanbeck, Uber die Quellen der Schriften des Lukas (1847); A. Jacobsen, Die Quellen der Apostelgeschichte (1885); see McGiffert, as in note 87, pp. 387^ 94 'Zur Frage nach den Quellen der Apostelgeschichte', New Testament Essays, Studies in Memory of Thomas Walter Manson, i8gj~ig^8, ed. by A. J. B. Higgins (Manchester, 1959), pp. 68-80; reprinted in Exegetica, ed. E. Dinkier (Tubingen, 1967), pp. 412-23. 95 The Moral Philosopher, vol. 11 (London, 1739), pp. ioof. 96 'Ursprung des Episcopats', Tubinger Zeitschrift fur Theologie, in (1838), 1—185 at 143. 97 Epistolam vulgo ad Hebraeos inscriptam non ad Hebraeos id est Christianos genere Judaeos, sed ad Christianos genere gentiles et quidem ad Ephesios datum esse demonstrare conatur (1836). 98 Von Soden, 'Der Hebr'ierbrkr,jfahrbucherfurprotestantische Theologie, 10 (1884), 43793; 627-56. 99 The Dissonance of the Four Generally Received Evangelists (Ipswich, 1792; 2nd edn, Gloucester, 1805), i s t e c m reviewed in Eichhorn's Allgemeine Bibliothek, v.3.483-498. 100 Usteri, Paulinischer Lehrbegriff( 1824); de Wette, Einleitung N. T. (Berlin, 1826; 2nd edn, 1830); Exegetisches Handbuch, n.4 (1843). 101 Der Brief an die Kolosser mit vornehmlicher Beriicksichtigung der Pastoralbriefe (Berlin, 1838). 102 'Ueber 2 Thess. 2.1-12. Nebst Andeutungen uber den Ursprung des zweiten Briefes an die Thessalonischer', Tubinger Zeitschrift fur Theologie, n (1839), 145-214. 103 Paulus, der Apostel Jfesu Christi. Sein Leben und Wirken, seine Briefe und seine Lehre (Stuttgart, 1845; 2nd edn, 1866-7); English translation, 2 vols. (London and Edinburgh, 1875; 2nd edn, 1876). 104 See Hilgenfeld's summary of his own position in his Historisch-kritische Einleitung in das Neue Testament (Leipzig, 1875), p. 199. 105 J. B. Lightfoot, St Paul's Epistle to the Galatians (London, 1865), especially the Dissertation of'St Paul and the Three'; Zahn, Einleitung in das Neue Testament (Leipzig, 1897-9). 106 Steck, Der Galaterbriefnach seiner Echtheit untersucht nebst kritischen Bemerkungen zu den paulinischen Hauptbriefen (Berlin, 1888). 107 Philosophische Dogmatik oder Philosophie des Christentums (3 vols., Leipzig, 1855, i860, 1862); Beitrdge zur Kritik der paulinischen Briefe, posthumous, ed. by E. Sulze (Leipzig, 108 De brief van Paulus aan de Galatiers in zijn oorspronkelijken vorm hersteld, en verklaard (Utrecht, 1890). 109 Geschichte der paulinischen Forschung von der Reformation bis auf die Gegenwart (Tubingen, 1911), English translation by W. Montgomery, Paul and His Interpreters: A Critical History (London, 1912).
176
The Study of the New Testament n o Die Anthropologie des Aposteh Paulus (1872); see A. Schweitzer, Paul, pp. 28-31 et passim. i n See, for example, H. J. Holtzmann (1832-1910), Lehrbuch der neutestamentlichen Theologie (2 vols., Tubingen, 1896, 1897), 2nd edn edited by A. Julicher and W. Bauer (1911), vol. 2, pp. i6f. See A. Schweitzer, Paul, chapter iv. 112 See A. Schweitzer, Paul, pp. 58-63. 113 Marcion: Das Evangelium vom fremden Gott: Eine Monographie zur Geschichte der Grundlegung der katholischen Kirche, 2nd edn (Leipzig, 1924), pp. 2i8f.
Bibliographical essay The classical study of the history of New Testament criticism is by Werner Georg Kiimmel of Marburg, Das Neue Testament: Geschichte der Erforschung seiner Probleme, Orbis Academicus, Problemgeschichten der Wissenschaft in Dokumenten und Darstellungen (Munich, 1948), English translation, The New Testament. A History of the Investigation of Its Problems (London, 1973). This gives long extracts from the writings of New Testament scholars with a running commentary, bibliographical notes, and a most valuable biographical supplement. There is a useful brief history by Hans Jochen Genthe of Erfurt, Kleine Geschichte der neutestamentlichen Wissenschaft (Gottingen, 1977). The latter part of the period from an English perspective is covered in a fascinating book by Stephen Neill, The Interpretation ofthe The Firth Lectures, ig62 (London, 1964). New Testament, I86I-IQ6I, One of the best ways into the history of nineteenth-century study of the New Testament is through using the Introductions to the New Testament that appeared during the century itself. The first and greatest is by Wilhelm Martin Leberecht de Wette, Lehrbuch der historisch kritischen Einleitung in die Bibel Alten und Neuen Testaments, Zweyter Theil: Lehrbuch der historisch kritischen Einleitung in die kanonischen Biicher des Neuen Testaments (Berlin, 1826, and many subsequent revised editions, culminating in the 6th edn edited by H. Messner and G. Liinemann, i860). Other notable Introductions are by Adolf Hilgenfeld, HistorischeKritische Einleitung in das Neue Testament (Leipzig, 1875), Heinrich Julius Holtzmann, Lehrbuch der historisch-kritischen Einleitung in das Neue Testament (Freiburg i.B., 1885; 3rd improved and enlarged edn, 1892), Bernhard Weiss, Lehrbuch der Einleitung in das Neue Testament (Berlin, 1886; 3rd edn, 1897), English translation, A Manual of Introduction to the New Testament (2 vols., London, 1887), Theodor Zahn, Einleitung in das Neue Testament (1897-9; 3 r d edn, 1906-7), English translation, Introduction to the New Testament (3 vols., Edinburgh, 1909) and Adolf Julicher, Einleitung in das Neue Testament (Tubingen, 1894; 2nd edn, 1900; 7th edn, with Erich Fascher, 1931), English translation of the 1900 edn, An Introduction to the New Testament (London, 1904). For the English reader a mine of information is to be found in James Moffatt's An Introduction to the Literature of the New Testament (Edinburgh, 1911; 3rd and revised edn, 1918, often reprinted). The most comprehensive recent Introduction is by Werner Georg Kiimmel, Einleitung in das Neue Testament (Heidelberg, 1964; 2nd edn, 1965; 5th edn, 1973), English translation, Introduction to the New Testament (London, 1966; revised edn, 1975). The history of the textual criticism of the New Testament will be found in almost every Introduction to textual criticism. Our period itself produced a tiny classic, K. Lake, The Text of The New Testament, Oxford Church Text Books (London, 1898; 4th edn revised, 1908; 6th edn revised by Silva New, 1928). The fullest modern work is by Bruce M. Metzger, The Text of the New Testament: Its Transmission, Corruption, and Restoration (Oxford, 1964; 2nd edn, 1968). Karl Heinrich Rengstorf has edited and introduced a collection of essays on St John's Gospel, Johannes undsein Evangelium, Weg der Forschung (Darmstadt, 1973), which contains a most valuable history of the Johannine question by Emil Schiirer (1844-1910, this essay
177
J. C. O NEILL 1889). Otto Bocher has published a short history of the criticism of the Apocalypse, Die Johannesapokalypse, Ertrdge der Forschung (Darmstadt, 1975). The classic study of the quest of the historical Jesus is by Albert Schweitzer, Von Reitnarus zu Wrede (Tubingen, 1906; 2nd edn, Geschichte der Leben-jfesu-Forschung, 1913), English translation by W. Montgomery, The Quest of the Historical Jesus: A Critical Study of its Progressfrom Reimarus to Wrede (London, 1911). He also wrote the classic history of research into Paul, Geschichte der paulinischen Forschung von der Reformation bis auf die Gegenwart (Tubingen, 1911), English translation by W. Montgomery, Paul and his Interpreters: A Critical Study (London, 1912). Horton Harris has published two important books on the Tubingen school, including translations of hitherto unpublished documents: David Friedrich Strauss and his Theology, Monograph Supplements to the Scottish Journal of Theology (Cambridge, 1973) and The Tubingen School (Oxford, 1975). The best brief account I know of the history of the interpretation of a single book is A. C. McGiffert's 'The Historical Criticism of Acts in Germany', The Beginnings of Christianity, Part I, The Acts ofthe Apostles, vol. 11 (London, 1922), pp. 363-95. A fuller account is given by W. Ward Gasque, A History ofthe Criticism of the Acts of the Apostles (Grand Rapids, 1975).
178
Friedrich Max Miiller and the Comparative Study of Religion JOSEPH M. KITAGAWA AND JOHN S. STRONG
It has often been stated that Friedrich Max Miiller, more than anyone else was responsible for founding the comparative study of religions.1 There is a considerable degree of truth in this assertion. Although his methodology and theoretical constructs are now quite outmoded and his opinions have been devastatingly and deservedly criticized, Miiller's influence on his nineteenth-century contemporaries was great and it remains strong even today. No survey of the history of the discipline would be complete without reference to him - to his work on the Rg-Veda, to his emphasis on solar mythology, to his theory of the origins of deities in a 'disease of the language' or to his description of henotheism as distinct from mono- and polytheism. Moreover, the fifty volumes of the Sacred Books of the East - a series which he founded and edited - rightfully remain the constant companions of orientalists and historians of religions alike and still continue to orient (and to prejudice) our studies in these fields. In addition to his scholarly work, however, Miiller also sought to popularize his area of inquiry. In his public lectures, in his numerous essays, and as a professor in the classroom, he did not hesitate to express himself on the basic aims and theoretical foundations not only of the field of religious studies, but of Indology, philosophy, philology and comparative mythology as well. None of these disciplines would have remained the same without him. The nineteenth-century world in which Miiller lived and worked was one which was marked by the advent of new methods and new materials pertinent to the comparative study of religions. These came basically from three sources. First of all, starting in the first half of the century, scholars began to find, decipher, edit and translate a wide selection of ancient texts in many different languages and so opened up the study of ancient high religions. In 1822, Jean-Francois Champollion deciphered the Egyptian 179
JOSEPH M. KITAGAWA AND JOHN S. STRONG
hieroglyphs and shortly thereafter wrote his Pantheon egyptien. Before long, excavations in Mesopotamia unearthed thousands of cuneiform documents in the great Babylonian and Assyrian palaces and libraries. At the same time, the important Indie texts in Avestan, Sanskrit and Pali began to be edited and translated, while East Asianists started work on Chinese, Tibetan and Mongolian materials, and classicists discovered and excavated antique sites and published thorough compendia of Latin and Greek epigraphy. The sudden availability of all these new literary and religious texts - to which Miiller himself most notably contributed his massive edition of the Rg-Veda - quite transformed the scope of religious studies, and quickly outmoded earlier works based on insufficient information such as Friedrich SchlegeFs La langue et la sagesse des Indiens (1808), Joseph von Gorres's Mythengeschichte der asiatischen Welt (1810), and Friedrich Creuzer's Symbolik und Mythologie der alten Volker, besonders der Griechen (1810). Secondly, new materials came also from archaeological finds which revealed the existence of pre-historic civilizations in Europe and elsewhere. In 1841, Boucher de Perthes found ancient stone implements in the alluvial plain of the Somme and soon proclaimed the existence of the Stone Age which he dated back at least to the time of the Flood and which he saw as the predecessor of the known historical civilizations of Europe. Shortly thereafter further finds were made of artefacts and rock paintings in the caves of Dordogne and the Pyrenees; distinctions began to be made between various periods within the Stone Age, and speculations started about the possible religion of these peoples. Finally, these theories were fed by a third great source of new materials for the study of religion. The exploration and colonization of the non-western world contributed a mass of ethnological data on contemporary 'primitive' cultures. A new group of travellers, missionaries, civil servants, and eventually professional anthropologists continued the work of seventeenthand eighteenth-century conquerors and explorers, and published reports on the social customs and religious beliefs of American, Asian, African and Oceanian 'natives'. The new textual sources and the revelations about prehistoric and primitive man increased tremendously the amount of material available to students of religion. No one scholar could master it all. As we shall see, Miiller chose to emphasize, at least initially, the Indo-European texts, while other scholars such as Andrew Lang or E. B. Tylor stressed ethnological materials instead. However, if on the one hand, the amount of data available necessitated specialization, it also resulted, on the other hand, in rather grandiose attempts at synthesis. These attempts tended to be informed by the 180
Friedrich Max Muller
dominant mind-sets and attitudes of the nineteenth century. It is, of course, not possible to trace here the lingering of rationalism, the flowering of Romanticism, the rise of positivism, and the impact of evolutionism and to see how each affected nineteenth-century religious thought. Even a fulllength study of their influence on Max Muller alone can only remain a desideratum. In the pages that follow, however, we can touch briefly on Miiller's life, discuss his thought and intellectual background and attempt to see in what ways he was part of and contributed to the growth of the comparative study of religions. / Biographical sketch Friedrich Max Muller was born on 6 December 1823 in Dessau, a small independent duchy in what is now East Germany. His father, Wilhelm Muller, was a teacher and librarian at the ducal library, but was best known as a poet whose works, notably his Griechen Lieder, achieved some degree of popularity. Among his earliest memories of a happy childhood, Muller was later to recall listening, spellbound, to his father recounting the tales and fables of the Brothers Grimm (with whom he had once collaborated). 'There is no harm', Muller himself was to declare much later in life, 'in a certain dreaminess in children . . . In a small town such as Dessau was when I lived there as a boy, one lived as in an enchanted island.'2 This enchantment was somewhat broken by the early death of his father, but his mother, who continued to be very protective of her only son throughout her life, managed to carry on, and devoted her energies to seeing that he got a solid education. At the age of twelve, he was sent to Leipzig to attend the renowned Nikolai Schule for boys. He excelled at his studies and pursued on his own a passion for poetry and music. Leipzig at the time was one of the centres of music in Germany. Felix Mendelssohn was there (and was a frequent visitor and performer at Professor Carus's home where Muller was lodging). It was at this time also that Franz Liszt made his triumphant German debut in Leipzig. Muller himself had a fine singing voice and became an accomplished pianist, a talent which stood him in good stead even much later in life in the drawing-rooms of Oxford. In 1841, Muller entered the University of Leipzig, his mother and sister moving to that city to keep house for him. His student days seem to have been filled with the requisite romance of university life of students his age; he spent two days in jail for drinking beer and smoking cigars with his friends, for 'wearing the ribbon of a club the police regarded with disfavour',3 and fought altogether three duels. But most of his passion went into his studies. Already fluent in Latin and 181
JOSEPH M. KITAGAWA AND JOHN S. STRONG
Greek, he embarked on the study of Hebrew and Arabic grammar, but especially focused on Sanskrit which was then just beginning to be taught at Leipzig by Hermann Brockhaus. At the same time, he joined three philosophical societies - those of Professors Christian Weisse and Moritz Wilhelm Drobisch and that of the then Privat-Docent Hermann Lotze. He received his doctorate from Leipzig in September, 1843, but immediately his double interest in philology and philosophy prompted him to go to Berlin to hear on the one hand the renowned Sanskritist and comparative linguist Franz Bopp and, on the other, to make the acquaintance of Friedrich Schelling who was starting his famous Berlin lectures at that time. He seems to have been somewhat disappointed by both men. Bopp, he claimed, in his lectures 'simply read his Comparative Grammar with a magnifying glass and added very little that was new'.4 Schelling he paid more attention to, but was impressed with him more as a poet and prophet than as a philosopher and 'could not help being struck by . . . his unfounded statements with regard to the ancient religions of the East'.5 In March 1845, Miiller left Germany for Paris where he was to stay until June of the following year. It was to be a new and broadening experience: 'My stay in Paris', he later recounted, 'opened my mind and showed me a new world; showed me in fact that there was a world besides Germany.'6 Instrumental in this awakening was Eugene Burnouf, clearly Europe's greatest pioneer orientalist. Burnouf virtually founded three major areas of scholarly research. In 1826, together with Christian Lassen, he started Pali studies, publishing his Essai sur le pali in which he analysed the language of the Buddhist manuscripts brought back from Siam and demonstrated the Indian origins of Pali and its relation to Sanskrit. In 1833, he published his Commentaire sur le Yasna in which he opened the door to Avestan and Iranian studies. And in 1844, basing himself on the Sanskrit manuscripts sent from Nepal by Brian Hodgson, he inaugurated serious Indian Buddhist studies with his monumental Introduction a Fhistoire du Buddhisme indien. In addition, his masterful translations of the Lotus Sutra and the Bhagavata Purana remain important works to this day. When Miiller arrived in Paris, Burnouf was lecturing on the hymns of the Rg-Veda and the young German was immediately captivated: We had the first book of the Rig Veda as published by Rosen, and Burnouf s explanations were certainly delightful. He spoke freely and conversationally in his lectures, and one could almost assist at the elaboration of his thoughts. His audience was certainly small . . . But Burnouf had ever so many new facts to communicate to us. He explained to us his own researches, he showed us new MSS which he had received from India, in fact he did all he could to make us fellow workers.7 182
Friedrich Max Miiller It was Burnouf who prompted Miiller to undertake the project for which he was to become most famous in scholarly circles and which would take him twenty-four years to complete: the critical edition of the Sanskrit text of the Rg-Veda. At the same time, Burnouf also stimulated Miiller's growth in other ways. For one thing, he advised him against his original intention of studying the philosophy of the Upanisads and pushed him, in his research, towards mythology and religion. 'Either one thing or the other', he declared. 'Either study Indian philosophy and begin with the Upanishads and Sankara's commentary, or', he continued, leaving no doubt as to his preference, 'study Indian religion and keep to the Rig Veda and copy the hymns and Sayana's commentary, and then you will be our great benefactor.'8 Finally, as we shall see, it was also Burnouf who first suggested the theory of the origins of deities in a disease or confusion of language: what was a nomen became a numen, a view Miiller was to argue for at great length and for which he was to become famous.9 It was Miiller's work on the Rg-Veda that first took him to England. In London, he found additional manuscripts of the text to copy and collate, and at Oxford, at the University Press, he found finally a publisher willing and able to undertake the task of seeing the book to press. At Oxford he also entered yet another new world - one in which he was to remain for the rest of his life. 'The town is the most interesting and beautiful city in Europe', he wrote to his mother soon after arriving there, 'it is of the Middle Ages.' And reflecting back later in life he called it 'a perfect paradise'.10 There is no question but that Miiller's professional career at Oxford was a distinguished one. In 1854, he was given the Taylorian Professorship of Modern Languages; four years later, he was made a Fellow of All Souls, and in 1868 a professorial chair of Comparative Philology was established specifically so that he could fill it. His only setback was his failure to jockey successfully for the Boden Professorship of Sanskrit which went to Sir Monier Monier-Williams in i860. During his long career, Miiller not only continued his work on the RgVeda (which he finished in 1873) but gradually turned his attention to other subjects. He came to conceive of his life's work as being devoted to the 'four sciences' of language, mythology, religion and philosophy. These he connected by a sort of evolutionary historical progression, in which each 'science' was seen as a state in man's own development: There is nothing more ancient in the world than language. The history of man begins, not with rude flints, rock temples or pyramids, but with language.
183
JOSEPH M. KITAGAWA AND JOHN S. STRONG The second stage is represented by myths as thefirstattempts at translating the phenomena of nature into thought. The third stage is that of religion or the recognition of moral powers, and in the end of One Moral Power behind and above all nature. The fourth and last is philosophy, or a critique of the powers of reason in their legitimate working on the data of experience.11
Miiller then conceived of his own major works as each dealing specifically with one of these stages. His two volumes on The Science of Language (18614) were concerned with Stage 1; the Contributions to the Science ofMythology (2 vols., 1897) with Stage 2. Ill Stage 3 fell a large number of volumes: the Introduction to the Science of Religion (1870), The Hibbert Lectures on The Origin and Growth of Religion (1878), and the four series of Gifford Lectures, Natural Religion (1888), Physical Religion (1890), Anthropological Religion (1891), and Theosophy or Psychological Religion (1892). Finally, in the fourth state he placed his Science of Thought and his translation of Kant's Critique of Pure Reason (1881). Yet even this scheme does not encompass the entirety of Miiller's creative output. His shorter essays on a great variety of subjects fill four volumes of the Chipsfrom a German Workshop (1867-75; new edn, 1894). From 1876 on, he devoted himself to editing the fifty-volume series of the Sacred Books of the East, in which he included a number of his own translations from the Sanskrit: The Upanisads (1878), the Apastamba Sutras (1886) and the Vedic Hymns (1891). Later, he also founded the Sacred Books of the Buddhists series. As a polemicist, he devoted considerable energies not only to refuting scholarly adversaries, such as Herbert Spencer, Andrew Lang, and even Charles Darwin, but to commenting on certain political issues. With his very popular pamphlet, 'India - What Can It Teach Us?' he became a champion of the Indian cause in England, and in 1864, during the war of SchleswigHolstein, and again in 1870 during the Franco-Prussian War, he did not hesitate to express in print his generally pro-German sentiments. Finally, throughout his life, he carried on a voluminous correspondence with a wide variety of political, scholarly and academic figures in Europe, India, and America, and included reminiscences about many of them in two volumes entitled Auld Lang Syne (1898—9). Miiller's creative work neatly spans the second half of the nineteenth century. During his fifty years at Oxford he did much to establish his dominance not only as an Indologist and scholar but as a thinker and theorizer on the origins of language, religions, and myth. There is no doubt that when he died, in 1900, he was widely hailed as one of the giants of the English intellectual world. At the same time, it must be recognized that although Oxford and 184
Friedrich Max Mtiller England were very much his home and the site of his success, he remained nevertheless a 'German scholar' in some of his basic orientations and preoccupations. Moreover, as we have suggested, his period of training in Paris, brief though it was, was also crucial in terms of his overall development. This is important; among the major figures in the development of nineteenth-century religious thought, Miiller was perhaps unique in the extent to which he bridged - in the course of his life and in his own research three quite distinct scholarly worlds and attitudes: the German, the French and the English. As we shall see, his roots drink deeply of Kant and German Romanticism. Burnouf, however, excited him with the full scope of man's religious traditions, and made him branch out in a way he never could have done in Berlin. Finally, the fruits of all his training and background were borne, if not on an English tree, certainly in an English garden. It is perhaps this very creative combination of scholarly worlds and the ensuing escape from academic parochialism which contributed significantly to Miiller's final success as a founder and promoter of the comparative history of religions. II Miiller's thought and theories Like all great initiators of new fields of inquiry, Max Miiller both reflected and broke away from the work of his predecessors. In order to understand his thought properly, therefore, it is important to place his life and work against the intellectual and cultural backdrop of his times. This is not the place to delineate in detail the progress of rationalism and Romanticism in western Europe in the eighteenth and nineteenth centuries, even only insofar as it affected the study of religions. For that we can only refer to the works of others.12 It is possible, however, to examine some of Miiller's own reactions to and opinions about the thinkers who preceded and were contemporary with him in the field of religious studies. Speculation about the origins of earliest forms of religion is an intellectual habit that goes back to antiquity. In the eighteenth century, however, settlements and explorations in America, Africa and Asia opened up to the western mind whole new fields for comparison and speculation. Among the best discussions of religion in this period were those which sought to take account of this new data from modern 'primitive' cultures and to relate it to the classical religious traditions of Ancient Greece and Rome. (The JudaeoChristian tradition was often somehow exempted from the ensuing theorizing.) Father Jean Lafitau, a missionary to Canada, exemplified this trend. In 185
JOSEPH M. KITAGAWA AND JOHN S. STRONG his Moeurs des sauvages ameriquains comparees au moeurs des premiers temps
which he published in 1724, he drew some very judicious parallels between the mysteries of antiquity and the beliefs of North American Indians. The study of the one complemented the other: 'I acknowledge that if ancient authors have given me some understanding to support some happy conjectures concerning savages, the customs of savages have helped me understand more easily and explain many things which are in the ancient authors.'I3 He concluded that there existed certain religious practices, 'general conformities', which were common to all peoples, gentiles as well as Jews.14 Another Frenchman, Charles de Brosses, president of the Academie and a well-known correspondent of Voltaire, was to go even further. In 1760 he published (anonymously) his study of West African and other religions, Du culte des dieux fetiches ou parallele de ly ancienne religion de YEgypte avec la
religion actuelle de Nigritie. In this work, hefirstset the tone in which inquiry into the religions of man ought to be conducted. Inspired by the philosopher David Hume (who himself was the author of The Natural History ofReligion in which he argued for polytheism as the primitive form of religious belief), de Brosses proclaimed: 'It is not in possibilities but in man himself that we must study man; it is not a matter of imagining what he could or ought to have done, but of looking at what he does.'15 Given this methodology, he then claimed to show how all nations (from which, however, he exempted - under pressure from the Academy - the Chosen Hebrew People) went through a stage of'fetishism' in their religious development which was then followed by polytheism and monotheism. Some peoples, moreover (for example the savages of West Africa), have not fully developed but have remained at the stage of fetishism. De Brosses thus laid down two theoretical assumptions which subsequent students of religion found it difficult to shake - namely that there exists a uniform pattern of evolutionary development which is abstractly applicable to 'religion' in general; and secondly that in the study of contemporary 'primitive' cultures can be found a key to the religious life of early man. It is precisely against such assumptions that Miiller was to protest. In his Hibbert Lectures on the Origin and Growth of Religion, he devoted a whole
chapter to de Brosses and the question of fetishism and the 'religion of the savages', and, in spite of de Brosses' call to 'look at the facts' he launched an attack on what he saw as the latter's uncritical acceptance of the ethnological data. Why did the Portuguese navigators, who were Christians, but Christians in that metamorphic state which marks the popular Roman Catholicism of the last century - why did they recognise at once what they saw among the negroes of the Gold Coast, zsfeitiqos? The answer
186
Friedrich Max Miiller is clear. Because they themselves were perfectly familiar with ^feitiqo^ an amulet or a talisman; and probably all carried with them some beads or crosses, or images, that had been blessed by their priests before they started for their voyage. They themselves were fetish-worshippers in a certain sense.16
Miiller then proceeded to his own careful etymological analysis of the Portuguese word feitiqo, and criticized de Brosses for ignoring its significance and for extending its application from certain tangible and inanimate objects to include mountains, trees, and rivers. He also took him to task for freely rinding fetishes not only in Africa but among North American Indians, Polynesian tribes, and cultures of Northern Asia. Miiller really wanted to argue here that fetishism is a late and degenerate and not a primitive phenomenon, but at the same time, and to his great credit, he used the occasion to urge, generally, methodological caution: I have entered thus fully into the difficulties inherent in the study of the religions of savage tribes, in order to show how cautious we ought to be before we accept one-sided descriptions of these religions; still more, before we venture to build on such evidence as is now accessible, far-reaching theories on the nature and origin of religion in general . . . Only let me not be misunderstood. I do not mean to dispute the fact that fetish-worship is widely prevalent among the negroes of Western Africa and other savage races. What I cannot bring myself to admit is that any writer on the subject, beginning with De Brosses, has proved . . . that what they call fetishism is a primitive form of religion.17
Max Muller and the anthropological school Both Lafitau and de Brosses have been claimed as forerunners of the anthropological school of comparative religion, a line of scholarship that was to flourish in the nineteenth century in the great speculative evolutionist schemes of John Lubbock, Herbert Spencer, E. B. Tylor and Andrew Lang. In his disputes with these scholars, Muller was to use much the same argument as he did against de Brosses. Commenting on Lubbock's Prehistoric Times as Illustrated by Ancient Remains and the Manners and Customs of Modern Savages (1865), for example, he shows how the same evidence that is used to prove the existence of tribes without religion is adduced by Roskoff and other scholars to argue the exact opposite.18 Similarly, he was to try to contravene the arguments of Spencer and Tylor, although, for the latter's vast erudition in amassing data in support of the animist argument, he always maintained a healthy respect. But Miiller's most famous controversy along these lines was that which he carried on with Andrew Lang. One has but to read the Scotsman's Modern Mythology together with Miiller's Contributions to the Science of Mythology (both published in 1897 by Longmans, Green and Company) to catch the debate in full flower. 187
JOSEPH M. KITAGAWA AND JOHN S. STRONG
Miiller remained suspicious of any attempt to use contemporary 'primitive' cultures to explain the origins of religions. 'When I speak of the Vedic Rishis as primitive', he proclaimed, 'I do not mean what Mr Lang means when he calls his savages primitive. His savages belong to the nineteenth century A.D., mine . . . to the 19th century B.C.'19 Lang, on the other hand, pretending not to object to Miiller's explanations of myths with the aid of etymologies in Aryan languages, demanded nonetheless that he explain also the similar myths he was finding 'among the Red Indians, Eskimos, Maoris, and Samoyeds . . . Did a kind of linguistic measles affect all tongues alike from Sanskrit to Choctaw?'20 This was, in essence, the famous controversy between the advocates of agriology (the comparative study of the customs of uncivilized tribes) and what Miiller called Aryology - the careful philological study of Sanskrit and other ancient Indo-European sources. As Miiller himself realized, however, the basic issues ran much deeper than this, for he claimed, even if Lang were to explain the 'whole of Vedic and Greek mythology by reference to Kafirs and Hottentots', this would in no way affect his own efforts: '[Mr Lang's] work is and can never be more than psychological [but] ours is something totally different; it is essentially historical, nay when possible, linguistic and genealogical.'21 Miiller, of course, was aware of the importance of the new ethnological finds; and as his career advanced, he recognized that both his and the anthropological approach were necessary for a complete science of religion. Nevertheless, he firmly insisted that all studies of primitive traditions be carried out with the same careful competence and attention to history and linguistic detail that characterized the study of textual traditions. Until that was done, he reserved the right to remain suspicious of all attempts to generalize or theorize on the basis of uncertain facts.22 Miiller and philosophy
Interestingly, it is this same basic suspicion which he had about the anthropological school that characterizes Miiller's criticism of the idealist speculations of certain philosophers about religion. Nowhere does Miiller give evidence of possessing an original philosophic mind. He reported that his serious study of philosophy ceased in 1841 at Leipzig when, at the age of eighteen, he began to study Sanskrit under Brockhaus.23 He had given thought to becoming a philosopher and with typical hubris explained his decision to abandon the idea: 'while dreaming of a chair of philosophy at a German University, I began to feel that I must know something special, something that no other philosopher knew, and that induced me to learn Sanskrit, Arabic, and Persian'.24 We cannot underesti188
Friedrich Max Miiller mate the fact that Miiller effectively retired from strictly philosophical combat while still a young student. Miiller sought at all times to be true to history - not as an abstract evolutionary scheme, but in terms of the specifics of particular traditions. But as facts about different religions accumulated, the love of generalization set in, and instead of religions and their history, we begin to hear of religion as a thing by itself . . . Philosophers take the place of historians, and undertake to account for the origin, not of such and such a religion, but of religion in general . . . The history of religions was thus supplanted by the history of religion; only it was difficult to say where that religion in general was to be found.25
Miiller pinned the blame for this generalizing philosophical trend predominantly on the work of two giants of nineteenth-century thought: Hegel and Schelling. We have already touched on Miiller's reaction to Schelling in Berlin. His encounter with Hegelianism dates back to his university years in Leipzig. That was a time when, as he himself put it, 'the Hegelian fever was still very high . . . Anybody who came from Berlin and could speak mysteriously or rapturously about the Idea and its evolution by the dialectic process, was listened to with silent wonder.'26 In fact, in a sense, Hegelianism was the state-philosophy of Prussia, just as Protestantism was the state-religion, and to be a Hegelian was a sine qua non for all philosophers, theologians, lawyers, artists, scientists, etc. Miiller, however, never appears to have joined the Hegelian vogue which, in any case, did not last very long. Two factors, in particular, seem to have fed his doubts and suspicions. One was the influence of his professor, Christian Weisse, who despite his admiration for Hegel, never failed - in his lectures at Leipzig - to point out the ways in which Hegel could twist historical facts. 'I could not', Miiller was to recall later in his Autobiography, 'accept the answer of my more determined Hegelian friends, "Tant pis pour lesfaits" but felt more and more the old antagonism between what ought to be and what is, between the reasonableness of the Idea and the unreasonableness of facts.'27 Specifically, Miiller balked at the application Hegel made of his philosophy of history to the history of religion and had no confidence in the parallelism between Hegel's Logic and history. 'I could not bring myself to admit that the history of religion, nor even the history of philosophy as we know it from Thales to Kant, was really running side by side with his Logic, showing how the leading concepts of the human mind, as elaborated in the Logic, had found successive expression in the history and development of the schools of philosophy as known to us.' 28 189
JOSEPH M. KITAGAWA AND JOHN S. STRONG
Miiller found Hegel wanting not on grounds of logical coherence or clarity of concept but in point of historical fact. 'What I could not help seeing [in Hegel's Philosophy of Religion] was that what Hegel represented as the necessity in the growth of religious thought, was far away from real growth, as I had watched it in some of the sacred books of these religions. This shook my belief in the correctness of Hegel's fundamental principles more than anything else.'29 Weisse's lectures, which Miiller dubbed 'the protest of the historical conscience against the demands of the Idea' dampened totally Miiller's enthusiasm for Hegel. Miiller concluded that Hegel 'was misled by his imperfect knowledge of the facts, and discovered what was not there, but what he felt convinced ought to have been there'.30 It is in this same spirit that Miiller later waded into a philosophical fray bearing the cudgel of stubborn facts 'which do not yield even to the supreme command of the Idea'.31 Having recognized 'as clearly the formal truth as the material untruth of Hegel's philosophy',32 Miiller levelled the same charge against Schiller, Kant, Fichte, Schleiermacher, Comte and Feuerbach. One must remark that he sought to accomplish this demolition in the space of seven pages.33 On philosophical grounds his major argument is that these thinkers present finely constructed definitions of religion which, though internally consistent, radically contradict one another. Thus, 'according to Kant, religion is morality. When we look upon all our moral duties as commands, that, he thinks, constitutes religion';34 whereas Fichte 'takes the opposite view. Religion, he says, is never practical, and was never intended to influence our life . . . Religion is knowledge.'35 Schleiermacher claims that 'religion consists in our consciousness of absolute dependence on something which, though it determines us, we cannot determine in turn'.36 By contrast, religion 'according to Hegel, is or ought to be perfect freedom'.37 Furthermore, although Comte and his disciplines preach a solemn and sublime religion of humanity, Feuerbach 'dissipates the last mystic halo which Comte had still left'38 by describing religion as a drive to satisfy human egoism. Miiller judges the major philosophies of his time of little use to the study of religion. Not only did they hopelessly contradict one another in describing even the subject of study but, more importantly, in their effort to define what religion ought to be they contravene what religious belief and practice have been throughout history. Miiller concludes it is 'impossible to give a definition of religion that should be applicable to all that has ever been called religion'.39 A second antidote to Hegelianism for Miiller was his exposure through the teaching of another professor, Moritz Wilhelm Drobisch, to the philosophy 190
Friedrich Max Miiller of Johann Friedrich Herbart. Miiller adopted the method of analysis and concept-clarification which Herbart applied to psychology and Pestalozzistyle pedagogics and used it to his own particular ends: the study of language. Although he offered no systematic presentation of Herbart's work nor detailed which aspects of Herbart's philosophy most influenced him, Miiller always treated him with an unchecked enthusiasm. Herbart argued that philosophy has no object particular to itself. Rather is it a mobile gaze which throws the light of reflection on any object as it presents itself at moments of historical development. Philosophy is thus an exact and concrete historical vision which at the same time offers a vast sweep not bound to any special set of subject matter. Philosophy consists in the elaboration of concepts (Bearbeitung der Begriffe) by clarifying their development and tracing them to their origin. Herbart maintained that the experience of the universe and the first attempts to understand it gave rise to a series of concepts which proved contradictory and impenetrable to critical analysis. The need to put these irreconcilable concepts in order prompted the construction of the separate domains of general metaphysics (ontology) and applied metaphysics (psychology, natural philosophy, cosmology, and natural theology). The original perception of the experience of the universe was lost in the process but is now recoverable through the careful elaboration of concepts within these separate metaphysical discourses. In this vein, then, Miiller aimed 'to contribute to philosophy by probing into the past of those activities that reflected the intellect of man, his language, thought and faith'.40 I at once translated the object of his [Herbart's] philosophy into a definition of words. Henceforth the object of my own philosophical occupations was the accurate definition of every word. All words . . . were carefully taken to pieces and traced back, if possible to their first birth, and then through their further developments. My interest in this analytical process soon took an historical, that is etymological character insofar as I tried to find out why any words should now mean exactly what, according to our definition, they ought to mean.41
It is important to note in Miiller this close coincidence of history and philology. They are for him complementary parts of a single endeavour to trace the manner in which things came to be the way they are, and together, as we shall see, they form the basic building blocks of his own theory of religion; for Miiller applied a programme of historical clarification to religious rather than philosophical language. 'Religion is something which has passed, and is still passing through an historical evolution, and all we can do is to follow it up to its origin, and then to try to comprehend it in its later historical developments.'42 Just as Herbart suggested that a primal experience of the universe generated irreconcilable concepts which entailed spheres of discourse successively less adequate to the initial perception, 191
JOSEPH M. KITAGAWA AND JOHN S. STRONG
Miiller claimed 'if we will listen attentively, we can hear in all religions a groaning of the spirit, a struggle to conceive the inconceivable, to utter the unutterable, a longing after the Infinite, a love of God'.43 Muller's loudest complaint about contemporary philosophies was that they ignored the underlying question about the very existence of religious language: why do we struggle to forge a language to express concepts which transcend both sense and reason? The truly philosophical question for Miiller is not how religion ought to be defined but 'why we believe we are, or imagine we are, conscious of things which we can neither perceive with our senses, nor conceive with our reason - a question, it would seem, more natural to ask than any other but which has seldom received, even from the greatest philosophers, that attention which it seems the fully to deserve'.44 For Miiller, this yearning of perception toward the infinite is manifest most clearly in the history of religious language. Convinced that man has always been face to face with the infinite from the first dawn of consciousness, Miiller concerned himself with history 'in order to learn from its sacred annals, how the finite mind has tried to pierce further and further into the infinite, to gain new aspects of it, and to raise the dark perception of it into more lucid intuitions and more definite names'.45 Miiller and Kant If we have dwelled at some length on Muller's negative opinion and suspicion of the methodologies of speculative anthropologists and the theories of idealizing philosophers, it is because this cautious side of him his hard-headed restraint about historical and philological facts - is often forgotten in light of his own subsequent speculations about nature mythology, the origins of religion, the relationship between religion, language, and thought, and so forth. We must now, however, look into this more speculative, creative side of his thought, any examination of which can only start with a discussion of Miiller's own feelings for the philosophy of Immanuel Kant. In 1881, feeling that no adequate rendering of Kant's Critique of Pure Reason yet existed in English, Miiller undertook the task of translating it himself. He had long considered doing so and obviously thought of the project as being of some importance. In his 'translator's preface' to the work, he sets out to answer the objections of friends who protested that he should not waste his time and energy on a mere translation but devote himself to his own creative work. Miiller proclaimed: Kant's Critique has been my constant companion through life. It drove me to despair when I first attempted to read it, a mere school-boy. During my University days, I worked hard at it 192
Friedrich Max Miiller under Weisse, Lotze and Drobisch at Leipzig, and my first literary attempts in philosophy . . . were essays on Kant's Critique . . . Whatever purpose or method there may have been in the work of my life was due to my beginning life with Kant.46
This was more than mere sentiment for a book often mused upon. Miiller saw an intimate relation between Kant's Critique and the other of his 'two friends', the Rg-Veda. He felt that Kant gave philosophical expression to what the Rg-Veda said mythologically; the one represented the adulthood, the other the childhood of the Aryan mind: 'The bridge of thoughts and sighs that spans the whole history of the Aryan world has its first arch in the Veda, its last in Kant's Critique'*1 Miiller's seventy-two page preface to the Critique deals almost entirely with the restoration of the original text. In fact, he never sets down at any length what it is about Kant which impresses him. At first, Miiller wanted to present a philosophical commentary on Kant and his pedigree but recognizes that he is 'unequal to the task'.48 He therefore defers to Ludwig Noire, who indirectly provides us with the most succinct statement of Miiller's philosophical perspective on the study of religious language. Philosophy begins when men first begin to reflect with curiosity about themselves and the world around them; it begins therefore when primitive religion, which appears as the earliest and most natural interpretation of the universe, is no longer able to satisfy them with the imaginative language of mythology. They do not guess that it is their own reason which drives them to seek for new explanations.49
Miiller's references to Kant are usually warm but vague. Nonetheless, we may suppose he recognized that 'Kant's philosophy . . . can lead easily to more interest in myth: Kant's emphasis on art as a kind of mediating solution to the problems of human duality . . . approached myth as the ultimate paradigm of the imaginative mode for reconciling dualities.'50 Miiller's use and understanding of Kant is idiosyncratic. He summarizes the 'gist of Kant's philosophy' in a phrase: 'that without which experience is impossible, cannot be the result of experience, though it must never be applied beyond the limits of possible experience'.51 With this in mind, and applying the analysis of Herbart, it was Miiller's desire to examine religious languages separated by their histories and 'find a means of reconciling the contradictory interests, and thus give satisfaction to reason'.52 In this way Miiller posited the existence of a religious faculty which is always ready to experience nature in a religious fashion - i.e., with an ability to perceive the infinite. Just as separate religious languages exhibit the maxim of manifoldness and may be deemed species, so does the religious faculty manifest the maxim of unity affording it the status of a genus. 'The first thing to be explained is 193
JOSEPH M. KITAGAWA AND JOHN S. STRONG
the process by which we conceive the genus or the general, and the only adequate explanation of it is what Kant calls its transcendental deduction, i.e. the proof that without it, experience itself would be impossible; and that therefore, so far from being a concept abstracted from experience, it is a sine qua non of experience itself.'53 The religious faculty is prerequisite to the experience of the infinite. It is a potential ability or readiness of the consciousness to perceive the infinite. Muller called it a 'not-yet'. Its existence and historical development, from the Rg-Veda to Kant may be demonstrated most admirably by analyzing sacred names: a Critique of Pure Language. The Rg- Veda and Kant represent two antipodes of the development of the religious faculty. 'In the Veda we see how the Divine appears in the fire, and in the earthquake, and in the great and strong wind which rends the mountain. In Kant's Critique the Divine is heard in the still small voice - the categorical Imperative - the I Ought - which Nature does not know and cannot teach.'54 Just as the Rg-Veda did in its time, Kant isolates the problems whose solution makes life worth living.55 These problems are all the making of reason and 'as Kant so often tells us . . . what reason has made, reason is able to unmake'.56 Muller looked upon the philosophical dilemmas of Kant in the same terms in which he confronted the problems of religious language in the Veda: Kant's problems 'represent in fact the mythology of philosophy, that is, the influence of dying or dead language on the living thought of each successive age'.57 He believed his critique of language to be in the Kantian spirit for 'an age which has found the key to the ancient mythology of religion, will know where to look for the key that is to unlock the mythology of pure reason'.58 For Muller, Kant was, therefore, a starting point, and he was, in his own fashion, both willing and able to go beyond him, regardless of whether or not in doing so he did violence to his philosophy. In a statement which, for all its simplicity, is very revealing about Miiller's whole scholarly enterprise, he made this clear: Having once learnt from Kant what man can and what he cannot know, my plan of life was very simple, namely, to learn so far as literature, tradition and language allow us to do so, how man came to believe that he could know so much more than he ever can know in religion, in mythology, and in philosophy.59
It is in seeking to answer this question that Muller then posited his wellknown continuum of 'tangible, semi-tangible and intangible objects'. There are certain objects, Muller thought, such as stones, bones, berries, logs of wood, which we can touch and handle all around. In so doing, we do not suspect that there lies beyond them anything we cannot see and touch. 194
Friedrich Max Miiller These are tangibles. But then there are things such as trees, mountains, rivers, or the earth, which we can look at and sometimes touch, but which we can never encompass fully with our senses; the tree has unseen roots, the mountain is too large, etc. These are semi-tangibles. Finally, there are those things which we cannot touch at all - the sky, the stars, the sun. They are the intangibles and they most clearly lead us to a feeling of the infinite. There is no question, here, that Miiller's romanticism and emotions for nature carry him away; and what had been a reasoned discussion lapses into poetic feeling: When from some high mountain-peak our eye travels as far as it can, watching the clouds, and the sky, and the setting sun and the rising stars, it is not by any process of conscious reasoning that we conclude there is something infinite beyond the sky, beyond the sun, beyond the stars. It might truly be said that we are actually brought in sensuous contact with it; we see and feel it. In feeling the limit, we cannot help feeling also what is beyond the limit; we are in the actual presence of a visible infinite.60
We can see clearly, here, in which direction Miiller is proceeding. All the examples he gives of tangible, semi-tangible and intangible phenomena are taken from the world of nature. He admits, of course, that the infinite disclosed itself not only in natural phenomena but also in man's dealings with his departed ancestors and in his turning inward to look into himself (the one forms the basis of what he calls Anthropological, the other of what he calls Psychological, Religion). However, his emphasis remains on natural, physical phenomena which were 'no doubt, the most primitive and the most fertile source of mythological and religious ideas'.61 For Miiller, all knowledge must begin with the senses. But it does not stop there for the senses then 'give us the first intimation of the infinite' which by definition is beyond the senses. Crucial in this process is the element of feeling - religio-aesthetic emotion - which is what ultimately bridges the gap between the phenomenon and the 'thing in itself. There is nofiniteperception, for Miiller, without a concomitant 'presentiment of the infinite'.62 Miiller held that the philosophical status of the infinite could no longer be established on Kantian grounds: 'The one opening which was still left in his time, viz. the absolute certainty of moral truth, and through it the certainty of the existence of a God, is now closed up.' 63 In 'stepping beyond Kant' Miiller asserted that the only revelation needed to prove the existence of the infinite and the religious faculty which perceives it is sensuous perception viewed in the context of historical evolution.64 The idea of the infinite is not found ready-made in the human mind at the dawn of history but the germ, 195
JOSEPH M. KITAGAWA AND JOHN S. STRONG
the 'Not-Yet of that idea, lies hidden in the earliest sensuous perceptions'.65 Just as reason developed from contact with what is finite in the realm of the senses, 'so faith is evolved from what, from the very beginning, is infinite in the perceptions of our senses'.66 Kant postulated that 'supersensuous objects are not to us objects of theoretic knowledge'.67 Miiller concurred but argued that though there be no theoretic knowledge of the supersensuous (infinite) in the finite realm of the faculty of reason, there can be a perceptive knowledge (Aistheton) of the infinite in the religious faculty. The constant contact of sentient beings with the infinite is the only legitimate means by which the infinite could later establish itself as a concept, for 'no legitimate concept is possible without a previous percept'.68 Miiller claimed that in his theorizing he did not contradict Kant, or that if he did differ from him, 'it is only in going a step beyond him . . . With him [Kant] the supersensuous or the infinite would be a mere Nooumenon not a Phainomenon. I maintain that before it becomes a Nooumenon, it is an Aistheton, though not a Phainomenon.'69
With the introduction of this third mode of perception {Aistheton), Miiller hoped to establish the existence of a third faculty of religious perception of the infinite alongside the two mental faculties which maintained contact with the finite: reason and sense-perception. Thus, for Miiller, 'Religion is a mental faculty which, independent of, nay, in spite of sense and reason, enables man to apprehend the infinite under different names and under varying guises.'70 Much of this philosophizing may well seem confused and somewhat naive. Miiller was all too ready to identify the indefinite with the infinite, and there are those who would argue that going 'one step beyond' Kant is taking quite a leap. But it is important to see how Miiller's theories allowed him to emphasize two elements which lay close to the heart of his understanding of religion: the world of nature, especially of solar phenomena, and the role of language which, in the process of describing semi-tangibles and intangibles can slip - creatively - into misunderstanding. It is to these two aspects of Miiller's thought that we must now turn. Solar mythology and philology
In a recent contribution to a symposium on the study of myth, the American folklorist, Richard Dorson, examines the subject of Max Miiller and solar mythology and asks some important questions: We smile condescendingly today at the solar mythologists. So restrained a scholar as Stith Thompson refers to the extinct school as 'absurd', 'fantastic', 'ridiculous', even dangerous to 196
Friedrich Max Miiller the sanity of the modern reader. Max Miiller and his disciples are chided for not recognizing the inanity of their own theories and Andrew Lang is lauded for piercing them with ridicule. Max Miiller's sun has indeed set. But was the leading Sanscrit scholar of his day a fool? And why did Lang have to spend a quarter of a century in demolishing ideas so patently absurd?71
In attempting to answer these questions, it is important to realize that Miiller arrived at his 'solar' interpretations of myth through the discipline of comparative philology, focusing especially on Indo-European languages. He was, of course, by no means alone in this research. Ever since 1816 when Franz Bopp — who had so disappointed him in Berlin — demonstrated conclusively the common structure of the Indo-European languages, a host of comparative philologists worked through the available sources in Latin, Greek, Germanic, Avestan, etc., but most especially they came to focus on Sanskrit and even more specifically on Vedic materials. The names of Vedic deities provided clues which opened up the common identities of gods in the great 'Aryan' pantheon. Varuna was compared with Uranos, Surya with Helios, the Gandharvas with the Centaurs, and, throughout his life, Miiller himself sounded the school's favourite parallel like some polylingual mantra: 'Dyaus pitar, Zeus pater, Jupiter: these words are not mere words . . . but the oldest prayer of mankind.'72 The comparative philologists, however, did not stop at drawing parallels between the names of gods; they sought to explain the mythologies and identities of these deities as well. In this endeavour, the emphasis placed on Sanskrit and on the Vedas had, as Professor Jan de Vries has pointed out, a particular kind of result: The Rigvedic hymns give mythical allusions and descriptions with an imagery inspired principally by nature. A figure like Ushas, the goddess of dawn - comparable to Eos in Greece - inspired the poet to sing of daybreak and the triumph of light. The great myth of Indra's struggle with the Vritra, which the Veda says released the heavenly cows, seemed to be a story about thunder, which caused the long-awaited, long prayed-for rains to pour down. An idea developed that the Indian gods were powers of nature and that the myths were fanciful enactments of natural phenomena.73
Miiller would certainly have concurred with this. No one who had ever read the Rg-Veda, he claimed, could possibly have any doubts about the origin of 'the earliest Aryan' religion and mythology: Nearly all the leading deities of the Veda bear the unmistakable traces of their physical character. Their very names tell us that they were all in the beginning names of the great phenomena of nature, of fire, water, rain and storm, of sun and moon, of heaven and earth.74
Within the realm of nature, however, different scholars of course chose to emphasize different features as being of central importance. Charles Ploix, for example, thought the various gods represented different aspects of the 197
JOSEPH M. KITAGAWA AND JOHN S. STRONG
heavenly vault: Zeus was the clear sky, Poseidon the cloudy heavens, etc. Adalbert Kuhn, Wilhelm Schwartz and C. V. Muellenhoff were, on the other hand, all advocates of the so-called 'thunder-mythology' which saw meteorological phenomena as the origin of myths. And they, each in their own way, were to influence the great German scholar Wilhelm Mannhardt who at one point emphasized the connections of myth with various natural vegetation processes before he turned to focus on the popular strands of mythology and folklore. (After Mannhardt's death in 1880, Miiller and Lang were to engage in a fierce debate on the question of whose side he was actually on - the philologists' or the anthropologists' - when he passed away.)75 For Miiller himself, however, the key element in nature was the sun, and especially solar phenomena such as the dawn and the sunset. Several of his essays in Chips from a German Workshop are heavily imbued with solar mythology: 'The dawn', he proclaims, 'is one of the richest sources of Aryan mythology';76 and he interprets the myth of Kephalos, Eos, and Prokris as a curious menage a trots among the rising sun, the dawn and the morning dew.77 Elsewhere, we are told 'Another magnificent sunset looms in the myth of the death of Herakles',78 while 'William Tell, the good archer . . . is the last reflection of the Sun-god, whether we call him Indra, or Apollo, or Ulysses . . .'79 As for all the fairy tales and stories of'princesses and snowwhite ladies who were kept in dark prisons, and were invariably delivered by a young bright hero', they can all be traced back to 'mythological traditions about the Spring being released from the bonds of Winter, the Sun being rescued from the darkness of the Night, the Dawn being brought back from the far West'.80 'Why, every time we say "good morning" we commit a solar myth.'81 Miiller was to complain later82 that because he devoted some of his early studies specifically to the subject of solar myths, it had wrongly been concluded that he taught that the whole of the world's mythology was solar in origin. There is some truth in this. Many of his later works make very little reference to solar myths, and it is clear that some of his critics were unfair in exaggerating this aspect of his thought. The critics, however, were not the only ones who did so. As Dorson has pointed out, the solar theory influenced many of Miiller's followers and disciples as well, and they became its staunchest advocates. It is difficult for us to imagine today the excitement which Miiller's theories produced in his day. Beginning with his essay 'Comparative Mythology' (1856), he provided a whole new way of dealing with myth - one which put an end to the stagnant use of euhemerist and allegorical interpretations. In England George W. Cox and, to some extent, Robert Brown, in America Daniel Brinton and 198
Friedrich Max Muller John Fiske, in Italy Angelo De Gubernatis, and in France Michel Breal, all pushed the solar interpretation in their theoretical works, sometimes to a point to which Muller himself could hardly have led them. Moreover, the whole school of solar mythology began to have its effect on more specialized scholarly fields. One has only to read Emile Senart's Essai sur la legende du Buddha or Hendrik Kern's History of Indian Buddhism to see how, for example, it influenced the interpretative work of Buddhologists dealing, in this case, with the life and legend of Gautama, the Buddha. In light of all this enthusiasm, it is good, however, to remember that for Muller, the importance of solar phenomena lay not in the fact that they were 'natural', but that they and other similar phenomena best epitomized for him the class of 'intangible' objects possessing what he called a 'theogenic capacity' - that is, that they had 'in themselves, from the beginning, something going beyond the limits of sensuous percepts'.83 From nomen to numen The crucial question remains, of course, just how and in what way, this 'theogenic capacity' of certain natural phenomena resulted in actual gods and their myths. Or, as one historian of religions put it: 'How could the admiration for a phenomenon of nature ever give rise to a personal deity? How could the thrill - or with thunder, the fear or terror - develop into the mythology we know?'84 Muller was obviously very much concerned with this problem, and in answering it he musters the 'four sciences' to which he was devoted - the fields of language, thought, mythology, and religion. Language, for him, comesfirst,even before thought. Language, as he puts it, is not thought plus sound but thought is really language minus sound . . . We think in words must become the charter of all exact philosophy in the future, and it will form, I believe, at the same time the reconciliation of all systems of philosophy in the past.85
In conjunction with this, Muller claimed that abstract language was a relatively late development in the evolution of speech; and turning to Sanskrit he demonstrated that words expressing immaterial ideals and notions were all ultimately derivative from roots expressing first-hand senseexperiences. Ancient people, Muller hypothesized, could only express themselves in concrete sensual terms. Their emotions, their feelings, their awe at the sight of natural intangibles could only be translated into words that corresponded to specific human physical activities and sense-experiences. Thus in the 199
JOSEPH M. KITAGAWA AND JOHN S. STRONG
earliest tongues, things were not 'caused', they were 'begotten', 'given birth to', and the sun did not 'follow' the dawn in the sense of succeeding it after a temporal interval, but it 'chased' dawn or 'kissed' her. This linguistic 'fact', complemented by the early tendency to attribute a gender to nouns, already tended to personify the phenomena of nature. This peculiar understanding of the nature of primitive language was not, of course, uniquely Miiller's. A century before him, Christian Georg Heyne (1729-1812) had formulated a scheme along similar lines, and showed how, though initially intended symbolically, myths could only be understood literally because of the concrete language in which they were set. Miiller, however, introduced to this scheme the complication of what he calls 'polyonymy' - 'another powerful ingredient in the formation of ancient speech' to which he added the phenomenon of homonymy. Since most nouns designated objects by one of their sensible physical attributes, and since a single object (especially a natural phenomenon) often had more than one attribute or aspect, several names would then be given to it. This was polyonymy. At the same time, different objects might well have attributes in common and this would give rise to a number of homonyms. As an example, Miiller points out that in the Vedas, the earth is called urvl (wide), prthivi (broad), mahl (great) and many more names . . . But urvT (wide) is not only given as a name of the earth, but also means a river. Prthivi (broad) means not only earth but sky and dawn. Mahl (great, strong) is used for cow and speech, as well as for earth. Hence, earth, river, sky, dawn, cow and speech would become homonyms.86
This presented no problem as long as the original derivation of the epithets was remembered. But soon, Miiller claimed, the meaning of the metaphors was lost. The root meaning of the words was forgotten and they remained mere sounds, i.e., names used in conversation and understood perhaps by the grandfather, familiar to the father, but strange to the son, and misunderstood by the grandson . . . Zeus, being originally a name of the sky, like the Sanskrit Dyaus, became gradually a proper name, which betrayed its appellative meaning only in a fewr proverbial expressions.87
At the same time, new false etymologies were imagined to explain these names whose sense had been forgotten, a phenomenon not uncommon even in modern times when, for example, 'Oxford' was etymologized as the place where an ox crossed the ford. In a more classical context, Miiller points out that 'Lykegenes - the "son of light" - Apollo - became a "son of Lycia"; and Delios, the "bright one" gave rise to the myth of the birth of Apollo in 200
Friedrich Max Mutter Delos.'88 Moreover, when several epithets were used for the same object, they could give rise to the myths of several personages who often as not would be represented as brothers or sisters or parent and child. Myths, stories, even the very origins of divine personalities were thus simply the result of a misunderstanding of epithets - a 'disease of the language' as Miiller called it, although later, under the fire of criticism, he was to qualify this statement by adding that iike many diseases it ought really to be recognized as a recuperative crisis in the youthful constitution of the human mind'.89 In these various ways, Miiller argued that what had simply been names nomina - came to be thought of as 'divine powers' - numina. This happy formulation became the summary expression of his theory and was immediately taken up by others. It was, however, not originally his. Ernest Renan, to whom Miiller was quite close in Paris, was perhaps the first to point out that, as we have mentioned, it was most likely borrowed from Burnouf.90 The origin of the expression, moreover, has been traced back even further. In John Selden's remarkable treatise on Syrian Gods (De Dis Syris, 1672) we find the cogent argument that the great number of divinities and idols of the heathen resulted from the multiplicity of names used to address them in liturgy. This occasioned a considerable increase in the length of the lists of gods. 'Where at first', Selden goes on to say, 'there were only various names (nomina), there came to be various divinities (numina). Thus the moon which was called Isis, Lucine, Diana, Trivia, Hecate, in the end gave rise to as many goddesses: each nomen became a particular numen.'91 Thus even this formulation for which Miiller is perhaps most famous, had been anticipated by almost two hundred years. It is to Miiller's credit, however, that he worked out the theory not simply in the context of speculation on the origin of deities, but in the framework of a particular method for studying those origins. We can see now the importance that comparative philology held for him: it was the only tool which enabled one to get back through the various linguistic misunderstandings and forgettings which had transformed nomina into numina. Miiller's theories about the origins of mythology and its connection to language have today been abandoned; they were criticized repeatedly and soundly even during his lifetime. Not only Lang, but J. Bedier, O. Gruppe, John Blackie and others all actively participated in the attack.92 Some objected to specific etymologies, others to the too-ready mixing of Sanskrit and Greek mythologems. Basically, however, they shared a simple commonsense scepticism about the theory itself. As one leading scholar was to put it 201
JOSEPH M. KITAGAWA AND JOHN S. STRONG
subsequently: 'How could an unnatural linguistic process of confusion and mixture be responsible for a mythology that had been meaningful and trustworthy for generations?'93 Miiller had no answer to this question because it is one which he never really asked. He hypothesizes the disease of language because, finally, he is already equipped with the prescription for its cure: the discipline of comparative philology. Convinced that language and thought were inseparable, and that a disease of language (myth) is a disease of thought, Miiller allowed his opponents to draw the obvious conclusion that language, which by its errors brings us to the cult of objects conceived as persons, turned religion itself into a lie. Having forsaken Romanticism, his only recourse in explaining the relationship between language and myth was a flimsy philological rationalism.94 Miiller's comparisons of mythology came under serious fire from other linguists. The very Vedas over which he had superimposed other popular poetry and legend, came to be viewed by scholars as priestly hymns which had nothing to do with popular poetry. Furthermore, it became evident in Miiller's time that the Vedas could not be proven any more ancient than Egyptian or Assyro-Babylonian accounts. The unilinear primacy of the Vedas, upon which Miiller had constructed his elaboration of language, faltered. In building a case for the transformation of nomina to numina, Miiller had made much of the noun-endings which indicated gender. Such genderendings induced the creation of mythology by prompting the personification of names. However, more careful linguistic research forced comparative philologists to recognize that the very derivation of mythology from endings of gender could not be held as dogma since mythologies are also present among peoples who use no grammatical gender. The nomina—numina theory, dependent upon the existence of such endings, could be valid at most in only limited cases. Miiller's method locked him into a vicious interpretative circle. By not taking into consideration any of the peculiarities of particular myths but instead basing his system on the uncertainty of endings and the surface similarities of different languages, his one-sided etymological explanation could only derive a boring uniformity of interpretations. By reducing mythology to a lyrical paraphrase of celestial phenomena, Miiller had downgraded the question of religion. It cannot be understood in what way the simple observation of natural phenomena could have transformed itself into a poetic history, inspired the enthusiasm of cantors, excited popular admiration, or transmitted itself to successive generations as the goal of human wisdom.95 202
Friedrich Max Miiller
Henotheism and the Veda
There is one more feature of Miiller's thought which must be touched on: his theory of henotheism. No survey of his contribution to the study of religion would be complete without it, and it remains one of his theories which is remembered most prominently by historians of religions. Again, the RgVeda forms the starting point and context for his discussion. Very early in his Vedic researches, Miiller noted that the various deities invoked in the hymns were each in turn felt to be supreme and absolute. Alternatively, Indra, Varuna, Agni, Mitra, etc., could each be exalted and praised to such an extent that the other deities 'disappeared from the vision of the poet', and only the god who was being addressed stood 'in full light before the eyes of the worshippers'. This feature is one which Miiller called henotheism - 'a worship of single gods', as opposed to monotheism ('the worship of one god involving a denial of all other gods') and polytheism ('the worship of many deities which together form one divine polity').96 While this stage of henotheism could best be seen in Vedic India, Miiller thought that it was by no means limited to that time and place but was more widespread, universal in fact. Without being specific, he claimed to have found traces of it in Greece, Italy and Germany. Then, in a rare appeal to sociology (as well as to a kind of evolutionism), he indicated that it is most evident 'in that period which precedes the formation of nations out of independent tribes', that it is a communal or family phenomenon 'as distinct from an imperial form of religion'.97 (Perhaps Miiller's own roots in the small independent Duchy of Dessau which had not yet been incorporated into the Prussian state are showing here.) Miiller did end up placing henotheism in an evolutionary scheme as the first stage in a development towards polytheism and monotheism, but he does not overly stress this. It is important to note that the real reason he considered henotheism to be the most primitive of these phases is that it most closely parallels his theory of the multiple yet unique origins of our religious perceptions of the infinite. Henotheism, he wrote at one point, is a belief and worship of those single objects whether semi-tangible or intangible, in which man first suspected the presence of the invisible and the infinite, each of which, as we have seen was raised into something more than finite, more than natural, more than conceivable.98
Miiller's doctrine of henotheism thus closely complemented his other theories about man's perception of the infinite and about the phenomenon of polyonymy. It is also important to stress, however, its intimate connection with his Vedic studies. In spite of his desire to see it as a generally human 203
JOSEPH M. KITAGAWA AND JOHN S. STRONG
phenomenon, he admitted that it 'can nowhere be studied so well as in the Veda; in fact, we should hardly have known of its existence but for the Veda'.99 This is significant. For all his suspicions of generalizing theories and his exhortations to methodological caution in considering each culture and religion on its own terms and in its own context, Miiller himself could never quite leave behind his own first love. He grounded his theories in the Veda as he knew it, and then pushed them out into other fields. This worked, sometimes, within the Indo-European family, but it got him into trouble as soon as he tried to apply his theories more universally. Even within Indo-European cultures, the Veda was always what he turned to for his best examples, and this blinded him to many of the riches of other Aryan traditions. For example, what historian of religions could speak today, as Miiller did, of the 'hideousnesses of the religion of Siva and Vishnu', or likewise declare: The only original, the only important period of Sanskrit literature . . . which deserves to become the subject of earnest study . . . is that period which preceded the rise of Buddhism, when Sanskrit was still the spoken language of India and the worship of Siva was still unknown.100
/// Miiller and the history of religions In 1905, Louis Jordan pointed out in his magnum opus on the history of comparative religion that Max Miiller 'did infinitely more for the new discipline as one of its Prophets and Pioneers than he was ever privileged to do for it as one of its Founders and Masters'.101 Indeed, perhaps one of the most important features of Miiller's career is that he created, or at least epitomized, an excitement, an impulse toward a new field of inquiry. Before him, as one recent student of the discipline has put it, 'the field of religious studies, though wide and full, was disorganized. After him the field could be seen as a whole subjected to a method, and in short treated scientifically.'102 It is not insignificant that it was during Miiller's lifetime that the first chairs in the history of religions appeared in European universities. In 1876, the Dutch government established four professorships in the field, two of which were immediately held by scholars of first importance to the discipline: Cornelis P. Tiele at Leyden and Chantepie de la Saussaye at Amsterdam. In 1879, France followed suit, setting up a special chair for religious studies at the College de France, followed in 1885 by the founding of the 'section des sciences religieuses' at the Sorbonne. In 1873, the Swiss 204
Friedrich Max Miiller inaugurated the study of the history of religions in Geneva. In Germany, after some initial opposition by Adolf von Harnack (who declared that German theological faculties must avoid dilettantism and stick to studying the religion of the Bible), a chair in the history of religions was finally established in 1910 at Berlin. At the same time, various lectureships devoted to the new discipline were founded. For example, such was the mood in England that in 1878, the trustees of the fund which Robert Hibbert had set up to promote 'the spread of Christianity in its most simple and intelligible form' decided that it would not be inappropriate nor contrary to the will of the testator to establish in his name a series of lectures on the various historical religions of the world.103 Significantly, they asked Miiller to open the series, which he did the following year with his Hibbert Lectures on the Origin and Growth ofReligion. Finally, Miiller's lifetime also saw the start of several journals and international congresses devoted to the new field. Mention should be made of the Revue de Fhistoire des religions (Paris, 1880), Le Museon (Louvain, 1882), Open Court (Chicago, 1887), and the Archivfur Religionswissenschaft (Leipzig, 1898). In 1889, the establishment of the Musee Guimet in Paris greatly stimulated the growing interest in oriental religions and it soon began to publish its own important series of monographs. In 1893, the World Parliament of Religions (which Miiller enthusiastically endorsed but did not attend) was convened in Chicago. It brought together representatives of sixteen different world religions. The sessions were more ceremonial than scholarly, but they marked in the popular mind a new awareness of the scope and variety of world religions. In 1897, the more sedate and strictly academic Religionswissenschaftlicher Kongress met at Stockholm, and then in 1900, the International Congress of History of Religions held its first meeting in Paris. Miiller s contributions It cannot be argued, of course, that all this activity is directly attributable to Max Miiller. Nonetheless, he did contribute to it significantly in a number of ways which it is important to try to specify. The first of these contributions, perhaps, was simply Miiller's insistence on the academic and scientific character of the study of religion. This is apparent in several specific ways, the most evident, perhaps, being his attempt to consider other religions without prejudice or partiality. Thus, criticizing the commonly made distinction between 'natural' and 'revealed' religions, Miiller declared in his characteristically naive but straightforward manner: 205
JOSEPH M. KITAGAWA AND JOHN S. STRONG our task is different: we have simply to deal with the facts such as we find them. If people regard their religion as revealed, it is to them a revealed religion, and has to be treated as such by every impartial historian.104
Science, to him, meant just that: a method characterized by impartiality and openness. It should be remembered that in Miiller's time, 'science' and 'religion' tended to be viewed as irreconcilable domains. One of Miiller's strengths, as Professor Sharpe has pointed out, was that he did not accept this split, but 'suggested . . . that there might be a "science of religion" which would do justice to both'.105 He was, of course, not alone in doing so. Even before Miiller's Introduction to the Science ofReligion, in Paris, in 1870, Emile Burnouf (not to be confused with Miiller's former mentor Eugene Burnouf) was calling for the constitution of a new 'science des religions'.106 It was, however, Miiller who had the eloquence and vision necessary to popularize the endeavour. Herein, perhaps, lies the second of his contributions to the field. A distinguished scholar with the aura of a Sanskritist about him, he at the same time possessed the lucidity of thought and style which predisposed him, as Pinard de la Boullaye put it, to the role of a vulgarisateur.101 Prolific, he pushed, called for, wrote on and lectured about the possibilities of the new science, and always careful not to offend or undermine his nor the general public's Christian beliefs, he popularized the study of other religions in a way that appealed to the educated classes at large. Thirdly, and importantly for the development of the discipline, the basis of this new 'science of religion' which he was so successful in promoting was to be comparison. All higher knowledge, Miiller pronounced, 'is acquired by comparison and rests on comparison . . . The character of scientific research in our age is pre-eminently comparative.'108 And applying to religion Goethe's paradox about languages, he declared that 'he who only knows one religion knows none'.109 This, it must be remembered, was in the face of the declarations of several theological schools at the time, to the effect that 'he who knows the one [Christian] religion knows them all'. As we have seen, however, comparison for Miiller was to be done carefully. Rather than indiscriminately using data from widely disparate cultures in the style of the anthropological school, it should follow along the lines of what he saw as 'the only scientific and truly genetic classification: the classification of languages'.110 Paralleling the broad linguistic divisions of his day, Miiller was wont to examine three major families of religion: the Aryan (i.e., the IndoEuropean), the Semitic, and the Turanian (Ural-Altaic). Comparisons were 206
Friedrich Max Mutter to be drawn among different traditions within each of these groups before they were made among members of different groups. In this way, basic characteristics of the religions of major linguistic-cultural families could be determined. There is in this methodology a curious combination of both dated and quite modern insights. The principle of classification is sound, and although it should not necessarily be based solely on linguistic considerations of this type, it has remained one of Miiller's lasting contributions to the study of religion even today. One of the consequences of this view, however, (and a fourth though perhaps unfortunate contribution of Miiller to the emerging discipline) was an over-emphasis on the primacy of scripture. He wasfinallyconcerned with language only insofar as it was written down, and even though he occasionally shows signs of being aware of the dangers of taking the texts for the tradition as a whole,111 that did not stop him from doing so most of the time. Statements such as the following reflect his general attitude well enough: 'Religions are often divided into two classes, those which are founded on books, and those which have no such vouchers. The former only are considered as real religions . . .' II2 Or again: 'When we speak of the Jewish or the Christian or the Hindu religion, we mean a body of doctrines handed down . . . in canonical books.'113 Such an attitude, of course, went hand in glove with Miiller's distrust and belittling of not only ethnological but archaeological data. Generally speaking, Miiller was really interested only in eight religions, those which had written bodies of scripture and which he accepted into the 'Library of Sacred Books'. Brahmanism with the Vedas, Zoroastrianism with the ZendAvesta, and Buddhism with the Tripitaka, fell into the Aryan class. 'Mosaism' and the Old Testament, Christianity and the New Testament, and Mohammedanism and the Koran represented the Semitic group; while Confucianism and Taoism together with the Chinese classics and the Tao Te Ching fell into the Turanian category. In this attitude, we find, for better or for worse, the roots of a tendency towards an exclusive focus on the study of the so-called 'world religions' which continues to be emphasized even today by many scholars in the field. A very positive result of this tendency, however, (and undeniably yet another of Miiller's major contributions to the growing discipline and to its popularization) was the publication of the Sacred Books of the East, the editing of which occupied Miiller for much of the last period of his life. The project succeeded magnificently. The initial twenty-four volume series was soon expanded to a total of fifty volumes, and the readable and for the most 207
JOSEPH M. KITAGAWA AND JOHN S. STRONG
part accurate translations are still much in use today by orientalists and historians of religions alike. Perhaps only Max Miiller could have envisioned and carried out such a staggering project, and managed to recruit to its cause the leading orientalists of the day. Samuel Beal, E. B. Cowell, T. W. Rhys Davids, Julius Eggeling, V. Fausboll, Hermann Jacobi, Hendrik Kern, James Legge, Hermann Oldenberg, and Junjiro Takakusu were only a few of those who collaborated as translators, editors, and annotators. Here again, it might be added, we see how Miiller with his own pan-European background in Germany, France, and England, was able to bridge several scholarly worlds in bringing together an international group of specialists. Conclusion We have examined in this chapter several aspects of Muller's life and thought and seen some of his contributions to the study of religion in the nineteenth century. Clearly most of his theories - his altered Kantian notions, his solar mythology, the disease of the language, etc. - have today been completely abandoned. Likewise, comparative philology and linguistics have progressed far beyond what they were in Muller's time. Nor, for that matter, were all of his more lasting contributions to the field necessarily positive. Some of his prejudices lingered a long time, and some of his blindnesses still surprise us. Miiller never lived to witness the great advances the study of religion was to make in the early twentieth century. Before the end of the First World War, Frazer's Golden Bough was making its influence strongly felt, Durkheim had published his Elementary Forms ofthe Religious Life, Wilhelm Schmidt had started his Ursprung der Gottesidee, Sigmund Freud had written Totem and Taboo, Rudolf Otto The Idea of the Holy, Arnold van Gennep The Rites of Passage, while Marcel Mauss, G. van der Leeuw and RafFaele Pettazzoni had all started their careers. Miiller could never have imagined the diversity of approaches to the study of religion which they represented. Yet, in a sense, they were still part of his world - one which did not hesitate to embark upon monumental projects and to arrive at ambitious conclusions. Muller was the first of a series of giants who have made the comparative study of religion what it is today, and one cannot help but feel a certain nostalgia for his time. More recent scholars, building on their work, have become, as Mircea Eliade has pointed out, 'more modest, more withdrawn . . . more timid',114 and their discussions and theories are consequently less empassioned, less vital and less debated. It is Muller's presence and passion in pursuit of a comprehensive study of 208
Friedrich Max Muller religion which have lasting importance; for, in the end, his substantive contributions to a science of religions were short-lived, disappointing and dismal. If Muller rose head and shoulders above many of his contemporaries, he soon became a massive block upon which others could stand to see a further horizon.115 It is true that he possessed great skill as a Sanskritist and that he showed a glimpse of daring in his claim that religion is a mental faculty to apprehend the infinite through nature apart from the senses and reason. But, far from building on the firm ground of philosophy or reliable linguistic research, he 'substituted nature rhapsodies for religious emotion . . . a wan ideal for ideas of Divinity, and . . . a theory of linguistic debasement for history'.116 If Muller is remembered best for his attempt to make religion the subject of an integrative study, it is also best to remember that he stripped mythology of belief, separated it from religion and divested it of narrative and imaginative interest.117 Furthermore, by his insensitivity to the fine arts, ethnography and archaeology, he focused on a narrow theory of language and was left 'crying up the study of mythology while he trivialized myth itself.118
Notes 1 2 3 4 5 6 7 8 9 10
H. Pinard de la Boullaye, L' Etude comparee des religions (2 vols.,¥aris, 1922), vol. 1,33011. Friedrich Max Muller, My Autobiography (New York, 1901), pp. 46, 51. Ibid., p. 118. Ibid., p. 157. Friedrich Max Muller, Natural Religion (London, 1892), p. 17. Muller, Autobiography, p. 162. Ibid., p. 169. Ibid., p. 178. See Eugene Burnouf, Le Bhagavata purana (Paris, 1840), vol. 3, pp. lxxxiff. The Life and Letters of Friedrich Max Muller, edited by his wife (2 vols., New York, 1902), vol. 1, p. 63. See also Nirad C. Chaudhuri, Scholar Extraordinary (New York, !974), P- 9411 Friedrich Max Muller, Contributions to the Science ofMythology (2 vols., London, 1897), vol. 1, p. v. 12 See, for example, Pinard de la Boullaye, Etude, vol. 1, chaps. 5ff and Jan de Vries, Perspectives in the History of Religions, tr. by Kees W. Bolle (Berkeley, 1967), pp. 296°. 13 Quoted in Pinard de la Boullaye, Etude, vol. 1, p. 181. 14 Ibid. 15 Ibid., p. 216. See further Sir Edmund Leach's contribution to the present volume. 16 Friedrich Max Muller, Lectures on the Origin and Growth of Religion (London, 1880), p. 61. 17 Ibid., pp. 96-7. 18 Muller, Natural Religion, p. 85. 19 Muller, Contributions, vol. 1, p. 12. 209
JOSEPH M. KITAGAWA AND JOHN S. STRONG 20 21 22 23 24 25 26 27 28 29 30 31 32 33 34 35 36 37 38 39 40 41 42 43 44 45 46 47 48 49 50 51 52 53 54 55 56 57 58 59 60 61 62 63 64 65 66 67
Andrew Lang, Modern Mythology (London, 1897), p. 11. Muller, Contributions, vol. 1, pp. 33-4. Friedrich Max Muller, Introduction to the Science of Religion (London, 1882), pp. 103-4. Muller, Autobiography, pp. 146-7. Ibid., p. 146. Friedrich Max Muller, 'Science of Religion: A Retrospect', The Living Age, 219 (1898), 911. Muller, Autobiography, p. 130. Ibid., p. 136. Ibid., p. 141. Ibid., p. 142. Ibid., p. 135. Ibid., p. 135. Ibid., p. 136. Muller, Lectures, pp. 14-21. Ibid., p. 14. Ibid., p. 15. Ibid., p. 19. Ibid., p. 20. Ibid., p. 20. Ibid., p. 21. Johannes H. Voigt, Max Muller, The Man and His Ideas, (Calcutta, 1967), p. 24. Ibid., pp. 142-3. Muller, Lectures, p. 21. Ibid., p. 23. Ibid., p. 20. Ibid., p. 48. Friedrich Max Muller, trans., Kant's Critique of Pure Reason, 2nd edn (New York, 1886), p. xxxiv. Ibid., p. lxxvii. Ibid., p. xix. Ibid., p. 3. Burton Feldman and Robert D. Richardson, The Rise of Modern Mythology (Bloomington, Indiana, 1972), p. 302. Muller, Critique, p. xxvi. Ibid., p. xxxvii. Ibid., p. xxxiv. Ibid., p. lxi. Ibid., p. xxviii. Ibid., p. xxviii. Ibid., p. xxviii. Ibid., p. xxviii. Ibid., p. xxxiv. Muller, Natural Religion, pp. 153-4. Ibid., p. 155. Muller, Lectures, p. 45. Ibid., p. 31. Ibid., p. 32. Ibid., p. 32. Ibid., p. 32. Ibid., p. 47. 210
Friedrich Max Miiller 68 69 70 71 72 73 74 75 76 77 78 79 80 81 82 83 84 85 86 87 88 89 90
91 92 93 94 95 96 97 98 99 100 101 102 103 104 105 106 107 108 109 no in 112 113 114
Ibid., p. 47. Ibid., p. 47. / t o . , p. 23. Richard M. Dorson, 'The Eclipse of Solar Mythology', in Thomas A. Sebeok (ed.), Myth: A Symposium (Bloomington, Indiana, 1958), p. 15. Miiller, Science of Religion, p. 107. De Vries, Perspectives, pp. 80-1. Friedrich Max Miiller, Three Lectures on the Vedanta Philosophy (London, 1898), p. 25. See Lang, Modern Mythology, p. 3 and Miiller, Contributions, vol. 1, p. 20. Friedrich Max Miiller, Chips from a German Workshop (4 vols., New York, 1869), vol. 2, P- 93Ibid., pp. 86-7. Ibid., p. 88. Ibid., p. 232. Ibid. Friedrich Max Miiller, India - What Can It Teach Us? (London, 1882), p. 216. Miiller, Chips, vol. 4, p. xiii. Miiller, Natural Religion, p. 148. De Vries, Perspectives, p. 88. Ibid., p. 356. Miiller, Chips, vol. 2, pp. 71-2. Ibid., p. 72. Ibid., p. 73. Miiller, Natural Religion, p. 22. Ernest Renan, 'Nouvelles considerations sur le caractere general des peuples semitiques et en particulier sur leur tendance au monotheisme', Journal asiatique, 13 (1859), 430, n. 2. Pinard de la Boullaye, Etude, vol. 1, p. 161. Ibid., p. 347, n. 3. De Vries, Perspectives, p. 89. G. Cocchiara, Storia del Folklore in Europa (Turin, 1952), p. 316. Ibid., p. 321. Miiller, Lectures, pp. 286, 289. Ibid., p. 286. Ibid., p. 260. Ibid. Ibid., p. 145. Louis Jordan, Comparative Religion (New York, 1905), p. 522. Eric J. Sharpe, Comparative Religion: A History (New York, 1975), p. 46. Miiller, Lectures, p. viii. Ibid., p. 74. Sharpe, Comparative Religion, p. 27. See Emile Burnouf, La Science des religions (Paris, 1870). Pinard de la Boullaye, Etude, vol. 1, p. 329. Miiller, Science of Religion, p. 9. Ibid., p. 13. Ibid., p. 82. Miiller, Natural Religion, p. 215. Ibid., p. 549. Miiller, Science of Religion, p. 13. Mircea Eliade, The Quest (Chicago, 1969), p. 75. 211
JOSEPH M. KITAGAWA AND JOHN S. STRONG 115 116 117 118
Jordan, Comparative Religion, p. 1. Feldman and Richardson, Modern Mythology, p. 482. Ibid., p. 482. Ibid.
Bibliographical essay There is as yet no full-length study of Max Muller's specific contributions to the field of religious studies. Readers, therefore, must turn to more general surveys of the history of the discipline in order to put his career and its relation to the field into a larger perspective. Two short and readily available introductions along these lines are Joachim Wach's 'Development, Meaning and Method in the Comparative Study of Religion' which forms chapter one of his Comparative Study of Religions (New York, 1958), and Mircea Eliade's 'The History of Religion as a Branch of Knowledge', which has been published as an appendix to The Sacred and the Profane (New York, 1961). More substantial histories of the discipline which present equally balanced views of Miiller's importance include two great classics: Louis Jordan, Comparative Religion - Its Genesis and Growth (Edinburgh, 1905), and H. Pinard de la Boullaye, L Etude comparee des religions (2 vols., Paris, 1925), as well as a number of more recent surveys: Jan De Vries, Perspectives in the History ofReligions, tr. by Kees Bolle (Berkeley, 1967), Michel Meslin, Pour une science des religions (Paris, 1973), and Eric J. Sharpe, Comparative Religion: A History (London and New York, 1975). In addition, Jacques Waardenburg's Classical Approaches to the Study ofReligions (2 vols., The Hague, 1973-4) contains useful biographical sketches and selections from the writings not only of Miiller but of many of his contemporaries. For biographical information on Miiller, our sources are somewhat limited. Those interested in his childhood and formative years had best turn immediately to his own Autobiography: A Fragment (New York, 1901). For an overall view of his life, see Nirad C. Chaudhuri's biographical study, Scholar Extraordinary (New York, 1974). It tends somewhat to over-emphasize Muller's Indian connections, but it is the only good recent biography and definitely surpasses Johannes H. Voight, Max Mueller. The Man and His Ideas (Calcutta, 1967) which, however, remains useful for its interest in Muller's involvement in politics. Finally, interesting biographical details may also be gleaned from the two volumes of the Life and Letters of the Right Hon. F. Max Miiller, ed. by Georgina Max Miiller (London, 1902). Miiller was an extremely prolific writer and it is impossible to refer here even to all of his major publications. For the fullest readily available listing of these, see the second volume (pp. 184-8) of Waardenburg's Classical Approaches where the bibliography also includes some early critical studies of Muller's thought. Reference should be made here, however, to a number of his works which are of special relevance to the comparative study of religions. Although it is difficult to classify these in order of their importance, certainly his long essay on 'Comparative Mythology' (1856), which was later included in Chipsfrom a German Workshop, vol. 2 (New York, 1869), would rank very high among them. Special attention should also be paid to his Introduction to the Science ofReligion (London, 1882), to his Hibbert Lectures on the Origin and Growth of Religion (London, 1888). For the full development of his theories on mythology, see also his Contributions to the Science of Mythology (2 vols., London, 1897). In addition to these works, one should not overlook three shorter essays, one of which seems to have been passed over by the usual bibliographies and the other two of which often go unnoticed since they were published only as 'prefaces' to works of translation. The first is of special interest in terms of Muller's understanding of the comparative study of religions since it comprises his own survey of the field: 'Science of Religion: A Retrospect', The Living Age, 219 (1898), 909-13. The second is his 'Preface' to his translation of Immanuel Kant's Critique 212
Friedrich Max Miiller of Pure Reason (London, 1881), in which he comments on the relationship between Kant's philosophy and his own endeavours in the study of religion. The third is his 'Preface to the Sacred Books of the East', included in the first volume of that series, The Upanisads (Oxford, 1879), in which he describes the motivations behind the selection and publication of those fifty volumes of translations which are still much in use today. Various aspects of Miiller's work and of his career as a whole were the subject of much debate both during his lifetime and afterwards. For example, the question of his actual role in the foundation of the 'science of religion' quickly became a matter of dispute. See on this Cornelis P. Tiele, 'On the Study of Comparative Theology', in The World's Parliament of Religions, ed. John Henry Barrows (2 vols., Chicago, 1893), vol. 1, pp. 583-90. Occasionally, also, Miiller has been accused of promoting anti-semitism with his emphasis on the greatness of Aryan culture and religion. For a recent discussion along these lines, see Garry W. Trompf, 'Friedrich Max Miiller: Some Preliminary Chips from his German Workshop', Journal of Religious History, 5 (1969), 200-17, which, however, mistakenly confuses Emile Burnouf with Miiller's mentor, Eugene Burnouf, and detects Aryanist influences on Miiller in the former, wrongly assuming that he was the latter. Trompf himself corrected this error in his more recent work, Friedrich Max Mueller: As A Theorist of Comparative Religion (Bombay, 1978), in which he succinctly traces the development of Miiller's somewhat unorthodox Christian faith and his ideas of religion in general. Another recent work, F. Max Miiller and the Rg-Veda, by Ronald W. Neufeldt (Calcutta, 1980), attempts to show that it was the Rg-Veda that provided the foundation and persistent underpinning in what Miiller considered to be the four 'sciences' of language, thought, mythology, and religion. But it was the theory of solar mythology and Miiller's debate with Andrew Lang which have received the most scholarly attention. The best orientation to these issues is still Richard Dorson's 'The Eclipse of Solar Mythology', in Thomas Sebok (ed.), Myth: A Symposium (Bloomington, Indiana, 1958), pp. 25-63. Dorson not only outlines the theory but traces its subsequent fortunes as well. After this, one may as well plunge right into the controversy itself by reading together: Miiller's Contributions to the Science of Mythology and Andrew Lang, Modern Mythology (London, 1897). Finally, further study of the issues and the parties involved might focus on the work of George Cox (a Max Miillerian), The Mythology of the Aryan Nations (2 vols., London, 1870); that of John Blackie (an anti-Miillerian), Horae Hellenicae: A Protest against the Ingenious Aberrations of Max Miiller, Gladstone, Inman, and Cox (London, 1874); and that of Robert Brown (a middle-of-the roader), Semitic Influence in Hellenic Mythology with Special Reference to the Recent Mythological Works of the Rt. Hon. Prof F. Max Miiller and Mr. Andrew Lang (London, 1898).
213
7
Anthropology of Religion: British and French Schools SIR EDMUND LEACH
i. Nineteenth-century anthropological attitudes Naturally enough what nineteenth-century writers on anthropological topics thought and wrote about religion grew out of the arguments of their eighteenth-century predecessors but something of the more general anthropological background needs first to be explained. Anthropologists study the diversity of man considered both as animal species and as products of civilisation (culture). Since human beings everywhere show a marked proclivity for finding reasons to think themselves superior to 'those bastards over the hill who do not even know how to talk properly', it could be held that anthropology of a certain prejudiced sort is as old as humanity itself but, as a field of serious scholarly inquiry, it only became clearly recognisable during the latter part of the eighteenth century. The history of these matters is very complex. Relevant though interdependent factors included: (i) the work of the taxonomists of nature - e.g. Linnaeus and Buffon - who assumed that the varieties of man, both physically and culturally, were analogous to variations of plants and zoological species; (ii) the ideas of the social philosophers of the French and Scottish Enlightenments, - e.g. Rousseau, Voltaire, David Hume - who backed up their criticisms of the society which they saw around them by drawing counter-examples from travellers tales about exotic societies in other parts of the world; this is a literary device which goes back at least to Montaigne in the sixteenth century; (iii) the political and economic forces which induced European governments to finance ambitious voyages of exploration (and colonial annexation) to the remoter unmapped corners of the globe - e.g. the official British sponsorship of Cook's voyages in the 1780s; (iv) the fervour of evangelical missionary activity among the newly discovered benighted savages which began in the late eighteenth century and 215
SIR EDMUND LEACH
continued throughout the nineteenth century into the twentieth; (the spread of the Christian missions was closely tied in with the expansion of European colonial power); (v) the movement for the abolition of the slave trade and the practice of slavery, and the accompanying moral argument that the physical persons as well as the souls of the benighted savages were in need of protection (in England the Ethnological Society, which was ancestral to the modern Royal Anthropological Institute, was itself an offshoot of the Aborigines Protection Society which was a product of Wilberforce's campaign against the stave trade); (vi) the realisation among scholars, beginning in the eighteenth century but gathering force in the early nineteenth century, that the chronology of antiquity as represented in the Bible could not possibly be true. This last factor immediately opened up vast problems. If the Bible is not strictly true as history, then what did really happen? What is the original history of mankind? With few exceptions, until quite late into the twentieth century, all those who practised anthropology in any form thought that they were providing answers to such questions. They were concerned above all with the origins of man and the origins of human institutions. Although the bulk of anthropological writing throughout this period was ethnographic in a straightforward sense, it provided a record of what human customs occur and how they are distributed geographically, the theory was all about pre-history. The anthropology of religion thus consisted of speculations about the origin of religion as an historical phenomenon. Both in England and in France the terms anthropology (anthropologie) and ethnology (ethnologie) came into use around the end of the eighteenth century. They were not used consistently but they came to serve as banners for two sharply contrasted styles of thinking about cultural difference. The anthropologists regarded the varieties of men as species; differences of custom were markers of race. The Europeans were an innately superior species and European customs were a marker of that superiority. NonEuropean peoples, particularly those who were reported to engage in horrible customs such as cannibalism or human sacrifice, were barely human. Anthropology was thus a kind of descriptive zoology. Earlier versions of this standpoint, e.g. the seventeenth-century pre-Adamite theory, which denied that the American Indians were descended from Noah, had been condemned as heretical by the Inquisition and a taint of heresy hung over the anthropologists during most of the nineteenth century. The ethnologists on the other hand often had their roots in evangelical Christianity. Their theories about the origin of cultural diversity were not 216
The Anthropology of Religion
necessarily compatible with biblical chronology but they did not question the validity of Genesis 9-10. All varieties of mankind are fully human in that all men are descended from Adam and from Noah, but some branches of the human race suffer from God's curse and, having degenerated from their original nobility, are now doomed to a perpetual servile status. On this view the barbarous customs of savages had all originated in nobler form in ancient higher civilisations and had been spread around the world as the result of the migration of peoples. The present geographical distribution of apparently similar customs could therefore serve as evidence for these past population movements. Very similar 'diffusionist' views were coming back into fashion right at the end of the nineteenth century, but the period in between, roughly 18601900, was the heyday of social evolutionism which can now be seen as an entirely sterile intellectual movement that represents a temporary synthesis between the 'anthropological' and 'ethnological' positions. Most historical surveys of the subject give the impression that, so far as British anthropology is concerned, i860 is where it all began; they thus imply a drastic discontinuity between the late eighteenth and mid-nineteenth centuries. The conventional story runs something like this: The social philosophers of the French and Scottish Enlightenments, who had at last broken free from the commitment to fit all anthropological evidence into the dogmatic framework provided by the Book of Genesis, developed a vigorous debate among themselves about the status of man in relation to other animals, the significance of language, the relation between race and culture, and the evolution of social institutions, including religion. According to taste, Vico, Montesquieu, Rousseau, Voltaire, Hume, Kames, Monboddo, Condorcet, BufFon, are represented as the founders of modern anthropology. But then there is supposed to have been a hiatus associated with the Evangelical revival. Biblical fundamentalism reasserted itself and the sceptical agnosticism, which is a prerequisite for those who are to approach the comparative study of moral systems with relative detachment, disappeared. Anthropology only re-emerged when Evangelical enthusiasm was already a spent force. It was then propounded by men who achieved celebrity during the latter part of the nineteenth century, notably Spencer, McLennan, Lubbock, Tylor, Morgan, Mliller, Robertson Smith, Frazer, Durkheim. They were mostly men of agnostic rationalist persuasion and Protestant upbringing but they made the evolution of religious ideas their central intellectual concern. They took over their basic schema of stage-by-stage evolution from a lapsed Catholic, Auguste Comte, whose Cours de Philosophie Positive, was published between 1830 and 1842. Comte in turn is supposed to have 217
SIR E D M U N D LEACH
borrowed his ideas direct from the mid-eighteenth century so that, with regard to the history of anthropology, the early part of the nineteenth century appears to be devoid of interest. The real sequence of events was much more complicated though a satisfactory account of how eighteenth-century theories of social evolution came to be transformed into the nineteenth-century dogma of social progress has yet to be written. As Stocking (1968; 1971; 1973) has shown, orthodox British anthropological thinking was dominated throughout the early part of the century by J. C. Prichard (1786-1848) just as the late nineteenth-century orthodoxy was dominated by E. B. Tylor (1832-1913). Prichard was an 'ethnologist' whose views were diffusionist rather than evolutionist. He was also a consistent upholder of the monogenist doctrine that all men are of one species and that we are all the descendants of Noah. He was interested in the circumstances of the historical past rather than in universal laws of historical development or universal principles of human psychology. Moreover he was a Quaker turned Evangelical Christian who was committed to showing that all the evidence was compatible with 'the truth of the Mosaic records'. Speculation about the psychological basis for religious ideas which is so prominent among the agnostic anthropologists of Tylor's generation was thus entirely alien to Prichard's intellectual pursuits. But alongside this public, Christian, 'ethnological' version of early nineteenth-century British anthropology there existed an alternative, offstage, 'anthropological' version, and some protagonists of the latter were committed to a form of social evolutionism, the central thesis of which was that the original and universal form of religion had been the worship of'the generative principle' which was manifested in phallic cults involving serpent worship. Among mankind as a whole there had been a long-term evolution 'from the rudest symbolism to the latest spiritual developments'.1 The feud between the Anthropological Society of London and the Ethnological Society of London, which was the most striking feature of British anthropology in the 1860s turned on this issue. The Anthropologists regularly discussed phallic cults; the Ethnologicals did not. During the era 1870 to 1910 the whole of the relevant literature was virtually censored out of existence and is only now beginning to resurface. This censorship had complicated and serious effects for British anthropology. At the start it led Tylor to make his quite artificial distinction between animism, which included serpent worship considered as a form of totemism, andfetishism, which included 'the worship of [phallic] stones' and was considered to be a survival from 'low civilisation'. The fact that the 13 volumes of Frazer's The Golden Bough devote so much space to the fertility of 218
The Anthropology of Religion
vegetation and almost none to human sexuality is a product of the same attitudes. Despite a relative absence of sexual prudery on the other side of the Channel something very similar seems to have happened in France. Evolutionist thinking did not suddenly come to a full stop with the death of Condorcet in 1794. The two most elaborate French studies of the evolution of religion were Dupuis (1794) and Dulaure (1825) and these two works are certainly the source of most of Comte's ideas concerning the phases of his theological stage of social development. But half of Dulaure's two-volume work is devoted to phallic cults and this seems to have made it unmentionable in the more widely circulated kinds of scholarly literature. The censorship was so effective that even as late as 1965 Evans-Pritchard was under the impression that Comte had arrived at his concept of fetishism as a result of a direct first-hand reading of de Brosses (1760).2 But for the moment let us accept the orthodox view of the matter, which holds that the serious anthropological study of religion began in England around i860. This flowering of social evolutionism of the Tylorian sort coincided in date with the repercussions to Darwin's The Origin of Species (1859) a n ^ in subsequent years some of the social evolutionists claimed Darwin as their mentor. In fact the theories propounded by Tylor and his anthropological associates had none of the characteristics which are today considered to be the hallmarks of Darwinian evolutionist theory. Tylor, McLennan, Morgan and the rest had no conception of social development through ecological adaptation or through accidental mutation coupled with natural selection resulting in 'the survival of the fittest', though they did indeed believe that their own rational capitalist society represented the culmination of evolutionary progress. Social evolutionism was a theory of self-improvement through the exercise of intelligence and it corresponds in biology to Lamarck's evolution through the inheritance of acquired characteristics, the Just-So-Story type of argument by which the giraffe got its long neck by trying to reach the leaves at the top of the tree. The distinction was not appreciated at the time even by Darwin himself. The roots of this theory lay well back in the eighteenth century. Of particular significance were the schemes of stage-by-stage development postulated by Turgot (1750) and Condorcet (1795). Comte's 'law of the three stages' — theological, metaphysical, scientific (or 'positive') is a direct borrowing from Turgot. From Comte the basic idea passed to Spencer, from Spencer to Tylor and from Tylor to those who followed after. Generally speaking there is a decline of insight as we move along this track: Condorcet 219
SIR EDMUND LEACH
is superior to Comte, Comte is superior to Spencer, Spencer is superior to Tylor, while later imitators, such as Jevons and Frazer, had lost all understanding of what the idea of Progress as envisaged by the liberal reformers of the Enlightenment was all about. Paradoxically the evolution of social evolutionism followed a path of degradation! Condorcet looked backwards somewhat perfunctorily only so that he might justify his radically inspired (and amazingly perceptive) prophetic vision of the future, and this too is the case with Comte though his vision of the future is much more clouded. But for Condorcet the 'progress of the human mind' was a totality embracing the whole of society - economics, kinship, land tenure, politics, religion, education, law, morality, art; but when we encounter this same theory of stage-by-stage evolutionary Progress in the anthropological writers of the late nineteenth century, the various aspects of the social system are treated as quite separate institutions and although it is implied that the evolution of technology, kinship, government political structure, law and religion all move along together there is really very little cross-reference from one to the other. Moreover in most cases the orientation is backward-looking and conservative rather than forwardlooking and radical. Spencer's Principles of Sociology, a three-volume work of 2,224 pages begun in 1874 and completed in 1896,3 devoted only a small scatter of paragraphs at the end of each major section to any consideration of the future, and these are almost wholly devoted to attacks on socialism, trade unionism, bureaucracy in all its forms, and the unruly behaviour of the lower classes. By the end of the century these tendencies had gone even further. Despite their evolutionary framework, Frazer (1890) and Jevons (1896) are wholly concerned with the past rather than the future and with a domain of magicoreligious belief and practice which is written about as if it were entirely uninfluenced by such mundane matters as the economics of production and political relations. The savage had thus become isolated from the rest of humanity and his religion had become isolated from his day-to-day existence. The small number of anthropologists who actually engaged in field research at this period devoted most of their energies to measuring the shape of human skulls! But to return to the critical period around i860. In the particular form in which the Turgot-Condorcet-Comte idea of a general and inevitable stageby-stage progression crystallised out in the work of Tylor, the dogma of social evolution and universal progress was a compromise between the monogenist (single species) theories of the ethnologists and the polygenist (multiple species) theories of the anthropologists. 220
The Anthropology of Religion
In 1871 the warring factions in the Anthropological Society of London and the Ethnological Society called a temporary truce to form the Anthropological Institute. That same year saw the publication of Tylor's Primitive Culture which soon acquired the status of a sort of bible of British cultural anthropology, particularly with regard to everything relating to the study of primitive religion. The key concept in Tylor's system is the notion of cultural survival. Humanity is a single species but it includes many different racial stocks (i.e. sub-species). The customs of men evolve through time along a single predestined unilineal track but the customs of the civilised stocks have evolved further and faster than the customs of the primitive backward stocks. As customs evolve, residues of their older, less developed, forms persist as survivals. If we can identify what these survivals are we should be able to reconstruct an earlier phase of human social existence which can no longer be directly observed anywhere. Tylor's comparative method was an adjunct to his doctrine of survivals. Even the lowest savages are rational beings. All customs in their original context make functional sense. It follows that if, in its present context, a custom appears to be irrational and functionless, that shows that it is a survival. If the same meaningless custom has been recorded in widely separated ethnographic situations that shows that the custom in question is a survival from a very early stratum of human social experience which has subsequently survived among many different human stocks. The animism which Tylor confidently described as the universal religion of primitive man was not a religious system which anyone had ever actually observed in operation. It was a construct which, according to Tylor, would have made sense of the scattered residual practices reported in the ethnographic literature. Most of the nineteenth-century anthropologists mentioned in this chapter thought along these lines. One of the difficulties about trying to assess the historical significance of their work is that contemporary, late twentiethcentury anthropology, rests on an entirely different set of presuppositions. Anthropologists are now concerned to understand alien cultures and they have come to realise that this is a very difficult task, but they are not at all interested in schema which purport to arrange alien peoples in a hierarchy of moral excellence and depravity. In the latter part of the nineteenth century it was the other way about. All anthropologists operated within a schematic framework which placed themselves, as representatives of White, European, usually Protestant, culture, at the summit of a mountain called Civilisation, while the rest of mankind, in varying degrees of moral and intellectual inferiority wandered as barbarians in the forests far below, either because 221
SIR E D M U N D LEACH
their ancestors had been led into degradation as a result of original sin or else because they had as yet scarcely emerged from the primeval slime. Very few nineteenth-century anthropologists had ever actually encountered in thefleshthe savages about whom they wrote. The purpose of their debate was not discovery; they were not trying to understand the nature of alien moral systems; they sought only to illustrate by ethnographic example the truth of their initial axiom, that primitive peoples stand at the bottom of the ladder, that they have no morals, and that their intellectual capacities are roughly equivalent to those of a five-year-old European child. 2. Retrospect: some modern anthropological views of nineteenthcentury anthropologists The intense interest which the anthropologists of the latter part of the nineteenth century showed towards the phenomena which they lumped together under the heading 'primitive religion' was closely linked with this dogma of European superiority. Europeans were adult moral beings with a developed religion; savages were childish immoral beings with a primitive religion or else with no religion at all. Over the centuries, the category word religion has been used in a great variety of senses. It is now widely recognised that the different usages are, at best, held together by 'family resemblance' (in Wittgenstein's sense) rather than by any shared characteristic. But most of the authors who are considered in this essay took quite a different view. They supposed that when they labelled a belief or a ritual performance 'religious' they were identifying a member of a universal class which could be clearly distinguished from members of another equally universal class - the non-religious or secular. It was tacitly assumed that all religion has some common attribute. When these authors wrote about the origin of religion this is what they had in mind. The origin in question was the postulated primary source from which all religious belief and practice everywhere had subsequently derived. This same idea was implicit in their various 'minimal definitions' of religion, e.g. 'fear of ghosts' (Spencer), 'belief in spiritual beings' (Tylor), 'a sense of awe' (Marett) and so on. Vetter (1959)4 has distinguished 32 such types of definition-cum-origin theory. Most of his varieties belong to the present century and none of them are earlier than i860. It is difficult to comment upon such controversies. The arguments of Pundit A are clearly nonsense if judged from the standpoint of Pundit B and vice versa but the commentator's own viewpoint is bound to cloud the issue. So let me make a declaration of some of my own prejudices. 222
The Anthropology of Religion
Modern western man ordinarily associates the term religion with one or more of a variety of universalist doctrines - Christian, Buddhist, Mohammedan, etc. in which the church organisation is institutionally distinct from the encompassing state. Granted that starting point, it makes perfectly good sense to suppose that a society might exist in which religion plays no part at all because there is no institutionalised church. However, among primitive peoples of the sort that are commonly studied by social anthropologists, religious beliefs and practices cannot be distinguished in this way. When the anthropologist investigates his primitive community he finds, as an empirical fact, that kinship, economics, politics, law, religion are all facets of the same thing. There is no clear-cut category opposition between the natural and the supernatural, the physical and the metaphysical. Modern anthropologists who, unlike their nineteenth-century predecessors, have all had first-hand experience of such societies, are thus pushed in one of two directions. If they adopt the stance that religion is a human universal, then religion becomes synonymous with the whole of human culture. In that case religion is simply that which distinguishes a human being from an animal. If, on the other hand, the word religion is used to distinguish religious institutions from non-religious institutions, then it becomes sensible to say that in most primitive societies of the traditional type there was no religion. I myself lean in the latter direction. In this respect my position is unorthodox. Most of my professional colleagues favour a much more Durkheimian standpoint. Durkheim himself maintained that the distinction sacred/profane is a universal absolute which is just as applicable to elementary forms of the religious life as to the institutional churches of advanced society. With minor modification his views have been reaffirmed by many subsequent authors e.g. Otto (1917), van der Leeuw (1938), Eliade (1957), Berger (1967). But none of these men had any first-hand experience of how primitive peoples actually talk about the performances which visiting Europeans categorise as religious. Anthropologists who have had such experience would mostly go along with Lienhardt (1956) when he derided as totally irrelevant the nineteenthcentury preoccupation with such questions as: 'how men could have come to conceive of gods, whether there might be tribes so primitive as to have no religion, and how far the faiths and superstitions of savages could properly be related to the great universal religions'.5 This has not inhibited a number of distinguished and experienced anthropologists, including Lienhardt himself, from writing monographs about the particular religions of particular 223
SIR EDMUND LEACH
primitive peoples - e.g. Nadel (1954), Evans-Pritchard (1956), Lienhardt (1961). Yet a title such as Nuer Religion seems in itself to pose the question of how far 'the faiths and superstitions of savages . . . [can be] related to the great universal religions'. On the other hand, although I myself prefer to say that most primitive peoples have no religion (in the sense of the word that the ordinary man ordinarily uses), I agree with Berger (1967), as against his critic Bowker (1973), that all religious ideas are cultural products. I can find no reason to suppose that the categories of religious discourse refer to a reality which is independent of human social and biological activity. I accept the thesis, which derives from Wittgenstein, that human beings are capable of formulating inchoate ideas which cannot be expressed in ordinary language; religious discourse is then an attempt to say things about the unsayable. But I do not personally credit this unsayable with any kind of non-mundane existence or reality. Primitive peoples, like their neighbours in the technologically advanced societies, often engage in religious discourse, but in primitive society this form of discourse is not restricted to, or focused around, specific religious institutions. Nevertheless, having regard for the role of my contribution in this volume, I shall, for the remainder of this essay, accept the normal convention that there are 'primitive' religions as well as 'higher' religions. The difficulties which are entailed in such a classification show up very clearly in Evans-Pritchard (1965) which is widely considered to be the most authoritative existing discussion of my general theme. Evans-Pritchard's book originated in lectures first given in the 1930s and revised in 1962. His text contains very little that is complimentary towards his nineteenth-century predecessors. The adverse criticisms carry great weight, yet if one pushes these arguments to the limit they turn against Evans-Pritchard himself. He puts forward J. B. Jevons' An Introduction to the History oj Religion (1896) as prototypical of its type and its period. Despite the generality of the title, this book is wholly concerned with the beliefs and cults of contemporary pre-literate peoples. It shares the methodology and the evolutionary frame of reference that were common to nearly all the leading anthropological writers of the period, including Spencer, Liibbock, Morgan, Tylor and Frazer. Evans-Pritchard denounces its contents as: A collection of absurd reconstructions, unsupportable hypotheses and conjectures, wild speculations, suppositions and assumptions, inappropriate analogies, misunderstandings and misinterpretations, and, especially in what he wrote about totemism, just plain nonsense.6 224
The Anthropology of Religion
The violence of the invective seems to reflect a personal dilemma. EvansPritchard was himself a convert to Catholicism for whom religious experience had a private reality beyond any form of rational explanation. From such a standpoint it is a waste of time to engage in speculation about the 'history of religion', if that phrase is to be taken to mean the hypothetical origin and development of religious belief and practice in the human race as a whole. And Jevons' history was of just this sort. It had its roots in a detached agnosticism which Evans-Pritchard found personally repugnant: Religious belief was to these anthropologists absurd . . . but some explanation of the absurdity seemed to be required and it was offered in psychological or sociological terms. It was the intention of writers on primitive religion to explain it by its origins, so the explanations would obviously account for the essential features of all and every religion, including the higher ones.7
For Evans-Pritchard there was no question of absurdity: . . . primitive religions are species of the genus religion, and . . . all who have any interest in religion must acknowledge that a study of the religious ideas and practices of primitive peoples, which are of great variety, may help us to reach certain conclusions about the nature of religion in general, and therefore also about the so-called higher religions . . . including our own. 8
Surely the two arguments are mutually skew? In his anthropological role Evans-Pritchard opted for a detached agnosticism. He assumed that primitive religions are to be thought of in the plural but that since any particular anthropologist can only study one particular religious system at one particular time in one particular place all speculations about the origin or essence of religion, considered as a universal phenomenon, are meaningless, unverifiable verbiage. But in his personal role, as a member of a church with universalist ambitions, Evans-Pritchard viewed things quite differently. In that frame of reference 'primitive religions are species of the genus religion' which may tell us something about'the nature of religion in general . . .including our own'. Some years earlier when addressing an audience of fellow Catholics on a similar topic he had ended by saying that: . . . it would seem to be a general tendency in the intellectual life of our times - a realization, as Comte long ago most clearly saw, that Protestantism shades into Deism and Deism into agnosticism, and that the choice is between all or nothing, a choice which allows no compromise between a Church which stood its grounds and made no concessions, and no religion at all.9 225
SIR EDMUND LEACH
The subjectivity of his viewpoint as a Catholic observer of non-Catholic religious attitudes seems here to be admitted, but he defended the quality of his own opinions as against those of his predecessors by pointing out that he himself had observed a primitive people in the field at close quarters over a period of years. The metaphysical concepts which he described had been discussed with his informants in their own language, whereas the anthropological writers of the nineteenth century were simply arguing a priori. They had never encountered 'savages' in the flesh. The ethnography that they cited was derived from the statements of missionaries, which were highly prejudiced, and from the journals of traveller explorers which were at best superficial. Subsequent more detailed research has seldom supported the nineteenth-century accounts. One example of such conflict of evidence is particularly relevant. In 1866 the explorer Sir Samuel Baker wrote of the cattle-herding peoples of the marshland area of the Southern Sudan that: Without any exception, they are without a belief in a Supreme Being, neither have they any form of worship or idolatry; nor is the darkness of their minds enlightened by even a ray of superstition. The mind is as stagnant as the morass which forms its puny world.10
Evans-Pritchard's own book Nuer Religion (1956) is concerned with the population that Baker described. It is a massive work of 335 pages, meticulous in its ethnography and in its contextual analysis of Nuer metaphysical categories. Many anthropologists consider that it is the finest account of the religion of a single primitive people ever published in the English language. It pays particular attention to the Nuer category kwoth which Evans-Pritchard translates as 'God'. Obviously Baker was wrong just as, in some sense, Evans-Pritchard was obviously right, but I am not the first to observe that, in the latter's analysis, the Nuer are credited with an ability to manipulate theological distinctions of the greatest subtlety with all the ingenuity of a Jesuit. The general point is that where issues of metaphysics are concerned the anthropologist's treatment of the ethnographic record often tells us more about the anthropologist's own personal hopes and expectations than it does about the world of empirical fact. Beidelman (1974) makes a very similar point about Robertson Smith writing in the 1880s: Smith was able to view 'lower' religions sociologically, but as a Christian he viewed contemporary Christianity in absolute intellectual terms. Thus for him, early religions reflected a relative social reality, but Christianity was the product of revealed and true reality which transcended society and which was ultimately rooted in God and the individual.11
It is because all writers on religious themes are liable to introduce 226
The Anthropology of Religion
comparable unconscious distortions that I have already declared that my own personal prejudices are those of one who has no religion at all. j . Social evolutionism The basic axiom of the nineteenth-century social evolutionists was superficially humanistic. We are all members of one species; all human beings of all races have similar psychological dispositions; therefore we can learn about ourselves by looking at our neighbours. So far so good; in this regard Tylor and his friends might seem to be heirs to Rousseau, but in fact they were heirs to Comte and in Comte's schema the doctrine of universal humanity had been qualified by the supplementary formula that: savage : civilised :: child : adult Turgot's basic evolutionist 'law of the three stages' was now exemplified by an analogy: each of us, in contemplating his own history, does he not remember that he has been successively, with regard to his most important ideas, theologian in his infancy, metaphysician in his youth, and natural philosopher in his manhood.12 So savages were the world's children locked in childish superstition. Tylor (1871) claimed that 'the origin and first development of myth' 'may be assigned to the human intellect in its early childlike state', the idea being that all children have a natural tendency to personify processes of nature. Hence 'to the lower tribes of man, sun and stars, trees and rivers, winds and clouds, become personal animate creatures, leading lives conformed to human and animal analogies'.13 The anthropologists treated such materials as raw data which could be analysed with the objectivity of science. They further assumed that 'the lower tribes of men', though childish in their mental attitudes, were nevertheless, at least in embryo, potential scientists like the anthropologists themselves: . . . the religious doctrines and practices examined . . . are treated as belonging to theological systems devised by human reason without supernatural aid of revelation.14
Starting out from this basic premise Tylor discovered the fundamental principle of all religion in 'the doctrine of the soul' which he supposed had been 'devised by human reason' primarily as an explanation of the experience of dreaming in which the dreamer has the hallucination of being in two places at once. Twenty years later Frazer was arguing that all magic is to be explained as a childish failure to make correct judgments about cause and effect. Magic is 227
SIR E D M U N D LEACH
'bastard science'. Deities were then devised by human reason to provide the supernatural force which would account for the fact that magic does not work!15 (See below: Section 8.) However, the social evolutionism of the anthropologists was not simply a derivation from the Comtean theory of unilinear Progress, it also developed in dialectical opposition to the much older doctrine of degenerationism. The theory that the backwardness of primitive societies is the consequence of degeneration from a higher state goes back to the sixteenth century and indeed has classical antecedents, but it had been vigorously reaffirmed by de Maistre early in the nineteenth century (as a counterblast to the Enlightenment) and, in the religious sphere, was still being championed by Archbishop Whately and others well past 1850.16 To the protagonists concerned the issues at stake no doubt seemed real enough but the overall consequences for the style of nineteenth-century anthropology were much the same in either case. The savage as untutored child or the savage as degraded imbecile was equally loathsome, distant and beneath contempt. Doubts about the universality of religious sentiments were similarly invoked by both camps. If savages were credited with religion at all then the beliefs in question were denounced either as gross superstition or childish fallacy. But to have no religion at all and no rational sophistication either was mere bestiality. Tylor (1871) opens his discussion of animism with a rhetorical question: 4 Are there or have there been, tribes of men so low in culture as to have no religious conceptions whatsoever?'17 Tylor's own answer was a rather hesitating no, but a substantial proportion of his potential readers would have given an unqualified yes. Baker, as we have seen, had reported this state of affairs in the region of the Upper Nile. In 1842 the celebrated missionary Moffatt had announced that 'Satan had erased every vestige of religious impression from the minds of the Bechuanas, Hottentots, and Bushmen.'18 Moffat's argument is clearly degenerationist. But evolutionism could lead to the same conclusions. Here is Lubbock expressing his righteous confidence in the moral superiority of Victorian Christianity and colonialist paternalism: 'While savages show us a melancholy spectacle of gross superstitions and ferocious forms of worship, the religious mind cannot but feel peculiar satisfaction in tracing up the gradual evolution of more correct ideas and of nobler creeds.'19 Lubbock was still vigorously defending this opinion as late as 1911. In 1866 P. P. Broca, who was the most distinguished French anthropologist of his day and also in the evolutionist camp, declared that: 'For me it is beyond doubt that there exist among the inferior races peoples without cult, without dogmas, without metaphysical ideas, without 228
The Anthropology of Religion
collective beliefs, and therefore, without religion.'20 But if these men had been degenerationists it would have made no difference. Their deep-rooted contempt for the savage stemmed from prejudice, not learning, and could be fitted easily into either position. The sub rosa historical continuity between the evolutionism of the social theorists of the eighteenth century and that of the anthropologists of the late nineteenth century has already been noted but the reluctance of the nineteenth-century scholars to admit their indebtedness to the past poses problems for our interpretation of the writings of the authors concerned. J. G. Frazer can serve as a prototype case. By the very end of our period Frazer had acquired an international reputation as the outstanding authority on every aspect of the religious beliefs and practices of primitive peoples. It was a reputation that derived from the acclaim accorded to the first and second editions of The Golden Bough by the general non-anthropological public, which in turn had something to do with the florid style in which he wrote and the authority which his opinion carried by virtue of his being a Fellow of Trinity College, Cambridge. Because Frazer was the first anthropologist to be recognised in this way it was assumed that he was an innovator but in fact even his most ardent admirers recognised his lack of originality. Jane Harrison's reminiscences include the following: . . . The Golden Bough - the happy title of that book . . . - made it arrest the attention of scholars. They saw in comparative anthropology a serious study actually capable of elucidating a Greek or Latin text. Tylor had written and spoken; Robertson Smith, exiled for heresy, had seen the star in the East; in vain: we classical deaf adders stopped our ears and closed our eyes. But at the mere sound of the magical words 'Golden Bough' the scales fell we heard and understood. 21
But perhaps they understood too much! Frazer's anthropological colleagues were unenthusiastic from the start. His unquestioning acceptance of Tylor's comparative method already seemed hopelessly old fashioned. But besides that, the hypothetical primeval religion which was thus expounded was a notably dehumanised affair. In Lang's brutal phrase The Golden Bough belonged to 'the vegetable school, the Covent Garden school of mythologists which mixes up real human beings and vegetation'.22 In disguise Frazer was writing about the sexual basis of religious motivation and symbolism which had also been the favourite theme of Payne Knight and his now proscribed successors. This hidden eroticism was perhaps what appealed to Frazer's readers but in fact human sexuality is hardly ever mentioned except in the obscurities of a complicated Latin footnote. Although Frazer's text is lavishly annotated, so that the heavily 229
SIR EDMUND LEACH
bowdlerised ethnographic evidence can if necessary always be traced back to an original source, there are very few references to any of Frazer's anthropological predecessors. Both the prudish reticence and the implied claim to originality were part of a convention which had already become well established. As a matter of history Frazer's anthropology derives from Robertson Smith, who in turn borrowed from McLennan. But likewise McLennan and Tylor, who were the leading theorists of anthropology in the period 1865-71 had both carefully cultivated the view that while they owed something to Comte they were otherwise creating a new intellectual discipline virtually from scratch. Any ill-informed reader of the first chapter of Tylor (1871), might suppose that this was the very first time that anyone had ever attempted to provide evidence for a general history of mankind by delving among contemporary ethnographic evidence. Tylor's text is replete with cryptic footnote references but these mostly relate to his ethnographic facts. He gives few hints as to the sources of his ideas. He mentions Comte and much more surprisingly, de Brosses, whose anonymous 1760 text he is likely to have encountered only in the citations in Boudin (1864) - an author who is not mentioned. But Tylor explicitly denied any influence from either Spencer or Darwin.23 McLennan is equally reticient.24 So the fable has grown up that it was Tylor who invented the category animism as the name for the hypothetical original stage of primitive religion. McLennan is credited with a similar innovation with regard to the category totemism. But, in fact, as Tylor and McLennan used these terms, they were simply new names for familiar categories. Moreover, to add to the fog, the terms animism and totemism were both already in use as descriptions of ethnographic fact of a somewhat different kind. McLennan's celebrated account of totemism (1869-70) contains very little that is not borrowed from either Tylor (1865) (unacknowledged) or Fergusson (1868) (acknowledged).25 But in a (perhaps purposely) garbled footnote McLennan also makes brief reference to Boudin (1864) and if this is followed up it turns out to refer in turn to Dulaure (1825), Knight (1786) and de Brosses (1760). The references in question are all concerned with fertility cults of a very phallic kind and both McLennan and Tylor seem to have felt it necessary to cover their tracks. The immediate relevance of such details is that if the late nineteenth-century anthropological discussion of 'fertility cults' had not 230
The Anthropology of Religion
been so heavily bowdlerised it would be much easier to see how eighteenthcentury theories of social evolution came to be transformed into the nineteenth-century dogma of social progress. Some aspects of the matter are clear enough. For the philosophers of the Enlightenment, human history was the record of the enslavement of mankind by acquisitive rulers aided and abetted by corrupt priests. The world of savagery exemplified a more noble state of existence than that which was observable in eighteenth-century France. When writers of this period interpreted the cults of savages as a natural religion akin to the 'mystic theology of the Ancients'26 they were attacking Christianity. The savages newly reported by explorers of Africa and the South Seas might be misguided but they were no more foolish than ourselves, indeed in many respects their scale of moral values was superior to our own. It was accepted that in the course of human history, society develops from the simple to the complex but there was nothing to be admired in complexity as such. Most of these eighteenth-century authors considered that the society which they saw all around them was much inferior to that which had existed in the past. Their radical political inclinations were mixed up with a vision of a return to the Golden Age. Rousseau's imaginary prehistory had markedly Arcadian attributes. But by the late nineteenth century, onwards meant upwards. Science was destined to replace religion just as religion had earlier replaced the childish bestiality of the savage; the worship of nature, which in the eighteenth century had been treated as an index of the savage's nobility, had become, in Frazer's day, an index of his depravity. The widely held scholarly belief that this transformation was a discontinuity stems from Tylor's careful replacement of the concept of fetishism by the concept of animism and from McLennan's nearly simultaneous replacement of the worship of nature by the concept of totemism. Part of the background to this change of terminology was that fetishism and the worship of nature were both tainted with phallicism and were therefore rated as depraved and degraded. The new categories animism and totemism, as described by Tylor and McLennan, were merely absurd.
4. The bottom rungs of the ladder of progress: fetishism, animism, totemism As I have said, the social evolutionists were interested above all in origins. They believed that they could arrive by a priori argument at certain 231
SIR E D M U N D LEACH
knowledge of what must have been the first religion or proto-religion and that they would then be able to demonstrate the validity of their conjectural history by means of ethnographic examples drawn from the present. When viewed in retrospect with the functionalist prejudices of more recent varieties of social anthropology, this separation of the concept of primitive religion from any possible social context gives an air of unreality to the whole exercise. It may seem surprising that the methodology remained in favour as long as it did, for Durkheim was arguing throughout the 1890s that 'social facts vary with the social system of which they form a part; they cannot be understood when detached from it'27 but the exponents of the Tylorian 'comparative method' continued to ignore such warnings for more than half a century. The explanation seems to be that these scholars were not at all interested in their primitive contemporaries considered as real people. Savage customs were brought into the argument only to serve as illustrations of the childish absurdities which the theories of the anthropologists imposed on their own hypothetical primeval ancestors. The various ladders of religious progress which were put forward in this way were all of essentially the same type though they differed in their details. The difference in the details was further exaggerated by the frequency with which new names were invented to describe the same conjecture. In the literature, 'fetishism', 'animism', 'totemism' are always discussed as if they represented quite distinct congeries of ideas and correspondingly distinct theories about primeval religion. In fact, in large measure, these terms simply represent a sequence of transformations. But something needs to be said about each of them. The term fetishism has now become almost completely obsolete except in the context of Marxist references to the 'fetishism of commodities' and psycho-analytic references to the displacement of sexual drives, but, at midnineteenth century, it was a term in fairly general use as an unspecific description of the religious or proto-religious practices of savage peoples, especially of West Africa. After about 1870 this term was much more sparingly used and then only when it was qualified by the adjective 'degraded'. The animism and totemism which became so fashionable in the jargon of late nineteenth-century anthropology are simply fragments of the earlier all embracing fetishism from which all explicit reference to human sex has been excluded. In origin the word 'fetish' is a version of the Portuguese feitiqos which in homeland Portugal originally meant any kind of charm, amulet or sanctified relic such as a devout Catholic peasant is likely to wear on his body or lay on the shrine of his favourite local saint. Transposed to West Africa by 232
The Anthropology of Religion
Portuguese sailors it became a (European) label for the material contents of any kind of religious shrine. This was the sense which de Brosses (1760) borrowed but extended to embody his theory that primitive peoples everywhere (but not of course Catholic peasants!) 'worship' tangible inanimate objects. In 1841 Comte, who probably took over the term from Dulaure (1825), used it as a label for the first stage of a triad subdivision of his more general theological stage of social evolution. Comte's triad was fetishism, polytheism, monotheism, though fetishism was in turn rather vaguely subdivided into 'fetishism properly so called' and sabeism ('the worship of the stars'), which was rated as 'the highest level of this first theological phase, which, at first scarcely differs from the mental state reached by the higher animals'. The definition of fetishism 'properly so called' was that it 'consists above all in attributing to all external bodies (les corps exterieurs) a life essentially analogous to our own, but nearly always more vigorous and in their actions more powerful'. Of fetishism in general, Comte asserts that 'although there is evidence for this first form of the theological philosophy in the intellectual history of all societies it is today no longer dominant except in the least numerous of the three great races which compose our species'.28 For some later writers the crux of the matter lay in the racialist implications of this formulation. We, the white-skinned Europeans, are superior by race to the dark-skinned peoples in the savage world of Africa and the Pacific; therefore 'our' kind of religion is intrinsically superior to 'their' kind of religion. Religions of various types were therefore classified in a stage-by-stage progression from inferior to superior, with savage religions at the bottom and Christian monotheism at the top. The more rungs there were on the ladder the more different the savages became from ourselves. Lubbock (1870) doubled the complexity of Comte's scheme. His hierarchy runs: (i) Atheism - 'absence of any definite ideas on the existence of Deity'; (ii) Fetichism - 'the stage at which man supposes he can force the deities to comply with his desires'; (iii) Nature-worship or totemism - 'in which natural objects, trees, lakes, stones, animals, etc. are worshipped'; (iv) Shamanism - 'in which superior deities are far more powerful than man and of a different nature. Their place of abode is far away and accessible only to shamans'; (v) Idolatry or anthropomorphism - 'in which gods take still more 233
SIR EDMUND LEACH
completely the nature of men . . . they are still amenable to persuasion; they are a part of nature and not creators. They are represented by images or idols'; (vi) 'the Deity is regarded as the author not merely a part of nature. He becomes for the first time a really supernatural being'; (vii) 'morality is associated with religion'.29 Notice that only at stage (vii) does the heathen savage become a moral being! Tylor's switch of terminology which changed Comte's fetishism into animism was likewise accompanied by an elaboration of the hierarchy of evolutionary stages. Fetishism was now confined to: that superordinate department which it properly belongs to, namely the doctrine of spirits embodied in, or attached to, or conveying influence through certain material objects. Fetishism will be taken as including the worship of'stocks and stones' and thence it passes by an imperceptible gradation into Idolatry.30
Tylor then goes on to liken 'the Gold Coast Negro's . . . love of abnormal curiosities' to the Englishman's passion for collecting rare postage stamps. However, for an object to be classed as a 'real fetish', 'in the strict sense in which the word is here used', 'demands explicit statement that a spirit is embodied in it, or acting through it, or communicating by it'. Notice that Comte and Tylor both claim that their private definition of the term fetishism is the 'proper' one. It is thus of some interest that de Brosses in introducing the term had specifically rejected the common-sense assumption that a fetish is considered to be potent because it is believed to be inhabited by a 'life' or a 'soul'. Such ideas tend to develop a momentum of their own. Spencer31 here followed Tylor. Religion had originated in propitiation of the souls of the dead. Fetishes are objects inhabited by ghosts. 'Idolatry and fetishism are aberrant developments of ancestor worship.' Then Miiller (1856) reverted to de Brosses' 1760 usage. Fetishism is the worship of objects as such. Miiller rejected the idea that fetishism was a religion. For no obvious reason he 'gladly admits that a worship of visible material objects is widely spread among African tribes . . . [and that] the intellectual and sentimental tendencies of the Negro may preeminently dispose him to that kind of degraded worship', but nevertheless 'all people when they have once risen to the suspicion of something supersensuous, infinite, or divine, have perceived its presence afterwards in merely casual and insignificant objects'. In other words Miiller recognised that in the literature about fetishism there is considerable confusion as to whether 'fetishes' are worshipped as objects in themselves or as symbols 'of something supersensuous'. So he rejects the 234
The Anthropology of Religion
view that there could ever have existed 'a religion entirely made up of fetishism, or that there is any religion which has kept itself entirely free from fetishism'. But far from concluding that the category was worthless the anthropologists continued to argue. Jevons (1896) and Jevons (1908) both devote a whole chapter to the topic and Haddon (1906) the half of a book. Indeed the last named managed to pack all the standard shibboleths into a single paragraph: Fetishism is a stage of religious development associated with a low grade of consciousness of civilisation and forms the basis from which many other modes of religious thought have developed . . . It is an early product of the primitive religious instinct of humanity . . .The extraordinary vivid imagination and the child-like capacity for 'make-believe' of the negro . . .32
But sex and phallicism never get a mention! This whole argument about the proper specification of an entirely hypothetical original religion, which went on for nearly seventy years, is strangely unreal. It is not concerned with the observable ethnographic facts but with issues in the philosophy of religion. The classificatory distinctions turned on whether savages 'worshipped' objects as such, objects because they were believed to be inhabited by spiritual beings, objects as symbols of spiritual beings, objects as symbols of the divine presence, objects as symbols of symbols of the divine presence, and so on. Max Miiller apart, it never seems to have occurred to any of these learned men that since Christian controversies over the nature of the Divine Presence at the Eucharist (which have continued for centuries) have turned on just such subtleties as these it was hardly likely that, in this regard, the casual reports of missionaries and explorers reporting on the religious beliefs of people whom they held in contempt and whose language they did not speak would be sufficient to discriminate the significant factors in such a highly complex field. And this is precisely the point of Evans-Pritchard's criticism. The latter maintained that a trained anthropologist, who has a good understanding of the vernacular and is prepared to take enough time and trouble, can reach to the heart of the meaning of 'primitive' theological constructs, but that the discussion of such issues in general terms by 'experts' who have never met up face to face with a savage of any sort is an exercise of pure fantasy. Such nonsense did not come to a stop in 1914. The anthropological vogue for totemism, though subsequent to that for fetishism, followed a rather similar pattern of efflorescence and decay. In the McLennan paper of 1869-70 totemism is simply a sub-type of fetishism: 235
SIR E D M U N D LEACH Fetishism resembles totemism, which indeed is Fetishism plus certain peculiarities. These peculiarities are, (i) the appropriation of a special Fetish to the tribe, (2) its hereditary transmission through mothers, and (3) its connection with the jus connubii. Our own belief is that the accompaniments of Fetishism have not been well observed, and that it will yet be found that in many cases the Fetish is the totem.33
But in subsequent literature, under the influence of Robertson Smith, totemism comes to stand for McLennan's 'peculiarities' with all the material fetishistic component left out. In this somewhat emasculated form, Robertson Smith, Frazer and Durkheim between them managed to make totemism the prototype religion of all primitive societies. As early as 1898 Tylor protested that the significance of totemism was being greatly exaggerated. In 1910, in criticism of Frazer's Totemism and Exogamy, Goldenweiser produced the first of a series of papers designed to show that totemism was an anthropological fiction which bears little relation to anything that may properly be inferred from the empirical observations of the ethnographers. But the literature on totemism continued to burgeon. Even in 1962 Levi-Strauss found it worth while to devote an entire book to a survey of this literature in order to arrive at essentially the same conclusion as Goldenweiser. The modern consensus is that what is interesting about totemism is not 'the worship of animals and plants'34 but the widespread use of species names (which serve to classify things in nature) to serve as categories for the classification of segments of society (things in culture). In this regard totemism reflects certain general characteristics of pre-literate thought processes and cannot properly be regarded as a thing in itself. The religious aspect of totemism, in so far as it exists, is decidedly peripheral. As Stanner puts it 'the exotic mask of totemism . . . is but a language of imagery . . . of little religious interest in itself'.35 But although totemism is an outstanding example of an anthropological fiction, it is a fiction which has featured very prominently in anthropological discussion for the best part of 100 years. It would be a waste of time to attempt a review of this literature. Much of it is quite absurd. Jevons (1896) who provided Evans-Pritchard with his paradigm of such absurdity held that the essence of totemism consists in a deification of animal species such that the human community sees itself as having a military alliance with its divine animal counterpart in a holy war against its human enemies and their false gods (totems). Most of the more sensible and influential parts of the later argument are already implicit in Frazer (1887) which was written under Robertson Smith's guidance.36 Australian totemism has both a religious side and a 236
The Anthropology of Religion
social side. The relations between the totems, considered as species in nature, provide a paradigm of how groups of men are related to each other in the world of culture. The individual totems thus stand for the hereditary, self-perpetuating, groups into which the society is divided; the interrelations between the totems stand for the interrelations between such groups and are thus closely intermeshed with ideas and practices concerning rules of exogamy and marriage; the total set of totems, in any particular cultural context, stands for society as a whole, so that totemism, as an aggregate cult, exemplifies the fact that, in all cult behaviour, the object that is worshipped is, in the last analysis, a collective representation of society itself. In Durkheim's hands this eventually becomes a general proposition about the nature of religion as such. 5. Some implications of the comparative method: magic, manay and totemism as emergent proto-religions While the assumption that the origin of religion should be looked for in the practices of still-existing primitive peoples fitted admirably both with colonialist politics and with Victorian prudery, the proposition itself had been arrived at a priori. It is implicit in the whole methodology of the comparative method employed by the anthropologists of the Tylorian era. The method presupposed that differences between cultures which are directly observable in the synchronic present are the outcome of changes that have occurred in the past, diachronically. The present is a palimpsest of the historical past. In this palimpsest of superimposed 'survivals' we can recognise what is earliest (i.e. 'original') by noting what is most different from ourselves. We are of high culture, morally superior, adult, scientific, civilised; it is therefore obvious that they are of low culture, degraded, childish, superstitious, savage. The authors concerned never formulated their position in this simplistic fashion but all their arguments presuppose such a dichotomy. The debate as to whether or not one might conceive of people with no religion at all was part of the same pattern. Men with no religion were beasts rather than human beings. But religion had somehow come into being, so, as a preliminary first step in the evolutionary process, one had to postulate the emergence of some kind of proto-religion, rooted in the pre-human animal nature of man, whose practitioners could be regarded as just half a step off the very bottom of the ladder. But what could be the nature of this first original proto-religion? Frazer's theories about gods being first conceived of as supernatural 237
SIR E D M U N D LEACH
magicians, the debate between Frazer and Durkheim (among others) as to whether totemism should be classed as a religion, and Marett's theory about mana all developed out of this latter controversy. Indeed the mana theory, which is ancestral to Otto's concept of'the holy', was first introduced under the title 'pre-animistic religion'.37 In this case it was argued that a sense of'awe' is an innate, almost animal, attribute shared automatically by all human children and that religious feelings (and hence beliefs) can be assumed to have evolved directly from this instinctive base without the aid of the intellectualising process which Tylor had introduced as the source of his animistic theory of the soul. But it is significant that the ethnographic evidence which Marett used in support of his theory should have been derived from Melanesia and Aboriginal Australia. In the same way, when Frazer commented on the pseudo-religiosity of totemism, he took it for granted that Australian totemism can be treated as prototypical of a stage of intellectual development which had once been general and universal. Even Durkheim came very near to adopting this stance. (See below, Section 8.) At this period and for long afterwards it was taken for granted that the Australian Aborigines were the most primitive human beings in existence, while their dark skinned Melanesian neighbours were only very slightly higher up the evolutionary ladder. The dogma had a variety of sources. Oceania was as far away from Europe as you can get. The Aborigines when first encountered by Europeans had used chipped stone tools and wore no clothes. Furthermore they were supposed to engage in quite unmentionable sexual practices. Comparably the Melanesians who were also living in the Stone Age had a widespread reputation for cannibalism. But besides all that Australian totemism evoked the response that men who could adopt a proto-religious attitude towards wild animals must themselves be very close to wild animals and thus as the very bottom of the ladder of human progress.38 6. Robertson Smith and the sociology of sacrifice We can now turn to afigurewhose intellectual impact on his contemporaries was on an altogether grander scale. Although Smith's writings about the origins of Semitic culture are written within a frame of conventions provided by the theories of the social evolutionists and their doctrine of cultural survivals he represents the start of a radically different trend in anthropological thinking. This has not always been appreciated. Smith took over many of McLennan's ideas in very uncritical fashion and although he was a 238
The Anthropology of Religion
major inspiration to Frazer, the latter never understood the significance of Smith's breakthrough from patchwork synthetic ethnography to sociology. On the other hand Durkheim, in later life, expressly recognised that Smith's ideas about the relationship between religion and social life came to him as 'a revelation'.39 Much of what Smith took over from McLennan led to a blind alley. No one now supposes that matriarchy is a stage of human social evolution which universally preceded patriarchy; no one is any longer concerned with 'the mental condition of men in the totem stage'. But by 1890 Smith's evolutionism was something very different from the theories propounded by McLennan, Spencer, Lubbock, Tylor and the rest 25 years earlier. Tylor and his associates all took it for granted that at the heart of every religion lie the beliefs of human individuals. Their speculations about the 'origin' of these beliefs were psychological and could ultimately only be justified by introspection: 'If I were a savage, how would things seem to me?' And, since they themselves all inclined towards an agnostic rationalism, the issue was made to focus around the illusory process whereby a childish version of individual human reason might have led men to create metaphysical figments in the imagination. Rites were a quite secondary matter, a vehicle perhaps for the expression of belief but otherwise of minor significance. Smith reversed this evaluation. 'In the antique religions mythology takes the place of dogma', but 'it may be affirmed with confidence that, in almost every case, the myth was derived from the ritual and not the ritual from the myth'.40 This led directly to a sociological rather than an individualistic approach, for while beliefs are the attributes of individuals - and this remains true even when all the members of a congregation share the same belief rites are, in a quite fundamental sense, collective representations. In ritual, different roles are allocated to different individual actors but it is only the social totality that has any meaning. In giving this kind of emphasis to the social basis of belief and values Smith arrived at a position which is hardly distinguishable from that of Durkheim. The human being is not just an animal, a creature of nature, he is an animal modified by culture, that is by the rules of the society into which he is born and which already exists independently of the newly created individual. 'A man did not choose his religion or frame it for himself; it came to him as part of the general scheme of social obligations and ordinances laid upon him, as a matter of course, by his position in the family and in the nation', 'religion did not exist for the saving of souls, but for the preservation and welfare of society'.41 239
SIR EDMUND LEACH
There is of course an inconsistency between this standpoint and Smith's own universalist position as an ordained (though defrocked) minister of the Presbyterian Free Church, but he escaped from this dilemma by ignoring the grander religions of Asia and by excluding developed Judaism and Christianity from his general proposition that there is a one-to-one relationship between the structure of a society and the religious system which it generates. Smith's most notable .surviving work is his Lectures on the Religion of the Semites: the fundamental institutions (1889; 2nd edn revised by Smith, 1894; 3rd edn revised by S. A. Cook, 1927). As originally planned it was intended to be only the first volume of a three-part series and is thus, in its present form, out of balance. Almost half of the main text is devoted to sacrifice. Smith's opinions on this topic had a great impact at the time both directly and indirectly - e.g. the theme of the dying god which provides the central thread of The Golden Bough is only one of Frazer's many borrowings from Smith — but, in the longer term, most anthropological opinion has discarded Smith's theory in favour of interpretations which derive from Hubert and Mauss (1899).42 Smith's views need to be viewed in their historical context. Earlier writers had considered sacrifice mainly as a reflection of individual belief. Thus Baring-Gould (1869), which purports to derive from Boucher de Perthes (1867) and Comte maintains that a belief in causality and an ideal of perfection are given to man as innate ideas. The essence of religion is the worship of external deities who are seen as the causal force in natural phenomena and the source of moral ideas. Sacrifice is a private transaction between the individual and his deity which is analogous to compensation for an inflicted wrong or to gifts of homage towards an overlord. In Tylor (1871) the argument is very similar. In the case of sacrifice there is the same preoccupation with explanatory ideology, with what rites are supposed to do rather than with what they are. Baring-Gould ends his discussion with the following sentence: 'The partaking of the sacrifice is regarded as the union of the votary with the god, by union with the victim, and it is on this theory that a sacramental eating almost invariably forms the complement of every sacrificial act' {my italics).43 Eighteen years later this was Robertson Smith's starting point but with the significant difference that the argument is no longer concerned with native interpretation but with social fact: The sacrificial meal was an appropriate expression of the antique way of life, not merely because it was a social act and an act in which the god and his worshippers were conceived as partaking together, but because . . . the very act of eating and drinking with a man was a 240
The Anthropology of Religion symbol and a confirmation of fellowship and mutual social obligations. The one thing directly expressed in the sacrificial meal is that the god and his worshippers are commensals but every other point in their mutual relations is included in what this involves.44
For Smith the crux lay in the performance itself. The congregation were acting out their epiphany not just theorising about it. Sacrifice, like totemism, is a fundamental ('original') manifestation of religious ideas. In killing and eating the sacrificial animal, men were ingesting into themselves the material manifestation of the totemic deity. Sacrifice is not just thought of as a communion; it is a communion. Smith was here only half a step away from the Durkheimian view that the deity that is the object of collective worship is society itself. Smith's theory had certain obvious attractions to the theological generaliser since it seemed to make the performance of the Christian Mass a transformation of a universally valid form of sacrament, but it was not supported by the empirical evidence. In the ethnographic record it is domestic animals rather than totems that are sacrificed; even when the meat of the sacrifice is eaten, it is seldom eaten sacramentally; when it is eaten sacramentally the ideology is more likely to assert that the deity is present as a participant in the feast rather than as a mystical component of the food as such. In this regard the Hubert-Mauss theory fitted in with the ethnographic evidence very much better. According to the latter the function of sacrifice is to 'improve the ritual status' of the donor of the sacrificial animal. The animal that is killed is identified with the donor (e.g. the animal is touched by the donor just before it is killed) so that it is the donor himself who is vicariously killed (and thereby 'purified', 'made sacred'). This argument presupposes the general utility of the Durkheimian distinction between sacred and profane but it does not explicitly require an ideology in which the deity is present in the sacrificial performance. This latter (Hubert-Mauss) type of interpretation carries the logical implication that sacrifice, which is in its essence an act in which a life is separated from a body, is an appropriate ritual accompaniment for the 'rite of separation' in any form of rite de passage. This is fully borne out by the empirical evidence. The modern anthropological theory concerning rites de passage (a category which includes a wide variety of ceremonial initiations which involve changes in the social status of individuals, their physical condition, and the seasonal state of the world they inhabit) derives from Hertz (1907), and Van Gennep (1909). The most general proposition embodied in this theory is that such rituals are organised in three phases: (i) a rite of separation in which the individual sheds his/her initial social role; 241
SIR E D M U N D LEACH
(ii) a marginal state {rite de marge) in which the individual is socially in limbo; (iii) a rite ofaggregation in which the individual is brought back into society in his/her new role. Rites of separation are very commonly symbolised by death; rites of aggregation by birth. The initiate dies in his/her initial role and is reborn in a new one. Sacrifice is a very common feature of such ritual transitions, especially of those which rate as rites of separation. The implications of these various anthropological theories of sacrifice and initiation for Christian liturgical analysis are complex. Every (1959), which is an attempt to summarise contemporary Christian views on this topic, declares that 'the whole conception of sacrifice has changed under the influence of the modern science of comparative religion'. But it is the theory of Hubert and Mauss (as transmitted through Evans-Pritchard) rather than that of Robertson Smith, that he seems to have in mind, since elsewhere he declares in favour of an 'understanding of the eucharist, not as a repetition or reiteration of the sacrifice of Christ, but as the sacramental means whereby his death and resurrection, and our baptism, are renewed in us'.45 The continuing influence of all these writers on the thinking of social anthropologists is shown by Bourdillon & Fortes (1980).
7. Magic, sorcery, witchcraft One issue which was a bone of contention among the nineteenth-century evolutionists was the relation between magic and religion. Modern anthropologists who have had practical experience of fieldwork in exotic non-European surroundings are in general agreement that while it is always quite possible to make a reasonably clear-cut distinction between the purely technical aspect of activity, such as driving a peg into the ground with a hammer, and the symbolic aspect of activity, such as the art of stopping a charging elephant by reciting a mantra, the category of symbolic action thus distinguished is of vast scope and dubious utility. Primitive peoples are no more likely to make precise distinctions between what is technical and what is symbolic than we are ourselves. We just do not know (and we certainly do not care) how much of our routine behaviour is, in a strict sense, essential in order to achieve the ends we intend. The nineteenth-century anthropologists, because of their lack of direct field experience, took an entirely different view. Just as they discriminated a whole sequence of religious stages - fetishism, totemism, animism, and so on - they discriminated a whole set of types of symbolic action. Their classification depended upon criteria which they themselves imposed upon the data rather than on qualities which were intrinsic to the ethnographic evidence as such. 242
The Anthropology of Religion
First science was distinguished as knowledge and action which depends upon the 'correct' evaluation of cause and effect, the specification of what is correct being determined by the syllogisms of Aristotelian logic and the mechanical determinism of Newtonian physics. The residue was superstition. From superstition was then discriminated religion. The minimal definition of religion varied from author to author (e.g. Tylor's 'belief in spiritual beings'); the residue was then magic. Magic was then refined by some into white magic (good) and black magic (bad). Black magic, renamed sorcery, was then discriminated from witchcraft, and so on. The practical value of such categories is very slight. There are, it is true, some ethnographic contexts in which the English language distinction between sorcery and witchcraft reflects an ideological distinction made by the people themselves, but this is not generally the case. A meaningful separation of religion from magic is possible so long as the essence of religion is made to depend only on a particular type of belief, but if ritual is taken into account then the symbolic actions employed in religious performance are no different from the symbolic actions employed in magical performance. But for the nineteenth-century anthropologists classification was an end in itself. Certain particular strands of the argument deserve note. Because magic was seen as the opposite of religion it was classified by some as a 'prereligious' phase of human thought. This, broadly speaking, was Frazer's standpoint. The Golden Bough was sub-titled 'a study of magic and religion'. His views on the distinction between the two categories are spelled out in chapter iv of volume i of the 3rd edition. Frazer maintains that magicians share the assumption of modern natural scientists that all events in the objective world of experience are governed by immutable natural laws. Magic is simply bad science. Religious beliefs on the other hand postulate the existence of'superhuman beings who rule the world'. Since these beings are omnipotent, natural laws are not immutable. They can be altered at the behest of the gods. Thus where magical action is supposed to operate directly on nature, religious action is addressed to deities who are in turn expected to operate directly on nature. However in Frazer's schema religion evolved out of magic because magic alone was discovered to be ineffective. The earliest gods were viewed as super-magicians who got it right when ordinary human magicians got it wrong. By a rather similar line of argument Frazer claimed that the institution of kingship evolved out of magic, in that a magician who is credited with power (such as that of the ability to control the weather) naturally tends to accumulate other powers also, both political and economic. Most of the best-known sections of The Golden Bough are indeed 243
SIR E D M U N D LEACH
concerned with the magical attributes of kingship and with permutations focused around the notion of 'potency'. If the crops fail or the domestic animals perish this indicates lack of potency in the individual who fills the office of king. The attributes of the potent king are those of the effective magician and merge with those of a god. Living kings are incarnations of omnipotent deity-magicians. But when their sexual or physical potency begins to fail they must be ritually killed and replaced in office by a more vigorous office-holder. The counterpart of the sexually potent divine-kingmagician is the mother-goddess-queen whose fecundity is a symbolic representation of the fertility of nature. Since Frazer wrote well over twenty volumes on this and closely related themes comment is hardly possible. Modern research has shown that there are ethnographic situations to which Frazer's sweeping generalisations apply surprisingly well but his basic assumption that magico-religious systems are so similar the world over that a synthetic picture of primitive magic or primitive religion can be built up out of evidence drawn from here there and everywhere was hopeless misplaced. However, in respect to magic, the category distinctions which Frazer introduced at the beginning of The Golden Bough have some persisting value. Frazer distinguished Magic as theory (where it is a 'pseudo-science') from Magic as practice (where it is a 'pseudo-art') and then divided his 'pseudoart' into 'positive magic or sorcery' and 'negative magic or taboo'. Earlier in the same chapter he had distinguished Homeopathic Magic which depends upon mistaken associations based on 'the law of similarity' from 'Contageous Magic' which depends upon mistaken associations based on 'the law of contact'. As early as 1908 Marett had developed an effective criticism of the first of these schema. Taboo is a marker of abnormality or sacredness and cannot usefully be lumped with magic considered as an operational process. On the other hand Frazer's rather confused recognition that his examples of magical performance entail two distinguishable types of symbolic association, the first depending upon asserted similarity (metaphor) and the second upon contact (metonymy), has subsequently been vastly elaborated by the theorists of structuralist semiotics. As might be expected the Durkheimians46 approached the problem with a more sociological orientation. Hubert and Mauss (1904) is a substantial monograph which is often cited but seldom used. At the start the authors assume that a clear cut distinction between Religion and Magic is intrinsic to the data, yet the implications of their analysis overall is that in practice no such distinction can be made, or that, if 244
The Anthropology of Religion
it can be made, it must depend upon arbitrary definitions. Thus it is asserted as self-evident, that, in religion, myth and dogma on the one hand and rites on the other are separable and have a true autonomy whereas, in magic, beliefs and actions are intrinsically inseparable. The operable force that makes magic effective is seen as an intrinsic magical power represented by the Melanesian concept mana. At this point Hubert and Mauss find themselves in a dilemma. In accordance with Durkheimian principles 'power' cannot be self-existent, it must be a collective representation derived from Society. But, according to their analysis, magic is to be distinguished from religion precisely because it is an individual rather than a collective activity. In the end they escape from this impasse by an argument which represents magic as the individual (mis)use of collective (i.e. religious) power. In this part of their essay they misleadingly tend to equate magic with sorcery so that magic is opposed to religion by the criterion that whereas the function of religious activity is socially cohesive the function of magic is socially disruptive. 8. Durkheim on the elementary forms of the religious life This perhaps is an appropriate point to say something of the relevant work of Durkheim himself. As can be seen from chapters II-IV of book I of Durkheim (1912), in which the author surveys the existing literature in thefieldof'elementary religion', French contributions to this topic during the latter part of the nineteenth century were simply a pale reflection of their anglophone counterparts. Before he can launch into an exposition of his own, specifically sociological, point of view, Durkheim finds it necessary to review and refute the arguments of Tylor, Spencer, Robertson Smith, Lang, McLennan, Jevons, Frazer, Miiller, Brinton and Robertson Smith. But in this company the only Frenchmen to get a mention are Fustel de Coulanges, who is noticed only in passing, Reville (1883), which is modelled on Tylor (1871),47 and Breal (1877) which is an imitation of Miiller (1856). The innovations of thought which derive from Durkheim's classic are very major but the break with the past is not at all clear cut. In a formal sense the book is a study of Australian totemism considered as a religious system and the object of the exercise is to show how various characteristic features of religious belief and practice (such as belief in the existence of supernatural powers external to man, the concept of the soul, worship of the dead, etc.) are the consequence rather than the cause of religious origins. It is the systemic character of religion, its aspect as a collective representation of society which 245
SIR E D M U N D LEACH
generates the characteristics which we have come to think of as constituting the basis of religion. Durkheim claims that he has chosen to focus his study around Australian totemism because 'not only is the civilization [of the Aborigines] most rudimentary - the house and even the hut are still unknown - but also their organisation is the most primitive and simple which is actually known; it is that which we have elsewhere called organization on the basis of clans\ He further claims that the Australian ethnographic literature is particularly rich and homogeneous and that 'the question whether totemism has been more or less universal or not, is quite secondary'.48 In other words he is, in a formal sense, rejecting the evolutionist thesis of progression through a sequence of universal stages, with totemism at the bottom and rational science at the top; and, in a formal sense, he also rejects the idea that because the Australian Aborigines wear no clothes, use stone tools, and live a long way away they can be regarded as fossilised survivors from remote antiquity. The Aborigines are interesting because the organisational structure of their society conforms to a specific type - the mechanical solidarity described in The Division ofLabour (Durkheim, 1893). In retrospect this has become a decidedly double-edged argument. Since Australian totemism is made to tie in with mechanical solidarity, we get the impression that part of the Durkheimian thesis is that societies organised in accordance with the principles of mechanical solidarity will normally be totemic in the Australian manner. But we now know that many primitive societies of Northern Africa, including the Nuer whose religion is described in Evans Pritchard (1956), conform much more closely to the Durkheimian model of mechanical solidarity than do the Australian Aborigines; but these North African societies are not totemic in the Australian sense. In short, Durkheim's thesis that we should postulate a total set of types of human society which can be arranged according to taxonomic principles is just as vulnerable to criticism as the earlier theory that specific types of human society (none of which can now be directly observed) have followed one another in a predestined evolutionary sequence in all parts of the world. But there remains Durkheim's conception of Australian totemism as a system of religion which is functionally fully integrated with the system of organisation of the society which has produced it. Durkheim's book was the first attempt to make this kind of functional analysis of any kind of religious system and, as such, for all its limitations, it remains a landmark. Any cursory survey of the principle themes of Durkheim's book must lead to gross distortion but I must risk that criticism. He starts with the axiom that: 246
The Anthropology of Religion all known religious beliefs, whether simple or complex, present one common characteristic: they presuppose a classification of all the things, real and ideal, of which men think, into two classes or opposed groups, generally designated by two distinct terms which are translated well enough by the words profane and sacred. The division of the world into two domains, the one that containing all that is sacred, the other all that is profane is the distinctive trait of religious thought.49
This then is the definition of what Durkheim means by religion; it does not seem to me to be at all a satisfactory definition, but it has had great influence. In the course of the development of his argument this axiomatic polarisation of profane/sacred takes on a variety of metaphorical transformations. It also appears as natural/supernatural, ordinary/extraordinary, normal/abnormal, healthy/sick, impure/pure, normal/contaminated, and so on. Crucial to the argument is that a concept such as 'the supernatural' does not exist in its own right; belief in the supernatural cannot be held to be a cause of anything. The basic element in these polarisations is what they have in common, the polarity as such, that which in typescript we represent as -/-. This is an idea which has subsequently come to assume enormous importance through its development, at the hands of the structural linguists and the Levi-Straussian structuralists, of the posthumous work of the Swiss linguist Ferdinand de Saussure (1916). When Durkheim first arrived in Paris from Bordeaux, de Saussure held a teaching post at the Sorbonne. It is possible that the similarity between certain Durkheimian and Saussurian ideas (which has frequently been noted) had its origin in this circumstance. The two men are not known to have met or been in correspondence. The final version which the polarity assumes in Durkheim's argument is: profane/sacred :: Man/God :: Individual/Society. Durkheim's point is that the social world which any individual inhabits is a world made up of a system of concepts. The concepts are not invented by the individual as part of a private enterprise, they come to him from outside as part of the process whereby he learns a language and a specific mode of social life. The concepts are 'collective representations' generated by the society as a whole; but the collectivity of such concepts, which the individual carries around in his head, adds up to a kind of internalisation of society itself. In the polarity Individual/Society, the '/', the interface element, is this internalised society, society represented by concepts considered as collective representations. And it is likewise in the polarity Man/God. Religious concern is not with God as an entity out there; it is with the relationship between Man and God, with the '/' interface element. Objects of cult, e.g. incarnate deities, totem animals, are 'collective representations' which give ritual expression to this idea of a relationship between the profane and the 247
SIR E D M U N D LEACH
sacred, between the individual and his society. Thus in Durkheim's final analysis the concept of God is a collective representation of something real, the society which envelops the individual. This Durkheimian system has subsequently been criticised on all sorts of grounds but it should be clear from my summary that the level of sophistication with which Durkheim approached the general problem of what is the fundamental nature of religion was of quite a different order from that which satisfied his nineteenth-century anthropological predecessors. The Durkheimian scheme may be inadequate but at least it needs to be taken seriously. By comparison it becomes obvious that Tylor, Jevons, Frazer and the rest were entirely preoccupied with superficial trivialities. g. Mythology In Durkheimian language a myth is a sacred tale so that an interconnection between myth and religion is built into the definition, but our nineteenthcentury authors did not, in general, think along these lines. During the first half of the century the topic of mythology was widely discussed by a variety of British, French and German (especially German) authors but very little of this work was concerned with the myths of primitive peoples and none of the authors concerned could, by any criterion, have been rated as anthropologists.50 This literature did however have the merit that it explicitly recognised an intimate connection between mythology and religion. Thus Keightley (1831) which is a students' handbook of Greek and Roman mythology, opens his Introduction by firmly asserting that myths may be divided into two great classes: legends of fabulous events which stand at the head of real history, and 'doctrines or articles of popular belief. But in the second half of the century things were very different. Firstly, presumably because of the increase in available materials, there was much greater discussion of the mythologies of pre-literate peoples, but secondly, and surprisingly, this discussion was increasingly separated from the discussion of religion. Mythologies came to be viewed as compendia of nonrational foolish stories which exemplify the childish mentality of those who tell them rather than as expression of their religious beliefs. This latter development was a consequence of the immense influence of Max Muller's Comparative Mythology (1856). Miiller was a degenerationist rather than an evolutionist in that he wanted to derive all modern cultures from a Rig-Vedic base. Aryan was the mother tongue of the human race 'a living language spoken in Asia by a small tribe, nay, originally by a small family living under one and the same roof. These fictitious Aryans were 248
The Anthropology of Religion
nature worshippers: 'Where we speak of the sun following the dawn, the ancient poets could only speak and think of the sun loving and embracing the dawn'. The Aryan names for these mythopoeic solar events survived even when the original Indo-Aryan language had evolved new forms. The meanings of the old names were forgotten so new stories (myths) were invented to explain the old names. Hence Miiller's celebrated formula that myth is 'a disease of language'. The idea of religion could not be associated with such absurdities: To represent the supreme God as committing every kind of crime, as being deceived by men, as being angry with his wife and violent with his children, is surely a proof of a disease, of an unusual condition of thought, or, to speak more clearly, of real madness.51
The prestige of this argument now seems quite extraordinary. Tylor (1871) accepted it without qualification so that he devotes three long chapters to the childish confusions of myth before he starts to consider religion at all. The principal opposition to Miiller came from Andrew Lang but only to the degree that he wanted to insist that Indo-Aryan mythology was derived from the mythology of savages rather than vice versa. He too was all in favour of putting myth and religion into separate compartments: Among the lowest and most backward, as among the most advanced races, there coexist the mythicaland the religious elements in belief. The rational (or what approves itself to us as the rational (factor) is visible in religion; the irrational is prominent in myth.52
The 'rationality' is that of Tylor's 'primitive philosopher'. There was of course considerable practical difficulty about applying this distinction but Lang managed to argue that those parts of the Iliad which represent Zeus as an all-powerful moral authority are religious whereas other stories which represent Zeus as engaged in the amorous seduction of mortal ladies are myths, because obviously it is 'irrational' to represent gods as behaving in this morally degenerate fashion! Lang's view of savage myth was very like Frazer's view of magic; the savage is so stupid that he will believe anything. The savage is characterised by childish credulity and mental indolence. The curiosity is satisfied, thanks to the credulity, by myths which serve to answer all possible questions. Just as totemism shows that in savage mentality no line is drawn between men and the other things in the world, so a basic confusion of categories is characteristic of all mythology everywhere. Unconsciously perhaps, the mythical thinking of the savage was thus polarised against the rational thinking of modern Europeans, the characteristic of the latter being an obsessional interest in discriminating (fanciful) categories! 249
SIR EDMUND LEACH
The break in this general convention that myth and religion are separable came with Robertson Smith whose view that myth equates with doctrine but is subordinate to ritual has already been noted. This reaction was too extreme and one consequence of Smith's innovation was a fashion initiated by Jane Harrison (1912) by which the religion of Ancient Greece was discussed in terms of analogies with the rituals of Australian Aborigines almost without reference to the surviving residues of Greek mythology! But some authors were still treating mythology and religion as quite distinct even at the very end of our period. A notable example is E. S. Hartland who was the most prominent writer on mythology of his day. Hartland (1914) contains a series of essays relating to 'the history of religion', as that topic was understood by the author, as well as a Preface which gives a survey of anthropological approaches to religion since i860. Mythology is ignored altogether. Yet in this field Hartland's own three-volume study of The Legend of Perseus (1894-6) was one of the most impressive and influential works of the whole period. In some ways this book bears close comparison with The Golden Bough. Just as the first edition of Frazer's work purports to 'explain' an isolated incident in the culture of classical Italy - the alleged ritual murder of the 'king' of Nemi - so Hartland explores in all directions the component elements of a single classical myth, the story of Perseus. There are elements in this study and also in its successor, Hartland (1909), (which is a wideranging collection of bits and pieces of custom and story supposedly all connected with the supernatural birth of divine heroes) which seem to foreshadow recent structuralist exercises. Levi-Strauss (1964-71) takes four volumes to discover the 'meaning' of a South American Indian Bororo myth cited at the beginning of his first volume and he does so by adding bits and pieces of 'structure' which are missing in the original version but which he claims to locate in other myths from other parts of the map. Hartland's methodology is far less sophisticated but he too feels that he is entitled to reincorporate into the Perseus story bits and pieces of a hypothetical 'original' version which are missing in the revised version but which have 'survived' in other stories from other parts of the world. But a piece of reconstructed mythology produced by such synthetic means, even if it be shown to have a world-wide distribution, can hardly be said to have religious significance, particularly when the 'religion' in question was an equally synthetic product such as the fetishism, animism, totemism, etc. which the Victorian anthropologists put forward as characteristic of savages. 250
The Anthropology of Religion
To this extent Hartland's discrimination between (synthetic) myth and (synthetic) religion seems quite justified, though some more recent writers on comparative religion, particularly members of the Eliade School, seem hardly to have appreciated this point. 10. Conclusion One obvious difficulty about designing an essay of this sort is to know just where to stop. Fashions in academic thought do not change overnight and such discontinuities as there are do not ordinarily fit with the centuries of the Christian era. In point of fact, so far as British anthropology is concerned, a 'change of gear' did take place around 1900. Pure speculation illustrated by ethnographic example in the Tylor—Frazer manner became an anachronism as soon as the techniques of empirical field research came to be refined under the influence of Rivers and Malinowski and the trigger for this change from speculation to empiricism was the Cambridge Torres Straits Expedition of 1898. And much the same seems to be true of the United States. Down to 1900 the American anthropological view of religion was prototypically represented by the work of D. G. Brinton, (1837-99), author of Religions of Primitive Peoples (1897) who wrote in an approximately Tylorian manner. But Lowie (1936) ignores Brinton and writes almost as if American anthropology had been created from scratch by the empirically oriented Franz Boas around 1894. Lowie also ignores his compatriot John H. King whose two-volume work The Supernatural: its Origin, Nature and Evolution (1892) foreshadowed Marett's speculations about a 'pre-animistic' stage of religious consciousness based in mana. But in any case radical shifts of orientation are never immediately recognised by the participants. In anthropological retrospect, arguments about the origin of religion and the relation between religion and magic which are to be found in Crawley (1905) and Hartland (1914) were clearly flogging a very dead horse, yet E. O. James continued to write volume after volume in this manner right up to the time of his death in 1972 (at the age of 84) and a great deal of the work of Mircea Eliade, who was for many years the highly regarded Professor of the History of Religions in the University of Chicago, is written in an almost identical convention. In a review of James (1959) the present writer commented: This might rate as a supplementary volume of The Golden Bough. Where Frazer implied that the risen Christ was a close kinsman of Tammuz, Attis, Adonis and Osiris, Professor James is 251
SIR EDMUND LEACH concerned with the origins of Mariolatry in the cults of Ishtar, Isis, Artemis and other ancient goddesses: even the Willendorf Venus is brought into the scheme . . . Professor James is scrupulous in citing his sources and in stressing the ambiguity of his evidence, but at every step he resolves the puzzles he has raised by a kind of double bluff. He first suggests that 'it is by no means unlikely that' such and such is the solution, and then follows this up with 'if this conjecture is correct it is probable that . . .'.By such means almost any kind of evidence could be made to fit almost any kind of theory . . ,53
These comments could equally well apply to all the varied exponents of the 'comparative method' who have been discussed in the course of this essay. Certainly there are many similarities of pattern both in the cult behaviours and in the associated formalised beliefs which are to be encountered in the diverse records of history and ethnography. No knowledgable scholar would want to maintain that there is no connection whatever between the cult of Isis and the varied manifestations of the Christian cult of Mary. But just what these connecting links are, both as matters of history and as transformations in the structure of ideas, can only be discovered by paying meticulous attention to the fine details of local ethnographic fact. Grand generalities of the impressionistic sort favoured by Frazer and his successors have no value at all. If anthropology can contribute anything to our understanding of religion it must be on the basis of research into local particulars not on the basis of guesswork. The position with the French authors is rather different. The conservative implications in Durkheim's sociology have lately come under attack from the Marxists but the influence of Durkheim and Mauss and their colleagues on all branches of contemporary anthropological and sociological thinking remains immense. But that influence derives, in the main, from aspects of their work which I have not examined in the present essay. Durkheim (1912) is in every respect a work of classic significance since it marks the conclusive (though not chronologically final!) demolition of the kind of anthropological speculation which has been the subject-matter of this essay. The central ideas of this book go back to the early 1890s and the work of Robertson Smith, but the representative position which Durkheim gave to Australian totemism as a system of collective representations is now wholly unacceptable.54 But the work is very much more than a study of Australian totemism. Incidentally, the element of Saussurean structuralism which is present in this book and to which I have drawn attention in Section 9 is also apparent in a number of other shorter Durkheimian writings55 including Hubert and Mauss (1899), Durkheim and Mauss (1903), Hubert (1905), Mauss and 252
The Anthropology of Religion
Beuchat (1906), Hertz (1907,1909) all of which have had a great influence on the development of anthropological thinking over the past 30 years. By contrast the Hubert and Mauss essays on magic (Hubert and Mauss, 1904; Mauss, 1904) now appear relatively backward looking, since they do little more than demonstrate that the category distinctions proposed by Frazer are in practice untenable. To the modern anthropologist the basic defects of the whole corpus of Tylorian evolutionism seem all too clear. Jevons (1896) summarised the claims of this doctrine as follows: the study of savages still in the Stone Age has revealed the fact that not only are the implements made and used by them the same all over the world, but the institutions and conceptions by which they govern their lives have an equally strong resemblance to one another. The presumption, therefore, that our Indo-European forefathers of the Stone Age had beliefs and practices similar to those of other peoples in the same stage of development is very strong.56
But 'the study of savages still in the Stone Age', when properly carried out by qualified fieldworkers, in fact reveals precisely the opposite. The 'institutions and conceptions by which they govern their lives' exhibit endless variety which cannot be slotted into tidy categories such as fetishism, animism, totemism, or whatever. The ritual practices of primitive peoples have no meaning once they are taken out of their original ethnographic context. If such ritual systems are to be studied at all they should be understood for what they are not for what they tell us about past history or the 'superstitions' of our 'Indo-European forefathers'. And they should be studied as wholes, as systems of meaning, not piecemeal in such a way that Eskimos and Australian Aborigines, Peruvians and Ancient Egyptians, Indians and West Africans are all made to exemplify the same bizarre hypothesis in the course of a single paragraph. Respectable anthropological literature of the late nineteenth century suffered from the further serious defect that the obvious sexual elements in the expressive symbolism associated with 'religious' activity could only be referred to by highly complicated periphrasis. The degree to which the outcome evaded all the significant issues may be seen by comparing Max Miiller's studies of ancient Vedic mythology with O'Flaherty (1973), a recent structuralist use of the same kind of material, or by comparing almost any of the nineteenth-century essays on totemism with such a psychoanalytic-cum-anthropological exercise as Freeman (1965) or its companion piece Needham (1964). But the biggest change in the episteme is simply in the attitude adopted towards savages as such. Modern anthropologists do not share the value253
SIR EDMUND LEACH
judgments of missionaries and colonial administrators; they do not start with the assumption that primitive peoples are degraded children. If the modern anthropologist fails to understand what his informants say about their cult behaviour he attributes this failure to his own incapacity rather than to 'the stupidity of the native'. But while it has become increasingly clear that there is no general entity which can be thought of as 'primitive religion' or 'the original religion', anthropologists have been moving to a position where they assume that, in all societies, the phenomena which come to be classed as 'religious' by outside observers reflect a distinctive poetic mode of thinking, which Levi-Strauss calls ia pensee sauvage', and that this mode of thinking, which is almost universal among primitive peoples, has become relatively attenuated among ourselves, - to our great loss. The logic of 'religious' beliefs and practices in pre-literate societies is often structured according to the principles of this 'thought in the wild' and it is this which makes the expressive behaviour of primitive peoples so difficult for westerners to understand. Anthropologists have come to understand that such difficulties exist, both in theory and practice, through the work of Levy-Bruhl, Wittgenstein, LeviStrauss and Evans-Pritchard but this has been a twentieth-century development. Marett (1900), in a frequently quoted but under-estimated essay, initiated in very tentative fashion the sort of criticism of Tylor which could make this development possible. Although he still supposed that a pursuit of the origin of religion through the use of the comparative method could be a useful exercise, he recognised that we cannot assume that an Aristotelian logic is universally the equivalent of common-sense, and this led him to criticise the stage by stage discriminations of his predecessors: Dr Frazer . . . prefers to treat Magic and Religion as occupying mutually exclusive spheres, whilst I regard these spheres, not indeed as coincident by any means, but still as overlapping.
And more generally: . . . we catch at an idea that reminds us of one belonging to an advanced creed and say: 'Here is Religion'; or if there be found no clear-cut palpable idea we are apt to say: 'There is no religion here'; but whether the subtle thrill of what we know in ourselves as religious emotion be present there or no, we rarely have the mindfulness or patience to inquire, simply because this far more delicate criterion is hard to formulate in thought or even harder to apply to fact.57
Indeed it was an impossible criterion to apply at all until anthropologists had developed their modern techniques which entail prolonged periods of fieldwork and the careful investigation of indigenous categories through a fluent use of the vernacular. This precisely is the strength of such modern studies as Evans-Pritchard (1956) and Lienhardt (1961). 254
The Anthropology of Religion
But when primitive religions are discussed in the context of the academic discipline known as 'Comparative Religion' many of the illusions of nineteenth-century evolutionism are still implicit. In 1953 Eliade could make more or less explicit references to biological sex and he had substituted the concept of 'proto-historic' for that of'pre-civilised' but otherwise he was still writing as if religion were no more than a hotch-potch jumble of symbolic 'elements' collected from here there and everywhere. Apart from the sexual reference the following passage might have been written by almost any British anthropologist between 1871 and 1900: . . . this structure made up of the rainy sky, bull and Great Goddess was one of the elements that united all the proto-historic religions of Europe, Africa and Asia. Undoubtedly the greatest stress is laid here on those functions of the sky god in bull form which bear on birth and plant life. What is primarily venerated in . . . bull-gods of lightning who are husbands of Great Goddesses is not their celestial character but their potentialities as fecundators.58
It is because generalisations of this sort seem to me absurd that I hold that anthropologists who study primitive societies had best avoid the use of the category 'religion' altogether. Thereby they can at least make it clear that they are no longer partners in such futile exercises as this. Notes 1 See subtitle to Forlong (1883) which is a late and reticent contribution to the literature in question. 2 Evans-Pritchard (1965): 20; (1970): 8, note 11. Firth (1973): 96-9 draws attention to Dulaure but fails to note his evident influence on Comte. 3 Spencer issued a prospectus for his vast Synthetic Philosophy in March i860. Various sections of the whole were subsequently issued in 'periodical parts' which were frequently revised. Considerable research is necessary if one wishes to discover at what date Spencer put forward any particular part of his general argument for the first time. 4 Vetter (1959): 5-7. 5 Lienhardt (1956): 310. 6 Evans-Pritchard (1965): 5. 7 Ibid.: 15-16. 8 Ibid.: 1-2. 9 Evans-Pritchard (1959), final paragraph. 10 Baker (1867): 231. 11 Beidelman (1974): 30-1. 12 Comte (1830-42): Premier Lecon. 13 Tylor (1871): 1, 284, 285. 14 Ibid.: 1, 427. 15 This argument appears in all editions of The Golden Bough. For 3rd edn see 1, 237. 16 De Maistre (1821); Taylor (1840); Whateley (1855). 17 Tylor (1871): 1, 4 i718 Moffat (1842): 261. 19 Lubbock (1870) (at p. 200 in the 4th (1882) edn).
255
SIR EDMUND LEACH 20 21 22 23 24
25
26 27 28 29 30
31
32 33 34 35
36 37
38 39 40 41 42 43
Bulletin de la Societe a"Anthropologie de Paris (1866): 53. Harrison (1925): 82-3. Lang (1901): 206. Tylor (1871), 2nd edn (1873): vii-viii. In the 1970 Chicago University Press reprint of McLennan (1865) P. Riviere, as editor, provides a scholarly Introduction (pp. xxvii-xl) which discusses McLennan's relationships with his anthropological contemporaries but misses some of the inferences that may reasonably be drawn from his investigations. Fergusson (1868) is a sumptuous production published under the auspices of the Government of India as a commentary upon a collection of photographs of the ancient Buddhist ruins at Sanchi. Fergusson, whose main interest was in the history of architecture, had travelled widely in India but had left that country in 1845. The appearance of Fergusson (1868) following closely on the sub-rosa 1865 reprint of Knight (1786) had an influence on contemporary anthropology which has not hitherto been recognised. See title of Knight (1786). This quotation is from Durkheim (1912) (1915: 94) but the argument about social facts and social systems already appears in Durkheim (1893) and Durkheim (1895). The quotations come from Comte (1844), para 5. Lubbock (1870): 206. Tylor (1871): 11, 144; cf. 11, 237 where Tylor distinguishes 'direct worship of the animal itself (which is what de Brosses would have called fetishism) from 'indirect worship of it as a fetish acted through by a deity' (which de Brosses would have classified as idolatry). Spencer (1874-96): 1 chapters xm-xxv were issued to subscribers as parts 37, 38, 39 during 1875. They cover the general field of'ancestor worship', 'idol worship', 'fetich worship', 'animal worship', 'plant worship', 'nature worship', 'deities'. There is no hint that sexual symbolism appears in any part of this vast field. The whole runs to 131 pages of print. Haddon (1906): 91. McLennan (1869-70). See title of McLennan (1869-70). Stanner (1965): 207-37. The three items by Stanner listed in the bibliography are essential reading for anyone who is interested in knowing what Aboriginal 'religion' was really like and how far removed from ethnographic reality were the speculations of the nineteenth-century scholars. See Beidelman (1974): 24. Marett (1900). However Miiller (1878): 53 had already claimed, on the basis of a letter from R. H. Codrington, dated 7 July 1877 and written from Norfolk Island in Melanesia, that: 'the idea of the unseen, or as we call it afterwards, the Divine, may exist among the lowest tribes in a vague and hazy form [as] we may see, for instance in the mana of the Melanesians'. In point of fact mana does not have any such meaning in any of the Melanesian languages. Cf. Tylor (1871): 11, 229: 'To the modern educated world, few phenomena of the lower civilisation seem more pitiable than the spectacle of a man worshipping a beast.' Beidelman (1974): 58-9. Smith (1889); quoted from 3rd edn: 17. Ibid.'. 28, 29. However, Meyer Fortes' Huxley Lecture for 1978 which was focussed around the theme of sacrifice, adopted a position which is quite close to that of Smith. Baring-Gould (1869): 411. Baring-Gould was a clergyman of the Church of England. In his section on the sacrament of communion he really lets himself go on the 'gross and repulsive' horrors of temple prostitution, human sacrifice and cannibalism, yet he seems
256
The Anthropology of Religion
44 45 46
47
48 49 50 51 52 53 54 55 56 57 58
to be perfectly well aware that, in interpreting such performances, he is using imagery derived from Christian theological explanations of the Virgin Birth, the Crucifixion and the Eucharist. At this period Christian authors repeatedly used Burton's account of human sacrifice in Dahomey as an exemplification of the repulsive barbarity of all 'the lower races' but there was never any complaint about the barbarities with which the British army of the day was busily extending the limits of Pax Britannica. Smith (1889): 269. Every (1959): 106. By 'Durkheimians' I mean the group of colleagues and pupils who, together with Durkheim himself, were the principal contributors to L Annie Sociologique, the periodical founded by Durkheim, of which the first volume appeared in 1898. For details see Lukes (1973): Ch. 15. Many of the articles were works of collaboration and it is difficult at this distance in time to recognise the distinctive positions of the individual authors. Hubert, Mauss and Hertz whose writings on the themes of magic, sacrifice and mortuary rites have been discussed in the course of this essay, were members of the Durkheimian inner circle. Levy-Bruhl and Van Gennep, who otherwise stood close to Durkheim, were not. The interests of the group as a whole went far beyond the scope of the sociology of religion as ordinarily understood. Collectively they stood for a kind of inverted Marxism: 'Ideas and values were not for them a mere ideological reflection of the social order. On the contrary they rather tended to see the social order as an objective expression of systems of ideas and values' (Evans-Pritchard in Hertz (i960): 17). Albert Reville D.D. held a chair at the College de France. His principal work was as an historian of Christian dogma. When writing about the history of other 'civilised' religions he followed Max Miiller but for the religions of the 'non-civilised' he expressly followed Lubbock and Tylor, especially in his assumptions about the childishness of savages. His category 'non-civilised' comprised the native peoples of Africa, America and Oceania. Quotations from Swain's translation in the Chicago (1947) edn: 95-6. Ibid.: 37. Cf. Pickering (1975): 117. See Feldman and Richardson (1972). Quoted at Durkheim (1912) in Swain's Chicago translation (1947): 81 who cites Miiller Contributions to the Science of Mythology (no date): 1, 68f. Lang (1887): 1, 328. Leach (1959). Stanner (1967). See note 46 above on the 'Durkheimians'. Jevons (1896): 382. Quotations from Marett (1900) as reprinted in Marett (1909): 31, 34. Eliade (1953) (in 1958 translation: 91).
Bibliography I. References Baker, S. W. (1867) The Races of the Nile Basin, Transactions of the Ethnological Society of London, N.S. v (1867), p. 251 Baring-Gould, S. (1869) The Origin and Development of Religious Belief: Part 1: Polytheism and Monotheism, London Beidelman, T. O. (1974) W. Robertson Smith and the Sociological Study of Religion, Chicago Berger, P. L. (1967) The Sacred Canopy: Elements of a Sociological Theory of Religion, New York (English edition: The Social Reality of Religion [London, 1969].)
257
SIR EDMUND LEACH Boucher de Perthes J. (1867) Des Idees Innees, Paris Boudin, J.-Ch.-M. (1864) Etudes anthropologiques: Considerations sur le culte et les pratiques religieuses de divers peuples anciens et modernes; culte du phallus; culte du serpent, Paris
Bourdillon, M. F. C. and Fortes, M. (eds.) (1980) Sacrifice, London Bowker, J. (1973) The Sense of God, Oxford Breal, J. A. (1877) Melanges de mythologie et de linguistique, Paris Brinton, D. G. (1897) The Religions of Primitive Peoples, New York Brosses, C. de (1760) Du Culte de dieux fetiches, ou Parallele de Fancienne Religion de I'Egypte avec la Religion actuelle de Nigritie, Paris. (Issued anonymously. Later printed in the Encyclopedie. A photographic reproduction of the 1760 version appeared in 1972.) Comte, A. (1830-42) Cours de philosophie positive, Paris (1844) Discours sur I'esprit positif Paris Condorcet, A.-N. de (1795) Esquise d'un tableau historique des progres de resprit humain, Paris Crawley, E. (1902) The Mystic Rose: A Study ofPrimitive Marriage and ofPrimitive Thought in its Bearing on Marriage, 2 vols., London Dorson, R. M. (1955) The Eclipse of Solar Mythology, in T. E. Sebeok (ed.), Myth: a Symposium, Bloomington, pp. 15-38 Depuis, C. (1794) Origine de tous les cultes ou la Religion universelle, 7 vols. and atlas, Paris Dulaure, J. A. (1825) Histoire abregee de differens cultes 2 vols, Paris (This is a revision of a work published in 1805 when the volumes carried separate titles: (i) Des Cultes qui ont precede et amene I'idolatrie et /'adoration des figures humaines; (ii) Des Divinites generatrices, ou du Culte du Phallus chez les anciens et les modernes.) Durkheim, E. (1893) De la division du travail social: etude sur Forganisation des societes superieures, Paris
(The English translation by George Simpson entitled The Division of Labour in Society includes as an Appendix, a full version of the Introduction to the first French edition much of which was omitted from later French editions.) (1895) Les Regies de la methode sociologique, Paris (1912) Les Formes elementaires de la vie religieuse: le systeme totemique en Australie, Paris (English translation by J. W. Swain, The Elementary Forms ofthe Religious Life: a Study ofReligious Sociology [London, 1915]. For a full bibliography of Durkheim's writings on religion see Pickering [1975]: pp. 305-21.) Durkheim, E. and Mauss, M. (1903) De quelques formes primitives de classification: contribution a Petude des representations collectives, in L Annee Sociologique, vi, pp. 1-72 (English translation by R. Needham, Primitive Classification [London, 1963].) Eliade, M. (1953) Traite dy histoire des Religions, Paris (English translation by Rosemary Sheed, Patterns in Comparative Religion [London, (1957) Das Heilige und das Profane: Vom Wesen des Religiosen, Munich (This is the first published version though it was written in French. English translation from the French by Willard R. Trask The Sacred and the Profane: The Nature ofReligion [New York, 1959].) Evans-Pritchard, E. E. (1956) Nuer Religion, Oxford (1959) Religion and the Anthropologists: The Aquinas Lecture (1959) (First published in Blackfriars, Oxford. Reprinted as Chapter 2 of Essays in Social Anthropology [London, 1962].) (1965) Theories of Primitive Religion, Oxford (1970) The Sociology of Comte: An Appreciation, Manchester Every, G. (1959) The Baptismal Sacrifice, London Feldman, B, and Richardson, R. D. (1972) The Rise of Modern Mythology 1680-1860, Bloomington 258
The Anthropology of Religion Fergusson, J. (1868) Tree and Serpent Worship or Illustrations of Mythology and Art in India, Firth, R. (1973) Symbols: Public and Private, London Forlong, J. G. R. (1883) Rivers ofLife: or Sources and Streams ofthe Faiths ofMan in all Lands showing the Evolution of Faiths from the Rudest Symbolism to the Latest Spiritual Developments, London Frazer, J. G. (1887) Totemism, Edinburgh (1890) The Golden Bough, 2 vols., London (Second edition: 3 vols. (1900); third edition: eventually 13 volumes published piecemeal from 1906 onwards. The 12-volume version was complete by 1915.) (1910) Totemism and Exogamy, 4 vols., London Freeman, D. (1965) Thunder, Blood and the Nicknaming of God's Creatures (Mimeograph), Canberra Gennep, A. van (1909) Les Rites de Passage, Paris (English translation by Monika B. Vizedom and Gabrielle L. Caffee, The Rites ofPassage [London, i960].) Goldenweiser, A. (1910) Totemism: an analytical study, \n Journal ofAmerican Folklore, xxm (1910) (Reprinted together with several connected essays in Goldenweiser [1933] Part III: pp. 213-356.) (1933) History, Psychology and Culture, London Haddon, A. C. (1906) Magic and Fetishism, London Harrison, J. (1912) Themis: A Study of the Social Origins of Greek Religion, Cambridge (1925) Reminiscences of a Student's Life, London Hartland, E. S. (1894-6) The Legend of Perseus: A Study of Tradition in Story, Custom and Belief, 3 vols., London (1909-10) Primitive Paternity: The Myth of Supernatural Birth in Relation to the History of the Family, 2 vols., London (1914) Ritual and Belief: Studies in the History of Religion, London Hertz, R. (1907) La representation collective de la mort, L'Annee Sociologique, x (1907), pp. 48-137 (1909) La preeminence de la main droite: etude sur la polarite religieuse, Revue Philosophique, LXVin (1909), pp. 553-80 (These two papers together with other items by Hertz were posthumously brought together into a single volume entitled Melanges de Sociologie Religieuses et Folklore [Paris, 1928]. An English translation of the 1907,1909 items by Rodney and Claudia Needham with an Introduction by E. E. Evans-Pritchard appeared as Death and The Right Hand [London, i960].) Hubert, H. (1905) Etude sommaire de la representation du temps dans la religion et dans la magie, Rapport de I'Ecole Pratique des Hautes Etudes: Section des sciences religieuses, Paris Hubert, H. and Mauss, M. (1898) Essai sur la Nature et la Fonction du Sacrifice, LAnne'e Sociologique, I (1898), pp. 29-138 English translation by W. D. Halls with Foreword by E. E. Evans-Pritchard, Sacrifice: its Nature and Function [London, 1964].) (1904) Esquisse d'une theorie generate de la Magie, L Annee Sociologique, vn (1902-3) (English translation by Robert Brain A General Theory of Magic [London, 1972].) Hume, D. (1757) The Natural History of Religion, London James, E. O. (1959) The Cult of the Mother Goddess, London Jevons, F. B. (1896) An Introduction to the History of Religion, London (1908) An Introduction to the Study of Comparative Religion, New York Keightley, T. (1831) The Mythology of Ancient Greece and Italy, London King, J. H. (1892) The Supernatural: its Origin, Nature and Evolution, London Knight, R. Payne (1786) A Discourse on the Worship of Priapus and its Connection with the Mystic Theology of the Ancients, London
259
SIR EDMUND LEACH Lang, A. (1887) Myth, Ritual and Religion, 2 vols., London (1901) Magic and Religion, London Leach, E. R. (1959) Review of James (1959), in The Spectator, 8 May Leeuw, G. van der (1938) Religion in Essence and Manifestation, London Levi-Strauss, C. (1962) Le Totemisme aujourd'hui, Paris (1964-71) Mythologiques, 4 vols., Paris Lienhardt, R. G. (1956) Religion, in Harry L. Shapiro (ed.), Man, Culture and Society, New York, pp. 310-29 (1961) Divinity and Experience: The Religion of the Dinka, Oxford Lowie, R. H. (1937) The History of Ethnological Theory, New York Lubbock, J. (Lord Avebury) (1870) The Origin of Civilisation and the Prehistoric Condition of Man, London (There were numerous subsequent revised editions.) (1911) Marriage, Totemism and Religion: an Answer to Critics, London Lukes, S. (1973) Entile Durkheim: His Life and Work, London McLennan, J. F. (1869-70) The Worship of Animals and Plants, Fortnightly Review, N.S. vi (1869), pp. 407-27, 562-82; VII (1870), pp. 194-216 Maistre, J. C. de (1821) Les Soirees de Saint Petersbourg . . ., Paris Marett, R. R. (1900) Pre-Animistic Religion, Folklore, xi (1900), pp. 162-82 (1907) Is Taboo a Negative Magic?, in Anthropological Essays, presented to Edward Burnett Tylor in honour of his 75th birthday, October 2, 1907, Oxford, pp. 219—34 (1909) The Threshold of Religion, London Mauss, M. (1904) L'Origine des pouvoirs magiques dans les societes australiennes, Rapport de FEcole Pratique des Hautes Etudes, Ve section, Paris Mauss, M. and Beuchat, H. (1906) Essais sur les variations saisonnieres des societes Eskimos: etude de morphologie sociale, UAnnee Sociologique ix (1906), pp. 39-132 (English translation with a Foreword by James J. Fox, Seasonal Variations ofthe Eskimo: A Study in Social Morphology [London, 1979].) Moffat, R. (1842) Missionary Labours and Scenes in Southern Africa, London Muller, F. Max (1856) Comparative Mythology, London Nadel, S. F. (1954) Nupe Religion, London Needham, R. (1964) Blood, Thunder and the Mockery of Animals, Sociologus, 14 (1964), pp. 136-49 O'Flaherty, W. D. (1973) Asceticism and Eroticism in the Mythology of Siva, London Otto, R. (1917) Das Heilige (English translation, The Idea of the Holy [Oxford, 1926].) Pickering, W. S. F. (1975) Durkheim on Religion: a Selection of Readings with Bibliographies, London Prichard, J. C. (1813) Researches into the Physical History of Man, London (1819) An Analysis of the Egyptian Mythology: To which is subjoined a Critical Examination of the Remains of Egyptian Chronology, London (1843) A Natural History of Man: Comprising Inquiries into the Modifying Influence of Physical and Moral Agencies on the Different Tribes of the Human Family, London (All three of these works appeared in several editions often heavily revised.) Reville, A. (1883) Les Religions des peuples non-civilises, 2 vols., Paris Riviere, P. (1970) Editor's Introduction to reprint edition of J. F. McLennan, Primitive Marriage, Chicago Saussure, F. de (1916) Cours de linguistique generale, edited by Charles Bally and Albert Sechehaye with the collaboration of Albert Riedlinger, Geneva (English translation [annotated] by Roy Harris Course in General Linguistics [London, 1983]) 260
The Anthropology of Religion Smith, W. Robertson (1889) Lectures on the Religion of the Semites (The 1927 third edition was posthumously edited and annotated by S. A. Cook.) Spencer, H. (1874-96) Principles of Sociology, London Stanner, W. E. H. (1964) On Aboriginal Religion, Oceania Monograph No. 1, Sydney (1965) Religion, Totemism, and Symbolism, in R. M. and C. H. Berndt (eds.), Aboriginal Man in Australia, Sydney, pp. 207-37 (1967) Reflections on Durkheim and Aboriginal Religion, in M. Freedman (ed.), Social Organisation: Essays Presented to Raymond Firth, London, pp. 217-40 Stocking, G. W. (1968) Race, Culture and Evolution: Essays in the History of Anthropology, New York (1971) What's in a name?: The Origins of the Royal Anthropological Institute, Man, N.S. 6 (1971), pp. 369^90 (1973) From Chronology to Ethnology: James Cowles Prichard and British Anthropology 1800-1850 (Editor's Introduction to 1973 Chicago reprint of Prichard [1813].) Taylor, W. C. (1840) The Natural History of Society: The Barbarian and Civilised State, 2 vols., London Tylor, E. B. (1865) Researches into the Early History of Mankind and the Development of Civilisation, London (1871) Primitive Culture: Researches into the Development of Mythology, Philosophy, Religion, Art and Custom, 2 vols., London (Tylor originally saw these two books as successive volumes of a single work, but Primitive Culture was much the more successful. It was frequently reissued and revised.) (1898) Remarks on Totemism, with especial reference to some modern theories respecting it, Journal of the Anthropological Institute, 28 (1898), pp. 138-48 Vetter, G. B. (1959) Magic and Religion, London Whateley, R. (1855) On the Origin of Civilisation, London / / . Surveys of the anthropological study of religion during the nineteenth century In general pattern most accounts of the anthropological study of religion during the nineteenth century take their cue from Durkheim (1912). Chapters II, III and IV of Book I of that work are devoted respectively to (i) an account of the animism of Tylor and Spencer with certain criticisms of this viewpoint, (ii) what is called the 'naturism' of Max Miiller, and (iii) an account of anthropological discussions of totemism subsequent to the 1869-70 essay by McLennan. Chapter V of Book II provides a further discussion of various nineteenth-century theories of totemism. Durkheim gives the impression that prior to 1856 there had been no anthropological discussion of religion at all. The Preface to Hartland (1914) must be one of the earliest English-language surveys of the field. The range of literature covered is similar to that surveyed by Durkheim except that greater credit is given to the work of Frazer. An early American survey of this type is provided by the essays reprinted in Part II of Goldenweiser (1933) some of which date from 1925. Lowie (1937) takes a somewhat broader view of the scope of anthropology and actually mentions some eighteenth-century authors but, as far as the study of religion is concerned, his range is exactly the same as that of Durkheim so that everything is made to start with the McLennan essay of 1869-70. Evans-Pritchard (1965) - which is derived from lectures originally given in the 1930s takes essentially the same line. His misleading references to the influence of the work of de Brosses is made only in passing and is taken over from Max Miiller. In effect, he too makes everything start with McLennan and Tylor. He draws an important distinction between those authors, including Tylor and Frazer, whose arguments about individual belief are based on an 261
SIR EDMUND LEACH assumption of a psychological unity of mankind, and those authors, including Robertson Smith and Durkheim, who look upon religious institutions as collective representations which derive from society rather than the individual. There are excellent monographic accounts of individual authors. Beidelman (1974) is an exceptionally competent short study of the relevant aspects of the work of Robertson Smith. The best of many studies of Durkheim, is Lukes (1973) but, for present purposes, Pickering (1975) is more immediately relevant. Of numerous short text-book type surveys of what anthropologists have had to say about religion since i860 the most satisfactory is Lienhardt (1956). So far as I am aware, the first publication to draw attention to the significance of the work of Payne-Knight for modern studies of religious symbolism is Feldman and Richardson (1972), but until now it has nowhere been appreciated that the reprinting of Knight's scandalous Discourse on Priapus in 1865 probably had very direct influence on McLennan (1869-70) and hence on all subsequent anthropological history. (See notes 24 and 25 to main essay.) A blow-by-blow account of the long-winded Miiller-Lang battle over the nature and origin of mythology is given by Dorson (1955).
262
8 Max Weber and German Sociology of Religion ROLAND ROBERTSON
Max Weber (1864-1920) has long been regarded as one of the great pioneers, some would say the pioneer, in the development of the distinctively sociological study of religion. While Weber's work is the primary focus here, attention will be paid to others to whose work Weber's thinking can be fruitfully related. Among previous thinkers particular emphasis will be given to Hegel and Marx; while among contemporaneous intellectuals the importance of Ernst Troeltsch (1865-1923) and, to a lesser extent, Georg Simmel (1858-1918) will be underlined. It will briefly be argued that the comparative-historical frame of inquiry suggested by Hegel's philosophy and phenomenology of religion was echoed in Weber's historical-sociological studies of the major world religions; and that - more concretely and directly - Weber's sociology of religion was in part developed in response to Marxian ideas. In some respects Weber's sociology of religion was a synthesis of Hegelian ideas concerning the entry of'spiritual' matters into 'worldly' history and Marxian ideas concerning the impact on religion of economic-class interests and structures. However, Weber's ideas were far too bold and innovatory to be characterized as of mere synthetic significance. Among Weber's contemporaries particular attention is given to Troeltsch, who is also the subject of a separate article in this volume. Although the more strictly theological and philosophical aspects of his thought are covered there, it is more natural to deal with his specifically sociological interests here in connection with Weber, with whom he formed a close intellectual relationship. During the period when they were colleagues together at Heidelberg, both Weber and Troeltsch were going through a phase of weighing Hegelian and Marxian ideas. The differences (and similarities) in their approaches and results are instructive. In addition to Troeltsch, Simmel must also be mentioned. His relevance resides in his general importance with respect to methodological and philosophical 263
ROLAND ROBERTSON
controversies and some of the more specific connections between his work and the works of Troeltsch and Weber. The sociology of religion — or more strictly the historical sociology of religion - was developed in Germany on the basis of a variety of motives and interests. On the other hand, the degree to which general frames of reference were, at least tacitly, shared across otherwise conflicting schools of thought is quite remarkable. Thus, for example, Weber and Troeltsch could influence each other in seemingly mutually beneficial respects, even though Weber sought to show the here-and-now irrelevance of religion to the modern world, while Troeltsch sought for much of his life to lay the foundation for its pivotal significance. Troeltsch's strategy in that regard was to insist that Christianity had since its very early phase consisted in part of 'worldly' elements - that its essence included historical, socio-political and other 'nonspiritual' ingredients. From Troeltsch's standpoint, historical-sociological analysis was largely directed at attempting to demonstrate the contingent nature of religion - particularly what he called the intra-mundane contingency of Christianity. In his most sociological phase - from early in the century through the early years of World War I - Troeltsch employed this argument to support his more general commitment to the idea of the ubiquitous relevance of religion. Weber was also convinced of the historically contingent relationships between the spiritual and what was often called in the debates of his time the material; but he tried in his work to demonstrate that Christianity had developed in such a way as to lead - in changing contexts - to what he called the sublimation of non-religious domains. Thus for Weber the long-term outcome of the involvement of the Christian religion in 'the world' was the promotion of conceptions of the latter which actually had the consequence of accentuating belief in the autonomy of secular domains. In particular the Puritans' attempts to participate selectively in the world as instruments of God assisted significantly in the crystallization of attitudes centered upon the comprehending of the internal principles of operation of secular domains, such as those of politics and economics. In order to relate in a religiously disciplined way as individuals to the world the latter had to be understood in their own terms of functioning. According to Weber this was the radical - and, in a special sense, rational - extension of the Lutheran conception of making the world into a monastery. Thus in one sense Weber followed in this respect - in non-religious mode - those in the Lutheran tradition who considered it highly appropriate that in modern circumstances individuals could and should draw a sharp line between the world and, more important, the realm of personal cultivation of spiritual relationship with 264
Max Weber God. In other words Weber's strong conviction that the early twentieth century was characterized, at least in the West, by a cleavage between the realm of personal values, on the one hand, and secular realms (those too being relatively independent of each other) paralleled the thinking of some Lutherans of his own time. However, for Weber this was a highly problematic circumstance in which he as a social-scientist and man of public affairs felt concerned about both sides of the coin, this resulting in Weber's later work in attempts to talk increasingly about the ways in which individuals could/should mediate between these realms, at the same time doing justice to the internal principles of operation of each. In that regard Weber was distinctively nonLutheran. Troeltsch was also committed to the view that the passive Lutheran view was wrong. He devoted much of his life to attempting to show intellectually that the theological ideas and religious commitments could be given a sufficiently strong anchorage so as to make them greatly relevant to the modern secular domains. The mere fact that Troeltsch found it necessary to devote so much effort to finding a way to maintain the centrality of religion in itself tends to confirm Weber's argument that we now live in what has aptly been described as an unavoidable circumstance of anthropocentric - as opposed to theocentric - dualism.1 Weber argued that the Christian dualistic conception - crystallized in Luther's notion of the two kingdoms of public-worldly secularity and private spirituality - had been transformed into a man-focused, rather than a God-focused, circumstance. The circumstance of anthropocentric dualism was characterized by the disenchantment of the world and a quite radical differentiation of the various institutional (and ethical) realms - most significantly the differentiation of the worldly realms from the realm of individual concern with basic values. Moreover, according to Weber the latter realm was pivotally characterized by its 'polytheism' of personal values, such that no unifying world views were available in the modern world, except in the very limited sense of charismatic 'brotherhoods' (and, nowadays, 'sisterhoods') of fellow-believers. Weber was critical of attempts to impose the values and beliefs nurtured in such contexts on the worldly domains, which had become so independent as not to be productively treatable in such terms. While Troeltsch was well aware of modern processes of secularization and acknowledged the problem of the relativity of modern individual values and belief, he never ceased in his attempt to speak of the overcoming of such circumstances, with particular reference to metaphysical and theological anchorage points. Indeed, much of Troeltsch's work after a turn-of-century attempt to promote the idea of religiosity being an a priori of the human condition was devoted to the latter. 265
ROLAND ROBERTSON
As will be seen, in some respects Simmel may be viewed as having provided nuances to the positions which partly united and partly disunited Troeltsch and Weber. For example - in proximity to Troeltsch - Simmel accorded religion an a priori place in the human condition; yet, like Weber, he warned against conflation of the religious realm and other realms of life. The phases of Weber's Religionssoziologie Weber's early career was primarily devoted to studies in economic history and modern economic conditions - in which he showed great interest in the relation of these matters to politics. However, there is evidence that during that period - the 1890s - Weber became increasingly intrigued by the impact of religious upbringing upon political and economic orientations in contemporary Germany. In any case by the turn of the century Weber was at work on what was to become his most well-known publication, The Protestant Ethic and the Spirit of Capitalism (originally published in two parts in 1904 and 1905).2 This was also the period during which Weber became - as he said, reluctantly - embroiled in the great controversy about the methodology of the social sciences, a controversy which had a significant connection to Weber's - at that stage, very embryonic - steps towards a sociology of religion. For example, in one of his methodological essays of that time Weber attacked the position of the historian, Roscher, who had been a pupil of the religiously motivated and influential Ranke.3 The latter had assumed the will of God in history, leaving the historian's task as a recording through intuitive contemplation - of events and circumstances as they actually occurred. This form of religiously based empiricism Weber found objectionable. In particular, Weber maintained that the resistance of Ranke and Roscher to any kind of analytical abstraction or concept formation (which would have, so to say, broken the umbilical connection between God and history) left unattended the issue of the logical relation between concepts and reality. Even though he eschewed Hegel's insistence on the identity of concepts and facts Weber emphasized that Hegel had at least faced-up to the logical problem (by talking in philosophical-historical terms of the concrete realization of the idea 0/religion, for example). In insisting that concepts are products of scientific activity relative to matters of contemporary interest, Weber was in a position for later systematic inquiry into variations in religious orientations, and the conjunction of religious and secular social patterns, across civilizations and historical periods. More specifically, by eschewing any presupposition of a religious nature (as in Hegel and Ranke), Weber was able to address systematically the degree to, and the manner in which religion played a significant role in history. 266
Max Weber It is widely agreed that in the first decade of the century Weber was in his academic work mainly concerned with matters of cultural history - a concern which wasfirmlycentered on the question of the historical origins of modern capitalism and bureaucracy. During the years immediately following the publication of The Protestant Ethic and the Spirit of Capitalism Weber added to the arguments contained in the latter, often in the form of replies to critics of his initial argument that modern capitalism was in significant part the product of the inner-worldly asceticism of the Puritan sects.4 In 1909 Weber published a work with the deceptively narrow title Agrarian Conditions in Antiquity, which was actually a very wide-ranging comparative economic and social study of a number of societies and periods of antiquity. And even though the specific references to religion were few in number, one can see that Weber's interest in the relationship between religion and other variables - such as modes of economic production and types of political system - was crystallizing rapidly. Writing at the same time as Troeltsch was becoming very interested in the relationship between Christianity and modern 'social problems', Weber argued (probably in reference to Marxian views of the time, such as those of Kautsky): [I]t is absolute nonsense to maintain theories such as that Christianity was the result of'social' conditions or was the product of ancient 'socialist' movements . . . Christianity held that worldly aims were dangerous and so was the wealth which made these aims attainable . . . [T]he injunction 'Give unto Caesar what is Caesar's' . . . is an expression of the most complete indifference to all politics, as has rightly been argued by Troeltsch . . . These . . . are the factors which made Christianity possible: the abandonment of the idea of a national and theocratic Jewish state, and the absence of any 'social problem' in the consciousness of its supporters (and in the consciousness of Antiquity) . . . [BJelief in the permanence of Roman rule until the end of time [made] it hopeless to strive for social reform . . . and this was the source from which flowed Christian love - purely ethical, charitable, and transcendental.5
Here and elsewhere in this study of ancient societies Weber briefly attended to the closely connected themes of the differential nature of world rejection and the circumstances — part religious, part secular — under which religious functionaries and the social-group carriers of religious ideas were, as a matter of degree, able to exert an impact on 'the world'. The remainder of Weber's life - the second decade of the century - was by far his most productive phase, and the one in which he addressed religious questions most continuously and thoroughly. In the most general terms, the key to our understanding of that remarkable phase is to be found in the complex relationship between the basically historical approach which Weber continued to employ, on the one hand, and his interest in the adumbration of a system of general concepts for the purpose of cross-civilization, comparative study, on the other. Whereas up to about 1908 Weber had been primarily 267
ROLAND ROBERTSON
occupied in tracing the origins of the modern, western mind and its correlated institutional structure within a western context, his work thereafter displayed preoccupation with the location of selected features of western history in an inclusive frame of universal history, which was itself related to an array of sociological concepts of potentially universal applicability. The development of basic sociological concepts - with historicalempirical detail only assuming illustrative significance — was part of the mammoth project, Economy and Society, upon which Weber worked in the last decade of his life.6 In the section devoted to religion Weber was primarily concerned with the stipulation of relationships between religious ideas and their social bearers (primarily functionaries, and classes and status groups), on the one hand, and the elaboration of types of relationship between religion and world in the major religions, on the other. At the centre of the whole enterprise were the notions of theodicy and individual salvation', these being schematized most generally in terms of an East-West contrast between Indian mystical religion and Calvinist ascetic religion. However, there is no doubt that Weber framed his battery of conceptual distinctions in reference to the historical problem of the emergence of modern capitalism and bureaucracy. In two respects the interest in universal history may be regarded as an extension of Weber's earlier, West-focused studies of economic, political and religio-cultural history. First, Weber's book-length studies of the religions of India, China and of early Judaism, plus some other essays on religion and lengthy historical studies (for example of the city in history), may be regarded as attempts to show through negative examples why modern instrumental rationality and its major institutional manifestations - capitalism and bureaucracy — developed uniquely in the West. Second, Weber's studies of non-western societies were undertaken from within the context of a present western circumstance. The latter was itself both in need of historical explanation and at the same time constituted the value-reference for the entirety of Weber's historical (and sociological) analyses. Thus the study of universal history was based upon the assumption of the modern West constituting a 'historical centre'.7 Weber's work in that regard issued in his posthumously published lectures on the theme: 'Outlines of Universal Social and Economic History' (1919-20).8 Whereas the student of Weber's sociology of religion must be pivotally concerned with the essays directed specifically at that topic, beginning with The Protestant Ethic and the Spirit of Capitalism and culminating in major conceptual, theoretical and historical essays on religion written mainly in the period after 1910, the lectures on universal social and economic history are 268
Max Weber important in understanding the manner in which Weber comprehensively connected religious to other, particularly economic, factors. The tension between the religious and the economic was in fact at the core of Weber's social science (as it was in the case of the other great pioneer in the sociology of religion, Durkheim). While the crystallization of the modern sense of economic reality — more generally, instrumental (or purposive) rationality — was Weber's leading concern, he insisted that the modern capitalist was 'not possessed of a stronger economic impulse than, for example, an oriental trader'.9 The 'economic impulse' is universal. Under what circumstances does it become 'rationalized and rationally tempered'? Weber's answer - pitched in terms of very long-run change - was as follows. First, in the most primitive circumstance religion is subservient to the economic impulse and is thus more accurately described as magic. In a sense it is the fusion of the economic and religious which constitutes the narrowly constrained, but not ethically conditioned instrumentality of magic. Second the rise of religions orienting men and women to a distinct realm beyond this world resulted in 'two opposite attitudes toward the pursuit of gain' existing in combination. Inside the 'brotherhood' of clan, house-community or tribe, religious ties constrain the pursuit of gain; while in relation to 'foreigners' - with whom no ethical principles are involved - there is 'absolutely unrestricted play of the gain spirit in economic relations'.10 Thus at that stage religion and 'economics' are relatively segregated. Particularly in the West, Weber saw a gradual dissolution of the restrictions on intra-brotherhood economic relations and a concomitant disciplining of external relations - this development being closely connected to the rise of the Occidental city, on the one hand, and the decisive religious legitimation of (ethically disciplined) individual economic activity in post-Reformation Calvinism, on the other. That stage we may characterize as an ethical conjoining of religion and economic activity. Finally, in the modern era the latter becomes sublimated, in the form of a realm with its own principles of operation - more or less detached from, and in triumphant tension with, the religious impulse. The background to Weber's Religionssoziologie Understanding the rise of a distinctively sociologicalapproach to the study of religion in Germany in the early years of the twentieth century must rest considerably upon grasping the specifically 'inner-worldly' thrust of German theology and philosophy over the centuries.11 Ideas concerning the release of individuals from the constraint of authoritative interpretation of 269
ROLAND ROBERTSON
religious belief and practice - the resistance to heteronomy - were very explicit features of German intellectual life from the time of Luther onwards. In the German context the intellectual eagerness to overthrow heteronomy was largely motivated by the desire to cast-off political and/or ecclesiastical mediation of the relationship between God and the individual. In the German Enlightenment this motivation took crucial shape in Kant's philosophical quest for individual autonomy - a quest which involved the transcendental attribution to all individuals of a structured freedom of practical reason. The relationship between the individual and God was regarded by Kant as being pivoted upon the individual's ability to realize himself morally - a realization which itself depended upon acknowledgement of the finitude of the practical reason which governed the moral life. This was Kant's indication of the only viable opening of the finite in relation to the infinite. The problem of the relationship between the finite particularity of the individual and the infinite absoluteness of God was a central motif of German intellectual thought in the centuries following the Lutheran Reformation. It yielded a sociologizing tendency for two main reasons. First, it rendered particularly problematic the nature and status of that which had in the pre-Reformation period lain, as it were, between the individual and God - namely 'society'. Thus a focus on that which had been seen as a repository of heteronomy came about largely because in the Lutheran perspective it had been regarded with what might be called 'negative acceptance'. As Hegel, Marx, Weber, Simmel, Troeltsch, and other lesssociologically minded intellectuals - such as the church-historian, Sohm were to say in their different ways, Luther clarified the notion of that which was secularly external to the individual. So - at least intellectually - Luther made individual religiosity more intra-mundane than had previously been the theological case. This disjunction between societal secularity and individual religiosity, relative to conceptions of absoluteness, formed the cognitive matrix from which sprang the uniquely German sociologizing tendency; and not merely for the reason that the societal domain was - as it were — bared for inspection from an individual-intellectual standpoint. For heavily implicated in the very circumstance - phenomenologically speaking - which yielded the baring of the socio-political world was the idea, which we have already glimpsed, that the ability to know or have a relation with God was a human quality.12 This brings us to the second source of what we have called a sociologizing tendency. Some have claimed that heavy emphasis upon the human powers of Godorientation actually imbues the individual with a form of divinity — precisely 270
Max Weber because the ability to 'be with God' suggests some primordial connection between individuals qua individuals and God. Leaving that theologicalphilosophical problem largely on one side, we need to note here only that the idea of the relationship with God being a human potential - as a realizable state in terms of ascertainable features of individual life — facilitates the
relatively direct 'domestication' of theological issues. In so doing it, in turn, raises numerous problems concerning the possible 'contamination' of individual religiosity by social factors - a set of problems which fed the growth of the sociology of knowledge in Germany. At the same time it makes a putative sociology - an analytic mode predicated on the idea of its autonomy and, to an extent, its domination of other levels of knowledge peculiarly susceptible to theological rendition. Kant's ^sociological, transcendental-philosophical, quest for an individual autonomy with an opening to God, was followed by a basically theonomic attempt by Hegel to embrace individual, society and God in a synthetic overcoming of the autonomy-heteronomy problematic. Marx rejected Hegel's theonomy, transforming it into a processual interpretation of human productivity, and thus in effect made the theonomic thrust itself* derivative of a reality distorted by class cleavages. For Marx, Hegel's emphasis on the state was a successor or addition to religion as a form of heteronomic control. Marx's quest for the allegedly core productive and reproductive component of human life, for the 'real reality', led him in the later years of his life to the conception of subjectivity and objectivity having become fused in capitalist society in the form of 'commodity fetishism'. Like Hegel before him and Weber after him (although the three men differed over specifics), Marx saw the nesting of subjectivity and objectivity as that which defined everyday, operative reality. Marx thought that the attainment of that modern, economy-centred reality was a basic condition for the beginning of'a genuinely socialhistory made by men and women. The reality of capitalist society was still a distorted reality - a subject-object relationship in the mode of reification. Paralleling some interpretations of Hegel, Marx's views in this respect have sometimes been interpreted as involving 'secular theonomy' - a claim 'in disguise' that the human species has a divine mission. In contrast, Weber devoted much of his life's work to declaring the modern binding of subjectivity and objectivity - the mutual interlocking of objectness and 'subjective' instrumental rationality - to be an 'iron-cage'. The quest for meaning would, for Weber, lie beyond the iron cage in the minds of individuals. The disjunction between that private, '^^-subjective' meaning and reality definition of public societality was for Weber - according to 271
ROLAND ROBERTSON
how one reads him - either a more general iron-cage incorporating all that modern man could think of and do, or a situation in which an iron-cage of 'reality' required that there be, to use Perry Miller's term, an iron-couch of introspection to cater for our moments of negation of instrumental activity. That Weber spoke of sociology of religion and used a quite explicit sociology of religion in his universal history can best be understood in terms of the 'atheistic presuppositions' of the scientific attitude engendered by the circumstance of the iron-cage. Rejection of the idea that history had meaning, or that individual men could be provided with meaningful destinies in modern circumstances, left exposed for analysis the relationship between the modes in terms of which life had in the past and in other civilizational contexts been given meaning, on the one hand, and the modes in terms of which life had been regarded in reference to its material conditions, on the other. To put it a little crudely, whereas Hegel had seen the historical contingencies of social life as particularities of the generality of the crystallization of spirit, and Marx had seen the historical meaning systems as reflections of phases in the general concretization of the productiveness of social man, Weber transformed both kinds of generality into competing forces of history. History thus became the study of the intersection of these 'forces', and although history had a pattern when looked at from any point of view, it could not have meaning largely for that very reason. Let us turn more specifically to my argument that Hegel mapped much of the broad terrain of Weber's sociology of religion.13 In his summary of Hegel's 'historico-phenomenologicaP theory of religion, Reardon says that 'in accounting for the rise of Christianity, [Hegel conceded that]. . . external circumstances and "the spirit of the times" .. . had a potent influence on its actual form - a development which it is the business of the history of dogma to examine in detail'.14 Hegel did not see it as his own task to undertake such a project. (The so-called Left Hegelians were to begin that project, an enterprise which had no small bearing on the crystallization of Marx's class-focused orientation to the explanation of religious history.) Hegel sought rather what Reardon calls 'some general reasons', which, as Hegel himself put it, made it possible for the character of the Christian religion as a virtue religion to be misconceived in early times and turned at first into a sect and later into a positive faith. Even though the work of postHegelians - such as Strauss - and of students of the history of dogma at the end of the nineteenth century - notably, Harnack - intervened between Hegel, on the one hand, and Weber and Troeltsch, on the other, the degree to which Weber adopted a Hegelian analytical format is striking. Specifically, 272
Max Weber Weber (and to a lesser degree Troeltsch) sought by a sociological-historical and thus empirical - method to solve many of the puzzles which Hegel had tackled primarily by ratiocination. That project required - as has been stated already - that Weber had to develop scientific concepts for the study of religion. Whereas Hegel had sought to connect philosophically the idea (the concept) of religion to empirical history in theonomic, panlogical mode, Weber sought to establish atheistic concepts for the study of the idea of religion as an empirical phenomenon. Both Hegel and Weber moved in their respective oeuvres from an early, specific concern with the manner in which Christianity had become innovatively productive in 'the world' to a later concern with the relationship of Christianity to the other major religions.15 For Hegel this broadening of perspective was centered on the question of the absoluteness of Christianity. In his early work, however, the principal problem for Hegel was the manner in which a religion which was indifferent to worldly affairs, emphasizing brotherly ties in sectarian manner, became implicated and influential in 'the world'. This problem was to become central to the more directly sociological approaches of Marxians in the later nineteenth and early twentieth century and was a critical issue for Weber and Troeltsch. Hegel's emphasis upon what he called the triumph of ecclesiastical statutes as a form of institutionalization of the autonomy of religion in the West was to be echoed in Weber's demarcation of types of religion-society relationships, with special emphasis upon the manner in which there occurred an historical shift from the Catholic tendency to establish a form of control over adherents to the post-Reformation development of a situation in which, as Hegel put it, individuals felt 'that they had a felt right to legislate for themselves'.16 The latter clearly anticipated Weber's sharply defined interest in the links between what he called the 'consistent sect' and the rise in the West of'the oldest Right of Man' - namely, freedom of conscience.17 Both Hegel and Weber were keenly interested in the ways in which the sense of charismatic power had run its course. The attempt to establish religiously inspired, heteronomous rules for belief and practice contained the 'danger' of 'the triumph of ecclesiastical statutes' (Hegel) or 'the routinization of charisma' (Weber). Even a release from rigid ecclesiastical authority could result, argued Hegel, in legislation for feelings — as was, he said, the case with some Lutheran and Pietistic groups. (That latter form of internal bondage was to be emphasized by both Marx and Weber.) While Weber attributed to his contemporary Sohm the spark which ignited his own interest in the routinization of charisma and his colleague Jellinek with the insight into the role of the Puritan sects of the seventeenth century in the 273
ROLAND ROBERTSON
development of modern conceptions of individual, rational freedom, the broad similarity between the analytical perspectives of Hegel and Weber is striking with regard to the problematic which Weber was to develop concerning the delicately balanced relationship between churchly tendencies, on the one hand, and sectarian tendencies, on the other, in the Christian West.18 (It was, however, Troeltsch who worked most persistently with the church-sect theme, under the influence of Weber.) For Weber - as for Hegel - the primary significance of Christian sects was that they were seedbeds for the development of modern conceptions of individual autonomy, although Weber was clearer and more emphatic in conceptually and historically specifying that it was /^/-Reformation sectarian developments of the Calvinistic variety which were free of what Weber called 'the power of religious compulsion' and what Hegel called the 'fevered wild and disordered imagination' of ancient sectarianism.19 Thus although Hegel's early concern was with the delineation of genuine Christian freedom and Weber's subsequent early concern was with the manner in which modern ideas of practical freedom had developed in relation to the historic development of Christianity, their projects addressed similar interpretative problems. However, while Hegel was to become increasingly interested in 'the true' relationship between religion and the state, with the latter seen as the fulcrum which concretely realized the relationship between religiously free individuals and God, Weber was to emphasize the highly secular character of the state and the sequestered and attenuated nature of individual religiosity in the modern world. Moreover, while Hegel acknowledged the historical development of a gap between situationally conditioned interests of men and women, on the one hand, and higher, spiritual concerns, on the other, he maintained that it was the job of philosophy to mediate that relationship, in reference to the significance of the state. For the most part, Weber argued strenuously against the idea that any intellectual discipline should as such advocate a solution to this (or any other societal) problem. In this regard his view was strengthened by his hostility to the Marxist conception of scientific socialism, which synthesized factual and normative issues with particular reference to the resolution of interest conflicts. (Weber's position also contrasts with Durkheim in that the latter saw the role of sociology to be, inter alia, the provision of ideas for mediation between the interests of individuals and the quasi-religious concerns of the modern state.) On the other hand, towards the end of his life Weber did advocate that the political leader of the modern state should be an elected charismaticfigure,who would 'stand over' the essentially secular arenas of state bureaucracy and political struggle. 274
Max Weber Finally, attention should be drawn to some structural similarities between Hegel's mature philosophies of history and religion and Weber's mature historical and comparative sociology of religion. Both were geared to a problem concerning western 'superiority' - Hegel in the form of the absoluteness of Christianity, Weber in the form of the western breakthrough to historically unique forms of rationality. Both were centred on a fundamental distinction between the monotheistic, personal God of the West and the diffuse conception of eternal being found mostly in the higher eastern religions. Both insisted that religion evolved from a primitive form of practico-magic (in contrast to Durkheim's definitional insistence on the primal ubiquity of religion - as having to do with sacredness - and its tension with economically oriented magic). Last, wefinda sharp difference between Hegel and Weber which nevertheless indicates continuity from Hegel to Weber: while Hegel insisted that religion had to be defined at the outset of inquiry - in the form of the historically transmitted idea 0/religion - Weber strongly rejected the need for or possibility of defining religion at the outset of inquiry (if at all), probably because of his conviction of the multifaceted, empirically heterogeneous nature of the phenomenon, and his objection to Hegel's panlogical attempt to locate concepts in history, rather than in the minds of scientific observers of history. In the present context the manner in which Marx's approach to religion developed in significant reaction to Hegel can be ignored. Rather, the focus is upon the contribution of Marx (and Engels) to the developing nineteenthcentury concern with the socio-economic dimensions, bases and repercussions of religion. In turn, it is the relationship between that contribution and the sociology of religion of Weber's time which is most specifically at issue. In the latter regard it must be remembered that Marx's early and some of his later work was unknown to Weber and his contemporaries and that the Marxist scholarship of Weber's own time very strongly emphasized the epiphenomenal status of religion, in particular reference to its basis in class interest and conflict. Marx had early in his adult life spoken of religion as 'the table of contents of theoretical struggles'20 and had maintained that 'the criticism of heaven turns into the criticism of earth, the criticism ofreligion into the criticism oflaw and the criticism of theology into the criticism ofpolitics'.21 (After 'the earthly family is discovered to be the secret of the holy family, the former must then be destroyed in theory and practice'.)22 Given what we know about Marx's general attitude toward religion we may infer that the overall status of this comment in his work is as follows. Marx appeared to believe that the course 275
ROLAND ROBERTSON
of primarily economic change in western societies had been such as to produce a level of theological and philosophical development - in economically
backward Germany - which itself provided the main ideational resource with which to comprehend the pivotal (for him, the economic) feature of human society in historical perspective. In the same moment it also provided the basis upon which the combination of theory and practice became explicitly possible. Disclosure of the (distorted) earthly basis of heaven made further action both openly theoretical and practical. Thus the analysis of religion (as critique) had been a crucial entry point to the programme for changing the modern world. After early work in which only the seeds of interest in religion may be seen, Weber came at the turn of the century also apparently to believe that the analysis of religion (as interpretation and tracing of consequences) was a central - if not the only - path to the understanding of the modern world. But whereas Weber believed that religion had played a crucial role in the direct construction of modern reality, Marx believed - at least, initially - that religion provided a basis for comprehension (and change) of that reality. (Marx also perhaps saw religion in the form of 'invisible' religiosity as being a central feature of capitalist societies - that being a plausible interpretation of the focus on fetishism in his later work.) Whereas Marx used the categories of Christianity as a mode of analysis and paid relatively little attention to the practical contents of such, Weber paid profound attention to the later and used the former only implicitly. For Weber the relatively pragmatic - but, all the same, systematized - adaption of religious doctrine to worldly contingency was the nub of social-scientific interpretation of religion - hence much of his lack of interest in the essence of religion. (Yet the argument has been made that Marx did adhere in spite of himself to symbolic aspects of Christianity in the sense of presenting a mythology in the guise of a revolutionary science of society.) It is also clear that Weber was in spite of his self-proclaimed interest in the (practical) contents of religious doctrines heavily constrained by analytic elements of Christian thought, most notably those deriving from the Lutheran two-kingdoms delineation of 'the religion-world problem'.23 Marx as a young man saw his project as an attempt to overcome religion, as ushering in a revolutionary science of society which would go beyond the issue of religion-umws-irreligion. On the basis of critiques of Hegel and Feuerbach he sought to overcome - at least theoretically - the power of religion and then of the state. He then penetrated to the, for him, deeper level of the lawful dynamics of economic processes, retaining in modified form the categories developed in reference to the more clearly 'out-there' forms of heteronomy as devices for analyzing the economic realm. Weber argued that 276
Max Weber religion had played a direct role in the actual creation of that world, that its theoretical resources had been largely expended in practical, historical terms via processes of religious rationalization, which in the post-Reformation period made both the self and external reality objects of calculation and manipulation. Science did not triumph over religion, but rather was the mode of analysis rendered possible by the modern sense of reality, a mode of reality which pushed religion to the subjective margins of life. The respective attitudes of Marx and Weber towards Luther and Calvin illustrate some of their differences in emphasis. Marx felt a greater affinity with Luther than with the other Protestant reformers. Luther in particular had been very significant in abolishing 'the heteronomy of the spirit required by Catholicism'. For Marx, Luther appeared to represent what McKown calls 'a gigantic stride away from religious estrangement to the emancipation of the spirit . . . [T]he task then would be . . . to strip the "religious autonomy", leaving human autonomy which, when added to human rationality shorn of all ideology and fetishism, would enable man to determine his own purely human value.'24 Weber's views of Luther were in some respects similar. He attributed to the Lutheran segment of the Reformation great significance in accentuating the issue of the relationship between the individual and the secular world, most notably in the Lutheran conception of the calling. Weber's focus on the individualistic-mystical element in Lutheranism also overlaps with Marx's criticism that Luther enchained the hearts of individuals. In addition it should be noted that the political passivity attendant upon that mystical tendency deeply concerned Weber, as it did - in different vein - Marx's colleague, Engels. Unlike Marx's relative neglect of Calvin, Engels emphasized Calvin's great significance. According to Engels, Calvin's 'predestination doctrine was the religious expression of the fact that in the commercial world of competition success or failure does not depend upon a man's activity or cleverness, but upon circumstances uncontrollable by him'.25 Engels concluded that this world-view constrained the bourgeoisie to favour a form of democratic republicanism rather than the encouragement of absolute monarchy exhibited in the Lutheran stance. Weber too was to pursue the emphasis upon predestination in the Calvinist scheme of things, but his argument was that that doctrine once crystallized engendered so much uncertainty that it led precisely to a deep concern with controlled individual, economic activity in the mode of men regarding themselves as instruments of God relative to a crystallizing sense of an autonomous economic order. Thus was in part historically created the very domain which contemporary interpreters of Marx insisted had been historically determinative. 277
ROLAND ROBERTSON
Marx's general views on religion may be briefly summarized on the basis of McKown's useful survey. Marx consistently argued that religion was: (i) untrue, relative and epiphenomenal; (2) characteristically degrading of man in that it constituted a form of alien control; (3) closely related to interests deriving from private property and class structure - the division of labour within religious contexts closely following the division of economic labour; (4) closely tied to political economy, as in the cultus of abstract man in Protestantism and political economy. Such an outlook involved a particular focus on the functions of religion, of which the three most important for Marx were the palliative-consolatory; the sanctioning; and the reflective. But, unlike some of Engels' ventures into the study of religion, Marx more often than not seemed content to assert such functions, connecting them loosely to the class interests which they allegedly served. One of Engels' main departures in emphasis was his periodic claim that early Christianity and various sectarian Christian movements thereafter should be seen as protoproletarian movements. As McKown notes, it is impossible to tell whether in this respect Engels took his cue from Marx's early assertion that religion was the 'protest against real suffering'. In any case Marx's early statements in this vein - including the idea that 'religion is the sigh of the oppressed creature' - were the most gentle of all his statements on religion. The subsequent tendency was for Marx to ascribe purely reflective and/or manipulative significance to religion per se\ but still to use Christian categories heuristically. In contrast, Weber while clearly accepting some of the reflective functions attributed to religion by Marx, set out in his later comparative work to explore in great detail the palliative-consolatory function of religion - in terms of the idea of individuals seeking salvation in relation to 'the world'' - and the sanctioning function of religion - in terms of the latter's legitimating significance. It was indeed precisely in these areas that the analytic uniqueness of Weber's sociology of religion may be seen. Such emphases in Weber's work facilitated a simultaneous acceptance of the Marxist emphasis upon the link between religion and social stratification and rejection of the idea that religious ideas were simply a reflection of class interest. While Hegel and Marx were the two figures who stood most influentially in the background of Religionssoziologie, other nineteenth-century German intellectuals were also significant. Apart from church-historians, theologians, students of comparative religion, philosophers of religion, and so on — some of whose names have yet to be invoked — particular mention should be made at this juncture of those who emphasized the ideas which can be related to the individualistic, theodical strands of Weber's work. In this 278
Max Weber connection the most striking figures are Kierkegaard, Schopenhauer and Neitzsche. Each of these, in different respects, philosophically advocated modes of release from the historically accumulated constraints of Western sociocultural circumstances. While Weber and his contemporaries were in fact to emphasize the unavoidability of constraint and sociocultural contingency, there is little doubt that the oft-called philosophers of life were influential in supplying images of a range of possible individual relationships to the world. For example, Schopenhauer's own philosophical views heightened interest in eastern modes of individual other-worldliness; while Nietzsche's conception of a mode of individual existence beyond - but not religiously so - the historical society posed a significant array of considerations.26
Convergence and divergence in the crystallization of Religionssoziologie Let us turn in some detail to the early years of the twentieth century, when such people as Max Weber, Ernst Troeltsch and Georg Simmel converged in their characterizations of the modern world and the nature of historical inquiry contingent upon and appropriate to that characterization; as well as in raising in innovatory forms the question of the significance of religion in contemporary, historical and cross-civilizational perspectives. Little or nothing which Max Weber wrote on religion can be regarded as involving an intrinsic focus on that theme. Virtually all of Weber's essays were directed, as he indicated in 1904, at 'the cultural significance of the money-economy'.27 The latter phrase, it should be emphasized, symbolized a number of important themes having to do with the character of modern society; although Weber, while not disavowing the general thrust of Simmel's work on money had reservations about the latter's attempt to centre the analysis of modern life on the increasing salience of money in his book The Philosophy of Money (1900).28 The first published airing of those themes quickly followed in the form of The Protestant Ethic and the Spirit of Capitalism. The latter attempted to show how certain strands of Protestant doctrine - most acutely Calvinism - had facilitated the development of 'a spirit' of self-discipline and calculation relative to an active orientation to worldly activity. Weber insisted that he and his German contemporaries lived in a period during which 'social-economic' phenomena were particularly demanding of attention and were the proper subject-matter for social science. The salience of the 'social-economic', said Weber, is 'constituted by the fact that our physical existence and the satisfaction of our most ideal 279
ROLAND ROBERTSON
needs are everywhere confronted with the quantitative limits and the qualitative inadequacy of the necessary external means . . .'. This was the 'social problem' which had come to very recent fruition. The 'socialeconomic' is, said Weber, 'conditioned by the orientation of our cognitive interest, as it arises from the specific cultural significance which we attribute to the particular event in a given case'.29 We may, Weber, argued, have no immediate interest in the study of religious phenomena in that the latter 'do not primarily interest us with respect to their economic significance'. However, such phenomena 'under certain circumstances do acquire significance . . . because they have consequences which are of interest from the economic point of view'. Weber called these 'economically relevant' phenomena.30 These are phenomena which are economically relevant in that there is an economic aspect to them (as is surely true of all religious forms). To the extent that behaviour in non'economic' affairs is partly influenced by economic motives, it is 'economically relevant'.31 The type of social science in which we are interested is an empirical science of concrete reality . . . Our aim is the understanding of the characteristic uniqueness of the reality in which we move. We wish to understand on the one hand the relationships and the cultural significance of individual events in their contemporary manifestations and on the other the causes of their being historically so and not otherwise.32
Weber's insistence - at least at that stage of his work - upon the individuality of socio-cultural phenomena in historical perspective, and the proximate commitment to particular rather than general causality was closely related to the stress on the potential equality of ideal and material interests. For stress on the paramountcy of one or the other (particularly in the form of either ideal* JT/Z or materialism) was a major basis for subscription to belief in general laws. History was the history of the empirically unique, although of necessity a history written with respect to modern interests. Troeltsch neatly summarized the leading concern of the developing Religionssoziologie: Weber . . . raised the question regarding the spiritual, ethical, and philosophical presuppositions of this system. Without a definite mental and spiritual background, a system of this kind cannot become dominant, or as Sombart . . . expressed it: in the minds of the masses of its supporters, or at least in those of its founders, apart from the external occasions, inducements, and incentives, there must be a definite economic attitude. From the capitalistic system we have to distinguish the 'capitalistic spirit', apart from which the former would never have come to exercise such power over men's minds.33
Whereas Weber's early academic interest had been in history, economics and law (with which he combined a deep concern with political matters), 280
Max Weber Troeltsch had become a theologian because, as said at the end of his life, theology in Germany during the last part of the nineteenth century was a sphere in which it was still possible to engage in open-ended exploration in metaphysics and large-scale historical problems. Troeltsch and Weber had a common interest in the great historical problem of the rise of the prospects for western civilization, and the particular significance of Protestantism in that historical trajectory. It was around the more empirical aspects of that problem that their interests converged. Around the same time that Weber was beginning to repeat the Nietzschean theme of the death-of-god in his iron-cage and disenchantedworld imagery, Troeltsch was announcing that Protestantism was 'fighting for the great life which seeps out of its broken and lifeless body . . .'. The prospect of Protestantism's demise was, Troeltsch argued, 'serious also for modern society, which has thoughtlessly broken all contact with the religious forces operating in it'.34 Weber accepted the 'realism' of the present with particular reference to the immediate and long-term fate of German society, at the same time being concerned - although not directly as a scientist - with the safeguarding of individuals' freedom to pursue their own values. Religion, in particular Protestantism, had played a crucial role in the birth of the modern world, but now had no further part to play. Even in this respect there was still room for a common interest, in that both men were concerned to overcome views which emphasized the achievement of personal meaning at the cost of indifference to or withdrawal from the world. Thus both men, while remaining in a sense prisoners of a Lutheran conception of the relationship between individual and society, between 'religion and world' (notwithstanding their expression of opposition) were keen to show that historically from the very beginning of Christianity religion and world had been deeply intertwined. However, given the different interest-bases of their work, it is not all paradoxical that Weber's Protestant Ethic thesis should have emphasized the significance of 'the religious factor' in the rise of modern capitalism, while Troeltsch's most sociological work, The Social Teachings of the Christian Churches and Sects should have stressed the significance of 'non-religious' factors in the development of Christianity. Upon the idea of the intra-mundaneness of Christianity depended both Weber's thesis concerning the origins of what might be called the hyper-mundaneness of the modern western world and Troeltsch's thesis concerning the modern possibility for a world informed by religious values and beliefs. Both Weber and Troeltsch, but from different perspectives, were eager to demonstrate the socio-cultural power of Christianity in relation to the other major religions of the world and the further 'superiority' of Protestantism within it. 281
ROLAND ROBERTSON
In that respect they continued to probe issues raised by Hegel and Marx. Whereas Hegel had attempted to demonstrate the superiority of Christianity as a fulfilment of the idea of religion, Marx had seen Protestant Christianity as indicating - or, in Hegelian mode, 'representing' - the potential in mankind. Troeltsch sought to find a more realistic basis for Hegel's aspiration to de-alienate the relationship between man and God, while Weber sought to show both how Protestantism had not merely indicated but had been deeply implicated in the crystallization of a world in which the economic, political, scientific, and other, domains had become autonomous. Troeltsch almost continuously sought compromise and re-alignment between the antinomies of the human condition - emphasizing autonomywithin-reciprocity - whereas Weber sought to demonstrate the continuous parcelling-out of human life with different spheres of life each having their own presuppositions and finitudes.35 The significance of the relationship between the work of Weber and Troeltsch (not only in the latter's sociological phase) resides in the fact that even though they differed over the raison d'etre of their oeuvres they converged on two closely related problems of substance. The first of these we may call the 'inner-dialectic' of Christianity as an historical phenomenon; the second has to do with the comparison of the nature and history of Christianity with the other 'higher' religions. In the former case the analytic centrepiece was the contrast between sectarian and churchly ideal-types of Christianity - Weber having, so the story has often been told, convinced Troeltsch of the interpretive potential of the sect-church distinction. Although Weber utilized this distinction in his work on Christianity, it was Troeltsch who worked most thoroughly with it in his large-scale work on the social teaching of Christianity in historical perspective; Troeltsch adding to the sect-church distinction a third type or form of Christianity — namely mysticism.36 (The category of mysticism became more analytically significant to Weber from about 1910 onward.) Weber spoke after the publication of Troeltsch's Social Teachings as if the latter constituted the kind of analysis of Christianity which paralleled Weber's own subsequent work on eastern religions, Islam and ancient Judaism. But that view could not have been expressed without reservation, since although the sect-church dialectic was indeed central to Troeltsch's analysis, Troeltsch had concentrated on social teachings - doctrinallycentred dimensions of the attitudes of the various Christian groups towards 'the world'. On the other hand Weber addressed much more directly the methodical, individual life-style connection between various religious doctrines and 'the world' - with particular attention to ethical matters. At the 282
Max Weber heart of the latter concern was practicality as it related to economic action, Weber weaving into much of his analysis of the connection between religion and economic action the themes of modes of political domination and the social-stratificational aspect of religion. The difference between Troeltsch and Weber in this regard is of great significance. Troeltsch's historical analysis of the social teachings of Christianity was in part sparked by contemporary discussion of'the social problem'. Troeltsch sought to analyse Christian teachings over the ages with respect to the historically emergent sense of increasingly autonomous 'social problems'. His work in that regard was intended — so to say — as a more realistic version of Harnack's influential history of Christian dogma, which itself may be regarded in retrospect as a work following Hegel's suggestion concerning the need for a history of dogma which would examine in detail the impact of'external circumstances' on the 'actual form' of the development of Christianity. Troeltsch went beyond Harnack in regarding the social form of Christianity as a central ingredient of Christianity itself, and in paying explicit, careful attention to Christian teachings about some of the secular domains of societies. Weber, however, pressed this movement away from interest in religious doctrine per se even further. In his words it is 'not the ethical doctrine of a religion, but that form of ethical conduct upon which premiums are placed that matter . . ,'.37 Troeltsch's interest in the sect-church distinction was thus directed at showing that from the earliest period of Christianity the latter had manifested three major forms - the institutional church, the 'brotherly' sect, and mystical individualism (a form of the latter being increasingly salient in modern life). Weber was interested, on the other hand, in the manner in which the tension between sect and church within Christianity promoted (in relation to structures of power, social stratification and the automization of worldly realms) a concern with rationality. In that regard we can see in Troeltsch's work an acknowledged Simmelian interest in a variety oi social forms, rather than a Weberian interest in ideal types established for historical-causal analysis. Whereas Troeltsch wished to show that Christianity was and always had been in significant part an historical-social phenomenon — intimately bound-up with 'the world' (and with nonChristian, Near Eastern teachings) — largely in order to demonstrate Christianity's relevance to the modern world,38 Weber sought to show that relatively recent sectarian Christianity had promoted an image of'the world' which required particularly methodical, individualistic forms of living in and adapting to 'the world'. Such an analytical attitude was particularly demanding. 'Dogma' and 'social teachings' are relatively accessible to the researcher, but the 'form of 283
ROLAND ROBERTSON
ethical conduct upon which premiums are placed' is nowhere near as easy to specify. In fact in The Protestant Ethic Weber relied heavily on an ideal typical reconstruction of the psycho-social circumstances faced by individuals assumed to be subscribers to the extreme form of the Calvinist doctrine of predestination. In other words, Weber tended to specify 'ethical conduct upon which premiums are placed' by inference from his own typification of the beliefs and the social situations of the people in question. This has led to much misunderstanding and charges that Weber's theses lack appropriate empirical evidence. It has also been claimed that in spite of his downgrading of doctrine per se in some of his studies of non-Christian religions - for example, Islam - he did not remain faithful to the procedure of ideal-typical reconstruction of circumstances facing religious individuals, but in fact took doctrines too much at their face value.39 We have seen that Weber eschewed concern with definition of religion. In contrast Troeltsch was, particularly in the early years of the century, greatly concerned with that question, as best seen in his attempt to establish a religious a priori - that is, a fundamental aspect of life-circumstance which made the human individual, at least in part, a religious being. Troeltsch's effort at that stage of his work was to 'vindicate the autonomy of religion by finding a place for "the religious categories" of inspiration and revelation beside the other categories'.40 The subtleties of the relation between Troeltsch's postulation of a religious a priori and his increasing concern during the first decade of the century with the issue of the essence of Christianity cannot be explored here.41 More relevant is the relationship between the concern with essence and his attraction to both Weber's idealtype methodology and Simmel's conception of form. (Hovering in the background to these relationships was undoubtedly the philosophy of science of Rickert, who influenced Simmel, Troeltsch and Weber, although not in precisely the same respects.) In sum, any characterization of the basic features - to use a loose neutral term - of an historical phenomenon (considered in its uniqueness) must involve criteria of and cognitive devices for selection. Selection necessarily takes place in a context - stressed, in slightly different ways by Simmel, Troeltsch and Weber, as a context of the socioculturally circumscribed present. Claiming to receive his most direct inspiration from Jellinek - also acknowledged by Troeltsch - Weber insisted that the process of characterizing a past (or recent) historical phenomenon must be done via a one-sided accentuation of salient empirical characteristics of the phenomenon, which should be portrayed in such an 'ideal' manner as to exhibit its coherence according to principles of internal rationality - all this, relative to matters of 284
Max Weber present 'value relevance'. The important difference between Weber's strong emphasis upon the heuristic and logical, explanatory purposes of the idealtype and Troeltsch's three-pronged typification of Christianity is that the latter used the ideal-type procedure to grasp - more or less directly - the essential features of Christianity as an end in itself; even though Troeltsch agreed that those features were not fixed, as it were, in the 'object' itself, but were cognitively conditioned by present perspectives. In that regard Troeltsch's acknowledgment to Simmel with respect to the latter's conception of social and historical forms is readily understood. For Simmel's/orws were to be grasped by the analyst much more intuitively than Weber's types and with no regard for the explanatory purpose emphasized by Weber. Moreover Simmel's notion of form depended - very much more than Weber's type - on the contention that form (at least in the human domain) partly inhered in, was 'produced' by, the object of inquiry - in this case 'Christianity.' It should also be said that Troeltsch - apparently in what we will see to be a problematic reference to Rickert's philosophy of historical inquiry - used the ideal-type (cum form) procedure in critical mode. Whereas Weber had said that the type was to be used as a (logically) ideal construct with which reality could be compared, Troeltsch maintained that all discussion of essence involved critical evaluation. Such normative uses of typification were in one sense alien to Weber's methodological principles; but it must be said, on the other hand, that Weber did - at least on occasion establish ideal-types in such a way as to draw attention to negative characteristics of phenomena (as in some of his characterizations of modern bureaucracy).42 At the beginning of his most sociological phase Troeltsch suggested that there were analogues of Christian motifs in all other major religions. In that perspective 'the essence is not the original idea but that which realizes itself throughout the whole historical development by continual conflict with and assimilation of foreign elements, deviations, and enemies'.43 (Antoni correctly hinted at an affinity between this perspective and Ranke's notion of 'ideas' inherently active in individuals and conditioned by circumstances.) In fact Troeltsch's first comprehensive attempt to formulate his new Christian apologia in 1902 was an attempt to adjudicate on the 'rivalry between the prophetic, Christian, Platonic and Stoic world of ideas on the one hand, and the Buddhist or Eastern world of ideas on the other'.44 According to Troeltsch, even though he rejected - like Weber, and in defiance of Hegel - any doctrine of progress, the major religions could be ranked and compared 'in terms of the simplicity, depth, and power with which they disclose a higher transcendent life in God'.45 The nuances of the departure 28s
ROLAND ROBERTSON
from the programme which Hegel had followed in order to demonstrate the absoluteness of Christianity are not immediately at issue, except to say that Troeltsch's programme bears a striking methodological resemblance to that of Hegel, in spite of Troeltsch having led-up to the programme via a thorough critique of Hegel's general intentions. What is more to the immediate point is that Troeltsch maintained that 'historical thinking would be incapable of the hypothetical empathy its task requires if there did not come to expression in all historical forms something of the ideals we ourselves hold or that we, by entering into them, might learn to recognize as our own'.46 That theorem, aspects of which had been formulated in the early 1890s (reformulated in 1907) as a presupposition of 'doing history' by Georg Simmel,47 was utilized by Troeltsch as a rationale and procedure for discovering analogies among the motifs of the major world-religions, in addition to analogies between the past of western Christianity and the contemporary situation. That which, as it were, made history possible was also that which facilitated normative comparative analysis. Indeed, from historically grounded comparative analysis Troeltsch sought to make a move toward the discovery of universal values48 - an aim which he may have, in part, been tempted toward by Rickert. However, contrary to much subsequently received wisdom Rickert did not — as he himself, Weber and Troeltsch made very clear - actually state that the study of history led inexorably to the discovery of universal values. Rather Rickert argued that the ongoing study of history has to be based on the ^-//assumption that there are universal values. To Troeltsch Rickert's position, while promising, did not go far enough in making science into a tool for ultimate-value or metaphysical discovery.49 It was in the latter sense that we may view Weber's interest in a universal history as based on the 'fiction' that western instrumental rationality is historically unique and superior. Thus Weber himself increasingly turned to the comparative-historical study of values - within the frame of 'worldimages' - involving a general understanding of the characteristics of nonChristian religions not dissimilar to that of Hegel and Troeltsch. Tied strongly to the view that science could not tell us anything about the values which we should hold and to the analytic conviction that we had no option but to assume western 'superiority', Weber 'imposed' western-Christian concepts on non-western societies. In this he clearly rejected the view of Simmel - who may very well have encouraged Troeltsch in this respect. Knowledge, said Simmel, is 'invariably . . . tied to its psychological and historical conditions. It follows that insight into the real historical conditions 286
Max Weber for the development of these constructs provides a foothold or a point of reference for insight into their trans-historical, super-historical, objective meaning.'50 Simmel's most elaborate example was the case of religion: There are innumerable circumstances of life in which we find ideas, volitional tendencies, and emotional stimuli which - if they are detached from their singular relationships, intensified until they reach the status of an absolute, and concentrated in one point-can become religion. Religion is an autonomous form of life with its own intrinsic properties.51
According to Simmel, the contents of religion always have some function, in that in concrete circumstances they 'serve as indispensable norms or as motive forces of practical processes'. But if they are 'extracted from these everyday processes and placed in relief. . . they ultimately develop into ideal structures; they acquire a structure of a higher order that corresponds to their intellectuality'.52 For Simmel there were three main aspects of life which 'signify transposition into the religious key'. These were reaction to exterior nature, to 'man's fate', and to 'the surrounding world of man'. Simmel emphasized that these dimensions of existence do not cause religiosity or religion, but rather that religiosity (as a 'bacilli culture' from which religion may grow) was a mode of orientation which stressed unity of the individual with the general order of existence. Religious life 'interprets the whole of existence in a peculiar key, so that in keeping with its pure idea, it will not interfere with or contradict worldviews built according to other categories'.53 Thus Simmel proceeded from the assumption that individuals are disposed in certain aspects of their lives to connect themselves in the mode of unification with transcendental existence and that in that respect they define themselves religiously relative to nature, to fate and to the domain of social relations. A 'sociology of religion' had to do with the latter with the comprehension of the manner in which aspects of social life were 'natural' foci for religious sentiment. The most basic of these pivoted upon 'the strange analogy existing between the attitude of the individual toward the godhead and the social reality'.54 The latter view may sound like that of Durkheim. However, Simmel - in contrast to Durkheim - insisted that religious form was in that perspective but one among a number of ways in terms of which society could be 'framed', while in any case the social reference of religion was only one of three major aspects of man's existence which signified 'transposition into the religious key'. In contrast to Simmel's philosophical sociology of religion, Weber's historical sociology of religion addressed the latter as it was implicated in 'singular relationships'. And yet we do find that he showed considerable interest in religion in terms of what Simmel called its form-of-life dimension. Both Simmel and Weber saw life as differentiable into spheres, 287
ROLAND ROBERTSON
Weber's particular interest being in the modern crystallization of 'worldly' spheres. Simmel, on philosophical grounds, and Weber (on ostensibly scientific grounds) both saw the problem of the confusion of spheres as a mark of mystification and thus argued that it was the task of modern man to recognize where one sphere ended and another began. But whereas Simmel spent much time demonstrating these 'life-worlds' in their purity, the cognitive discontinuities between them, and their in-principle overall harmony, Weber was more interested in their intersection in real, historical circumstances. Indeed, what is probably Weber's pivotal essay on religion was devoted precisely to the empirical overlaps and tensions between the realms of'the religion of brotherly love', eroticism, science, art, politics, and economics.55 Taking religion (in the form of brotherly devotion to otherworldly ideals) as his focal point, Weber showed how other realms had developed from a basis of intimate tension with religion — such that in the modern world they were all in tension, institutionally and ethically, with each other. Simmel and Weber appear closer when the philosophical intentions of the one and the sociological analysis of the other are emphasized. Weber's interest in the ethical problems attendant upon the tensions between the realms of modern life appears in the form of the modern individual 'having' to give each realm 'its due'; and thus, in effect, attempting something like a 'harmonization' at the level of the individual. The accumulated substance of Weber's Religionssoziologie In attempting to summarize Weber's historical sociology of religion I will hold relatively constant the sequence of his writings on this subject, which to all intents and purposes began with The Protestant Ethic and ended with his introduction to his collected essays on major religions in their societal and civilizational settings (an essay which appears as an introduction to the English translation of The Protestant Ethic,firstpublished somefifteenyears previously). Nevertheless that sequence must be held firmly in mind — for, as has been shown, the master question concerning the origins of the modern ethos of instrumental rationality exemplified in the secular spirit of modern capitalism and modern bureaucracy guided all of Weber's subsequent endeavours.56 The structure of Weber's sociology of religion may be most fruitfully approached in terms of his historical-evolutionary perspective on the growth of, divergence between and — in part — transformation of the major 'higher' religions. There are four major components in that perspective: primitive religion; Judeo-Christian religion contrasted with Indian religion (as a 288
Max Weber specific exemplification of a West-East contrast); comparisons involving the shift from Catholicism through Lutheran Protestantism to Calvinist Protestantism; and the shift from the latter to the modern secular world.57 This scheme may be elaborated with particular reference to what Weber called 'world-images' - or what might be even more appropriately called 'cosmic images' or 'images of the human condition'. Weber highlighted the importance of this concept by saying that 'ideas - in the form of "worldimages" - have frequently "like switchmen", determined the tracks along which action has been pushed by the dynamic of interest. "From what", and "for what" one wished to be redeemed and, let us not forget, "could be" redeemed, depended upon one's image of the world.' The 'images' constituted the terms in which ideal and material interests would be expressed. Weber argued that it was 'not ideas, but material and ideal interests [which] directly govern men's conduct'.58 Weber's position was that basic images of what constitutes the cosmos in which men and women move and have their being - as well as the broad outlines of the nature of the relationships between the constitutes- form the context for the interpretation of human experience and indicate the kind of action appropriate to experience. Thus while, as we have seen, Weber regarded 'the economic impulse' (and surely also the sexual impulse) as universal he believed that it was always - to change metaphors - as a matter of degree, channelled. (In the West the outcome of successive 'stages' of channelling was the sublimation of the economic impulse, so that economic matters eventually seemed to be paramount — a modern circumstance which had undoubtedly been reached by a transformation of a basic image of the human condition.) In other words, the play of interests - both material and ideal - takes place within a context of meaning (otherwise it would be meaning/m to talk about interests at all). Weber was, in this respect, able to relativize the Marxian emphasis upon economic materiality by stipulating the significance of'world-images' - sometimes called 'irrational presuppositions', in wider focus than Kantian notions of rational presuppositions. In so doing he found an historical-evolutionary 'place' (of great significance) for religion, while at the same time being able to claim that he was more of an economic determinist than many of his contemporaries realised. As we have seen, the relationship between the economic and 'the spiritual' lies at the very core of Weber's sociology as a whole (although he once said, more or less en passant, that it was sex which constitutes the pivotal infrastructure of religion). In that general regard he differs not one jot from Durkheim. But whereas the latter saw collective social life - which itself yielded the religious sentiment - as prior to an intrusive economic factor (and 289
ROLAND ROBERTSON
implicitly a sexual factor), Weber veered much more in the direction of believing that in the beginning there was, so to say, economic-material want. Economically oriented magic constituted religion in embryo. Thus the mode of channelling economic want was in terms of the instrumental deployment of charismatic-magical power. Weber seems to say that in terms of this most basic image of the world — of the near-fusion of instrumentally based spirituality and non-rationalized economic want - there developed slowly a sense of two relatively independent realms, the spiritual and the social-material. This development was facilitated by the embryonic growth of spiritual specialists (magicians and eventually priests); and strata (whose differences in relation to the respective images of the world were crucial in giving the latter particular characteristics); and of conceptions of gods. The character of dualistic world images was in fact the central analytical - as opposed to purely historical feature of Weber's sociology of religion. Actually Weber reserved the conception of dualism for Zoroastrianism which as such had direct historical significance, said Weber, only - but certainly not unimportantly - for late Judaistic conceptions of final judgment. On the other hand, the term 'dualism' is used in the present context to refer to all world-images which divide the cosmos into clearly distinguishable spiritual and mundane realms. In any case, Weber maintained that as ideas about two domains of the cosmos were rationalized (in the sense of systematized) there, in turn, developed an increasing need for 'an ethical interpretation of the "meaning" of the distributions of fortunes among men . . . As . . . reflections upon the world were increasingly rationalized . . . and magical notions were eliminated, the theodicy of suffering encountered increasing difficulties. Individually "undeserved" woe was all too frequent . . .'59 In highly ideal-typical terms - or, in more Simmelian language, in what Weber called 'pure form' - there are three 'rationally closed' solutions to the question concerning 'the basis for the incongruity between destiny and merit'. The first of these is closest to the primordial magical circumstance, in the sense that it maintains that the powers of good and evil, pure and impure, truth and falsehood are in a state of continuing conflictful, co-existence. This was what Weber called, in his highly circumscribed sense dualism; on the grounds that it involves ideal-typically a direct sublimation of the primordial conception of the relationship between good and evil spirits. As such it lacks the components of world rejection or, perhaps even more fundamentally, the components of a problem susceptible to practical-ethical resolution. The only solution to this conception is that in the historical future the power of good will triumph over the power of evil - which Weber claimed to be not 290
Max Weber truly 'consistent' with the original premise of the co-existence of good and evil powers. Thus while such ideas had indeed influenced late Judaism (and had in turn been partly responsible for the 'pariah status' of Diaspora Jewish religion) the capacity for this theodicy to form the matrix for rationalization of the practical-ethical type was extremely limited. This kind of theodicy could only explain suffering and injustice in reference to the guilt of ancestors, while as compensatory promises hopes for successors could be stressed. However, notwithstanding the weakness of the Zoroastrian-type of theodicy vis-a-vis its potential for world-consequential rationalization, Weber clearly considered it to be a fairly widespread phenomenon in its less consistent form as 'the modern eschatological hope'.60 Thus it was to two other conceptions of salvation — the two highest forms of world-rejecting salvation doctrine - that Weber turned his attention. Doctrines oi rebirth explain suffering and injustice in reference to individual sin committed in a former life; while the associated compensatory promise involves hopes for a better life in this world in the future (transmigration). Sublimated doctrines of rebirth - in contrast to widespread primitivemagical conceptions of such - hinge considerably upon, most important, conceptions of the supramundane realm as one oi eternal being and, more or less derivatively, of the conception of the human individual as a vessel which may receive, through appropriate discipline, qualities of eternal being. The most sublimated form of the rebirth theodicy is actually, on Weber's reading, that involving the aspiration to escape altogether from the transmigatory 'wheel'. On the other hand, Weber emphasized that while we must be mindful of the highest forms of salvational aspiration in reference to a supramundane realm, all salvation religions have manifested more proximate levels of aspiration in relation to the immediate life-context. Thus the religious virtuoso in the rebirth-oriented setting will aspire to a religious state of feeling cosmic love, while the ordinary adherent will seek, and in a way feel saved by, a sense of beingfilled,as a vessel, with spiritual attributes. So much for the most sublimated form of what may be described as an other-worldly, mystical kind of world rejection. The nearest empirical approximation to the most sublimated form of the latter was that of intellectual religion in ancient Buddhism.61 But, rather more generally, Weber tended to speak of Hindu religion - or even Indian religion as a whole as an empirical manifestation of this type of theodicy. Apart from some observations on religion in Japan, Weber's other major focus in the eastern civilizational context was that of China. While manifesting some of the general tendencies at the level of images of the world - for example in the tendency on the part of the virtuoso to allow the masses to stay within a 291
ROLAND ROBERTSON
generally magical tradition - China was conspicuous for its manifesting a religion of accommodation. In other words it went very little in the direction of developing a religion of systematic world rejection. It did not in its Confucian metaphysical or philosophical form - nor certainly in its Taoist, basically magical form - posit much of a tension between the supramundane and the mundane. In fact the idea of the mandate of heaven meant that much effort was expended on maintaining the world as 'an enchanted garden'. Troeltsch's emphasis upon the strength of Christianity residing largely in its implication in 'the world' - its tendency to compromise - is thrown into sharp relief by Weber's analysis of China. For the latter was, as far as Weber was concerned, the case of religious compromise par excellence. In Weber's perspective the implications of an other-worldly form of religion of world rejection were not worked-out in China, this having in large part to do with the stratum of the literati, the main bearer of Confucianism.62 Thus using Hinduism as the case of closest widespread approximation to the theodicy based upon other-worldly, mystical rejection of the world Weber was able to set-up a contrast with the sublimated form of innerworldly, ascetic rejection of the world to be found in western religion. In the latter case Christianity was the most general religious manifestation of this theodical orientation, with its highest form of sublimation being reached in the predestinarian doctrine of the Calvinists. Judaistic notions of a monotheistic conception of the supramundane had, of course, played a great part in the origination of this theodical orientation - the passage from Judaism to Christianity being marked by the new emphasis upon the universal accessibility of salvation, as opposed to the ethnic-group restriction of the salvational focus {via the notion of a covenant with God) of ancient Judaism. Weber's detailed analysis of ancient Judaism was not followed by the projected work on early and subsequent Christianity.63 In its pure form the most sublimated religion of the inner-worldly ascetic type is centred upon a conception of salvation involving the notion of redemption, in which suffering and injustice is explained in reference to the wickedness of all humans per se, and the compensatory promise refers to a better life in the hereafter. This salvational orientation is intimately related to the development of a personalized conception of an all-powerful and allwise, but inaccessible God. Concomitantly, the conception of the individual is of the latter as an instrument of God's will. While salvation in reference to the hereafter is the ideal-religious salvational aspiration, the sense of being saved in a here-and-now context takes the elite form of self-diagnosed certitude, an internally-generated sense of'sainthood', while the mass form, according to Weber, takes the form of a non-indulgent sense of achievement of God's will. 292
Max Weber In its most proximate empirical manifestation - namely the Calvinist sects of Britain in the sixteenth to eighteenth centuries - the doctrinal centrepiece of this theodical form was that of predestination. The latter doctrine paralleled the karma doctrine of India in its remarkable consistency with respect to the metaphysical rationalization of a basic image. The seriousness with which the inner-worldly orientation was combined with a highly monotheistic conception of God led to a doctrine which claimed that only a few - the elect - would be saved, that notion being based upon the unlimited powers and knowledge attributed to God in relation to the idea that this world was the site of genuinely religious action. Calvinism combined a strict rejection of the world, in the sense of commanding highly disciplined and insulated individual action in the world for all, with a starkly elitist conception of other-worldly salvation. In this it paralleled in its remarkable accomplishment the Indian intellectual tendency to combine 'virtuoso-like self-redemption by man's own effort with universal accessibility of salvation, the strictest rejection of the world with organic social ethics, and contemplation as the paramount path to salvation with an inner-worldly vocational ethic'.64 But the crucial difference was that whereas the latter sanctioned a static, traditionalistic social order, the former had the inbuilt tendency to demand of individuals that they understand the world in order that they might be better able to live in an active and purposeful - but ascetic - relationship to it. That perspective thus encouraged a more definite thrust in the direction of practical-ethical rationalization, in contrast to the socialorganizational ethical thrust of Hinduism (as exemplified in the caste system). It is at this point that we turn from discussion of the way in which doctrinal systems erected in close connection with basic images of the world become rationalized to another level of rationalization — namely, practicalethical or methodical life-style rationalization. Even though the latter type of rationalization is indeed applicable to the Oriental context it is less applicable than to the Christian West because of the latter's manifestation of a positive as opposed to a negative — tension between the two levels of the cosmos. By a positive tension I mean a tension which should be resolved by making worldly and other-worldly action worker each other, rather than trying to escape from one to the other. This negative attitude toward the economic realm in the Hindu context contrasts strongly with the Christian tendency, relatively speaking, to bring the economic under control. Weber argued that magic was encouraged by the former attitude, while technical mastery was encouraged by the latter. Thus — as Schluchter has shown — Weber operated with three levels of rationalization: the metaphysical; the practical; and the technical.65 In the primal beginning there had been the definite seeds of the 293
ROLAND ROBERTSON
first and the third (in conceptions of spirits, on the one hand, and of magical abilities, on the other). Weber's particular interest was in the manner in which rationalization at the first level differentially produced rationalization at the third level, leaving - particularly in the western case - a 'gap' for the process of practical-ethical rationalization. It was in the latter respect that Weber was so interested in the differences between Catholicism and Protestantism - and, more particularly, in the sequence of Catholicism; Lutheranism; Calvinism. For Weber that sequence involved a very important set of processes of rationalization within a circumstance, to re-employ Schluchter's phrase, of theocentric dualism leading eventually, to the transformation of the latter into a man-centred form of dualism. (In the latter circumstance Weber seemed to argue that the 'theodical' problem centred not upon modes of rejection of the world, but rather upon modes of accommodation to a world now sublimated in terms of its domain-specific sets of internal 'laws'.) Although Weber did not produce a detailed work on Catholicism it is not difficult to co-ordinate his thinking about it, much of which appears in his writings on charisma.66 Leaving largely on one side the issue of the Catholic image of the world as a topic in its own right, we can see that for Weber the primary significance of Catholicism had been to organize the Christian principles of world rejection in a particularly systematic manner. In that regard it adopted strategies centred upon the premise of the church having a major insulating influence over the lives of individuals and at the same time being a potent force in worldly affairs. Thus the Catholic Church sought to institutionalize religiosity in specific organizational patterns, with particular reference to the maintenance of the spiritual core of the Christian message. In classical Catholicism charisma was institutionalized in two major forms. On the one hand, the Church itself was sacralized via the office of the Pope and the priestly hierarchy which was subordinate to that office. On the other hand, the institution of the monastery involved the establishment of a special form of insulation from worldly contingency — where the spiritual dimension of life could be cultivated on a full-time basis. In both cases - as Weber put it - the major enemy of charisma was economic necessity and the pursuit of economic gain. Although in one sense admiring the ingenuity involved in the attempt both to acknowledge organizational contingency and preserve a large degree of the original charismatic impulse of Christianity, Weber nevertheless used his discussion of the hierarchically structured charisma of the Catholic Church as the springboard for his idea concerning the routinization of charisma. In its most general form that idea states that all kinds of idealism are subject to attenuation, particularly when embodied in an organizational setting. 294
Max Weber Thus Weber's interest in the transition from Catholicism to Protestantism centred upon the revolt against the non-religious dimension of the Catholic hierarchy, on the one hand, and the sequestered nature of monastic religiosity, on the other. In Lutheran form this revolt resulted in the severe reduction of priestly mediation between humanity and God and the making of life into a kind of monastery. However, that Lutheran reformation was mounted in specific reference to the exemption of many worldly activities from the category of site of religious action; and it was thus to Calvinism that Weber turned in order to discover that mode of religious thought which had made the entire sphere of worldly affairs into a site for religious action. In a sense Calvinism represented the final dispersal of charisma into the world, but at the same time yielding a view that the world had to be comprehended in its own terms. Lutheranism had, as it were, bared the world for the subsequent Calvinist attempt to conquer it. The generalization of the central elements of the latter aspect of the Calvinist perspective resulted, according to Weber, in a situation (particularly evident in nineteenth-century America) involving two mutually amplifying orientations. On the one hand, in the major religious 'sects' individuals were encouraged to engage in activities which were instrumental to the purposes of God. On the other hand, they were encouraged to be worthy of respect in the eyes of their fellow-men. The Protestant sects in this regard thus became producers of legitimate persons - persons who had been certified by religious test as morally upright and who could be regarded by virtue of the knowledge of the tests to which they had been subjected as trustworthy - notably with respect to business activity. This simultaneity of religiosity and secularity was for Weber the apogee of the long-process of working out the practical-ethical ramifications of the Occidental image of the world. Central to the development of that primarily-American circumstance involving the production of legitimate participants on an impersonal basis in worldly activity had been, said Weber in The Protestant Ethic, the mode of practical-ethical dealing with the doctrine of predestination.67 In the face of the latter's emphasis upon the preordained restriction of the proportion of individuals who would be thoroughly saved, individuals responded by looking increasingly for concrete, worldly signs of their preordained status. In conjunction with relatively independent economic developments this resulted in a form of economic achievement-orientation necessary to the rise of modern calculative, disciplined capitalism and bureaucracy (as well as democracy). The transformation of the circumstance of theocentric dualism into one of anthropocentric dualism, as Schluchter interprets Weber, involves, on the one hand, autonomization of the double-headed spirit of capitalism and 295
ROLAND ROBERTSON
bureaucracy - in the sense of the disciplined organization of the pursuit of gain and efficiency as a worthy effort in its own right-and a sublimation of the supramundane-centred concern with salvation into a purely secular concern with worldly success, on the other.68 And yet Weber acknowledges that there will continue to be religious responses - notably those of a mystical variety - to the autonomization of the secular domains of the world. But these cannot because they lack an overarching conception of a supramundane domain standing, as it were, over the secular world - provide the seeds for a new practical-ethical life-style. Rather in the situation of man-centred dualism the tension which used to exist between this and a beyond-world has been transformed into one in which tensions exist between a number of laterally as opposed - to vertically related realms of life. At this point in his argument Weber attempts to hold together both sociological and ethical-perspective modes of discourse - the practical-ethical attempts to deal with the new kind of tension are still very much in the making. Weber is himself a participant in the working-out of post-Christian ethics. There are two reasons for my having devoted so much of this discussion to the interest of Weber in religious ideas and the relationship between those ideas and processes of rationalization. First, there has been a concern to compare and contrast Weber's attitudes and conclusions with those of others who contributed to the making of early-twentieth-century German sociology of religion. Second, there can be little doubt that Weber himself regarded such discussion as being in the last analysis of greater importance than any other kind of historical-sociological mode of discourse about the human condition from the perspective of the modern westerner. For those to whom no causal explanation is adequate without an economic . . . interpretation, it may be remarked that I consider the influence of economic development on the fate of religious ideas to be very important . . . O n the other hand, those religious ideas . . . are . . . beyond doubt . . . the most powerful . . . elements of national character, and contain a law of development and a compelling force entirely their own. Moreover, the most important differences, so far as non-religious factors play a part, are . . . the result of political circumstances, not economic. 6 9
The overall structure of Weber's sociology of religion may be summarized as follows. World-images constitute the context in which the relationship between the most supramundane and the most mundane features of the human condition are framed. Interests develop in relation to both poles of world-images - the spiritual aspirations and the mundane referents - in complex patterns of interpenetration; but with images of the world and the rationalization processes relating to them having much greater, historicalcultural continuity and thus, in the last analysis, more importance. The 296
Max Weber manner in which religious ideas (in the broad form of images and the more specific form of doctrines) exert their impact is in terms of the practicalethical application of them to 'worldly' circumstance (for which they are in any case partly responsible). This application takes the form - through Weber's assumption of a drive toward cognitive-ethical consistency - of rationalization. The process of application is itself conditioned by two major sets of social circumstances. First, there is what might be called (following Marxian convention) the division of spiritual labour. This itself has two aspects - the way in which the religious organization or community is organized, with particular reference to religious leadership;70 and the pattern obtaining between religion and society, with particular reference to the relationship between 'religion' and political-governmental power.71 Second, the practical-ethical application of religious ideas is conditioned by the nature of the relevant system of social strata, with particular reference to 'the strata whose styles of life have been at least predominantly decisive for certain religions'.72 In summation it may be said that Weber's greatest innovation and achievement was to 'operationalize' the concept of'religion' in such a way as to make it a highly determinative factor in the perspective of universal history - but to do so by rendering religion in cultural and social terms. Religion made its impact via human processes of systematization of religious ideas relative to concrete, mundane circumstances and via the social-status characteristics of dominant bearers and the division of religious labour. In so doing he rendered many of Hegel's theonomic ideas in empirically accessible and, in the literal sense, atheistic form. He also met the challenge offered by Marx and Engels who had so 'economized' religion as to make it largely of epiphenomenal significance.73 In all of this Weber insisted as he said on the crucial, relatively independent significance of political circumstances.74 Whereas there was a tendency - nowadays a matter of some dispute - among Marxists to make both politics and religion derivative of economic factors, with religion being used by the politically powerful to maintain their economic strength, Weber saw religion and 'the economic' impulse in tension', with political circumstances operating in relative - in a sense mediating - independence of both. Insisting, moreover, that social status and prestige operated in relative independence of economic class and that the former was historically of greater importance in establishing styles of life the immediate background for the development of historically significant theodicies - Weber was able, at one and the same time, to link religion to social stratification and claim also that there was civilizational and historical variation with respect to the relationship between religion and both social 297
ROLAND ROBERTSON
status and economic class. Much of that perspective had undoubtedly been sparked by his interest in the origins of modern capitalism and his early rejection of the idea that Christianity had originated as a lower-class movement. Weber could not see how a lower-class movement could have developed or been the major bearer of a religious orientation which came increasingly to stress compensatory ethics. Only a stratum or class which faced a situation requiring practical, calculative resolution of tensions between its relatively important social standing, its this-worldly rewards, and its individualistic efforts could have been central to the development of such an ethos.75 Coda The irony of Weber's work and his treatment of religion in particular is that he pioneered the sociological study of a phenomenon whose time had passed. His gigantic effort to comprehend the place of religion in universal-historical perspective paved the way for his arguments to the effect that we now live in a post-Christian era. But in that regard the 'post' has to be taken very seriously - for the major dilemmas upon which the major world religions were structured continue to exist, in exacerbated form. Thus the practical-ethical accomplishments of the major world-religions, but primarily Christianity, constitute historical models as we now struggle with ethical problems in a disenchanted world. Those models cannot be re-used in the modern era; but the challenge of developing practical-ethical orientations can gain inspiration from them. Now we must learn to live ethically in the midst of and in constructive reference to heavily autonomized realms, none of which we can claim to be more legitimate than another. If that is the main 'message' of Weber's historical sociology of religion there can be no doubt that his work provides a rich set of insights and leads regarding a wide range of historical and sociological problems. In fact the effort to build upon Weber's work quite regardless of the ethical problems which he raised - has only just begun. In any case it is more than likely that the effort to advance beyond Weber will have - as he did - to work simultaneously at both clarification of ethical problems and the analysis in historical-evolutionary perspective of the making of the world in which we now live.
298
Max Weber
Notes 1 Wolfgang Schluchter, 'The Paradox of Rationalization: On the Relation of Ethics and World', in Guenther Roth and Wolfgang Schluchter, Max Weber s Vision of History (Berkeley, 1979), pp. 11-64. 2 Max Weber, The Protestant Ethic and Spirit of Capitalism, tr. Talcott Parsons (New York, 1958). 3 Max Weber, Roscher and Knies: The Logical Problems of Historical Economics, tr. Guy Oakes (New York, 1975), pp. 67-73. 4 See Weber's contributions in Johannes Winckelmann (ed.), Max Weber: Die Protestantische Ethik, 11 (Hamburg, 1972). 5 Max Weber, The Agrarian Sociology of Ancient Civilizations, tr. R. I. Frank (London, 1976), pp. 258-9. 6 Max Weber, Economy and Society, ed. Guenther Roth and tr. Claus Wittich (2 vols., Berkeley, 1978). 7 This notion Weber derived from the philosophy and methodology of science and history of Rickert. There can be no doubt that Weber's general methodological views were substantially in line with those of Rickert, although Weber wrote much on methodological topics not covered by Rickert. See in particular Weber, Roscher and Knies, pp. 213 and 267; and Heinrich Rickert, Science and History, tr. George Reisman (New York, 1962). 8 Max Weber, General Economic History, tr. Frank H. Knight (New York, 1927). 9 Weber, General Economic History, p. 356. 10 Weber, General Economic History, p. 356. This schematization of Weber's views on the rationalization of the economic impulse derives from the entire corpus of his work. 11 A few of the ideas in this and subsequent paragraphs have been inspired by Paul Tillich, Perspectives on igth and 20th Century Protestant Theology (New York, 1967). 12 Simmel was to put this point very sharply: 'The very prejudice which tries to establish the dignity of religion by rejecting its historical-psychological source is subject to the approach of debility of religious consciousness.' Georg Simmel, Sociology of Religion, tr. Curt Rosenthal (New York, 1959), p. 76. 13 Cf. Roland Robertson, 'Religious Movements and Modern Societies: Toward a Progressive Problemshift', Sociological Analysis, 40, 4 (1979), 297-314. 14 Bernard M. G. Reardon, Hegel1 s Philosophy of Religion (New York, 1977), p. 50. 15 Undoubtedly Weber 'knew his Hegel', but, on the other hand he could not have known Hegel's early works until the publication of the latter in 1907. Weber's for-a-time friend, Lukacs, wrote in a generally historical-sociological mode about the early Hegel: Georg Lukacs, The Young Hegel, tr. Rodney Livingstone (New York, 1966). 16 G. W. F. Hegel, Early Theological Writings, tr. T. M. Knox (Chicago, 1948), p. 145. 17 Weber, Economy and Society, p. 1209. 18 See Rudolph Sohm, Outlines of Church History (London, 1913; originally published in German in 1895); and Georg Jellinek, Declaration of the Rights of Man and Citizens, tr. Max Farrand (New York, 1901). 19 Weber, Economy and Society, p. 1209; Hegel, Early Theological Writings, p. 145. 20 In a letter to Ruge (1843). Quoted in Delos B. McKown, The Classical Marxist Critiques of Religion (The Hague, 1975), p. 17. 21 Karl Marx, 'Critique of Hegel's Philosophy of Right', in Early Writings, tr. Rodney Livingstone and Gregor Benton (New York, 1975), pp. 244-5. 22 Marx, 'Theses on Feuerbach', in Early Writings, p. 422. 23 On the significance of the two-kingdoms notion for Weber and Durkheim, see Roland Robertson, 'The Problem of the Two Kingdoms', Journal for the Scientific Study of Religion, 17, 3 (1978), 306-12.
299
ROLAND ROBERTSON 24 McKown, The Classical Critiques, p. 34. 25 Frederick Engels, 'Introduction to the English Edition of Socialism: Utopian and Scientific', in K. Marx and F. Engels, On Religion (Moscow, 1958), p. 301. 26 A number of aspects of the history of individualistic and mystical ideas in German thought and their relation to Weber's work are considered in Roland Robertson, Meaning and Change (New York, 1978), pp. 103-47. 27 Max Weber, ' "Objectivity" in Social Science', in Max Weber, The Methodology of the Social Sciences, tr. and edited by E. A. Shils and H. A. Finch (New York, 1949), pp. 49-112. 28 Georg Simmel, The Philosophy ofMoney, tr. Tom Bottomore and David Frisby (London, 1978). 29 Weber, 'Objectivity,' p. 64. 30 Ibid. 31 Ibid., p. 65. 32 Ibid., p. 72. 33 Troeltsch, Protestantism and Progress, tr. W. Montgomery (Boston, 1958), pp. 132-3. Discussion of the significant contributions of Sombart to the focus of Religionssoziologie on capitalism cannot be undertaken here, nor can specification of the great importance of Tonnies in the development of German sociology from the 1880s onward, with particular reference to the analysis of the main underpinnings of the modern Gesellschaft. 34 Quoted in Carlo Antoni, From History to Sociology, tr. Hayden White (Detroit, 1959), P- 4435 The conception of autonomy-in-reciprocity as it applies to Troeltsch's work is cogently displayed in John Powell Clayton, 'Can Theology be both Cultural and Christian?', in B. E. Patterson (ed.), Science Faith, and Revelation (Nashville, 1979), pp. 82-111. 36 Ernst Troeltsch, The Social Teachings of the Christian Churches, tr. Olive Wyon (2 vols., New York, i960), originally published over the years 1908-12. 37 Max Weber, 'The Protestant Sects and the Spirit of Capitalism', in H. H. Gerth and C. Wright Mills (eds.), From Max Weber, tr. H. H. Gerth and C. Wright Mills (London, 1948), p. 321. See also Weber's negative attitude toward 'the ethical theories of theological compendia' in 'The Sociology Psychology of the World Religions', in Gerth and Mills, From Max Weber, p. 267. 38 See in particular Ernst Troeltsch, The Absoluteness of Christianity and the History of Religions, tr. David Reid (Richmond, Va., 1971). 39 For criticism and a useful synthesis of Weber's writings on Islam, see Bryan S. Turner, Weber and Islam (London, 1974). 40 Antoni, From History to Sociology, p. 50. 41 See in particular Ernst Troeltsch, 'What Does "Essence of Christianity" Mean?', in Robert Morgan and Michael Pye (eds.), Ernst Troeltsch: Writings on Theology and Religion, tr. Michael Pye (London, 1977), pp. 124-80. 42 See Wolfgang Mommsen, The Age ofBureaucracy: Perspectives in the Political Sociology of Max Weber (Oxford, 1974). This interpretation of Weber in fact makes the latter's position appear quite close to that of Troeltsch (who is not discussed) in reference to the notion of ideal-typification as criticism. 43 Antoni, From History to Sociology, p. 53. 44 Troeltsch, Absoluteness of Christianity, p. 93. 45 Ibid., p. 94. 46 Ibid., p. 95. 47 Georg Simmel, The Problems of the Philosophy of History, tr. Guy Oakes (New York, J 977)48 Weber, Roscher and Knies, p. 267; and Rickert's report on the ways in which Troeltsch 'repeatedly [took] issue with my views', Rickert, Science and History, p. 154. 300
Max Weber 49 The first sentence of Weber's introduction to the first volume of his collected works on the major civilizational religions reads: 'A product of modern European civilization, studying any problem of universal history, is bound to ask himself to what combination of circumstances the fact should be attributed that in Western civilization, and in Western civilization only, cultural phenomena have appeared which (as we like to think) lie in a line of development having universal significance and value.' (First emphasis added.) Weber, 'Author's Introduction' [1920], in Protestant Ethic, p. 13. It is doubtful, however, whether Weber would have approved of Rickert's later semi-agreement with Troeltsch that 'the assumption of a third realm (beyond the empirical reality of the world of sense and the nonsensorial, valid values) [is] indispensable'. Rickert, Science and History, p. 154. 50 Simmel, Problems of the Philosophy of History, pp. 158-9. 51 Ibid., p. 159. 52 Simmel, Sociology ofReligion, p. 5. Weber clearly rejected the view that Simmel advanced concerning piety being the central social ingredient of religion. For piety was traditionsupporting and Weber was interested in the change-inducing as well as the status quoconfirming aspect of religion - hence Weber's interest in anti-traditional forms of charismatic leadership. 53 Simmel, Sociology of Religion, p. 5. 54 Ibid., p. 5. 55 Max Weber, 'Religious Rejections of the World and Their Directions', in Gerth and Mills (eds.), From Max Weber, pp. 323-59. (Three versions of this crucial essay were written during the last eight or so years of Weber's life, the final version having the title: 'Intermediate Reflections. Theory of the Stages and Directions of the Religious Rejections of the World'.) 56 That question was closely interwoven with other questions - philosophical, methodological, historical, economic and political in nature. Some of these are mentioned in the present essay, but many are not. Cf. Benjamin Nelson, 'Weber's Protestant Ethic: Its Origins, Wanderings, and Foreseeable Futures', in Charles Y. Glock and Phillip Hammond (eds.), Beyond the Classics? (New York, 1973), pp. 7iff. 57 Aspects of the ensuing discussion have been inspired by Schluchter, 'Paradox of Rationalization'. See also Robertson, Meaning and Change, pp. 128-43. 58 Weber, 'Social Psychology of the World Religions', p. 280. ('The Economic Ethic of the World Religions' was the title given by Weber. It formed the substantive introduction to the first volume of Weber's collected essays on religion.) 59 Weber, 'Social Psychology of the World Religions', p. 275. 60 Weber, 'Religious Rejections of the World', p. 358. 61 Max Weber, The Religion of India, tr. Hans H. Gerth (New York, 1951), p. 233. 62 Max Weber, The Religion of China, tr. Hans H. Gerth (New York, 1951). In the important concluding chapter Weber compared Confucianism and western Puritanism with particular reference to the manner in which the Protestant-Puritan sects shattered the ties of and loyalties to particularistic groups and categories in their pursuit of a demanding individual-centred ethic. 63 However, Weber's sustained series of generalizations about 'Religious Groups' involved him in making a number of statements about early Christianity. Weber, Economy and Society, pp. 399-63464 Weber, 'Religious Rejections of the World', p. 359. 65 Schluchter, 'Paradox of Rationalization'. These levels of rationalization are not given exactly the same names as those provided by Schluchter - who by naming the first level as metaphysical-ethical detracts from the significance of the emphasis on the practicality of ethical innovation in Weber's work. 66 Weber talks about charisma in many parts of his work. But see in particular reference to this and the following paragraphs: Weber, Economy and Society, pp. 1111-211. 301
ROLAND ROBERTSON 67 Weber's 'Protestant Sects' (primarily about America) was, he insisted, a crucial elaboration of the thesis expressed in Protestant Ethic. Processes of depersonalization - the breaking down of particularistic criteria — were pivotal foci of Weber's universal history. Occidental salvation religion, generally, and the Protestant sects, particularly, had strongly facilitated the growth of the impersonality essential to the triumph of the market principle in modern capitalism, the principle of technical qualification in modern bureaucracy, and the principle of equality in democracy. 68 On the other hand, Weber thought that there was a tendency among certain kinds of intellectuals to sublimate religiosity into intense brotherhoods of fellow-believers in relation to ethical and spiritual issues. The pursuit of ethics of conviction had now in the modern world become a sublimated realm - relatively free of overarching, rationalized metaphysical systems. The issue of the relationship between the ethic of conviction and the ethic of responsibility was addressed in Weber's 'Politics as a Vocation' and 'Science as a Vocation', in Gerth and Mills (eds.), From Max Weber, pp. 77-156. The respects in which core Occidental inner-worldly, asceticism was transformed into a primarily 'hygienically oriented utilitarianism' were expanded in footnote additions to the original version of Protestant Ethic. 69 Weber, Protestant Ethic, pp. 277-8. Weber's reference to national character here is intriguing. It suggests that cutting across his analysis of the major world religions was another dimension concerning variation in particular relationships between 'religion and society'. In any case his major analyses of Asian religion were about societies (India and China). 70 At the core of this concern was the difference between Judaistic, ethical prophecy and Indian exemplary prophecy. The former was the historical basis for the subsequent attempts within Christianity to institutionalize charisma and later developments discussed above. 71 This was treated by Weber in Economy and Society (pp. 1158-210) primarily in reference to three major types of religion/politics patterns. There were certain affinities between particular world-images and political powers. Thus the world image of the other-worldly, mystical type tended in the direction of a theocratic relationship between religion and political power - the purest form of theocracy having been realized in Lamaist Tibet. (That is not to suggest that theocracy was impossible elsewhere.) Theocracy was that form of societal governance which involved a subordination of political power to institutionally embedded religious ideas. At the western extreme to the case of theocracy we find a hierocratic tendency - an affinity between the inner-worldly, ascetic world image and a form ofrelatively independent religious governance over portions of life. (A third type of religion-society relationship was exemplified in the pattern of caesaropapism - involving a subordination of the organized religion-oriented realm to the political realm.) 72 Weber, 'Social Psychology of the World Religions', p. 282. Confucianism was borne by men with literary educations characterized by secular rationalism; Hinduism first by a cultured literati separated from formal office and later by the 'plebian mystagogues of the lower strata'; Buddhism by contemplative, migrant monks; Islam first by warriors and later by 'plebian technicians of orgiastics'; Judaism since the Exile by a 'pariah people' under the leadership of a 'rationalist petty-bourgeois intelligentsia'; and Christianity first by 'itinerant artisan journeymen' and later by urban, civic lower-middle and middle strata (pp. 282-3). 73 While Marx provided the specific target for Weber's conception of the relative independence of the status aspect of social stratification, a critique of Nietzsche's theory of resentment and slave morality was also an important part of Weber's ideas about religion and social stratification. Part of that critique involved the contention that there were theodicies of good as well as bad fortune.
302
Max Weber 74 Weber spoke much of the degrees to which religion in specific circumstances could legitimate political regimes. While Weber insisted on the relative independence of the political realm - and its capacity to shape, inhibit or facilitate the growth of religions - his general tendency was to focus upon affinities between specific religious forms and types of political domination or authority. 75 Weber's overriding interest was in strata disposed to develop the most sublime forms of salvation religion. Once 'attachment to purely magical or ritualistic views has been broken by prophets or reformers, there has . . . been a tendency for artisans, craftsmen and petty-bourgeois to incline toward a . . . rationalistic ethical and religious view of life'. Weber, Economy and Society, p. 484.
Bibliographical essay Since Hegel, Marx and Troeltsch are dealt with in other bibliographical essays the focus here is upon Weber's writing on religion and closely related themes, with some supplementary discussion of Simmel. Weber began his systematic exploration of the relationship between religion and the processes of rationalization leading to the modern, western kind of society with The Protestant Ethic and the Spirit of Capitalism, tr. Talcott Parsons (New York, 1958). The latter volume contains an 'Introduction' which was in fact written some fifteen years later in connection with the entire first volume of Weber's collected essays on the major world religions and on the theoretical perspective employed in studying the latter. It should also be realized that this is a revision of the original 1904-5 version of The Protestant Ethic, containing important additional notes. Shortly after The Protestant Ethic Weber wrote 'The Protestant Sects and the Spirit of Capitalism', which he considered a crucial supplement to the theses contained in the longer statement. This is to be found in Hans H. Gerth and C. Wright Mills (eds.), From Max Weber, tr. Hans H. Gerth and C. Wright Mills (London, 1948), pp. 302-22. 'The Protestant Sects' was revised on a number of occasions, some of the details of such revision being discussed in Stephen Berger, 'The Sects and the Breakthrough into the Modern World: On the Centrality of the Sects in Weber's Protestant Ethic Thesis', Sociological Quarterly, 12 (1971), pp. 48698. The controversy generated by Weber's arguments led to his responding to his critics. The most important rejoinder has been translated by Wallace M. Davis, 'Anticritical Last Word on The Spirit of Capitalism by Max Weber', American Journal ofSociology, 83 (March, 1978), pp. 1105-31 • I n o n e sense all of Weber's other writings on religion constitute an expansion of the arguments expressed in The Protestant Ethic. But probably the most succinct general summary of the latter - with some additional ideas - is contained in Max Weber, General Economic History, tr. Frank H. Knight (New York, 1927), especially pp. 352-70. See also the final chapter ('Confucianism and Puritanism') of Max Weber, The Religion of China, tr. Hans H. Gerth (New York, 1951). One of the most reliable summaries of the Protestant Ethic thesis and its reception is to be found in Gordon Marshall, In Search ofthe Spirit of Capitalism (New York, 1982). Around the time of the original publication of The Protestant Ethic Weber wrote a number of methodological essays, aspects of which have quite a close bearing on his studies of religion. See in particular: Max Weber, Roscher and Knies: The Logical Problems ofHistorical Economics, tr. Guy Oakes (New York, 1975), especially pp. 44-91. See also Max Weber, Critique of Stammler, tr. Guy Oakes (New York, 1977). Max Weber, The Methodology of the Social Sciences, tr. E. A. Shils and H. A. Finch (New York, 1949), contains essays written over quite a long span of time. See in particular 'Objectivity in Social Science' (pp. 49-112). Max Weber, Economy and Society, ed. Guenther Roth and tr. Claus Wittich (Berkeley, 1978), vol. 2, pp. 303
ROLAND ROBERTSON 1375—80, contains a fragment of Weber's important 1913 essay on 'Some Categories of Interpretive Sociology'. The latter has been translated by Edith E. Graber and published in Sociological Quarterly, 22 (Spring, 1981), pp. 151-80. The period of intensive and remarkably wide-ranging writing on religion in the last decade of Weber's life was immediately preceded by much of what is contained in Max Weber, The Agrarian Sociology of Ancient Civilizations, tr. R. I. Frank (London, 1976), pp. 37-335. See also the 1910 comments of Weber and some of his colleagues contained in 'Max Weber on Church, Sect and Mysticism', tr. J. L. Gittleman, Sociological Analysis, 34, no. 2 (Summer, 1973), pp. 140—9. During the next ten years Weber produced his major theoreticalcomparative writings on religion. The larger portion of these are in Economy and Society, vol. 1, pp. 399-634. That section of Economy and Society has been separately and less adequately translated as Max Weber, The Sociology ofReligion, tr. Ephraim Fischoff(Boston, 1963). Two other translations of key essays of a theoretical and synoptic type are contained in Gerth and Mills (eds.), From Max Weber. 'The Social Psychology of the World Religions' (pp. 267-301) and 'Religious Rejections of the World and Their Directions' (pp. 323-59). The former constituted - under the title 'The Economic Ethic of the World Religions' - the introduction to the first volume of the collected essays on religion, while the second was almost certainly intended as the centrepiece of all of Weber's writings on religion - perhaps of his entire oeuvre. Details of its three versions are to be found in Wolfgang Schluchter, 'The Paradox of Rationalization', in Guenther Roth and Wolfgang Schluchter, Max Weber's Vision of History (Berkeley, 1979), pp. 59-64. In 'Value-Neutrality and the Ethic of Responsibility', (pp. 11316), Schluchter further links that crucial essay by Weber to two other essays by the latter both translated in Gerth and Mills (eds.), From Max Weber. 'Politics as a Vocation' (pp. 77128) and 'Science as a Vocation' (pp. 129-56). Weber's in-depth sociological-historical treatments of non-Christian religions have been translated as follows: Max Weber, Ancient Judaism, tr. Hans H. Gerth and Don Martindale (Glencoe, 1952); Max Weber, The Religion of China: Confucianism and Taoism, tr. Hans H. Gerth (New York, 1964); and Max Weber, The Religion of India, tr. Hans H. Gerth and Don Martindale (New York, 1958). Bryan S. Turner, Weber and Islam (London, 1974) critically pulls together Weber's writing on Islam. Finally, it must be emphasized that Economy and Society contains much on religion apart from the section devoted specifically to the sociology of religion. See in particular pp. 241-54 and 1111-211 (on charisma and the relationship between religion and political domination). It should also be said that Weber's sociology of law contains much that is of relevance to his sociology of religion. See Economy and Society, pp. 641-900 (but particularly 809-38). A challenging reconstruction of Weber's 'developmental history' - with particular reference to religion and law - is provided in Wolfgang Schluchter, The Rise of Western Rationalism, tr. Guenther Roth (Berkeley, 1981). Simmel's short specific statement on religion consists in Georg Simmel, Sociology of Religion, tr. Curt Rosenthal (New York, 1959). Some of his major statements on methodological and philosophy-of-social-science matters are in: George Simmel, The Problems of the Philosophy of History, ed. and tr. Guy Oakes (New York, 1977) and Essays on Interpretation in Social Science, ed. and tr. Guy Oakes (Totowa, N.J., 1980). Many of Simmel's major observations on modern life are in Georg Simmel, The Philosophy of Money, tr. Tom Bottomore and David Frisby (London, 1978) and in P. A. Lawrence (ed.), Georg Simmel: Sociologist and European, tr. P. A. Lawrence (New York, 1976), pp. 149-271. Simmel's ideas concerning social forms are to be found in Kurt H. Wolff(ed.), The Sociology of Georg Simmel, tr. Kurt H. Wolff (New York, 1950), pp. 3-55. A very useful collection of translations, with some duplication of items contained in the above-named books, is Donald R. Levine (ed.), Georg Simmel on Individuality and Social Forms, tr. Donald R. Levine (Chicago, 1971). Weber commented intermittently on Simmel's work. See, for example, the fragment, 'Georg Simmel as Sociologist', tr. Donald R. Levine, Social Research, 39 (1972), PP- I55-63304
9 Ernst Troeltsch TRUTZ RENDTORFF and FRIEDRICH WILHELM GRAF Translated by Sarah Coakley
The great German historian Friedrich Meinecke (1862-1954) described Ernst Troeltsch as 'one of the most outstanding and powerful minds of our time'.1 Such a comment from a contemporary historian makes it all the more remarkable, as has been recently pointed out, that Troeltsch's work was 'not taken seriously for nearly forty years'2 after his death in 1923. Only lately has interest been reawakened in Troeltsch's complex theological and philosophical position.3 It is true that Troeltsch worked largely within the 'thought forms of the nineteenth century'.4 But he also posed questions with a growing intensity about the possibility of reconstructing theology in a way that would aid what he called a 'fresh characterization of the essence of Christianity'.5 Thus Troeltsch must be seen today as an important and farsighted twentieth-century thinker. Certainly he did feel he was engaged with the great representatives of theology and philosophy since Kant, Hegel and Schleiermacher, but not merely in a historical way. For he realized more than virtually any other contemporary the necessity of interpreting this 'classical' heritage for a future in which the concepts and ideas of the nineteenth century would be fundamentally remodelled and reshaped through the force of a great historical upheaval. Troeltsch saw himself as preparing the way for this future. He looked for ways of adapting academic work in theology, philosophy, history and sociology to this future, and of contributing to its construction, by taking an active part in the ecclesiastical and political debates of his time. So the present interest in Troeltsch shows the clearest awareness of his own systematic intentions if it looks at the question of what pattern of preparation can be found in his works for a future which is now becoming our present. That is the main question with which what follows is concerned. What is at issue here is what moved Troeltsch to break through the limitations of church and academic theology and fundamentally reorder the 305
TRUTZ RENDTORFF AND FRIEDRICH WILHELM GRAF
substance of theological thinking. One must therefore ask about the vision which led Troeltsch to search for a reconstruction of Christianity. It was directed at something like a 'secular ecumenism', in which the value of Christianity is not regarded as something in opposition to the existence of other great components of cultural and intellectual life, but as involving a distinctive kind of co-existence with them. In the Foreword to the last volume of his collected works which he edited himself (Gesammelte Schriften, in) Troeltsch described as his 'fundamental idea' 'the formation of a contemporary cultural synthesis',6 which, at the end of the same work he calls 'the idea of constructive work' by which to 'overcome history with history'.7 Troeltsch's very complex understanding of historical work (Geschichte) thus aims to justify and establish the theory of a 'new' way of doing history in which, in the face of a fundamental crisis in contemporary culture, one 'preserves' certain elements from the tradition and reformulates them in a way appropriate to the present. We should interject here too that an adequate evaluation of Troeltsch's constructive intentions must certainly also explain why interest in Troeltsch was very quickly arrested in German-speaking Protestant theology in favour of another theological programme; and in this way one might determine more precisely what element of'continuity in contradiction'8 thereby played a role. For although the dialectical theologians, above all Karl Barth and Friedrich Gogarten,9 expressly turned away from Troeltsch, he can nevertheless still offer a comprehensive and refined orientation for current theology, even when the points made by dialectical theology have been assimilated. Indeed the present interest in Troeltsch shown by sociologists10 and social scientists11 is not difficult to explain when theology and Christianity are today, as never before, a subject of concern in the context of an unprecedentedly volatile society. And Troeltsch's own studies in social history and social philosophy deserve to be viewed in the closest connection with his various publications on the philosophy of history.12 Yet it is precisely his perspectives on the philosophy of history which are of the greatest significance.13 They provide the extension, refinement and fresh analysis of the issues in philosophy of religion14 which Troeltsch earlier evolved principally in his famous essay on the 'absoluteness of Christianity'.15 This way of posing the question in terms of philosophy of religion was itself conceived as a way of overcoming the authority structure in the theology Troeltsch had encountered in his early training in the school of Albrecht Ritschl.16 These remarks already show how a reconstruction of Troeltsch's theological and philosophical programme should proceed. One must, first of 306
Ernst Troeltsch
all, indicate how this programme looks in its full form as the blueprint of a future-oriented philosophy of history. Then one must make clear, secondly, how Troeltsch's philosophy of history already has in it strongly implicit religious themes. Thirdly, we shall need to show how Troeltsch's historical writings relate to his theological writings, and how his work on social ethics might contribute to an assessment of him in analytical and concrete terms. Then one is in a position to ask what the envisaged outcome of Troeltsch's programme looks like under current conditions of theological work. But one further preliminary remark is necessary. In all the phases of his work Troeltsch engaged in an intense interdisciplinary dialogue. Signs of this can be seen in the academic field in the two honorary doctorates that were conferred upon him, one in law and one in philosophy, and also in his move from the chair of theology at Heidelberg to the chair of philosophy at Berlin.17 Troeltsch was involved in a committed dialogue with contemporary academic literature from the most diverse disciplines. We cannot go into all the details here.18 But his tremendous efforts on the methodology of the so-called 'human sciences' (Geisteswissenschaften) should be mentioned in this connection. Troeltsch took part in these discussions with an obvious impatience. This in turn only served to prevent him from advancing any systematic position that wasfinal,methodologically sound, or clarified in its epistemology. But it would not in our view be very fruitful to place Troeltsch on the scales of methodological or epistemological criticism and then weigh the consistency of his argument from there. Our interest should be directed much more to grasping the major strands of his thought and to accentuating the constructive content of his project.
In the philosophy of history which Troeltsch formulated shortly before his death, he himself described his fundamental theme as the 'idea of the construction' of European culture.19 This 'idea of construction' provides the positive answer to the so-called 'crisis of history', and is conceived by Troeltsch not as a countermand to historical thinking, but as its own essential outcome. The conversion of a historical crisis into a historical construction must therefore be regarded as the particular systematic contribution at which Troeltschfinallyarrived. And even though he was not able to carry out the actual execution of this task himself (for his increased political activity proved a distraction from it, and he died in the midst of his work on it at the age offifty-eight),we can still reconstruct this programme in its essential characteristics. What matters particularly are the major features 307
TRUTZ RENDTORFF AND FRIEDRICH WILHELM GRAF
which show how Troeltsch drew conclusions here from his new understanding of the 'absoluteness of Christianity'. For this 'absoluteness' was not construed in a way that set Christianity apart from culture, in an attempt to avert the crisis by a religious leap away from it; instead, viewing religion as an independent 'factor' within culture, Troeltsch tried now to make actual productive use of the Christian tradition for the new orientation for European culture which he saw to be necessary. Now it is decisive here to understand what Troeltsch meant by the 'crisis of history'. This crisis is not for him a crisis of historical work in its sense of an exact science concerned with establishing facts. It is instead a crisis of the 'general philosophical foundations and rudiments of historical thinking', in particular, 'in the apprehension of historical values, out of which we have to construe and construct what binds history together'.20 This crisis is thus more than just an academic concern. It is an expression of a substantial phase of culture-shock. 'World war and revolution are a historical object lesson of fearful and most tremendous force. Thus we no longer theorize and analyse under the protection of a stable . . . order, but in the midst of a storm in which the world has to be constructed anew.'21 Already the notes are sounded here which caused Troeltsch to see this crisis as a practical and ethical one, which must be met with means adequate to it. And so Troeltsch insists that it is not a matter of a crisis about historical scholarship, that is, precise work of an academic nature. Rather, the crisis only finds a satisfactory intellectual forum when the matter is seen as the construction of a general world-view. Its practical meaning implies the actual undertaking of philosophical and theological construction; and thus the historian is conceived not just as an impartial observer, but as someone aware of his own involvement in constructive activity for the future. In the first instance, then, philosophy of history is the appropriate constructive enterprise in the face of the needs of the practical and ethical character of the crisis. One hardly needs to underline that Troeltsch is particularly concerned here to assimilate the experiences of the First World War, which, as everyone knows, was felt to be a war between cultures, and in this respect inevitably led to a particularly acute soul-searching in Germany about the plausibility of its traditional cultural heritage. Troeltsch was himself involved in political and practical attempts to determine the cultural goals of the war, and so too was caught up in the sort of propaganda that inevitably characterizes war writing.22 But he was also one of the first to call for a fundamental constitutional reform of Kaiser Wilhelm's political system. It is in this context of Troeltsch's response to the debate about the mood in 308
Ernst Troeltsch
Germany at the outbreak of war23 that he advocates an attempt to transcend the traditional antipathy between west European and German cultures, and search for a general understanding of Europe. In Der Historismus und seine Probleme (GS, in) this point is enunciated with even greater intensity.24 Yet an explanation is still required for the contrast between the radical questioning raised on the Continent by the war and the rather more pragmatic attitude of Anglo-Saxon thinkers.25 Thus Troeltsch cites A. C. Bouquet with the following explanation: 'The Anglo-Saxon temperament is expansive rather than intensive, and takes more naturally to missionary enterprise than to the examination of belief.' Troeltsch adds to that a corresponding citation from Sidney Low: 'We have had no revolution for two hundred years; we have not been compelled to cleanse the state, or examine the foundations of belief, and we are proud of being an illogical people. So we have carefully avoided systematization; we provide for immediate necessities.'26 But, as his further statements in the introduction to the Historismus volume show, Troeltsch is no longer concerned so much with the opposition or difference between German and other western ideas of freedom, but with the question of a western Christian culture which is in the last analysis common to all. The collapse of a stable regime has the same implications for the historical outlook as does the collapse of dogmatic authority and of a claim to Christian absoluteness guaranteed by church institutions in the field of theology. Methodologically speaking, then, philosophy of history is not 'a systematic means of charting historical progress, nor a teleological construction of something working step by step towards a goal',27 but 'the production of a standard, an ideal, an idea of the cultural unity that may be newly created for the present as the circumstances require it'.28 This constructive activity seeks to meet the experience of crisis. And this comes about through Troeltsch's fresh characterization and appraisal of the category of the {
individuality of history'. 29
We need then to look at this new understanding of 'historical individuality'. For, in Troeltsch, the systematic position which had traditionally been occupied by the concept of an all-encompassing unity in history is replaced by the insight that all historical reality (in contradistinction to nature, which is differently structured ontologically) is essentially constituted by 'individuality". This formulary does not as yet tell us enough, however, of the significance of this absolutely fundamental category of 'historical individuality' in Troeltsch's philosophy of history. What it means is that the ontological structure specific to history is to be thought of as sui generis. Troeltsch is fully aware (on the basis of his extensive investigations of the 309
TRUTZ RENDTORFF AND FRIEDRICH WILHELM GRAF
concept of'historical individuality' from the Romantic movement on)30 that the concept is itself capable of a bewildering variety of interpretations. And at least here and there Troeltsch's own use of the term remains diffuse and somewhat unclear. On the whole it is much easier for Troeltsch to describe and justify the intentions he has which might be collected under the title of 'historical individuality' than to give an absolutely precise and analytical definition of the concept itself. Nonetheless, and granting these difficulties, we can at least say that with this concept Troeltsch intends to deny in history any tightly closed ontological structure such as would allow general or rational regularities to be perceived in it. To be able to generalize about history would be to deny its own special particularity (its 'individuality'). In his forcible insistence on this particularity Troeltsch draws on the methodological conclusions of the 'human sciences', which were worked out during the nineteenth century: the more an historian is able and ready to immerse himself in a particular area of research, the more he becomes aware of its own particularity. And for all those engaged in securing historical knowledge there is this same particular paradox: it is precisely in the attainment of historical understanding - not from some purportedly external standpoint - that generalized representations and concepts of history are increasingly eroded. Whoever engages in 'history' (die Geschichte) comes to realize, through the extent of his inevitable selectivity when treating his particular subject of research, that there can really only be a plurality of histories. Thus with the concept of 'historical individuality' Troeltsch both radically criticizes the 'monistic' theories of knowledge amongst his contemporaries, and also in many respects anticipates fundamental insights in modern Anglo-Saxon analytical philosophy of history; for he brings out the idea that history is a quite open-ended arena of manifold and particular actions and experiences. There are also some fascinating anticipations of the relativistic cosmology of Alfred North Whitehead. And along similar lines the American Troeltsch scholar James Luther Adams has rightly characterized Troeltsch's 'approach to reality' as multi-perspectival: 'Troeltsch favored a meroscopic instead of a holoscopic approach . . . The holoscopic outlook . . . attempts to bring everything under a unitary perspective. The meroscopic outlook . . . presupposes that different spheres of reality should be described by means of quite different types of concept.'31 Now if history is, as described, an open-ended concatenation of every kind of unique and individual event, there can be no demonstrable place within history for an absolute standpoint of experience, thought or action. Each 310
Ernst Troeltsch
place within history is of necessity only a particular one, and what this implies is the 'relativity' of everything historical in principle. Thus no standpoint is absolute. And all standpoints are contextualized. But do these conditions of historical relativity mean that no claims at all can be made to any value which transcends the merely individual? Do all general principles (whether adopted by particular people, institutions, political bodies, religious groups or academic disciplines) succumb too? The question now raised is that of epistemological relativism, that is, the view that truth is to some degree actively constituted by the historical circumstances or framework in which it is enunciated, and this is a position of much more radical philosophical consequences than simply that of 'relativity', that is, the particularity and context-related nature of history and historical judgments.32 Yet for Troeltsch this distinction was not always completely clear;33 his discussions of historical or cultural relativism were most often couched in the (somewhat abstruse) terminology of the so-called 'Southwest German school of Neo-Kantianism', and especially in exchange with its two leading exponents Wilhelm Windelband and Heinrich Rickert.34 The major concern shared by all these figures, however, was to stress the historically contextualized circumstances of all areas of life, whether religion, ethics, or academic work, and today this sort of'relativity' is widely acknowledged and indeed scarcely seriously contested in western theology. But whether, and to what extent, this (fairly uncontroversial) understanding of'relativity' also implies a thoroughgoing value or ethical relativism, is at present still very much the subject of controversy. As, increasingly, this debate becomes carried on in the categories of the social sciences, so too we find theologians and philosophers of religion pleading with greater emphasis that contemporary criteria of 'rationality' are (despite their claims to be universally binding) themselves no less affected by their particular context. For such criteria are in fact only the expression of a particular form of rationality, a form characterized by Max Weber as 'occidental rationality' in his sociological researches on what he called modern 'ascetic Protestantism'.35 As this idea is taken up again constructively in present-day social science and analysed further, we see a fascinating sociological relevance for Troeltsch's central concerns. For now that the question about the possibly limited range of application of an 'occidental rationality' has been tackled anew with particular force by Jiirgen Habermas,36 it cannot merely be regarded as the sociological counterpart of the question in theology or philosophy of religion about the 'absoluteness of Christianity'. For Troeltsch himself converted this question into one that he insisted was a
TRUTZ RENDTORFF AND FRIEDRICH WILHELM GRAF
matter for philosophy of history - a matter, that is, of self-examination in a crisis-torn European and American culture; and the mode of argument that underlies his answer here is of real relevance for today. Let us reflect why. On the one hand, it allows genuinely theological problems and means of solution to them to be recognized outside theology's traditional understanding of its boundaries, and thus serves to give theology more plausibility as a subject of general academic interest, with a real contribution to make. On the other hand, it implies as far as the sciences themselves are concerned, a fit reminder of the potential for solving such problems which is enshrined in the religious traditions of mankind, and which has been in general forgotten by the sciences, or is no longer really at their disposal. In this way Troeltsch's understanding of the scope of philosophy of history means that his whole theological and philosophical programme can be seen as a kind of'mediating theology',37 a bridge between theological thinking and the other academic endeavours of our culture. Troeltsch addressed the problem of Christianity's 'historical relativity' in countless historical studies, in which he demonstrated in particular the close entanglement of particular interpretations of Christianity with its prevailing cultural context. Yet in his volume on Historismus (GS, in), in which he provides his analytical approach to the philosophy of history, he is anxious, in contrast, to indicate a way of making a virtue out of the necessity of historical relativism, and this in the form of a sovereign construction. But from here, the realization of the relativity of everything historical immediately demands that one formulate a new idea of historical objectivity. How can objectivity in any recognizable sense be maintained in the face of the 'relativity' described by Troeltsch? Wilhelm Dilthey had already provided a decisive lead on this in his relevant writings. The idea is to evaluate each historical event only as its own intention and content demands; thus one does not apply such norms or criteria as are historically inappropriate to it, for its claim to value arises from its particular historical 'individuality'. In the same way, Troeltsch investigates the means of creating 'standards of value' for philosophy of history, in the same individual way. If'individuality' is what characterizes all historical reality, then obviously the standards used for evaluating historical events cannot have the authority of 'universal applicability, timelessness or absoluteness'.38 For the standards are themselves 'products of individuality', which have to be created and discovered anew 'out of each total historical context'. 'Spontaneity, a priority, and conviction' are thus the qualities which the historian who is aware of his own individuality must cultivate in 312
Ernst Troeltsch
himself, in order to counteract arbitrariness and inform his own constructiveness. For Troeltsch, however, this constructiveness itself represents an attitude which is specific to European or American culture. The 'flight to the Orient' (today also so alluring)'. . . where depths of metaphysical insight may well be found superior in many respects to Europe', can offer no serious solution under the conditions of the cultural crisis in Europe and America; at best, this is a mere 'dalliance' of no real intellectual sincerity.39 Troeltsch's argument here is put thus: the difficulties faced by European and American culture arise 'from the inherent nature of history itself, 'as soon as one realizes what it [i.e. history] is'. And so one cannot expect tofindsolutions for the cultural attitudes of the West by recourse to eastern religious metaphysics, in particular the 'low estimation of the historical and the finite', when the state of crisis here is not something that has invaded from outside, but is integral to it and found in its understanding of its own history. Hence the identity of European and American culture depends on its ability to forge its individuality afresh, giving itself new meaning. 'We cannot afford to be weak here, if we want to avoid falling into the abyss.'40 In this way, the fundamental provisions of historical theory turn into the provisions for praxis: for one's own active part in shaping the culture. Thus Troeltsch's constructive suggestion for a 'material philosophy of history', for what he called 'Europeanism', is for him the answer to the recognized crisis of historical relativism. II
From here emerge two essential consequences for this programme's undertaking, which also highlight further the religious dimension of Troeltsch's thought. The creation of a plan for history involves, first, a renewal and realization of faith, and also, secondly, a renewal and realization of the particular historical 'individuality' of west European culture as the matrix of Christianity. The connection of these two aspects of the matter indicates the further implications of the programme, but also its limits. In the first respect (that of the significance of faith), Troeltsch first spells out the view that there 'can be real and true validity which is not timeless and unchangeable validity'.41 The formation of standards by which the inherent value of a cultural context may be indicated can only issue from the standpoint of those actually in the situation. The theory creates the practice of itself. But, as Troeltsch puts it in a very complex formulation: 'The
TRUTZ RENDTORFF AND FRIEDRICH WILHELM GRAF
creation of such standards of value . . . is a matter offaith in the deep and full sense of the word: the contemplation of something built out of life and seen as an expression and revelation of the divine ground of life'; or again, 'the apprehension of a cultural idea growing out of the prevailing context, which is itself seen as a representation of the unknowable Absolute'.42 Now what is striking about this formulation is that Troeltsch here lays claim to a theological knowledge which, as such, he has no means of undergirding with any sure verification or precise certainty. It is true that he was always aware of the need created by religious studies to move beyond mere analysis of religious phenomena to a 'metaphysic ofreligion'.43 But at the end of the day, in Der Historismus (GS, in), the most he could suggest for a metaphysical substructure was what he termed a 'monadology', drawing upon the thought of Leibniz and Malebranche. The idea was that each individual finite spirit, despite its particularity and conditioned nature, nonetheless 'participates intuitively' in the life of the divine Spirit;44 and thus he claimed an ultimate 'identity of the finite and infinite, such that the finite is granted divine grounding and the infinite individuality'.45 How convincing this claim is is admittedly debatable; but then precise metaphysical certitude was not Troeltsch's first interest. Indeed here, as in his work in general, Troeltsch is relatively uninterested in a clear and abstractly defined argument, in the sense expected in 'dogmatic' theology as traditionally understood.46 And therein does certainly lie one of the most obvious weaknesses of his work. Theological utterance is handled by him just like a religious utterance, which is itself the expression of a culture stamped by Christianity. He always uses this kind of language when what is at stake is some reference to the culture of Christianity in which the language arose, a culture both vital and unquenchable, and yet also enigmatic and inexhaustible at the rational level. The fluctuating character of his theological and philosophical arguments thus provides an illustration of the same movement which is inherent to his programme for philosophy of history. Alongside 'contemplation', 'apprehension' enters the work of construction, or 'creation': 'Each act of apprehension is an act of creation.'47 Now from this emerges what Troeltsch calls the 'autonomy' of the philosopher of history's task. What does Troeltsch mean by such 'autonomy'? What he does not have in mind here is the sort of rational 'autonomy' exercised by an individual thinking subject as if by pure and isolated selfdetermination. Instead, he is talking of the 'autonomy' enjoyed by historians who are aware of their own 'individuality': they are conscious of an independence mediated to them precisely in this historical individuality, as if it were religiously constituted. And so 'autonomy' must be understood as 3H
Ernst Troeltsch
another manifestation of historical individuality within a particular culture, which in turn enables that culture to be built up; it is itself historical and appropriate to history. We see then that Troeltsch understands freedom and 'individuality' as converging into the closest relationship. This not only has the effect of deposing any theory of the structure of freedom which sees it as releasing one from religion, and frankly abstracting the knowing subject from any real connection with history; but it also, and more significantly, explicitly confers a religious status on Troeltsch's own understanding of autonomy, which arises from the constructive act of historians who are conscious of their 'individuality' and become aware of a certain receptivity in this very construction. It is in the context of an assault on rationalistic philosophies of history which reduce the 'Absolute' to a mere 'idea' (Begrijf), that Troeltsch interestingly characterizes his own attempt as a search for a philosophical equivalent to the 'foremost Protestant slogan' of'justification by faith'.48 By 1922 Troeltsch was certainly clear that his position could probably no longer be put across generally, for it involved the supposition that secular learning and religion (which by now had been decisively separated out) should be brought together constructively again. But if, as he put it, one 'with a proper grasp' of the idea of an Absolute which transcends ideas 'cannot carry his point with the masses', he should not give up, but rather become a 'martyr for his cause'.49 If, then, as we have seen, freedom and individuality coalesce so closely for Troeltsch, 'autonomy' comes to mean the recognition of one's own world. And this leads us on to the other side of the matter which arises here, and which we spoke of above when we mentioned that alongside the renewal and realization of'faith goes the renewal and realization of the particular world of Western Christianity. What does Troeltsch have in mind here? Several points are connected. In thefirstplace, 'we are set free', says Troeltsch, from the constraint of an abstract 'concept of humanity'. For this concept of humanity was 'only ever a substitute for eternal, divine objective reason, or for God himself'.50 But we are also freed, so Troeltsch goes on, from the idea of universal progress and development, since (as Ranke had earlier put it, in a famous phrase) 'each individual is, in fact, in a direct relationship to God'. That means that each individual considers himself an independent entity in his particular historical context, and in his apprehension of its implications.51 Finally, Troeltsch characterizes 'individual autonomy' as freedom from the idea of an endless cultural uniformity,52 which fancies that the world is made up of generally similar and thus strictly comparable components. The real goal of 315
TRUTZ RENDTORFF AND FRIEDRICH WILHELM GRAF
this individual autonomy then (and here our main point comes in) is the freedom 'to answer the pressing practical questions of our own Western cultural orbit'.53 So autonomy turns to its own constructive work, the shaping of its own world; its goal is its own practical application. And if with that the old claims to absoluteness and cravings for authority are given up, we are, according to Troeltsch, really only giving up what we never had in the first place.54 In this sense the call to 'individual autonomy' is a call to the Enlightenment. But instead of vain efforts to explain and control the world overall, we have something more appropriate to mere humanity: the attempt to grasp it in the confines of a particular and unique context of life. And, as we have already intimated, what is decisive for Troeltsch here is the idea that being freed for one's own 'individual autonomy' is something mediated through the concept of God.55 For this freedom is obtained by releasing the concept of God from the constriction of an abstract dogmatics and its claim to an unspecified and general application, and offers instead a lively religious meaning for this concept. This theological approach to 'individual autonomy' certainly stands in strong, indeed vast, opposition to the function of the concept of God as developed by the dialectical theology which followed Troeltsch. For Barth and Gogarten the appeal to the concept of God has the function of emphasizing the distinction between culture and the world of Christianity in a radical way, as well as requiring it in a practical sense. But for Troeltsch the opposite is the case. The concern with 'individuality' ('individualization' as Troeltsch calls it) leads straight to a determined acknowledgement of one's own culture and context. This emerges particularly clearly in Troeltsch's rejection of a general concept of humanity. What 'humanity' means for him is 'a component part of a wholly particular and individual universal principle'.56 If one can talk generally of any rational and universal aspects of the concept of humanity at all, then it can only be in the particular area of European culture, and only as a consequence of its historical and 'individual' state. The contemporary relevance of Troeltsch's philosophy of history thus comes out clearly in his concern 'for the construction of European cultural history'57 and in allowing his programme to join with the shaping of 'Europeanism'.58 The point which Troeltsch wants to put strongly here is that the culture of Europe and America has an historical individuality of unbroken strength which is capable of renewal. This point is put in a selfconfident way and runs something like this: 'the culture of Europe and America is no longer bound to the churches, either today or for the foreseeable future, for they in the meantime have long since split apart and become retrained by strong forces; instead, it is bound to Christianity, which bears within it, and unites, both ancient and modern historical continuity, 316
Ernst Troeltsch
and a lively modern distinctiveness'. It is because of this that all European problems have got a 'completely unique character'.59 Troeltsch is aware that he has, with this view on the shared nature of the problems facing European religion and culture, taken a significant step beyond the earlier, resigned standpoint which he adopted around 1911 at the end of his Social Teaching of the Christian Churches (G61, 1, 1912).60 But one must add too that with this thesis Troeltsch has also given a new and concrete form (more extensively worked out in terms of philosophy of history), to his earlier views on the relative 'highest validity' of Christianity.61 By this time, he is freed from the pursuit of an 'absoluteness' for Christianity that can encompass all ages and cultures, and believes instead that the historical evaluation of Christianity can be brought in in substantial form by way of his theory of'Europeanism'. Before we go further into Troeltsch's development of theology on the basis of philosophy of history (but without getting involved in the theory of 'Europeanism' here in too much detail), we should next discuss the contemporary relevance of this programme presented by Troeltsch. At the end of his comments on 'Europeanism' Troeltsch takes up the question of 'how generally we may speak of "Europeanism", when we consider the dominating position of America'.62 By this he means that when one looks at America one is really dealing 'with a geographical displacement, a colony's supersession of its motherland'. America draws the cultural capacities of old Europe into its own orbit with ever-increasing strength. So, just as the museums of America arefilledwith European works of art, so too does America take over 'the inner logic of European cultural development'. But with the end of'colonial provincialism' it is also faced with a powerful yet unpredictable future. It may therefore represent a sort of'vacant possession' for Europeanism, which would also prevent one from drawing European boundaries in too narrow and defined a fashion. Looking back now in the light of present-day experience at this attempt to formulate a concrete philosophy of history, the following remarkable results may be observed. Troeltsch was unquestionably on the right track when he constructed his theory of culture in the broadest sense from the perspective of what he called 'individualization'. For what the most recent developments in religious consciousness and its cultural and social implications display is precisely such a rapid growth and intensifying of expressly individual forms of religious understanding. It is a peculiar characteristic of present-day theological discussion that theology and Christianity are trying to dispose of the idea of a universal, rational concept of unity, and instead employ criteria which relate to particular cultural, social and political settings of the moment. In this regard the development of'black theology' is significant both in its 317
TRUTZ RENDTORFF AND FRIEDRICH WILHELM GRAF
domestic American form of expression, and in its transformation into a selfconsciously 'African' theology. 'Liberation theology', with its slogan of overcoming dependencia, is geographically and culturally a Latin American phenomenon, and sees itself as a movement with a particular individual identity in contrast to European theology. It is noteworthy that such 'individual' forms of theology explicitly seek to ascertain their own cultural and social setting, and in doing so exemplify the striving for a 'cultural synthesis' in Troeltsch's sense. This can be true either in terms of geography, or in terms of particular cross-sections of society. Thus we have the theologies of Asia, Africa, or the Third World in general on the one hand; and the theologies of feminism, of 'the people', and of particular communities on the other. All may be explained in this context as an expression of the growth in the processes of so-called 'individualization'. But the question then arises: with such a localizing of theology, how far do criteria of an explicitly theological kind still play a role, and what are to be the deciding standards of value? This question characteristically places the traditional authorities in church dogmatics in great difficulties, and cannot adequately be answered by them. For on the one hand, as Christians have become progressively more ecumenical, these specifically denominational theologies have themselves been drawn into this process of individualization with all its consequences. And on the other, Christian theology's dogmatic claim to unity is powerless against this process as long as it appeals, and must appeal, to a truth-claim independent of this historical and cultural fragmentation. So here we see the processes emerging to which Troeltsch sought, in his own thinking, to give a form relevant to the future, but which have now come to pass in a way that was quite unknown to his own time. What is especially remarkable in this connection, however, is how the idea of a universal humanity is nonetheless again gaining currency today. This, too, is happening in just the way Troeltsch envisaged, that is, in the ethical sphere, through what Troeltsch called the moral imperative (das Solleri). Troeltsch took the view that what is newly formed as 'individual' is actually 'embedded in what is universal'.63 This 'universal' may appear in concrete form in the possibilities of 'reciprocal understanding' and therefore in the effort to come to an understanding of what is alien. This itself implies a sort of practical application. But mainly this idea of a shared humanity appears 'in the fact of a moral imperative felt in common by everyone' - that is, in an explicitly ethical form. The present concern with human rights may be considered in this light. Here a universal imperative of this sort finds expression - at least one may call it 'universal', in the sense that all individual forms of state and community are transcended by it and an ethic of humanity 318
Ernst Troeltsch
develops which is not moulded by any particular conditions of life. Nonetheless, this sense of imperative in human rights itself serves the process of what Troeltsch called individualization. For it aims to take universal human rights and realize them in various actual circumstances of life, thereby giving them specific living substance. Of course, the question may well be raised whether one can still defend Troeltsch's view that the subject of 'humanity' in general is meaningless because it only appears in the generality of the moral imperative. In favour of Troeltsch's thesis, however, is the fact that the discussion of human rights today is precisely not about their content or logical coherence in general or in the abstract, but about their 'implementation' in particular circumstances; and this yet again implies a form of 'individualization'. But the 'cultural synthesis' for which Troeltsch strove has to be understood for today as the theoretical introduction to a process in which we find ourselves here and now. And here in fact it is a plurality of'cultural syntheses' which confronts us, and which immediately invites us to question whether there is an overriding unity to this plurality. The fact that the churches and ecumenical Christianity are only a part of this worldwide process, does more to enhance the credibility of the point of view which Troeltsch espoused than does the great variety of actual historical circumstances detract from it. With these wide-ranging implications in mind, it is impossible to deny that Troeltsch had a programme in mind powerful enough to anticipate the way history would unfold in this century. For this reason it is a worthwhile exercise to examine in detail the interpretative power of this programme for the present time. This cannot be carried out further here. But it is possible to show by way of example how Troeltsch's interpretation of Europeanism may elucidate the history of this century, namely, in the way its critique of the absoluteness of Christianity leads to a constructive theory of the history of Christianity in modern times. The relationship between Troeltsch's philosophy of history and his theological work should therefore now be made explicit. in
The theological writings which date from Troeltsch's early, Heidelberg years show him irresistibly drawn to what he referred to in a variety of ways as the 'fundamental reconstruction' of theology. In fact it was the depth and strength of his own very personal and direct religious convictions which allowed him to make the most radical criticism of the traditional way in which theology was taught.64 In his attacks on the theological literature 319
TRUTZ RENDTORFF AND FRIEDRICH WILHELM GRAF
emanating from the circle of the Ritschlian school, wholesale 'destruction' is in fact the first descriptive tag that springs to mind. However, Troeltsch's aim was also a constructive rebuilding of theology. By criticizing the received norms of theology, which sought to protect a demarcated area of independence and objective authority for dogmatics, Troeltsch found a means of seeing his own way towards a new construction of Christian thought. In his article on the 'independence of religion' which appeared in 1895-6 in the leading scholarly journal of the Ritschlian school,65 Troeltsch argued for an irreducibility of religion, and thus for an 'independence' of a kind more complete than the way in which independence was defined within the discipline of dogmatics. Such an argument brought him under severe attacks, which in turn led him to posit his distinction between the 'historical' and 'dogmatic' method in theology. This step was taken in answer to an article written in 1896 by an opponent called Niebergall and entitled 'On the Absoluteness of Christianity'.66 In Troeltsch's response67 we find the preliminary work for what was to be Troeltsch's most important discussion of the problem, his book on the Absoluteness of Christianity.™ But already in this study of historical and dogmatic method he sets upon Niebergall and 'his friends' with the blunt reproach that to them, 'theology is so little problematic that they see only minor problems of patching up, and assume the same attitude on the part of everyone else'.69 Against this, Troeltsch holds out the critical power of the 'historical' method. It is 'a leaven which transforms everything and finally explodes the whole form of theological methods up to the present'. And it sounds like a final leave-taking from the dogmatic form of theology when he represents dogmatics as an enterprise which ignores the historical task and 'simply supports the old authoritarian concept of revelation by means of premises, postulates, claims, theories of knowledge or other such lofty generalities'. Troeltsch speaks scornfully of the halfhearted ways in which such dogmatic theology seeks to meet the challenges arising from the modern awareness of the historical relativity of all cultures. 'In this sort of theology', he says, 'one is constantly being shuttled from Pontius to Pilate', one sort of argument giving way to another, as expediency and the maintenance of the dogmatic edifice demands. It will be clear that Troeltsch gives priority to the historical method not because it might lend greater security or be better capable of satisfying theology's need for an authority. The defence of the historical method rests rather on the fact that since it comes nearer to the living reality of religion than does the dogmatic, it actually allows the ancient claims of theology to be better defended. To operate under the conditions of the historical method is to gain the insight that in considering religion in its reality 'only judgments of 320
Ernst Troeltsch
probability' are possible; that the contexts of religion can only be grasped through 'analogies'; that all phenomena of the human spirit are relative to one another and thus not 'absolute'.70 'Even Christianity can only be regarded as an entity to be explained and evaluated in relation to the total context of which it itself forms a part.'71 Such insights, however, have yet further implications. The future belongs to 'a theology based on the history of religion'.72 Even for this there is the question of authority, but it frames itself in historical ways, that is, in the sense of the formation of criteria which (as already shown) is later handled constructively in Troeltsch's philosophy of history. The famous lecture The Absoluteness of Christianity provides the exposition of this methodological programme. Its conclusion runs: 'It is impossible to construct a theory of Christianity as the absolute religion on the basis of a historical way of thinking or by the use of historical means. Much that looks weak, shadowy, and unstable in the theology of our day is rooted in the impossibility of such a construction.'73 But this result is the starting point for Troeltsch's own statement of the question. If Christianity is 'in every moment of its history a purely historical phenomenon, subject to all the limitations to which any individual historical phenomenon is exposed, just like other great religions',74 then the question is what validity Christianity can claim over against the other great religions. The criterion for the validity of Christianity is, according to Troeltsch, the 'simplicity, depth and power' with which it 'discloses a higher, transcendent life in God'.75 'Simplicity' implies the reduction of complexity; 'simplicity and power' is elsewhere too one of Troeltsch's characteristic demands.76 In The Absoluteness, this criterion receives its content as follows: 'Among the great religions, Christianity is . . . the strongest and most concentrated revelation of personalistic religious apprehension.'77 Even if this is a relative, not an absolute, proposition, it is still one through which Troeltsch can express the 'highest validity' (Hochstgeltung) of Christianity. The particular form of historical Christianity, and the living individuality which forms the inner strength of this Christianity, are here combined by Troeltsch in one conception. Thus he can go beyond comparative historical analysis and define the problem of the absoluteness of Christianity as ultimately a practical problem. The interest in the absoluteness of Christianity is really that of an individual's assurance, and it can therefore only find its fulfilment in a person's religious life, not in any abstract or general form. In this way the connection that is so important in Troeltsch's thought between the spheres of theology and philosophy of religion on the one hand, and that of philosophy of history on the other, is given a more precise 321
TRUTZ RENDTORFF AND FRIEDRICH WILHELM GRAF
determination. It is true that Troeltsch himself did not return to reflect more explicitly on this connection in his later period. But it is nonetheless possible to reconstruct it. The question of reconstructing theology is developed by Troeltsch in such a way as to get behind the dogmatic forms of Christianity and determine its living 'productivity'. This recourse to the life of the religion may be described as follows. Dogmatic theology, according to Troeltsch, is a function of the 'dogmatic' understanding of Christianity. This dogmatic understanding of Christianity is a construction of the Church, and follows essentially from the way christology is understood by it. But christological dogma in turn emerged from the requirements of soteriology. Soteriology has for its theme the union of man with God; and it is in the discovery and appropriation of this union, that that personal quality arises which presents the defining characteristic of Christianity and constitutes its uniqueness and individuality. Moreover this communion with God is not the basis of an 'individualistic' relationship between a single person and God; it is rather a communion with God which, qua communion, gives a basis for individuality, and creates the very possibility for it. In this way, Troeltsch traces the genesis of Christianity back, both historically and dogmatically, to the place where the origin and abiding life of Christianity are both to be found: in the particular nature of Christian communion with God. In it are encompassed Christianity's receptivity and spontaneity, its foundation and continuing source of life. In 1911 Troeltsch expressed his views definitively on the central question of the doctrine of Christ:78 'Not dogma or ideas, but cult and community' are what is important in religion. The 'central place of Christ in worship and teaching' is thus a historical and intrinsic necessity, because it is there that the 'gathering of the community round its head' takes place, and this is the truly enduring and enlivening factor. Christ is 'the means of unity and of focus' and so the indispensable central figure in Christianity. With this sociological reformulation of traditional christology the old dogmatic teaching of the media salutis receives an interpretation which takes account of the distinct and active operation of religious sensibilities. From this perspective too, moreover, it is clear that Christianity is still engaged in the process of its own construction. For in this way, the historical and social nature of Christianity is so defined that the living quality of its origin emerges as the mechanism for its continuing individual formation. The dissolution of the old dogmatics marks the emancipation of Christianity for its own constructive work. The logical progression from the philosophy of religion to the philosophy of history is indicated by the fact that the 'individualization' of Christianity of which we have been speaking is no longer defined exclusively by reference 322
Ernst Troeltsch
to collectivized individual believers, but encompasses the historical and cultural world as well. This change becomes especially clear when one relates Troeltsch's historical and sociological work to it. His studies of the meaning of Protestantism for the origin of the modern world,79 as well as the Social Teaching, are still dominated by the question of how an 'ancient' religion can be united to a 'modern' world. This question is only meaningful, however, from the standpoint of a religious subject who knows himself to be set in opposition to his own world. The breach between Christianity and the modern world was indeed the motive for Troeltsch's preoccupation with a new definition of theology and of the Christian religion. But his own new beginning remained unsuccessful as long as he was only defining the living quality of the religion as such, and its specifically religious form of expression. The new approach was successful only when it could be carried out as a fresh construction of the world of Christianity under the conditions of its own historical individuality. That is the real advance afforded by the philosophy of history over against the philosophy of religion. While the historical and sociological works of Troeltsch still remain under the impress of the breach between Christianity and the modern world, the later philosophy of history tries to view this opposition as a necessary step on the way towards the 'individualization' of Christianity, and to integrate it into the 'cultural synthesis'. Then it can be grasped as an integral factor in the fruitful productiveness that may arise from Christianity's historical 'individuality'. In this way, philosophy of history serves to give Troeltsch's theory of the independence of Christianity a much firmer validity, because it is now more consonant with the realities of history. In this way Troeltsch attempted a solution which, though it does not put an end to the problem he grasped, does lead on to a new way of defining the state of the difficulty for contemporary Christianity. For the new and now pressing questions which confront us may quite easily be read as the outcome of his philosophy of history. To take 'Europeanism' as the particular cultural form of the Christian world, and to accept this, involves a new limitation, namely a delimitation of the idea of 'humanity'. It is indeed striking that Troeltsch insisted with such force that the general term 'humanity' was not meaningful in the philosophy of history. But the question of the universality of Christianity is today framed in a new way precisely as a consequence of Troeltsch's theory of Europeanism, since 'Europeanism' has in many respects transcended its original geographical limits. Yet, on account of the variety of its individual forms, it still does not permit any all-inclusive representation of'humanity' to be made. This is however just an example of the sort of more acute problems which have arisen in this century. It may then be suspected that the 'redogmatizing' of theology in the 323
TRUTZ RENDTORFF AND FRIEDRICH WILHELM GRAF
period after Troeltsch in German Protestant theology exhibits too a misguided attempt to gain a new and universal scope for Christianity despite the conditions of its particularity. What in Barth and Gogarten appeared first as a new divorce between culture and Christianity, between the world of institutional Christianity and individual Christian belief, is in the long term more appropriately conceived as a theological contribution to a new understanding of the 'individuality' of Christianity - an understanding which actually allows for various distinct and competing cultural and historical forms within its own boundaries. This whole problem goes substantially beyond Troeltsch; but it is set within the problem area outlined by him, in his search for a theological theory of Christianity directed towards the future. One further question must be raised in conclusion. Harnack spoke of the study of political history as an essential prerequisite for the understanding of church history.80 The whole breadth of the history of Christianity could only, he said, be fully appreciated by the historian when it was set in relation to actual political history. Troeltsch himself often said that the social conditioning of all the strands in our culture was one of the fundamental forces in history which provided some sort of historical continuity. Thus Troeltsch took the view that the political and socio-economic conditions of life were themselves a constituent in the rich potential of culture, and therefore could not be made out to be some sort of special historical development which was in opposition to culture. On the contrary, they are an index of the liveliness of a culture, in which its real contents become visible as it were 'from below'. With Troeltsch's vision of'the creation of a new sociological matrix for ideology, animated by a fresh spiritual insight' as a task for the future,81 we come to a chapter in the practical exegesis of the theory of Christianity which is not written even now. The conquest of social and economic history for the self-definition of Christianity still confronts us. Notes 1 F. Meinecke, 'Ernst Troeltsch und das Problem des Historismus' (1923), in F. Meinecke, Zur Theorie und Philosophie der Geschichte (Stuttgart, 1959), p. 367. 2 K.-E. Apfelbacher, Frommigkeit und Wissenschaft. Ernst Troeltsch und sein theologisches Programm (Miinchen-Paderborn-Wien, 1978), p. 27. 3 See here especially John Powell Clayton (ed.), Ernst Troeltsch and the Future of Theology (Cambridge, 1976); R. Morgan and M. Pye (eds.), Ernst Troeltsch. Writings on Theology and Religion (London, 1977); and also T. Rendtorff, Theorie des Christentums. Studien zu seiner neuzeitlichen Verfassung (Giitersloh, 1972). 4 See on this G. von Schlippe, Die Absolutheit des Christentums bei Ernst Troeltsch aufdem Hintergrund der Denkfelder des ig. Jfahrhunderts (Neustadt an der Aisch, 1966). 324
Ernst Troeltsch 5 E. Troeltsch, 'Zur religiosen Lage, Religionsphilosophie und Ethik', Gesammelte Schriften (GS) vol. n (Tubingen, 1913), p. 447. For Troeltsch's developed, and complex, understanding of the meaning of the 'essence of Christianity' see his long essay 'What does "Essence of Christianity" mean?' (1903; 2nd edn, 1913), translated in Morgan and Pye (eds.), Ernst Troeltsch. Writings on Theology and Religion, pp. 124-81. 6 Ernst Troeltsch, Der Historismus und seine Probleme. I. Buck: Logische Problem der Geschichtsphilosophie, GS, vol. in (Tubingen, 1922), p. ix. 7 Ibid., p. 772. 8 W. Groll, Ernst Troeltsch und Karl Barth - Kontinuitdt im Widerspruch (Miinchen, 1976). See also for the relationship between Barth and Troeltsch T. RendtorfF, 'Der ethische Sinn der Dogmatik', in T. Rendtorff (ed.), Die Realisierung der Freiheit. Beitrdge zur Kritik der Theologie Karl Barths (Giitersloh, 1965), pp. 119-34, es P- PP- I2off. 9 For Gogarten's relationship to Troeltsch see H. Fischer, Christlicher Glaube und Geschichte. Voraussetzungen und Folgen der Theologie Friednch Gogartens (Giitersloh, 1967). 10 H. Bosse, Marx-Weber-Troeltsch. Religionssoziologie und marxistische Ideologiekritik (Miinchen and Mainz, 1970); J. Seguy, Christianisme et Societe. Introduction a la sociologie de Ernst Troeltsch (Paris, 1980). 11 W. F. Kasch, Die Sozialphilosophie von Ernst Troeltsch (Tubingen, 1963); H.-E. Todt, 'Ernst Troeltschs Bedeutung fur die evangelische Sozialethik' (1965), in H.-E. Todt, Das Angebot des Lebens. Theologische Orientierung in den Umstellungskrisen der modernen Welt (Giitersloh, 1978), pp. 37-48. 12 Of biographical import here are Troeltsch's involvement both in the 'German Society for Sociology' (which he co-founded in 1910, along with Max Weber, Georg Simmel, Ferdinand Tonnies, Werner Sombart and others), and also his enthusiastic participation in the various boards of the 'Evangelical-Social-Congress', where in 1911 he attempted to stand for the presidency, a post previously occupied by Harnack. 13 For general treatments of Troeltsch's philosophy of history, see especially: E. Lessing, Die Geschichtsphilosophie Ernst Troeltschs (Hamburg-Bergstedt, 1965); and J. Klapwijk, Tussen Historisme en Relativisme: Een Studie over de dynamiek van het historisme en de rvijsgerige ontwikkelingsgang van Ernst Troeltsch (Assen, 1970). 14 See especially on Troeltsch's philosophy of religion: H.-G. Drescher, Glaube und Vernunft bei Ernst Troeltsch. Eine kritische Deutung seiner religionsphilosophischen Grundlegung (Marburg, 1957); and for the English reader: J. L. Adams, 'Ernst Troeltsch as Analyst of Religion', Journal for the Scientific Study of Religion 1 (1961), 98-109. 15 Ernst Troeltsch, Die Absolutheit des Christentums und die Religionsgeschichte (1902, revised 2nd edn, 1912, 3rd edn, 1929). Translation of 3rd edition by D. Reid: The Absoluteness of Christianity and the History of Religions (London, 1971). The question about Christianity's 'absoluteness' in relation to the general history of religions can be seen already to have implied the more general, and vast, question which Troeltsch faced in his later philosophy of history, viz. whether, in the face of the extraordinary variety and particularity of individual cultures, one can really go on looking for religious or ethical norms which may apply to them all. 16 Troeltsch's period of theological study is now fully documented by H. Renz, 'Troeltschs Theologiestudium', in H. Renz and F. W. Graf (eds.), Troeltsch-Studien. Untersuchungen zur Biographie und Werkgeschichte (Giitersloh, 1982), pp. 48-59. 17 A good short introduction to Troeltsch's life and work is provided by K.-E. Apfelbacher and P. Neuner (eds.), in their introduction to Ernst Troeltsch. Briefe an Friedrich von Hu'gel, igoi-23 (Paderborn, 1974), pp. 11-41. For specific treatment of Troeltsch's call to Berlin, see U. Pretzel, 'Ernst Troeltschs Berufung an die Berliner Universitat', in H. Leussink, E. Neumann and E. Kotowsky (eds.), Studium Berolinense. Aufsdtze und
325
TRUTZ RENDTORFF AND FRIEDRICH WILHELM GRAF
18
19 20
21 22
23
24 25 26
27
28 29 30 31
32
33
34
Beitrdge zu Problemen der Wissenschaft und zur Geschichte der Friedrich-WilhelmsUniversitdt zu Berlin (Berlin, i960), pp. 507-14. One should however particularly mention Troeltsch's involvement with the so-called 'Eranos' group during his Heidelberg period, and his special friendships with the sociologist Max Weber (with whom he shared a house for some years) and with the art historian Carl Neumann. See especially GS, vol. in, pp. 6946°. Ibid., p. 4. A 'value' in Troeltsch's sense (and that of his contemporaries and forebears in German philosophy of history) is a concept with a certain ambiguity: it could be understood simply as an ethical proposition; but it could in addition connote any viewpoint or proposition or activity of potential cultural significance. In the latter case, 'values' are sometimes deemed to have an independent existence of their own and to operate as metaphysical forces; but more characteristically in Troeltsch's later work they are understood as creative constructs of the historian, albeit drawing on a rich cultural heritage. GS, vol. in, p. 6. Previously undiscovered material on Troeltsch's political activity during the war is now listed and annotated in the comprehensive new Troeltsch bibliography: F. W. Graf and H. Ruddies (eds.), Ernst Troeltsch Bibliographic (Tubingen, 1982). For this debate see H. Liibbe, Politische Philosophic in Deutschland 4. Teil: Die philosophischen Ideen von igi4 (Basel and Stuttgart, 1963), pp. 173-238. For the English reader, Robert J. Rubanowice, Crisis in Consciousness. The Thought of Ernst Troeltsch (Tallahassee, 1982), pp. 99-130 (ch. 5: 'An Intellectual in Polities') provides a brief but quite useful coverage. See GS, vol. m, passim, but esp. pp. 7036° on 'Europeanism'. See ibid., p. 8, and footnote 4 there. Ibid., n. 4. The quotations come from A. C. Bouquet, Is Christianity the Final Religion? (London, 1921), and S. Low, The Governance of England (London and Leipzig, 2nd edn, 1914). GS, vol. in, p. i n . This does not however mean that Troeltsch gave up completely the idea of a teleology in history. But he did deny that anyone but God could fully and objectively comprehend it (see ibid., p. 112). Ibid., p. 112. Ibid., pp. 1196°. See in particular some of the essays in Troeltsch's GS, vol. iv: ed. H. Baron, Aufsdtze zur Geistesgeschichte und Religionssoziologie (Tubingen, 1925). J. L. Adams, 'Ernst Troeltsch as Analyst of Religion', Journal for the Scientific Study of Religion, 1 (1961), p. 100. The distinction between 'holoscopic' and 'meroscopic' is taken from the American philosopher Richard McKeon. For an explication of the distinction between 'relativity' (in Troeltsch's sense) and 'epistemological relativism' proper, see S. Coakley, 'Theology and Cultural Relativism: What is the Problem?', Neue Zeitschrift fur systematische Theologie und Religionsphilosophie, 21 (1979), 223-43. For a detailed examination of the precise form of Troeltsch's 'relativism' see chapter 1 of S. Coakley, 'The Limits and Scope of the Christology of Ernst Troeltsch', Ph.D. diss., Cambridge University, 1982 (forthcoming as Christ without Absolutes: A Study of the Christology of Ernst Troeltsch (Oxford)). For 'Neo-Kantianism' see the bibliography provided in the introduction to H. L. Ollig, Der Neukantianismus (Stuttgart, 1979). For the English reader, H. S. Hughes, Consciousness and Society: the Reorientation of European Social Thought i8go-igjo (New York, 1958) provides some introductory material on Windelband and Rickert.
326
Ernst Troeltsch 35 On this aspect of Weber's thought see in particular: W. Schluchter, Die Entwicklung des okzidentalen Rationalismus. Eine Analyse von Max Webers Gesellschaftsgeschichte (Tubingen, 1979). 36 J. Habermas, Theorie des kommunikativen Handelns, esp. vol. 1: Handlungsrationalitdt und gesellschaftliche Rationalisierung (2 vols., Frankfurt, 1981), pp. 225-452. 37 See J. P. Clayton, 'Can Theology be both Cultural and Christian? Ernst Troeltsch and the Possibility of a Mediating Theology', in D. E. Patterson (ed.), Science, Faith, and Revelation. Essays in Honor of Eric C. Rust (Nashville, 1979), pp. 8 2 - 1 1 1 . 38 GS, vol. i n , p . 166. 39 Ibid., p . 165. 40 Ibid. 41 Ibid., p. 183. 42 Ibid., p. 175. 43 On this see particularly Troeltsch's article 'Wesen der Religion und der Religionswissenschaft' (1906; 2nd edn, 1909; 3rd edn, 1913), translated in Morgan and Pye (eds.), Ernst Troeltsch. Writings on Theology and Religion, pp. 82-123. 44 GS, vol. in, p. 677. 45 Ibid., p. 675. 46 For the English reader it is important to understand that in German theology 'dogmatics' usually carries the overtones of a systematic theology which claims some normative and inviolable knowledge of God. For a relativist such as Troeltsch, operating with a positive view towards the history of religions, his theological work could not therefore qualify as 'dogmatics' in this stricter sense. (See W. E. Wyman, Jr, The Concept of Glaubenslehre. Ernst Troeltsch and the Theological Heritage ofSchleiermacher (Chico, California, 1983) for an extensive treatment of this theme.) 47 GS, vol. in, p. 181. 48 Ibid., p. 185. 49 Ibid. 50 Ibid., p. 187. 51 Ibid., p. 188. 52 Ibid., p. 190. 53 Ibid., p. 192. 54 Ibid., pp. i83f. 55 Ibid., p. 199; and see p. 695. 56 Ibid., p. 195. 57 Ibid., pp. 6948". 58 Ibid., p. 703. 59 Ibid., p. 718. 60 Ernst Troeltsch, The Social Teaching of the Christian Churches, translated by O. Wyon (London, 1931), pp. 99iff. 61 That was his position in his earlier work on 'the absoluteness of Christianity' (see n. 15 above), of which more below. 62 GS, vol. in, p. 729. 63 Ibid., p. 199. 64 This approach to Troeltsch is particularly exemplified in Apfelbacher, Frotnmigkeit und Wissenschaft. Personal evidence of Troeltsch's piety can also be seen in his correspondence with von Hiigel, in Apfelbacher and Neuner (eds.), Briefe an von Hu'gel. 65 'Die Selbstandigkeit der Religion', Zeitschriftfur Theologie und Kirche, 5(1895), 361-436; 6 (1896), 71-110, 167-218. (The journal had been founded in 1891.) 66 F. Niebergall, 'Uber die Absolutheit des Christentums', Theologische Arbeiten aus dent rheinischen wissenschaftlichen Predigerverein, N.F. 4 (1900), 46-86.
327
TRUTZ RENDTORFF AND FRIEDRICH WILHELM GRAF 67 Ernst Troeltsch, 'Uber historische und dogmatische Methode der Theologie (Bemerkungen zu dem Aufsatz "Uber die Absolutheit des Christentums" von Niebergall)', Theologische Arbeiten aus dem rheinischen wissenschaftliehen Predigerverein, N.F. 4 (1900), 87-108. Slightly altered edition (wrongly dated 1898) in GS, vol. 11, pp. 729-5368 See n. 15 above. 69 GS, vol. 11, p. 729. 70 There are recent discussions in English of these three principles of 'historical' theology ('probability', 'analogy', and 'correlation') in W. J. Abraham, Divine Revelation and the Limits of Historical Criticism (Oxford, 1982), pp. 926°., and Wyman, Concept of Glaubenslehre, pp. 4ff. 71 GS, vol. 11, p. 737. 72 Ibid., p. 738. 73 The Absoluteness, p. 63. 74 Ibid., p. 85. 75 Ibid., p. 95. 76 See on this Liibbe, Politische Philosophie. 77 The Absoluteness, pp. 111-12. 78 E. Troeltsch, 'Die Bedeutung der Geschichtlichkeit Jesu fur den Glauben' (1911), translated in Morgan and Pye (eds.), Writings on Theology and Religion, pp. 182-207. 79 E. Troeltsch, Die Bedeutung des Protestantismus fur die Entstehung der modernen Welt (Miinchen and Berlin, 1906). Translated by W. Montgomery as Protestantism and Progress. A Historical Study ofthe Relation ofProtestantism to the Modern World (London, 1912; Boston, 1958; Gloucester, Mass., 1964). 80 A. von Harnack, 'Uber das Verhaltnis der Kirchengeschichte zur Universalgeschichte', in Aus Wissenschaft und Leben 2. Band (Giessen, 1911), pp. 4iff. 81 GS, vol. in, p. 771.
Bibliographical essay A detailed list of works published by Troeltsch is now available: edited, introduced and annotated by Friedrich Wilhelm Graf and Hartmut Ruddies, Ernst Troeltsch Bibliographie (Tubingen, 1982). This comprehensive bibliography brings to light many publications by Troeltsch that were previously unknown, and documents precisely his intensive output of political lectures and publications as well as his work in the two parliaments in which he was involved. Detailed commentary on the individual texts highlights the context in which they were written. The general reader will of course still find Ernst Troeltsch, Gesammelte Schriften, volumes 1—IV (Aalen, 1961-6) the most convenient and easily available starting point for reading a broad collection of Troeltsch's works. However, it should be borne in mind that many of the articles found in volume 11 and in the posthumous volume iv had earlier, somewhat different, editions (see Graf and Ruddies (eds.), Bibliographie for details), and that the bibliography by Hans Baron in GS, volume iv is both incomplete and defective. The many translations of Troeltsch texts available in other languages have now been compiled into a bibliography by Udo Bussmann, 'Fremdsprachige Veroffentlichungen Ernst Troeltschs', in Mitteilungen der Ernst-Troeltsch-Gesellschaft, 1 (1982), pp. 26-34. This bibliography is partly based on a list of English translations of Troeltsch texts by Jacob Klapwijk ('English Translations of Troeltsch's Works') in J. P. Clayton (ed.), Ernst Troeltsch and the Future of Theology (Cambridge, 1976), pp. 197-200. The annual bulletin of the ErnstTroeltsch Gesellschaft, founded in 1981, provides additional information on new publications and gives reports on research in hand.
328
Ernst Troeltsch The best available attempts so far at providing a comprehensive documentation of secondary work on Troeltsch can be found in 'Litteratur om Troeltsch', in John Nome, Det moderne Livsproblem. Hos Troeltsch og var Tid (Oslo, 1950), pp. 523-35, and in the 'Bibliography' by Klapwijk in ed. Clayton (ed.), Ernst Troeltsch and the Future of Theology, pp. 196-214. But the titles mentioned there (around 220 by Nome and 270 by Klapwijk) are in fact only a relatively small part of the secondary literature on Troeltsch that has actually appeared. In what follows we shall concentrate particularly on the new work that itself contains references to further literature. Since the 1960s there has grown up a new interest in Troeltsch's work which is both international and interdisciplinary. This is especially true of German-speaking Protestant theology. Here, under the influence of 'dialectical theology', theological work which continued to tackle the contemporary problems of religion and Christianity to which Troeltsch had drawn attention, was for a while cast under a cloud of suspicion for having supposedly abandoned the unique religious substance of Christianity; but this was not a lasting state of affairs, as the resumed debate today on Troeltsch's theological challenges shows, especially in the work of Wolfhart Pannenberg and Trutz Rendtorff. For Pannenberg see inter alia: 'Toward a Theology of the History of Religions', in W. Pannenberg, Basic Questions in Theology, volume 11 (London, 1971), pp. 65-118; Theology and the Philosophy of Science (London, 1976); and Ethics (Philadelphia, 1978). Also see Hiroshi Obayashi, 'Pannenberg and Troeltsch: History and Religion', Journal of the American Academy of Religion, 38 (1970), pp. 401-19. For RendtorfF's work compare in addition his 'Ernst Troeltsch' in Martin Greschat (ed.), Theologen des Protestantismus im ig. und20.Jahrhundert, Bd. 11 (Stuttgart, 1978), pp. 272-87; 436—7; and 'Europaismus als geschichtlicher Kontext der Theologie. Bemerkungen zur heutigen Kritik an europaischer Theologie im Lichte von Ernst Troeltsch', in Trutz Rendtorff (ed.), Europdische Theologie. Versuche einer Ortsbestimmung (Giitersloh, 1980), pp. 165-79; a n d m particular, Theorie des Christentums. Historisch-theologische Studien zu seiner neuzeitlichen Verfassung (Giitersloh, 1972).
The contemporary relevance of the questions raised by Troeltsch has been clearly evidenced in British theology in recent years by the long drawn-out debate over The Myth of God Incarnate. John Hick's position, in particular, may be seen as very close to Troeltsch's: see his 'Jesus and the World Religions' in John Hick (ed.), The Myth of God Incarnate (London, 1977), pp. 167-85, and God and the Universe ofFaiths (London, 1973). In addition, see A. O. Dyson, The Immortality of the Past (London, 1974). As early as 1974 the American theologian James Luther Adams could speak of a 'Troeltsch revival' ('Why the Troeltsch revival? Reasons for the renewed interest in the thought of the great German theologian Ernst Troeltsch', The Unitarian Universalist Christian, 29 (1974), pp. 4-15; see also 'Ernst Troeltsch as Analyst of Religion', Journal of the Scientific Study of Religion, 1 (1961), pp. 98-109.) Since then, signs of a renewed quickening of interest in Troeltsch's work have increased still further. In addition to individual studies which are for the most part on very specialized questions of Troeltsch interpretation, there now exist a number of new general interpretations of Troeltsch's thought. The Dutch Reformed theologian Gaathe Willem Reitsema, in his Ernst Troeltsch als godsdienstwijsgeer (Serie Philosophia Religionis Nr. XV, Assen, 1974), sets out to explicate the 'whole of Ernst Troeltsch's scholarly work' as a coherent, relatively self-contained, and comprehensive 'plan for a philosophy of religion' for modern cultural conditions (p. 173). The work of Karl-Ernst Apfelbacher, Frommigkeit und Wissenschaft. Ernst Troeltsch und sein theologisches Programm,
Beitrage zur Okumenischen Theologie, Band 18 (Munich, 1978) represents the first new attempt at a synthesis of Troeltsch's thinking from a Roman Catholic standpoint. It has not however gone without criticism (see Walter E. Wyman, The Journal ofReligion, 60 (1980), pp. 353-5, and Friedrich Wilhelm Graf, Zeitschriftfur Evangelische Ethik, 26 (1982), pp. 113-17).
329
TRUTZ RENDTORFF AND FRIEDRICH WILHELM GRAF Apfelbacher provides a resume of his interpretation in an essay 'Ernst Troeltsch' in Heinrich Fries and Georg Kretschmar (eds.), Klassiker der Theologie. Zweiter Band. Von Richard Simon bis Dietrich Bonhoeffer (Munich, 1983), pp. 241-61,423-6,451-2. Troeltsch's bearing on Roman Catholic 'Modernism' at the turn of the century is documented in the collection of his letters to Friedrich von Hiigel (edited with an introduction by Karl-Ernst Apfelbacher and Peter Neuner, Ernst Troeltsch. Briefe an Friedrich von Hiigel, Konfessionskundliche Schriften des Johann-Adam-Mohler Instituts Nr. 11 (Paderborn, 1974)). Also see on this area Hans Rollmann, 'Troeltsch, von Hiigel and Modernism', The Downside Review, 96 (1978), pp. 35-60. Troeltsch's correspondence with the Italian aristocrat Stefano Jacini, Jr, is excellently covered by Giovanni Moretto, 'Ernst Troeltsch e il Modernismo', in Nuovi Studi di Filosofia Religione (Archivio di Filosofia, Padua, 1982), pp. 133-^79. Troeltsch's contemporary significance for Liberal Catholicism and its outlook is also stressed by Giuseppe Cantillo in his Ernst Troeltsch, volume 10 of Santo Mazzarino and Fulvio Tessitore (eds.), Gli Storici (Naples, 1979), and by Gerhold Becker, Neuzeitliche Subjektivitdt und Religiositdt. Die religionsphilosophische Bedeutung von Heraufkunft und Wesen der Neuzeit im Denken von Ernst Troeltsch (Regensburg, 1982). The Protestant theologian living in East Berlin, Hans-Jiirgen Gabriel, puts forward the emphatic view in his Christlichkeit der Gesellschaft? Eine kritische Darstellung der Kulturphilosophie von Ernst Troeltsch (Berlin, 1975) that Troeltsch had himself at the end of his life become increasingly aware of the 'foundering' of his programme (pp. 18iff). This opinion was already strongly expressed in the older literature (see Walter Bodenstein, Neige des Historismus. Ernst Troeltsch's Entwicklungsgang (Giitersloh, 1959); and Benjamin A. Reist, Toward a Theology of Involvement. The Thought of Ernst Troeltsch (Philadelphia, 1966), esp. pp. i54ff.) but without really yet being given a plausible foundation. Since the 1960s a new level of Troeltsch research has also been achieved in the Englishspeaking world. As well as the books by Reist and Wilhelm Pauck, Harnack and Troeltsch. Two Historical Theologians (New York, 1969), one may refer to a number of unpublished dissertations which have appeared: Anthony O. Dyson, 'History in the Philosophy and Theology of Ernst Troeltsch' (D.Phil, diss., Oxford University, 1968); Duane K. Friesen, 'The Relationship between Ernst Troeltsch's Theory of Religion and his Typology of Religious Association' (Ph.D. diss., Harvard University, 1972); Dennis Henry Ormseth, 'The Hidden God: An Exploration of the Theological Significance of Ernst Troeltsch's Concept of the "Irrational", with Special Reference to his Interpretation of Nietzsche' (Ph.D. diss., University of Chicago, 1980); and Darrell Davis Perkins, Jr, 'Explicating Christian Faith in a Historically Conscious Age: The Method of Ernst Troeltsch's Glaubenslehre' (Ph.D. diss., Vanderbilt University, 1981); further such works are listed by Hans Rollmann, 'Nordamerikanische Dissertationen iiber Ernst Troeltsch: 1915-1981', in Mitteilungen der Ernst-Troeltsch-Gesellschaft, 2 (1983), pp. 85-8. Amongst recent work in English there have been the essays by Robert Morgan and Michael Pye set alongside their translations of four important works by Troeltsch (Robert Morgan and Michael Pye (eds.), Ernst Troeltsch. Writings on Theology and Religion (London, 1977), pp. 151, 208-52); but special attention should be given to the book already mentioned that came out of the international symposium 'on Troeltsch's intellectual legacy' held in Lancaster in 1974: J. P. Clayton (ed.), Ernst Troeltsch and the Future of Theology (Cambridge, 1976). What might be called an immanent approach to Troeltsch's work is here examined, an approach which proceeds by way of a very precise analysis of the integral structure of the argument in particular Troeltsch texts, and avoids the unfruitful alternatives of either wholesale criticism or general agreement. In this way it is possible to see how successful Troeltsch was in carrying through constructively various claims that were implied by his programme. Further attempts at this sort of study are badly needed. Yet in doing this one must also give special attention to the original context of the Troeltsch text in hand, and to whom it was addressed. One article is exemplary in this respect: B. A. Gerrish, 'Jesus, Myth, and History: Troeltsch's Stand in the 330
Ernst Troeltsch "Christ-Myth" Debate', The Journal of Religion, 55 (1975), pp. 13-35. See also for a comprehensive study of Troeltsch's christology: Sarah Coakley, 'The Limits and Scope of the Christology of Ernst Troeltsch' (Ph.D. diss., University of Cambridge, 1982) forthcoming shortly as Christ without Absolutes: A Study of the Christology of Ernst Troeltsch (Oxford University Press). 1983 also saw the appearance of further publications on Troeltsch in English: see esp. Walter E. Wyman, Jr, The Concept of'Glaubenslehre . Ernst Troeltsch and the Theological Heritage of Schleiermacher (American Academy of Religion Academy Series No. 44, (Chico, Cal., 1983); and Robert J. Rubanowice, Crisis in Consciousness. The Thought of Ernst Troeltsch, with a foreword by James Luther Adams (Tallahassee, 1983). In 1941 Walther Kohler, a pupil of Troeltsch's wrote that 'the time has not yet come for a biography of Ernst Troeltsch . . . if, that is, there is any chance of one at all' (in his Ernst Troeltsch (Tubingen, 1941, p. v); see too his 'Ernst Troeltsch', Zeitschnft fur deutsche Kulturphilosophie 9 (1943), pp. 1-21). Troeltsch has indeed remained, as far as a history of his life is concerned, 'the most unknown of the great German theologians of the century' (so Hartmut Ruddies, in 'Ernst Troeltsch. Ein Gedenkblatt zum 60. Todestag am 1. Februar 1983', Reformierte Kirchenzeitung 124, 1983, p. 17). Only for the young Troeltsch do we now have, for the first time, both biographical details and a working history of the personal and literary influences that contributed to the formation of his theological outlook (in Horst Renz and Friedrich Wilhelm Graf (eds.), Troeltsch-Studien. Untersuchungen zur Biographie und Werkgeschichte. Mit den unveroffentlichen Promotionsthesen der 'Kleinen Gb'ttinger Fakultdt\ 1888-gj (Giitersloh, 1982)). Troeltsch's years in Heidelberg and Berlin have up to now been much less well researched. But there are already available some letters from the Heidelberg period: see in particular Erika Dinkier - von Schubert, 'Ernst Troeltsch. Briefe aus der Heidelberger Zeit an Wilhelm Bousset 1894-1914', Heidelberger jfahrbucher, 20 (1976), pp. 19-52; and 'Heidelberg im Leben und Werk von Gertrud von Le Fort', Heidelberger jfahrbucher, 16 (1972), pp. 4-21. But still very little is known about Troeltsch's teaching in Heidelberg, his large circle of students, his involvement in university politics, and his intensive intellectual exchange with colleagues in the faculty and with those outside theology. Particularly pressing is the need for a detailed account of Troeltsch's political activity, both during the First World War and also, especially, during the first few years of the Weimar Republic. There are, it is true, a few important studies of relevance here that can be mentioned: Eric C. Kollmann, 'Eine Diagnose der Weimarer Republik. Ernst Troeltschs politische Auschauungen', Histonsche Zeitschrift, 182 (1956), pp. 291-319; Robert J. Rubanowice, 'An Intellectual in Politics. The Political Thought of Ernst Troeltsch', Journal of Social Sciences and Humanities, 3 (1974), pp. 5-29; and, in particular, Arrigo Rapp, // Problema della Germania negli Scritti politici di E. Troeltsch (igi4~ig22), Universita di Roma. Facolta di Scienze Politiche vol. 24 (Rome, 1978). Further information on Troeltsch's position can be found in: Gustav Schmidt, Histonsmus und der Ubergang zur parlamentarischen Demokratie. Untersuchungen zu den politischen Gedanken von Metnecke, Troeltsch, Max Weber (Liibeck, 1964); Klaus Schwabe, Wissenschaft und Kriegsmoral. Die deutschen Hochschullehrer und die politischen Grundfragen des Ersten Weltkrieges (Frankfurt, 1969); Kurt Topner, Gelehrte Politiker und politisierende Gelehrte. Die Revolution von igiSim Urteil deutscher Hochschullehrer, Veroffentlichungen der Gesellschaft fur Geistesgeschichte Bd. 5 (Frankfurt, 1970); Giinter Brakelmann, Der deutsche Protestantismus im Epochenjahr 79/7, Politik und Kirche. Studienbiicher zur kirchlichenZeitgeschichteBd. 1 (Witten, 1974); Martin Greschat, Der deutsche Protestantismus im Revolutionsjahr igi8\ig, Politik und Kirche. Studienbiicher zur kirchlichen Zeitgeschichte Bd. 2 (Witten, 1974); Jonathan R. C. Wright, 'Above Parties'. The Political Attitudes of the German Protestant Church Leadership igi8-igjj (Oxford, 1974); Herbert Doring, Der Weimarer Kreis. Studien zum politischen Bewusstsein verfassungstreuer Hochschullehrer in der Weimarer Republik (Meisenheim, 1975); and Kurt Nowak, Evangelische Kirche und Weimarer Republik. Zum politischen Weg des
33 1
TRUTZ RENDTORFF AND FRIEDRICH WILHELM GRAF deutschen Protestantismus zwischen igi8 und igj2 (Gottingen, 1981). But despite all these, up to now the real circumstances of Troeltsch's political involvement have only really been researched in a preliminary way. Also since the 1960s there have appeared numerous studies on the history of Troeltsch's impact on his contemporaries and on the reception his theology received. Attention has been given above all here to the criticism of Troeltsch by the 'dialectical' theologians: see T. W. Ogletree, Christian Faith and History: A Critical Comparison of Ernst Troeltsch and Karl Barth (Nashville, 1965); Hermann Fischer, Christlicher Glaube undGeschichte. Voraussetzungen und Folgen der Theologie Friedrich Gogartens (Giitersloh, 1967); Wilfried Groll, Ernst Troeltsch und Karl Barth - Kontinuitdt im Widersprueh, Beitrage zur evangelischen Theologie Bd. 72 (Munich, 1976); Robert Morgan, 'Ernst Troeltsch and the dialectical theology', in Clayton (ed.), Ernst Troeltsch and the Future of Theology, pp. 33-77; Hans-Georg Drescher, 'Entwicklungsdenken und Glaubensentscheidung. Troeltschs Kierkegaardverstandnis und die Kontroverse Troeltsch-Gogarten', Zeitschrift fur Theologie und Kirche, 79 (1982), pp. 8 0 106; and Ulrich Ruh, Sdkularisierung als Interpretations-kategorie. Zur Bedeutung des christlichen Erbes in der modernen Geistesgeschichte, Freiburger Theologische Studien Bd. 119 (Freiburg i.B., 1980), esp. pp. 123-98. Much less attention than is due to it has yet been given to the question of the impact of Troeltsch's theology between 1890 and 1920. Moreover, his effect on those working outside theology, especially in the history of science, in sociology and philosophy, requires more exact investigation. There is adequate coverage of the way Troeltsch's work was received outside the German-speaking world. There is, for instance, instructive coverage in the case of Sweden in Aleksander Radler, Religion und kirchliche Wirklichkeit. Eine rezeptionsgeschichtliche Untersuchung des Schleiermacherbildes in der schwedischen Theologie, Studia Theologica Lundensia Bd. 36 (Lund, 1980). In Horst Renz and Friedrich Wilhelm Graf (eds.), Protestantismus und Neuzeit, Troeltsch-Studien Bd. in (Giitersloh, 1984) there are contributions from B. A. Gerrish, G. Moretto, H. Rollmann and G. W. Reitsema on the history of response to Troeltsch's work in the U.S.A., Italy, Great Britain and the Netherlands. The discussion of Troeltsch's work in France (if one leaves out of account the older work of E. Vermeil, La pensee religieuse de Troeltsch (Strasbourg, 1922)), appears to have got going recently chiefly as the result of several pieces of work by the sociologist of religion Jean Seguy. His earlier papers on Troeltsch are listed in Jean Seguy, Christianisme et Societe. Introduction a la sociologie de Ernst Troeltsch (Sciences humaines et religions, Paris, 1980).
332
INDEX
Abauzit, Firmin, 154 Abrahams, Israel, 133 Absolute, concept of, 80 Adams, James Luther, 310 Africa, primitive societies and religions of, 186, 246
agnosticism, 29, 217, 225, 239 Alcazar, Luis de, 154 Anglo-Catholicism, 3 animism, 135, 218, 221, 230, 231, 232, 234, 253 Anthropological Society of London, 218, 221 anthropological study of religion, 15, 27, 127, 187-8, 215-55; change from speculation to empiricism in, 251; emphasis on classification, 243; modern anthropological views of nineteenth-century, 222-7, 235, 253; monogenist and polygenist theories, 216-17, 218, 220-1, 227; nineteenth-century attitudes to, 215-22; sexual prudery in, 218-19, 22930, 230-1, 232, 235, 253; use of comparative method, 188, 221, 237-8, 252, 254; see also ethnology; mythology; primitive peoples; primitive religion; social evolutionism; and under Britain; France; United States Antichrist, 154, 155, 168 Antoni, Carlo, 285 apocalyptic tradition, Jewish, 155-6 Apollos, 167 Archiv fur Religionswissenschaft, 205
Arnold, Matthew, 8, i o - n , 12, 15, 16, 17 Arnold, Thomas, 116 Assyriology, 134, 180 Astruc, J., 117 atheism, absence of religion, 7, 226, 228-9, 233> 237 Augustine, Saint, 159 Australian aborigines, 238, 250; Protection Society, 216; totemism of, 236-7, 238, 245-6, 252 Avestan and Iranian studies, 180, 182
Babylonian literature, 134-6, 180; myth of creation, 134, 155 Baker, Sir Samuel, 226, 228 Ballenstedt, Heinrich Christian, 156 Baring-Gould, S., 240 Barth, Karl, 23, 306, 316, 324 Bauer, Bruno, 157, 162, 166, 169 Bauer, G. L., 119, 125 Bauer, Walter, 158 Baumgarten, Siegmund Jacob, 145 Baur, Ferdinand Christian, 118, 123, 147, 171; New Testament studies of, 146, 157, 158, 159, 166, 167, 168, 169, 170 Beal, Samuel, 208 Bedier, J., 201 Beidelmann, T. O., 226 Benamozegh, Elijah, 90-1 Bengel, Johann Albrecht, 148 Bentley, Richard, 148, 150, 152 Berger, P. L., 223, 224 Bergson, Henri, 27 Beuchat, H., 253 Bibel-Babel controversy, 135 Bible: fundamentalism, 217; Jewish philosophical interpretation of, 73-4, 92, 120; literary-critical approach to, 11, 111-12, 118; scientific challenge to authority of, 1,3, 10, 11, 14, 23, 27, 28, 216; see also New Testament; Old Testament; and under mythology Biblical Commission, 25 biological science, 1, 13, 15, 16, 18, 19-20 'black theology', 317-18 Blackie, John, 201 Bloch, Ernst, 39 Blondel, Maurice, 26, 27, 29 Boas, Franz, 251 Bopp, Franz, 182, 197 Botta, P. E., 134 Boucher de Perthes, J., 180, 240
333
Index Boudin, J.-Ch.-M., 230 Bouquet, A. C , 309 Bousset, Wilhelm, 155 Boutroux, Emile, 21, 22 Bowker, J., 224 Bowne, Borden, 24 Brahmanism, 207 Brandt, Wilhelm, 157-8 Breal, M. J. A., 199, 245 Bretschneider, Karl Gottlieb, 156 7 Brinton, D. G., 198, 245, 251 Britain, 2, 16; anthropological studies in, 216, 218, 219, 221, 251; Jews in, 12; theological studies in, 116, 129, 143 4, 205 Broca, P. P., 228 Brockhaus, Hermann, 182, 188 Brosses, Charles de, 186, 187, 219, 230, 234 Brown, Robert, 198 Buber, Martin, 98 Biichner, Ludwig, 4, 5 Buddhism, Buddhist studies, 182, 184, 199,
Comte, Auguste, 4, 190, 217-18, 225, 230, 240; concept of fetishism, 219, 233, 234; theory of progress, 219-20, 227, 228 Condorcet, A.-N. de, 217, 219-20 Confucianism, 207, 292 Congreve, Richard, 4 conscience, 273; Darwinism and, 6-7, 13-14,
207, 223, 291 BufTon, Georges Louis Leclerc, Comte de, 215, 217
Dalman, G., 115, 133 Darwin, Charles, Darwinism, 2, 4-6, 9, 10, 17, 18, 26, 184, 230; The Descent of Man, 1, 6-7, 17; and metaphysical consequences of natural selection, 13-14; Origin of Species, 1,4, 12, 219; and religious status of Bible, 3; social effect of, 16; see also evolution Davids, T. W. Rhys, 208 De Wette, W. M. L., 116-19 Passim, 121, 125, 128, 136, 156, 161, 165, 166, 168 Declaration of Students of the Natural and Physical Sciences (1864), 12-13 Deism, Deists, 110, 225 deities, 179, 183, 197-202 passim, 228, 233-4, 237-8; see also henotheism Delitzsch, Franz, 133 development, ideas of, 1, 2—6, 14, 18, 21, 219— 20, 227, 246; see also evolution; progress Diaspora, 132, 291 diffusionist theories, 217, 218 Dilthey, Wilhelm, 312 Dionysius of Alexandria, 154 Dorson, Richard M., 196, 198 Driver, S. R., 129 Drobisch, Moritz Wilhelm, 182, 190, 193 dualism, 43, 193, 265, 289-90, 294 Duhem, Pierre, 21 Dulaure, J. A., 219, 230, 233 Dupuis, Charles F., 219 Durkheim, Emile, 208, 217, 232, 239, 245-8, 269, 274, 287; concept of God as collective representation of society, 22-3, 237, 241, 245-6, 248; Durkheimians, 244-5, 252—3; and relationship between the economic and spiritual, 275, 289; and sacred-profane polarity, 223, 241, 247-8; and totemism, 236, 237, 238, 245-6, 252
17, 19-21
consciousness, human, 14, 28 Cowell, E. B., 208 Cox, George W., 198 Cramer, Jakob, 169 Crawley, E., 251 creation: Babylonian myth of, 134, 155; conflict between 'scientific' and biblical accounts of, 1, 3, 4, 7, 10, 17-18, 19, 21, 25; see also under Jewish thought Creuzer, Friedrich, 180 Cusanus, Nicholas, 80 Cuvier, Georges Leopold, Baron, 3
Bultmann, Rudolf, 158, 167 Burnouf, Emile, 206 Burnouf, Eugene, 182, 185, 201 Butler, Bishop Joseph, 14, 17 Calvin, John, Calvinism, 166, 268, 269, 274, 279, 289, 294; see also predestination capitalism, capitalist society, 16, 219, 268, 271, 288, 298; see also under Weber Caroline of Ansbach, 144 Cerinthus, 153, 154 Champollion, Jean-Francois, 134, 179 Chantepie dc la Saussaye, Daniel, 204 Christianity, 207, 223, 226, 240, 241, 242; early history of, 130, 132, 144 7, 154-5, 164-71 passim; and other world religions, 9, 73, 273, 282; scientific challenge to, 1-29 passim; sectarian tendencies of, 274, 278, 282, 283; see also under Hegel; Jewish thought; Marx; Nietzsche; Old Testament; Troeltsch; Weber Clarke, Dr Samuel, 144 Clement of Alexandria, 145, 148, 156, 165, 166 Clifford, W. K., 28 Cludius, Hermann Heimart, 156, 158, 166 Cohen, Hermann, 75, 78-80, 85 7, 88, 90, 97-8 commandments, ethical, 77, 82 3, 85, 87, 93, 94 comparative study of religion, 179 209, 255; advent of new methods and materials pertinent to, 134-5, 179 80, 185; anthropological school of {see also anthropological study of religion), 187-8; importance of Max Miiller for, 179, 204, 206-7, 208-9
334
Index Eggeling, Julius, 208 Egyptian religion, ancient, 134, 179-80 Eichhorn, Albert, 134 Eichhorn, Johann Gottfried, 113, 136, 143; literary and historical criticism of Old Testament, m - 1 2 , 114, 115, 116, 117, 121, 122, 135; and New Testament, 154, 160, 162, 166, 167, 168 Eliade, Mircea, 208, 223, 251, 255 Eliot, George, 12 Engels, Friedrich, 275, 277, 278, 297 Enlightenment, 6, 23, 38, 130, 231, 316; French and Scottish, 215, 217; see also under Germany Enuma Elish {The Chaldean Account of Genesis), 134 Epic of Gilgamesh, The, 134 Erasmus, Desiderius, 154, 166 Ernesti, J. A., n o Ernestus Augustus, king of Hanover, 123 Essenes, 158, 159 ethics, see morality Ethnological Society of London, 216, 218, 221 ethnology, ethnologists, 216-17, 2I&, 220-1 Eucharist, 235, 241, 242 Eucken, Rudolf, 24 European superiority, dogma of, 216, 221-2, 233, 275, 286 Eusebius, 165 evangelical Christianity, 215, 216, 217, 218 Evans-Pritchard, E. E., 219, 224-5, 235> 23^» 242, 246, 254
Evanson, Edward, 156, 160, 167 Every, G., 242 evil, 20, 60, 88-9, 91, 290-1 evolution, evolutionism, 203, 253, 255; compatibility of Christian doctrine and, 2-6; Frederick Temple's understanding of, 17-18; Roman Catholic view of, 25-7; see also Darwin; social evolutionism Ewald, Heinrich, 122-6, 127, 132, 161, 162; Geschichte des Volkes Israel, 123-6, 128 Fall, doctrine of, 3, 19, 20, 21, 88, 89; see also Original Sin Farmer, Hugh, 145 Fausboll, V., 208 feeling, religious, 28, 91, 195, 238, 273; see also mana; religious experience Fergusson, J., 230 Ferrar, William Hugh, 151, 152 fertility cults, 218, 230 fetishism, 186-7, 2 I 8 , 219, 231-6 passim, 253 Feuerbach, Ludwig, 4, n , 190 Fichte, J. G., 190 First World War, 29, 308^9 Fiske, John, 199 form-criticism, 118, 163
Formstecher, Solomon, 76-7, 78, 84-5, 88 France, 12, 88; anthropological study of religion in, 216, 219, 245, 252-3; critical biblical scholarship in, 123, 127, 129; French Enlightenment, 215, 217; study of history of religions in, 204, 205 Frazer, J. G., 217, 218-19, 220, 224, 239, 245, 248, 252; Golden Bough, 208, 229-30, 240, 243, 250; and magico-religious systems, 220, 227-8, 236, 237 8, 243-4, 249, 253 free will, 43, 60, 61, 77; see also predestination freedom, 23, 274, 314-15; Jewish thought on, 76, 77, 78, 88-9; see also free will Freeman, D., 253 Freud, Sigmund, 208 Fustel de Coulanges, N. D., 245 future-orientation, 2, 47, 48, 72, 245 Gabler, J. P., i n , 116, 119 Gaius, 153, 154 Gardner-Smith, Percy, 157 Geiger, A., 120, 121 Genesis, 3, 4, 17-18, 19, 21, 25, 217; historicalcritical study of, i n , 120, 134, 155 Gennep, Arnold van, 208, 241 Germany, 185, 205, 308-9, 311, 324; Enlightenment {Aufkldrung) in, n o , i n , 120, 122, 124, 125, 126, 270; Jews, Jewish philosophers in, 75, 88, 97, 120; New Testament scholarship, 143-4, J45> J 56; Old Testament scholarship, n o , 114, 115-16, 120, 127, 128; sociology of religion in, 264, 269-71 Gesenius, Wilhelm, 113-14, 116, 121, 136 Gibson, Margaret Dunlop, 151 Gladstone, W. E., 2-3, 16 Gnosticism, 134, 158 God, 18, 195, 266, 292; immanent, 20-1, 27; Matthew Arnold's 'scientific' account of, 1011; Old Testament idea of, 118, 119; and salvation, 292-3; see also under Durkheim; individual; Jewish thought Goethe, J. W. von, 15, 206 Gogarten, Friedrich, 306, 316, 324 Goldenweiser, A., 236 Gore, Charles, 3 Gorres, J. J. von, 180 Graetz, Heinrich, 100, 131-2, 135 Graf, K. H., 127, 128, 129 Gratz, Alois Peter, 160, 161, 162 Gray, Asa, 18 Greece, ancient: history of, 116, 122; ideal of humanity, 46, 47; philosophy of, 72, 157; religious tradition, mythology, 134, 185, 249, 250 Gressmann, Hugo, 133, 135 Griesbach, Johann Jakob, 116, 148-9, 150, 159, 162, 166
335
Index 204-8, 225; growth of academic discipline of, 204-5; 'History of Religions' movement, 133-4; journals and international congresses devoted to, 205 Hobhouse, Leonard, 5 Hodge, Charles, 1 Hodgson, Brian, 182 Hoffding, Harold, 1 Hofmann, Johann Christian Konrad von, 126,
Grimm, Jacob and Wilhelm (brothers Grimm),
128, 181 Grotius, Hugo, 109, 128, 154, 159, 160, 161, 165, 166 Gruppc, O., 201 Gubcrnatis, Angelo De, 199 Gunkel, Hermann, 133, 135, 155, 164 Guttmann, Julius, 73 Habermas, Jiirgen, 311 Haddon, A. C , 235 Haeckel, Ernst, 12, 14-15, 21 Haenchen, Ernst, 167 Harnack, Adolf, 147, 155, 166, 171, 205, 272,283, 324 Harris, James Rendel, 158 Harrison, Jane, 22, 229, 250 Hartland, E. S., 250, 251 Hebrew language, 75, 101-2, 113-14 Hegel, G. W. F., Hegelianism, 123, 147, 18990, 270, 283, 285; influence on Jewish thought, 71, 76, 78, 81, 120; Left Hegelians, 272; and Marx, 271; philosophy of history, 118, 126, 131, 189-90, 275; view of Christianity, 24, 76, 272-5, 282, 286; see also under Old Testament; Troeltsch; Weber Heilsgeschichte (History of Salvation), concept of, 126 Hengstenberg, E. W. von, 126 henotheism, 179, 203-4 Henrici, Georg, 164 Herbart, Johann Friedrich, 191, 193 Herder, Johann Gottfried, n o , 112, 114, 122, 154, 163, 164 Hertz, Heinrich, 21, 22 Hertz, R., 241, 253 Hesychius, 149 Heyne, Christian Georg, i n , 119, 200 Hibbert, Robert, 205 Hilgenfeld, Adolf, 159, 168 Hinduism, 58, 291, 292, 293 Hirsch, Samson Raphael, 93-4 Hirsch, Samuel, 77-8, 88-9 historical-critical method, 19, n o ; see also under Old Testament historicism, 38; Historismus movement, n o , 124, 126, 128, 131 historicity, 99-100 history: Christian understanding of, 14; distinction between 'national' and 'universal', 125-6; divine intervention in, 2, 8, 266; Enlightenment view of, 231; of ideas {Geistesgeschichte), 71, 132; Nietzsche's
conception of, 43-4; study of classical, 116, 122; see also historical-critical method; historicism; historicity; history of religion; and under Hegel; Troeltsch; Weber history of religion, 9, 12, 63-4, 155, 185-6, 189,
169
holiness, 80; Otto's concept of 'the holy', 82, 238 Holland, theological studies in, 123, 127-8, 129, 204 Holtzmann, Heinrich Julius, 162 Horst, Georg Konrad, 156, 158 Hort, F. J. A., 150-1, 152 Hubert, H., 240, 241, 242, 244-5, 252> 253 Hug, Johann Leonhard, 149, 152, 161, 162 Hiigel, Friedrich von, 26-7 human rights, 318-19 Hume, David, 186, 215, 217 Huxley, Thomas Henry, 3, 4, 5-6, 14, 15, 16, 28, 29 idealism, 48, 56, 120, 188 immanentism, 21, 26, 27, 71 immortality, 10, 15, 87 Indian religion, 268, 288, 291 individual(ity), individualism, 24, 46, 47, 86-7, 93-4, 314-16; relationship between individual and God, 270-1, 274, 315, 316, 322; relationship between individual and society, 247-8, 264-5, 270-1, 274> 277> 279> 281; see also under Troeltsch Indo-European languages and culture, 180, 188, 197, 204, 207, 248-9; see also Sanskrit Islam, 9, 73, 88, 130, 207, 223, 282, 284 Italy, 88 Jacobi, Hermann, 208 Jacobsen, August, 167 James, E. O., 251-2 James, William, 15, 27-8, 29 Jellinek, Georg, 273, 284 Jerusalem, Temple of, 117, 167 Jesus, 9, 10, 11, 17, 20, 23, 125; Judaism and, 89; New Testament representation of, 144-7, 157, 163, 164, 171 Jevons, F. B., 220, 224, 225, 235, 236, 245, 248, 2 53 Jewish Theological Seminary, Breslau, 121, 131 Jewish thought, 71-102; on Christianity, 79, 85, 87-91; concepts of God in, 76-82 passim, 845, 86, 90, 92, 95; on creation, 73, 76, 79, 87, 95, 98; influence of cultural milieu on, 71—2, 75-6, 88; medieval, 72-3, 74, 75, 79, 91; on monotheism, 74, 76-82, 86-7, 88, 95; on
336
Index revelation and tradition, 72, 84, 91-9; see also Judaism; and under Bible; Kant; Old Testament Jews: history of, 81-2, 100-1, 120, 123-6, 131— 2, 135; social, political and cultural circumstances of, 12, 72, 75, 87-8, 96-7, 120; Volksgeist of, 81-2; see also Jewish thought; Judaism John, the Apostle, see under New Testament John the Baptist, 158 John of the Cross, 27 Jordan, Louis, 204 Jost, I. M., 132 Jowett, B., 12, 14 Judaeo-Christian tradition, 11, 288 Judaism, 154-5, 157, 168, 240, 282, 291, 292; and Christianity, 73, 88, 89, 90, 91; concern for the individual, 86; effort of Christian scholars to understand, 133; ethical character of, 75. 77, 80, 82-7, 91; Halakha, 83, 87, 92; as historical aberration, 130-1, 132; historical development of, 86, 117-18, 129, 132, 133, 186; historicity and, 99-101; legal aspect of, 91, 93, 94, 129, 130; nineteenth-century Jewish thought on, 71-102; nineteenthcentury sociologists' interpretations of, 1112, 292; and rediscovery of Israel, 115; Reform movements, 88, 97, 101, 121; as religion of spirit, 76-7, 84; and Zionism, 101-2; see also Jewish thought; Wissenschaft; and under Old Testament Jiilicher, Adolf, 167 Kabisch, Richard, 169-70 Kames, Henry Home, Lord, 217 Kant, Immanuel, Kantianism, 15, 84, 184, 270, 271, 289; influence on modern Jewish thought, 71, 78, 82-3, 85-6, 87, 88-9, 98; Max Miiller and, 184, 185, 190, 192-6 karma, doctrine of, 58, 293 Kaufmann, Walter, 49 Kautsky, Karl, 267 Keble, John, 3
Keightley, T., 248 Kennicott, Benjamin, 113 Kern, Friedrich Heinrich, 168 Kern, Hendrik, 199, 208 Kierkegaard, Seren, 279 King, John H., 251 Kittel, Rudolf, 115 Knight, R. Payne, 230 Konigsman, Bernhard, 167 Koppe, Johannes Benjamin, 160 Krochmal, Nachman, 75, 80-2, 100, 120 Kuenen, Abraham, 123, 128, 129 Kuhn, Adalbert, 198 Lachmann, Karl, 149, 150, 152, 161
Lafitau, Jean, 185-6, 187 Lake, Kirsopp, 151, 152, 153 Lamarck, J. B., 2, 219 Lang, Andrew, 180, 184, 198, 229, 245; controversy with Max Miiller, 187-8, 197, 201, 249 Lange, Samuel Gottlieb, 158 language, linguistics, 6, 208, 217; see also philology; and under Miiller, Max; Nietzsche Lassen, Christian, 182 Latitudinarians, 144 Layard, A. H., 134 Le Clerc, Jean, 159, 160 Le Museon, 205 Le Roy, Edouard, 21, 28 Leeuw, G. van der, 208, 223 Legge, James, 208 Leibniz, G. W., 144, 314 Leiden, University of, 123, 128, 204 Leipzig, University of, 181-2, 188, 189, 193 Leo XIII, Pope, 25 Lessing, G. E., 93, 120, 145, 157, 159 Levi-Strauss, C , 236, 250, 254; Levi-Straussian structuralism, 247 Levy-Bruhl, Lucien, 254 Lewis, Agnes Smith, 151 'liberal' theologians, 19 'liberation theology', 318 Liddon, Henry Parry, 3, 4 Lidzbarski, Mark, 158 Lienhardt, R. G., 223, 224, 254 Lightfoot, Joseph Barber, 168 Linnaeus, 215 Loisy, Alfred Firmin, 26 Lotze, Hermann, 182, 193 Low, Sidney, 309 Lowie, R. H., 251 Lubbock, John, 187, 217, 224, 228, 239; hierarchy of religion, 233-4 Lucian of Antioch, 148, 149, 151 Likke, Friedrich, 155 Liidemann, Hermann, 169 Luther, Martin, 265, 270, 277; New Testament studies, 154, 165, 166, 167, 171 Lutheran Church, Lutheranism, i n , 264-5, 273, 289, 294, 295 Liitzelberger, E. K. J., 157 Mach, Ernst, 21, 22 McKown, D. B., The Classical Critiques of Religion, 277, 278 McLennan, J. F., 217, 219, 230, 231, 235-6, 238, 239, 245 magic and religion, relationship between, 220, 227-8, 237-8, 242-5, 251, 253, 269, 275, 290, 293
Mai, Angelo, 150 Maimonides, Moses, 95
337
Index Maistre, J. C. de, 228 Malebranche, Nicolas, 314 Malinowski, B. K., 251 man, humanity: conflict between evolutionary theories and religious conceptions of, 1-7 passim, 13-21 passim, 25-6; created in image of God, 74, 98; ethical formation of, 85-7; mental development of, 6, 13, 14, 22; relationship between God and, 77-8, 79, 85, 86, 270-1, 274, 315, 322; spiritual nature of, 17, 77-8; see also monogenist theory; and under Nietzsche mana (sense of'awe'), 222, 238, 245, 251 Mandaean religious literature, 157-8 Manier, Edward, 16 Mannhardt, Wilhelm, 198 'Marburg School' of Neo-Kantianism, 85 Marcion, 146, 147, 152, 155, 164, 170, 171 Marett, R. R., 222, 238, 244, 251, 254 Marsh, Herbert, 160, 162 Marx, Karl, Marxism, 11, 16, 252, 267, 270, 272, 273, 274; approach to religion, 275-8; and Christianity, 39, 276-8, 282; and Hegel, 271; see also under Weber
Massebieau, L., 165 materialism, 4, 38, 41, 43, 48, 50 Mauss, Marcel, 208, 240, 241, 242, 244-5, 252, 253 Maxwell, James, 21 Mayerhoff, Ernst Theodor, 168 Meinecke, Friedrich, 305 Mendelssohn, Felix, 181 Mendelssohn, Moses, 83-4, 91, 92-5, 97, 98, 120 Mesopotamia, archaeological discoveries in,
134-5, 180 Messianism, 8, 86-7, 88, 90, 125, 126, 146 metaphysics, 11, 50, 51, 84, 191, 226 Michaelis, Johann David, n o , 113, 144, 149, 159-60 Middleton, Conyers, 143 Mill, John, 147-8 Mill, John Stuart, 8, 9, 10 millenarianism, 2 Miller, Perry, 272 Milman, H. H., 116, 126 miracle, 8, 9, n , 17 Mishnah, 109, 133 Mivart, St George, 1, 7 Modernism, 21, 25, 26, 128 modernity, 72, 74, 94, 100, 102 Moffat, R., 228 Moleschott, Jacob, 4 Mommsen, T., 128 monastic religiosity, 294, 295 Monboddo, James Burnet, Lord, 217 Monier-Williams, Sir Monier, 183 monism, 15, 21, 310
Monist League, 15 monogenist theory, 218, 220-1, 227 monotheism, 135, 186, 203; Jewish thought on, 74, 76-82, 86-7, 88, 95 Montaigne, Michel de, 215 Montefiore, Claude, 133 Montesquieu, Charles de Secondat, 217 morality, ethics, 11, 13, 15, 19-20, 71, 234; Darwin's natural history of, 6-7; Judaism and, 75, 77, 78, 80, 82-7, 91; Nietzsche's views on, 39, 51-2, 61 Morgan, L. H., 217, 219, 224 Morgan, Thomas, 146-7, 154, 155, 164, 167, 171
Muellenhoff, C. V., 198 Miiller, Friedrich Max, 2, 179-209, 217, 245, 248-9, 253; and anthropological school, 1878; biographical sketch, 181-5; doctrine of henotheism, 179, 203-4; a n d history of religions, 204-8; interest in Indo-European culture and Rg-Veda, 179, 180, 182-3, 188, 193, 194, 197, 203-4, 24&~9; a n d Kant, 184, 185, 190, 192-6; and origins of religions, 186-8, 234-5; anc* philosophy, 188-92; and solar mythology, 179, 196—9, 208; theory of language, 183, 191-2, 193-4, 196-7, 199-202, 206-7, 209-> theory of origins of deities, 179, 183, 199-202, 208; theory of religious faculty and perceptions of the infinite, 192, 193-6, 203, 209 Miiller, Wilhelm, 181 Musee Guimet, Paris, 205 mysticism, 22, 23, 26, 282, 283, 291, 296 mythology, 239, 248-51; Max Miiller and, 179, 183, 184, 188, 193, 194, 196-202 passim, 209, 248-9; see also under Old Testament Nadel, S. F., 224 nationalism, 16 nature, religions of, 75-7, 79, 85, 195, 197, 231, 233, 249 Nazarenes, 146 Nazi ideology, 15, 16 Neander, August, 166 Needham, R., 253 neo-Kantianism, 72, 85 Nestle, Eberhard, 151 New Testament, 17, 90, 118, 143-71, 207; Acts of the Apostles, 157, 165, 166-7, I7(>~Ii Book of Revelation (Apocalypse), 146, 153—6, 164; critical study of history of Greek text, 14753; criticism of books said to be written by the Apostle John, 153-9; criticism of Catholic Epistles, 165-6, 170; criticism of Pauline Epistles, 167-70; Fourth Gospel, 145-6, 153, 154, 155, 156-8; 'History of Religions' movement and, 133, 134; and idea of Catholic Christianity as late synthesis, 143,
338
Index 145, 146, 155, 170, 171; Latitudinarian divines' attitude to, 144; relationship to Old Testament, 109, 121, 125, 131, 132; Synoptic Gospels, 130, 133, 159-64, 165; use of principle of accommodation in interpretation of, 145, 147; see also Paul, Saint; and under Germany; Jesus Newman, John Henry, 4, 17, 21, 26 Newton, Isaac, 154; Newtonian physics, 243 Niebergall, F., 320 Niebuhr, B. G., 116, 128, 132 Nietzsche, Friedrich Wilhelm, 10, 21, 37-64, 279, 281; attitude towards religion, 39, 52, 54, 56, 63-4; Beyond Good and Evil, 59, 61; The Birth of Tragedy, 45-6, 47; concept of free spirit ('Wanderer'), 50, 53, 61; concept of will, 38-9, 40, 41, 43-4, 55, 56-7, 60-2, 63; creation of new type of man, the 'genius', 39, 46-7, 48, 56; doctrine of eternal recurrence, 48, 53-9 passim, 64; The Gay Science, 41, 53, 54; Human, All-too-Human, 48, 49, 50, 54; idea of amor fati, 54, 57; idea of'pure knowledge', 50, 51, 52; influence of Schopenhauer and Wagner on, 45, 49; materialism of, 38, 41, 43, 48, 50; new conception of man, iUbermensch\ 39, 55-6, 57, 58, 64; perspectivism of, 38, 48, 49, 50-1, 60, 61, 62; preoccupation with the future, 47, 48; problems of interpreting thought of, 37™ 42; rejection of Christianity, 37, 39, 40, 42-8, 63, 64; revaluation of values, 40, 59-60; thought on education and scholarship, 44, 45, 46-7, 48; Thus Spoke Zarathustra, 41, 53, 54-9; Untimely Meditations, 41, 46, 47; view of existence as arbitrary, irresponsible and purposeless, 39, 51-2, 53, 54, 55, 58, 61; view of language, 50, 51, 60; vision of'new philosopher', 62-3 nihilism, 40, 64 Noire, Ludwig, 193 North American Indians, studies of, 186, 216 Nuer religion, 226, 246 Odes of Solomon, 158 Oeder, Georg Ludwig, 154 O'Flaherty, W. D., 253 Old Testament, 4, 12, 20, 109-36, 207; application of Hegelian theories to study of, 118, 123, 126, 131; book of Isaiah, 112; Christian approach to study of, 109-10, i n , 115, 121, 125, 126, 130-1, 133; discussion of Chronicles I and II, 117; effect of archaeological and cultural discoveries in Middle East on study of, 115, 134-6; English religious thought on, 116; Hexateuch, 128, 129; historical-critical approach to, 110-11, 116, 121-2, 123-4, 126, 129-30; impact of 'History of Religions' movement on study of,
133-4; interpretation of Psalms, 118-19; Jewish attitudes to, 109-10, 115, 120-1, 1323; literary-critical approach to, n o , 111-12, 113-14, 122, 123, 132; mythological nature of, 3, 19, i n , 119; and origin of Deuteronomy, 117, 128; problem of tracing development of Judaism in, 117-18, 119-20; relationship to New Testament, 109, 121, 125, 131, 132; task of writing history of Israel in forefront of scientific study of, 124-6, 129-32; see also Genesis; Pentateuch; and under Germany Oldenberg, Hermann, 208 oriental religions, interest in, 182, 205, 207-8, 291-2, 313 Origen, 147, 148, 149, 151, 167 Original Sin, doctrine of, 20, 21, 27, 85, 88-9, 222; see also Fall Otto, Rudolf, 24, 82, 208, 223, 238 Overbeck, Franz, 164, 169 Owen, Henry, 159, 162 paganism, 76-7, 81, 88, 90 Palestine, 114-15 Paley, William, 18 Pali studies, 180, 182 Pamphilus of Caesarea, 152 pantheism, 77, 79, 81, 82, 90 particularism, Jewish, 119, 125, 131 Paul, Saint, Paulinism, 88; Pauline Epistles, 165, 167-70; theory of conflict between Jewish apostles and, 146, 147, 154, 155, 157, 164-7 Passim, 171 Pentateuch, 112, 117, 118, 120, 128, 129 perception, theories of, 61, 195-6 Perdelwitz, Richard, 166 perspectivism, 38, 48, 49, 50- 1, 60, 61, 62 Pettazzoni, Raffaele, 208 Philo, 156 philology, 44, 45, 49, 113-14, 136, 179, 188, 191, 197, 200-2, 208; see also language philosophy, 73-4, 179; Max Miiller and, 184, 188-92; Nietzsche's view of, 50, 52, 60, 61, 62-3 physics, 15, 18, 22 pietism, 23, 147, 273 Pinard de la Boullaye, H., 206 Ploix, Charles, 197 Poincare, Henri, 21 polygenist theory, 220-1 polytheism, 135, 186, 203 Pope, 154, 294 predestination, 277, 284, 292, 293, 295; see also free will Prichard, J. C , 218 primitive peoples and societies: degenerationist theories concerning, 217, 228-9, 2 4^; discovery of, 180, 215-16; Enlightenment
339
Index primitive peoples and societies: (cont.) view of, 231; modern anthropological attitudes to, 253-4; nineteenth-century anthropologists' attitudes to, 216, 221-2, 223, 226, 233, 235, 249; see also primitive religion primitive religion, 22, 180, 185-8, 216-55 passim, 288; Nietzsche's view of, 52; see also animism; fetishism; magic; ritual; sacrifice; totemism progress, ideas of, 2, 4-5, 12, 13, 18, 94, 21920, 228, 231, 315; Nietzsche and, 39, 47; see also development; evolution; social evolutionism Protestantism, 144, 225, 273, 281, 289, 294-5, 323; and science, 2, 17, 19, 23-4 psychology, 21, 27, 191 Puritanism, 63, 264, 267, 273 Pusey, E. B., 115-16 Ranke, Leopold von, 128, 266, 285, 315 Rashdall, Hastings, 24 rationalism, rationality, 8, 25, 128, 185, 202, 239, 275; Kant and, 83, 194, 196; Jewish thought and, 83-4, 93, 95, 97-8; 'occidental rationality', 268, 286, 311 Reardon, Bernard M. G., 272 rebirth, doctrines of, 291 redaction-criticism, 118, 163 redemption, 89, 292 reductionism, 5, 24 Ree, Paul, 48, 50 Reformation, 154, 277 Reitzenstein, Richard, 158 relativism, 311, 312, 313 religion: definitions of, 190, 222-3, 275i philosophical interpretation of, 91, n o , 190; substitutes for, 39, 231; see also science and religion
Rivers, W. H., 251 Robinson, Edward, 114-15 Roeth, E. M., 167 Roman Catholicism, 23, 90, 154, 273, 289, 2945; and science, 8, 9, 24-7; see also Modernism Romanticism, 38, 52, 126, 130, 185, 202, 310 Roscher, W. G. F., 266 Rosenzweig, Franz, 75, 97, 98-9 Roskoff, G. G., 187 Rousseau, J.-J., 215, 217, 227, 231 Russia, Jews in, 12 Sabatier, Auguste, 23-4, 25, 28 Sacred Books of the East series, 179, 184, 207-8 sacrifice, 240-2 Salvador, Joseph, 90 salvation, ideas of, 39, 57, 291, 292, 293, 296; soteriology, 322; see also Heilsgeschichte
Religionswissenschaftlicher Kongress (1897), 205
religious discourse, 224 religious experience, consciousness, 22, 24, 25, 26-8, 29, 73, 82, 225; see also feeling religious language, 191-2, 193-4 Renan, Ernest, 8, 9, 10, 12, 157, 201 resurrection, doctrine of, 3, 8, 10, n Reuchlin, J. J., 109 Reuss, Eduard, 123, 127, 129 revelation, 19, 20, 22, 79, 128; Christianity and, 3-4, 17, 23, 24-5; Judaism and, 72, 84, 91-9 passim; notion of 'progressive', 14 Reville, Albert, 2, 245 Revue de Chistoire des religions, 205
Rg-Veda, see under Miiller, Friedrich Max Rickert, Heinrich, 284, 285, 286, 311 Ritschl, Albrecht, Ritschlianism, 23, 28, 168, 306, 320 Ritter, Carl, 114 ritual, 239, 243, 250, 253; rites of passage, 241-2
Sanskrit, 180, 182, 183, 188, 197, 199, 204 Saussure, Ferdinand de, 247, 252 Schelling, F. W. J. von, 78, 120, 182, 189 Schenkel, Daniel, 157 Schiller, J. F. von, 190 Schlegel, Friedrich, 180 Schleiermacher, Friedrich, 82, 147, 156, 157, 160, 166, 168, 190 Schluchter, Wolfgang, 293, 294, 295 Schmidt, Johann Ernst Christian, 166, 168 Schmidt, Wilhelm, 208 Schneckenburger, Matthius, 165, 166 Scholem, Gershom, 99 Schopenhauer, Arthur, 45, 48, 49, 52, 71, 279 Schrader, Karl, 166, 168 Schiirer, Emil, 133 Schwanbeck, Eugen, 167 Schwartz, Wilhelm, 198 Schwegler, Albert, 166 Schweitzer, Albert, 164, 169 Schweizer, Alexander, 157 science and religion, 1-29, 52, 206, 231, 277; attempts at reconciliation, 10-11, 18; Catholic views on, 24-7; compatibility of Christian doctrine and evolutionism, 2-7; conflict between, 4; disengagement of conflict in later nineteenth century, 21-4; Protestant views on, 16-21; scientists' criticism of religious orthodoxy, 8-16 Scottish Enlightenment, 215, 217 Sedgwick, Adam, 12 Seeley, John R., 8, 10, 12, 13 Selden, John, 201 Semler, J. S., n o - i i , 116, 121, 125, 145; and history of early Church, 146, 155, 164-5, 171; New Testament criticism, 148, 154, 157, 159, 165, 166, 170 Senart, Emile, 199
340
Index separatist theology, 23, 29 Sharpe, Eric J., 206 Simmel, Georg, 263-4, 2 ^6, 279> 2 ^3, 286—8; conception of form, 284, 285, 290; and individual religiosity, 270, 287 Simon, R., 117 sin, 3, 52, 78, 86; see also Original Sin slave-trade, movement for abolition of, 216 Smith, Anthony, 16 Smith, Eli, 114 Smith, George, 134 Smith, W. Robertson, 129, 217, 226, 229, 230, 238-42, 245, 250; opinions on sacrifice, 2401; sociology of religion, 239-40; and totemism, 236, 252 social evolutionism, 217-20, 227-31, 233, 238, 2 39> 253 society: Durkheimian concept of God as collective representation of, 22-3, 237, 241, 245-6, 248; and individual, 247-8, 264-5, 270-1, 274, 277, 279, 281 sociology, 5, 6, 11, 127, 203, 239; see also social evolutionism; society; sociology of religion sociology of religion, 5, 239-40, 263-98 Soden, Hermann Freiherr von, 151-2, 153, 167 Sohm, Rudolph, 270, 273 solar mythology, 179, 196-9, 208 Sombart, Werner, 11, 280 soul, 7, 15, 26, 87, 227, 234, 238 Spencer, Herbert, 15, 184, 187, 217, 230, 239, 245; and primitive religion, 222, 224, 234; Principles of Sociology, 220; progressivist
ideas of development, 2, 4, 5-6, 14, 16, 219-20 Spinoza, B., 15, 81, 120, 144 Spitta, Friedrich, 165 Stanley, A. P., 116 Stanner, W. E. H., 236 Steinheim, Salomon, 90, 94-5, 97 Steck, Rudolf, 169 Stephanus, Robert, 148, 151 Stocking, G. W., 218 Storr, Gottlob Christian, 160 Strasbourg, University of, 123, 127 Strauss, David Friedrich, 118, 130, 157, 163-4, 272
structuralism, 247, 250, 252, 253 supernaturalism, 1, 2, 8-9, 11, 14-15, 25, 26, 128, 247 Switzerland, study of history of religions in, 204-5 Syllabus of Errors (1864), 25
symbolic action, categories of, 242-3 Synoptic Gospels, see under New Testament Takakusu, Junjiro, 208 Talmud, 109, 133 Taoism, 207, 292
Temple, Frederick, 1, 14, 16-19, 2 0 Temple, William, 18 Tennant, F. R., 19-21 Tertullian, 148 Testaments of the Twelve Patriarchs, 159 theodicy, 268, 291-4 passim Theodore of Mopsuestia, 165 Thiersch, Heinrich W. J., 169 Thirlwall, J. Connop, 116 Thomism, 25 Tiele, Cornelis T., 204 Tindal, Matthew, 146-7 Tischendorf, Constantin von, 150, 151, 152 Toland, John, 146 Tolstoy, L. N., 39 Torah, 91, 94 Torres Strait Expedition (1898), 251 totemism, 230-8 passim, 241, 245-6, 252, 253 Townson, Thomas, 159 Trinity, doctrine of, 11, 144, 148 Troeltsch, Ernst, 23, 24, 133, 270, 279, 280-6 passim, 292, 305-24; and absoluteness of Christianity, 308, 309, 311, 317, 319, 320, 321; and centrality of religion, 264, 265, 284; and church-sect theme, 274, 282, 283; concept of humanity, 315, 316, 318-19, 323; concept of'individualization', 317-19, 322-3; and Hegel, 272-3, 286; and historical relativism, 311-13, 320; and individual freedom and autonomy, 314-16; and Max Weber, 263, 264, 266, 280-5; philosophy of history, 306-13 passim, 316-17, 320—1, 322; and Protestantism, 281, 323; search for reconstruction of Christianity, 305-6, 319-20, 322, 323-4; and significance of faith, 313-14, 315; and social teachings of Christianity, 267, 282-3; theory of 'Europeanism' and 'crisis of history', 307-9, 313, 316, 317, 319, 323; understanding of 'historic individuality', 30911, 312, 313, 314-15, 316 Tubingen School, 118, 123, 155, 157, 159, 162, 166, 168, 170 Turgot, A. R. J., 219, 220, 227 Tychsen, T. C , 113 Tylor, E. B., 180, 187, 217, 224, 236, 240, 245, 248, 249; discussion of animism and fetishism, 218, 221, 228, 230, 231, 234; doctrine of cultural survivals, 221, 237; and origin of religion, 222, 238, 239; Primitive Culture, 221; social evolutionism of, 219-21, 227, 253; use of comparative method, 221, 229, 232, 254 United States of America, 2, 129, 316, 317; anthropology in, 251; Jews in, 12, 75 universalism, 89, 91; Kant's ethical, 85, 86; Troeltsch and, 286, 318-19 Usteri, Leonhard, 168
341
Index Vater, J. S., 117, 119 Vatican attitudes on conflict between science and religion, 25, 28 Vatke, Wilhelm, 118, 127, 129 Vedic studies, 197-8, 202, 203 4 Vetter, G. B., 222 Vico, Giovanni Battista, 217 Vischer, Eberhard, 155 Vogel, Erhard Friedrich, 156 Vogt, Karl, 4 Voltaire, 50, 186, 215, 217 Vries, Jan de, 197
Troeltsch, 263, 264, 266, 280-5; world rejection and notions of theodicy and individual salvation, 267, 268, 290-3, 294, 296
Wagner, Richard, 45, 49 Wallace, Alfred Russell, 12, 13-14, 15, 16, 20 Ward, James, 20, 21, 22 Webb, Clement, 24 Weber, Max, 11, 263-98; and Christianity, 264, 267, 273-4, 276, 281-2, 292, 298; and church-sect distinction, 274, 282, 283; concept of dualistic world-images, 289, 290, 296; development of scientific concepts for study of religion, 266, 267-8, 273; emphasis on religious factor in rise of modern capitalism, 267, 268, 276, 279, 281, 289, 2956; and routinization of charisma, 273, 294; and Hegel, 263, 266, 272-5, 297; interest in role of religion in universal history, 263, 266, 268-9, 2l2i 2l&~7-> 2 86, 297; interest in transition from Catholicism to Protestantism, 273, 289, 294-5; ar»d Marxist ideas, 263, 275-8, 289, 297; and Protestantism, 277, 281-2, 311; and rationalization processes, 293-4, 296-7; and relationship between individual religiosity and societal secularity, 264-5, 2ll~2, 274> 277> 295~6; and relationship between religious and economic, 267, 269, 280, 283, 289-90, 296, 297-8; and Simmel, 266, 279, 285, 286, 287-8; and
Wegschneider, Julius A. L., 157 Weiss, Bernhard, 151, 165 Weiss, Johannes, 162, 164, 169 Weisse, C. H., 157, 158, 161, 162, 169, 182, 189, 190, 193 Wellhausen, Julius, 124, 127, 128-31, 132, 133, 135, 161, 162; 'Wellhausenism', 127, 129 Westcott, Brooke Foss, 150-1 Wetstein, J. J., 148, 159, 165 Whateley, R., 228 Whiston, William, 148 Whitehead, Alfred North, 310 Wilberforce, William, 216 Wilke, Christian Gottlob, 161 will, concept of, 26, 93; see also under Nietzsche Windelband, Wilhelm, 311 Wissenschaft movement (Science of Judaism), 96, 100, 101, 120-1, 131 Wittgenstein, Ludwig, 222, 224, 254 Wittichen, C , 158, 159 Wolf, F. A., 121 Wordsworth, Christopher, 12 World Parliament of Religions (1893), 205 world religions, study of, 24, 207, 263, 268, 273, 285-6, 288-^9 Wrede, W., 167 Wurm, Alois, 159 Young, Dr Robert, 16 Zahn, Theodor, 168-9 Zionism, 12, 101-2, 132 Zoroastrianism, 207, 290, 291 Zunz, L., 120-1
342